summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes3
-rw-r--r--31503-8.txt7983
-rw-r--r--31503-8.zipbin0 -> 166973 bytes
-rw-r--r--31503-h.zipbin0 -> 245154 bytes
-rw-r--r--31503-h/31503-h.htm11187
-rw-r--r--31503-h/images/cover.jpgbin0 -> 66512 bytes
-rw-r--r--31503.txt7983
-rw-r--r--31503.zipbin0 -> 166886 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
10 files changed, 27169 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6833f05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,3 @@
+* text=auto
+*.txt text
+*.md text
diff --git a/31503-8.txt b/31503-8.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..4128672
--- /dev/null
+++ b/31503-8.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,7983 @@
+Project Gutenberg's Contemporary Russian Novelists, by Serge Persky
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: Contemporary Russian Novelists
+
+Author: Serge Persky
+
+Translator: Frederick Eisemann
+
+Release Date: March 4, 2010 [EBook #31503]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CONTEMPORARY RUSSIAN NOVELISTS ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Juliet Sutherland and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+ CONTEMPORARY
+ RUSSIAN NOVELISTS
+
+
+ Translated from the French of Serge Persky
+ By FREDERICK EISEMANN
+
+
+ JOHN W. LUCE AND COMPANY
+ BOSTON 1913
+
+
+ _Copyright, 1912_
+ BY C. DELAGRAVE
+
+ _Copyright, 1913_
+ BY L. E. BASSETT
+
+
+ To
+ THE MEMORY OF
+ F. N. S.
+
+ BY
+ THE TRANSLATOR
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE
+
+
+The principal aim of this book is to give the reader a good general
+knowledge of Russian literature as it is to-day. The author, Serge
+Persky, has subordinated purely critical material, because he wants
+his readers to form their own judgments and criticize for
+themselves. The element of literary criticism is not, however, by
+any means entirely lacking.
+
+In the original text, there is a thorough and exhaustive treatment
+of the "great prophet" of Russian literature--Tolstoy--but the
+translator has deemed it wise to omit this essay, because so much
+has recently been written about this great man.
+
+As the title of the book is "Contemporary Russian Novelists," the
+essay on Anton Tchekoff, who is no longer living, does not rightly
+belong here, but Tchekoff is such an important figure in modern
+Russian literature and has attracted so little attention from
+English writers that it seems advisable to retain the essay that
+treats of his work.
+
+Finally, let me express my sincerest thanks to Dr. G. H. Maynadier
+of Harvard for his kind advice; to Miss Edna Wetzler for her
+unfailing and valuable help, and to Miss Carrie Harper, who has gone
+over this work with painstaking care.
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS
+
+
+ CHAPTER PAGE
+
+ I. A Brief Survey of Russian Literature 1
+
+ II. Anton Tchekoff 40
+
+ III. Vladimir Korolenko 76
+
+ IV. Vikenty Veressayev 108
+
+ V. Maxim Gorky 142
+
+ VI. Leonid Andreyev 199
+
+ VII. Dmitry Merezhkovsky 246
+
+ VIII. Alexander Kuprin 274
+
+ IX. Writers in Vogue 289
+
+
+
+
+CONTEMPORARY RUSSIAN NOVELISTS
+
+
+
+
+I
+
+A BRIEF SURVEY OF RUSSIAN LITERATURE
+
+
+In order to get a clear idea of modern Russian literature, a
+knowledge of its past is indispensable. This knowledge will help us
+in understanding that which distinguishes it from other European
+literatures, not only from the viewpoint of the art which it
+expresses, but also as the historical and sociological mirror of the
+nation's life in the course of centuries.
+
+The dominant trait of this literature is found in its very origins.
+Unlike the literatures of other European countries, which followed,
+in a more or less regular way, the development of life and
+civilization during historic times, Russian literature passed
+through none of these stages. Instead of being a product of the
+past, it is a protestation against it; instead of retracing the old
+successive stages, it appears, intermittently, like a light
+suddenly struck in the darkness. Its whole history is a long
+continual struggle against this darkness, which has gradually melted
+away beneath these rays of light, but has never entirely ceased to
+veil the general trend of Russian thought.
+
+As a result of the unfortunate circumstances which characterize her
+history, Russia was for a long time deprived of any relations with
+civilized Europe. The necessity of concentrating all her strength on
+fighting the Mongolians laid the corner-stone of a sort of
+semi-Asiatic political autocracy. Besides, the influence of the
+Byzantine clergy made the nation hostile to the ideas and science of
+the Occident, which were represented as heresies incompatible with
+the orthodox faith. However, when she finally threw off the
+Mongolian yoke, and when she found herself face to face with Europe,
+Russia was led to enter into diplomatic relations with the various
+Western powers. She then realized that European art and science were
+indispensable to her, if only to strengthen her in warfare against
+these States. For this reason a number of European ideas began to
+come into Russia during the reigns of the last Muscovite sovereigns.
+But they assumed a somewhat sacerdotal character in passing through
+the filter of Polish society, and took on, so to speak, a dogmatic
+air. In general, European influence was not accepted in Russia
+except with extreme repugnance and restless circumspection, until
+the accession of Peter I. This great monarch, blessed with unusual
+intelligence and a will of iron, decided to use all his autocratic
+power in impressing, to use the words of Pushkin, "a new direction
+upon the Russian vessel;"--Europe instead of Asia.
+
+Peter the Great had to contend against the partisans of ancient
+tradition, the "obscurists" and the adversaries of profane science;
+and this inevitable struggle determined the first character of
+Russian literature, where the satiric element, which in essence is
+an attack on the enemies of reform, predominates. In organizing
+grotesque processions, clownish masquerades, in which the
+long-skirted clothes and the streaming beards of the honorable
+champions of times gone by were ridiculed, Peter himself appeared as
+a pitiless destroyer of the ancient costumes and superannuated
+ideas.
+
+The example set by the practical irony of this man was followed,
+soon after the death of the Tsar, by Kantemir, the first Russian
+author who wrote satirical verses. These verses were very much
+appreciated in his time. In them, he mocks with considerable fervor
+the ignorant contemners of science, who taste happiness only in the
+gratification of their material appetites.
+
+At the same time that the Russian authors pursued the enemies of
+learning with sarcasm, they heaped up eulogies, which bordered on
+idolatry, on Peter I, and, after him, on his successors. In these
+praises, which were excessively hyperbolical, there was always some
+sincerity. Peter had, in fact, in his reign, paved the way for
+European civilization, and it seemed merely to be waiting for the
+sovereigns, Peter's successors, to go on with the work started by
+their illustrious ancestor. The most powerful leaders, and the first
+representatives of the new literature, strode ahead, then, hand in
+hand, but their paths before long diverged. Peter the Great wanted
+to use European science for practical purposes only: it was only to
+help the State, to make capable generals, to win wars, to help
+savants find means to develop the national wealth by industry and
+commerce; he--Peter--had no time to think of other things. But
+science throws her light into the most hidden corners, and when it
+brings social and political iniquities to light, then the government
+hastens to persecute that which, up to this time, it has encouraged.
+
+The protective, and later hostile, tendencies of the government in
+regard to authors manifested themselves with a special violence
+during the reign of Catherine II. This erudite woman, an admirer of
+Voltaire and of the French "encyclopédistes," was personally
+interested in writing. She wrote several plays in which she
+ridiculed the coarse manners and the ignorance of the society of her
+time. Under the influence of this new impulse, which had come from
+one in such a high station in life, a legion of satirical journals
+flooded the country. The talented and spiritual von Vizin wrote
+comedies, the most famous of which exposes the ignorance and cruelty
+of country gentlemen; in another, he shows the ridiculousness of
+people who take only the brilliant outside shell from European
+civilization. Shortly, Radishchev's "Voyage from Moscow to
+St. Petersburg" appeared. Here the author, with the fury of
+passionate resentment, and with sad bitterness, exposes the
+miserable condition of the people under the yoke of the high and
+mighty. It was then that the empress, Catherine the Great, so gentle
+to the world at large and so authoritative at home, perceiving that
+satire no longer spared the guardian principles necessary for the
+security of the State, any more than they did popular superstitions,
+manifested a strong displeasure against it. Consequently, the
+satirical journals disappeared as quickly as they had appeared. Von
+Vizin, who, in his pleasing "Questions to Catherine" had touched on
+various subjects connected with court etiquette, and on the miseries
+of political life, had to content himself with silence. Radishchev
+was arrested, thrown into a fortress, and then sent to Siberia.
+They went so far as to accuse Derzhavin, the greatest poet of this
+time, the celebrated "chanter of Catherine," in his old age, of
+Jacobinism for having translated into verse one of the psalms of
+David; besides this, the energetic apostle of learning, Novikov, a
+journalist, a writer, and the founder of a remarkable society which
+devoted itself to the publication and circulation of useful books,
+was accused of having had relations with foreign secret societies.
+He was confined in the fortress at Schluesselburg after all his
+belongings had been confiscated. The critic and the satirist had had
+their wings clipped. But it was no longer possible to check this
+tendency, for, by force of circumstances, it had been planted in the
+very soul of every Russian who compared the conditions of life in
+his country with what European civilization had done for the
+neighboring countries.
+
+Excluded from journalism, this satiric tendency took refuge in
+literature, where the novel and the story trace the incidents of
+daily life. Since the writers could not touch the evil at its
+source, they showed its consequences for social life. They
+represented with eloquence the empty and deplorable banality of the
+existence forced upon most of them. By expressing in various ways
+general aspirations towards something better, they let literature
+continue its teaching, even in times particularly hostile to
+freedom of thought, like the reign of Nicholas I, the most typical
+and decided adversary of the freedom of the pen that Europe has ever
+seen. Literature was, then, considered as an inevitable evil, but
+one from which the world wanted to free itself; and every man of
+letters seemed to be under suspicion. During this reign, not only
+criticisms of the government, but also praises of it, were
+considered offensive and out of place. Thus, the chief of the secret
+police, when he found that a writer of that time, Bulgarine, whose
+name was synonymous with accuser and like evils, had taken the
+liberty to praise the government for some insignificant improvements
+made on a certain street, told him with severity: "You are not asked
+to praise the government, you must only praise men of letters."
+
+Nothing went to print without the authorization of the general
+censor, an authorization that had to be confirmed by the various
+parts of the complex machine, and, finally, by a superior committee
+which censored the censors. The latter were themselves so terrorized
+that they scented subversive ideas even in cook-books, in technical
+musical terms, and in punctuation marks. It would seem that under
+such conditions no kind of literature, and certainly no satire,
+could exist. Nevertheless, it was at this period that Gogol produced
+his best works. The two most important are, his comedy "The
+Revizor," where he stigmatizes the abuses of administration, and
+"Dead Souls," that classic work which de Vogüé judges worthy of
+being given a place in universal literature, between "Don Quixote"
+and "Gil Blas," and which, in a series of immortal types,
+flagellates the moral emptiness and the mediocrity of life in high
+Russian society at that time.
+
+At the same time, Griboyedov's famous comedy, "Intelligence Comes to
+Grief," which the censorship forbade to be produced or even
+published, was being circulated in manuscript form. This comedy, a
+veritable masterpiece, has for its hero a man named Chatsky, who was
+condemned as a madman by the aristocratic society of Moscow on
+account of his independent spirit and patriotic sentiments. It is
+true that in all of these works the authors hardly attack important
+personages or the essential bases of political organization. The
+functionaries and proprietors of Gogol's works are "petites gens,"
+and the civic pathos of Chatsky aims at certain individuals and not
+at the national institutions. But these attacks, cleverly veiling
+the general conditions of Russian life, led the intelligent reader
+to meditate on certain questions, and it also permitted satire to
+live through the most painful periods. Later, with the coming of the
+reforms of Alexander II, satire manifested itself more openly in
+the works of Saltykov, who was not afraid to use all his talent in
+scourging, with his biting sarcasm, violence and arbitrariness.
+
+Another salient trait of Russian literature is its tendency toward
+realism, the germ of which can be seen even in the most
+old-fashioned works, when, following the precepts of the West, they
+were taken up first with pseudo-classicism, and then with the
+romantic spirit which followed.
+
+Pseudo-classicism had but few worthy representatives in Russia, if
+we omit the poet Derzhavin, whom Pushkin accused of having a poor
+knowledge of his mother tongue, and whose monotonous work shows
+signs of genius only here and there.
+
+As to romanticism! Here we find excellent translations of the German
+poets by Zhukovsky, and the poems of Lermontov and Pushkin, all
+impregnated with the spirit of Byron. But these two movements came
+quickly to an end. Soon realism, under the influence of Dickens and
+Balzac, installed itself as master of this literature, and, in spite
+of the repeated efforts of the symbolist schools, nothing has yet
+been able to wipe it out. Thus, the triumph of realism was not, as
+in the case of earlier tendencies, the simple result of the spirit
+of imitation which urges authors to choose models that are in
+vogue, but it was a response to a powerful instinct. The truth of
+this statement is very evident in view of the fact that realism
+appeared in Russian literature at a time when it was still a novelty
+in Europe. The need of representing naked reality, without any
+decorations, is, so to speak, innate in the Russian author, who
+cannot, for any length of time, be led away from this practice. This
+is the very reason why the Byronian influence, at the time of
+Pushkin and Lermontov, lasted such a short time. After having
+written several poems inspired by the English poet, Pushkin soon
+disdained this model, which was the sole object of European
+imitation. "Byron's characters," he says, "are not real people, but
+rather incarnations of the various moods of the poet," and he ends
+by saying that Byron is "great but monotonous." We find the same
+thing in Lermontov, who was fond of Byron, not only in a transient
+mood of snobbery, but because the very strong and sombre character
+of his imagination naturally led him to choose this kind of intense
+poetry. He was exerting himself to regard reality seriously and to
+reproduce it with exactitude, at the very time when he was killed in
+a duel at the youthful age of twenty-seven.
+
+Pushkin's best work, his novel in verse, "Evgeny Onyegin," although
+it came so early, was constructed according to realistic
+principles; and although we still distinguish romantic tints, it is
+a striking picture of Russian society at the beginning of the 19th
+century. We find the same tendency in Lermontov's prose novel, "A
+Hero of Our Times," in which the hero, Pechorin, has many traits in
+common with Evgeny Onyegin. This book immediately made a deep
+impression. It was really nothing more than a step taken in a new
+direction by its author. But it was a step that promised much. An
+absurd fatality destroyed this promise, and hindered the poet,
+according to the expression of an excellent critic of that time,
+from "rummaging with his eagle eye, among the recesses of the
+world."
+
+The works of writers of secondary rank, contemporaneous with the
+above mentioned, also reveal a realistic tendency. Then appeared, to
+declare it with a master's power, that genius of a realist, of whom
+we have already made mention, Gogol. There was general enthusiasm;
+Gogol absorbed almost the entire attention of the public and men of
+letters. The great critic and publicist Byelinsky, in particular,
+took it upon himself to elaborate in his works the theories of
+realism; he formulated the program about 1850 under the name of the
+"naturalistic school." Thus the germs of the past had expanded
+triumphantly in the work of Gogol, and the way was now clear for
+Turgenev, Dostoyevsky, Tolstoy, Goncharov, Ostrovsky, and Pisemsky,
+who, while enlarging the range and perfecting the methods of the
+naturalistic school, conquered for their native literature the place
+which it has definitely assumed in the world.
+
+Although we may infer that Russian realism has its roots in a
+special spiritual predilection, we must not nevertheless forget the
+historical conditions which prepared the way for it and made its
+logical development easy. Russian literature, called on to struggle
+against tremendous obstacles, could hardly have gone astray in the
+domain of a nebulous idealism.
+
+The third distinctive trait of this literature is found in its
+democratic spirit. Most of the heroes are not titled personages;
+they are peasants, bourgeois, petty officials, students, and,
+finally, "intellectuals." This democratic taste is explained by the
+very constitution of Russian society.
+
+The spirit of the literature of a nation is usually a reflection of
+the social class which possesses the preponderant influence from a
+political or economic standpoint or which is marked by the strength
+of its numbers. The preponderance of the upper middle class in
+England has impressed on all the literature of that country the seal
+of morality belonging to that class; while in France, where
+aristocracy predominated, one still feels the influence of the
+aristocratic traditions which are so brilliantly manifested in the
+pseudo-classic period of its literature. But many reasons have
+hindered the aristocracy and the bourgeoisie from developing in
+Russia. The Russian bourgeois was, for a long time, nothing but a
+peasant who had grown rich, while the noble was distinguished more
+by the number of his serfs and his authority than by his moral
+superiority. Deprived of independence, these two classes blended and
+still blend with the immense number of peasants who surround them on
+all sides and submerge them irresistibly, however they may wish to
+free themselves.
+
+Very naturally, the first Russian authors came from the class of
+proprietors, rural lords, who were the most intelligent, not to say
+the only intelligent people. In general, the life of the lord was
+barely distinguishable from that of the peasant. As he was usually
+reared in the country, he passed his childhood among the village
+children; the people most dear to his heart, often more dear to him
+than his father or mother, were his nurse and the other
+servants,--simple people, who took care of him and gave him the
+pleasures of his youthful existence. Before he entered the local
+government school, he had been impregnated with goodness and popular
+poetry, drawn from stories, legends, and tales to which he had been
+an ardent listener. We find the great Pushkin dedicating his most
+pathetic verses to his old nurse, and we often see him inspired by
+the most humble people. In this way, to the theoretic democracy
+imported from Europe is united, in the case of the Russian author, a
+treasure of ardent personal recollections; democracy is not for him
+an abstract love of the people, but a real affection, a tenderness
+made up of lasting reminiscences which he feels deeply.
+
+This then was the mental state of the most intelligent part of this
+Russian nobility, which showed itself a pioneer of the ideas of
+progress in literature and life. There were even singular political
+manifestations produced. Rostopchin said: "In France the shoemakers
+want to become noble; while here, the nobles would like to turn
+shoemakers." But, in spite of all, the greater part of this caste,
+with its essential conservative instincts, was nothing more than an
+inert mass, without initiative, and incapable even of defending its
+own interests except by the aid of the government.
+
+Rostopchin did not suspect the profound truth of his capricious
+saying.
+
+This truth burst forth in all its strength about 1870, the time of
+the great reforms undertaken by Alexander II, when the interests of
+the people were, for the first time, the order of the day. It was
+at this period that a great deal of studying was being done with
+great enthusiasm and that a general infatuation for folklore and for
+a "union with the masses" was being shown. The desire to become
+"simplified," that is to say to have all people live the same kind
+of life, the appearance of a type, celebrated under the sarcastic
+name of "noble penitent" (meaning the titled man who is ashamed of
+his privileged position as if it were a humiliating and infamous
+thing), the politico-socialistic ideology of the first Slavophiles,
+still half conservative, but wholly democratic; all these things
+were the results of the manifestations which astonished Rostopchin
+and made the more intelligent class of Russians fraternize more with
+the masses. In our day, this tendency has been eloquently
+illustrated by the greatest Russian artist and thinker, Tolstoy, who
+was the very incarnation of the ideas named above, and who always
+appears to us as a highly cultured peasant. The hero of
+"Resurrection" sums up in a few words this sympathy for the people:
+"This is it, the big world, the true world!" he says, on seeing the
+crowd of peasants and workingmen packed into a third-class
+compartment.
+
+In the last half of the 19th century, Russian literature took a
+further step in the way of democracy. It passed from the hands of
+the nobility into the hands of the middle class, as the conditions
+under which it existed brought it closer to the people and made it
+therefore more accessible to their aspirations. It is no longer the
+great humanitarians of the privileged class who paint the miserable
+conditions among which people vegetate; it is the people themselves
+who are beginning to speak of their miseries and of their hopes for
+a better life. The result is a deep penetration of the popular mind,
+in conjunction with an acute, and sometimes sickly, nervousness,
+which is shown in the works of the great Uspensky, and, more
+recently still, in Tchekoff, Andreyev, and many others.
+
+None of these writers belong to the aristocracy, and two of
+them--Tchekoff and Gorky--have come up from the masses: the former
+was the son of a serf, and the latter the son of a workingman. Let
+me add that, among the women of letters, the one who is most
+distinguished by her talent in describing scenes from popular
+life--Mme. Dmitrieva--is the daughter of a peasant woman.
+
+Thus, as we have shown, the Russian writers alone, under the cover
+of imaginative works which became expressive symbols, could
+undertake a truly efficacious struggle against tyranny and
+arbitrariness. They found themselves in that way placed in a
+peculiar social position with corresponding duties. Men expected
+from them, naturally, a new gospel and also a plan of conduct
+necessary in order to escape from the circle of oppression. The best
+of the Russian writers have undertaken a difficult and perilous
+task; they have become the guides, and, so to speak, the "masters"
+of life. This tendency constitutes a new trait in Russian
+literature, one of its most characteristic; not that other
+literatures have neglected it, but no other literature in the world
+has proclaimed this mission with such a degree of energy and with
+such a spirit of sacrifice. Never, in any other country, have
+novelists or poets felt with such intensity the burden on their
+souls. At this point Gogol, first of all, became the victim of this
+state of things.
+
+The enthusiasm stirred up by his works and by the immense hopes that
+he had evoked suddenly elevated him to such a height in the minds of
+his contemporaries that he felt real anguish. Artist he was, and now
+he forced himself to become a moralist; he rushed into philosophical
+speculations which led him on to a nebulous mysticism, from which
+his talent suffered severely. When he realized what had happened,
+despair seized him, his ideas troubled him, and he died in terrible
+intellectual distress.
+
+We see also the great admirer of Gogol--Dostoyevsky--under different
+pretexts making known in almost all his novels and especially in
+his magazine articles, "Recollections of an Author," his opinions on
+the reforms about to be realized. He studies the problems of
+civilization which concern humanity in general, and particularly
+insists upon the mission of the Russian people, who are destined, he
+believes, to end all the conflicts of the world by virtue of a
+system based upon Christian love and pity.
+
+Turgenev, himself, although above all an artist, does not remain
+aloof from this educational work. In his "Annals of a Sportsman," he
+attacks bondage. And when it was abolished, and when in the very
+heart of Russian society, among the younger generation, the
+revolutionists appeared, Turgenev attempted to paint these "new
+men." Thus in his novel, "Fathers and Sons," he sketches in bold
+strokes the character of the nihilist Bazarov. This celebrated type
+cannot, however, be considered a true representative of the
+mentality of the "new men," for it gave only a few aspects of their
+character, which, besides, did not have Turgenev's sympathy.
+
+They are valued in an entirely different way by Chernyshevsky in his
+novel, "What Is To Be Done?" where the author, one of the most
+powerful representatives of the great movement toward freedom from
+1860 to 1870, carefully studied the bases of the new morals and the
+means to be used in struggling against the prejudices of the old
+society. Finally let us mention Tolstoy, whose entire literary
+activity was a constant search for truth, till the day when his mind
+found an answer to his doubts in the religion of love and harmony
+which he preached from then on.
+
+The earnestness which sees an apostle in a writer has not ceased to
+grow and has almost blinded the public.
+
+For example, Gorky needed only to write some stories in which he
+places before us beings belonging to the most miserable classes of
+society, to be suddenly, and perhaps against his own will, elevated
+to the rôle of prophet of a new gospel, of annunciator from whom
+they were waiting for the Word, although one could also find the
+Word in the anti-socialistic circles which he depicts. Another
+contemporaneous author, Tchekoff, once wrote a story about the
+precarious position of the workingman in the city; he showed how
+this man, after he had become old and had gone back to his native
+village, suffered even more misery than before instead of getting
+the rest he had hoped for. Immediately an ardent controversy took
+place between the two factions of the youth of that time, the
+Populists and the Marxists. The former, defending the rural
+population, accused the author of having exaggerated and of having
+only superficially considered the question, while the others
+triumphed, confident in the activity of the people of the city.
+
+The literary critic, however, in carefully studying the works of
+these authors, tried to get at the real meaning,--the idea between
+the lines. Gorky's philosophy has often been discussed; a great many
+men of letters have tried to unravel what there was of pessimism, of
+indifference or of mystic idealism in the soul of Tchekoff. This
+everlasting habit, not to say this mania, of analyzing the mind or
+soul of an author in order to get at his conception, his personal
+doctrine of life, often leads to partial and erroneous conclusions,
+especially when, as in most cases, the critic has only a very vague
+idea of the main current of thought which formed the genesis of the
+work.
+
+The hopes and emotions which are aroused by every original
+expression in literature, show more than ever what hopes are based
+upon its rôle, the mission which has devolved on it to serve life,
+by formulating the facts of the ideal to be realized.
+
+But what is this ideal? What are these ideal aspirations? Of what
+elements are they made up? What is the state of mind of the great
+majority of Russian "intellectuals" in the midst of the enmity which
+compromises and menaces them?
+
+Thanks to the window pierced by Peter the Great in the thick
+Muscovite wall, the Russian "intellectuals" have begun to have a
+general idea of European civilization. They have admired the beauty
+of this culture, and the greatness of European political and social
+institutions, guarantees of the dignity of human beings; they have
+endured mental suffering because they have found that in Russia such
+independence would be impossible, and, consequently, they have had a
+feeling of extreme bitterness, which has forced them either to deny
+or calumniate the moral forces of their country, or to formulate
+very strange theories about this situation. Thus at the end of the
+first twenty-five years of the century, Chadayev, one of the most
+original and brilliant thinkers of Russia, developed the following
+thesis in his "Philosophical Letters":--the fatal course of history
+having opposed the union of the Russian people with Catholicism,
+through which European civilization developed, Russia found herself
+reduced forever to the existence of an inert mass, deprived of all
+interior energy, as can be shown adequately by her history, her
+customs, and even the aspect of her national type with its
+ill-defined traits and apathetic expression.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In the course of the terrible struggle which he waged against the
+censorship and against influential persons evilly disposed toward
+him, Pushkin cried out: "It was the idea of the devil himself that
+made me be born in Russia!" And in one of his letters, he says,
+"Naturally, I despise my country from east to west, but,
+nevertheless, I hate to hear a stranger speak of it with scorn."
+Lermontov, exiled to the Caucasus, ironically takes leave of his
+country, which he calls, "a squalid country of slaves and masters."
+And he salutes the Caucasian mountains as the immense screen which
+may hide him from the eyes of the Russian pachas. The Slavophiles
+themselves, the patriots who in their way idealized both Russian
+orthodoxy and autocracy, and who were wrongly considered the
+champions of the existing order of things, showed themselves no less
+hostile. One of their most celebrated representatives, Khomyakov,
+sees in Russia "a land stigmatized" by serfdom, where all is
+injustice, lies, morbid laziness and turpitude.
+
+Dostoyevsky, who shared some of the illusions of the Slavophiles,
+speaks of Europe as "a land of sacred miracles." Nevertheless,
+yielding to his desire to heighten the prestige of his country, he
+adds: "The Russian is not partially European, but essentially so, in
+the very largest sense of the word, because he watches, with an
+impartial love, the progress achieved by the various peoples of
+Europe, while each one of _them_ appreciates, above all, the
+progress of his own country, and often does not want to let the
+others share it."
+
+In spite of the seductive powers which European civilization
+exercised upon Russia, the Russians perceived its weak sides, which
+they studied by the light of the ideal which they promised
+themselves to attain in some indefinite future, a future which they
+nevertheless hoped was near at hand.
+
+To them, enthusiastic observers that they were, these defects became
+more apparent than to the Europeans themselves; as their critical
+sense was not deadened by the wear of constant use, they saw in a
+clear light the inconveniences of certain institutions, they
+perceived the sad consequences of the excessive triumph of
+individualism in its struggle for life, the enfranchisement of the
+proletariat, the satisfaction of the few at the cost of the many. At
+times the bases of this civilization seemed fragile to the Russians;
+they had a feeling that it was not finished; they also aspired more
+and more to the harmonious equilibrium of society which appealed to
+their ideal.
+
+In a word, that which has always been called socialism, has had an
+irresistible attraction for the more intelligent Russians; all of
+Russian literature is permeated with it, and it has developed all
+the more easily because it found a favorable basis in Russia's
+natural democracy.
+
+During the period when this literature was most persecuted--that is
+to say in the second half of the 19th century--its most influential
+representatives were ardent socialists. Among them should be
+mentioned the critic Byelinsky, the "Petracheviens,"--adepts in the
+doctrine of Fourier,--and that powerful agitator of ideas, Hertzen,
+who founded the Russian free press in London. Among Western writers,
+there were two well liked in Russia: George Sand and Charles
+Dickens. The former was a socialist, the latter was a democrat.
+Their influence was very great in Russia; their works were read with
+ardor, and gave rise to thoughts which escaped the severities of the
+censor, but betrayed themselves in private conversation, as well as
+in certain literary circles.
+
+All the celebrated writers of Europe who professed liberal
+tendencies met with a greater sympathy among the Russians of that
+time than in their own country. Dickens, received with great
+enthusiasm in Russia, was not appreciated by the English public. His
+excellent translator, Vedensky, tried hard to persuade him to come
+to Russia to live, where his talents would be valued at their true
+worth. We can then readily understand how Dostoyevsky, in his
+"Memoirs of an Author," had the right to say that the European
+socialistic-democrats had two countries, first their own, then
+Russia.
+
+The Russian writers who gave themselves up so passionately to this
+influence,--still so new even in Europe,--not able to support their
+political ideal, with a press, as it were, gagged by the censor,
+engaged in the struggle along the line of customs. They attacked the
+prejudices which clog the relations among men, and rose up against
+family despotism and the inferior position of women from a civil and
+economic point of view. But, between 1860 and 1870, when the
+enfranchisement of the serfs reduced the power of the censor, all
+that had been confined in the souls of the Russians burst forth.
+Chernishevsky wrote economic articles on capital and on the
+agricultural community; he studied the system of John Stuart Mill,
+from which he deduced his socialistic conclusions, and his
+reputation grew immediately at home and abroad. He became a leader
+of thought among the new generation.
+
+At the same time, the young critic Dobrolyubov, author of an
+analytical study of Russian customs, "The Kingdom of Shadows,"
+called the "intellectuals" to a struggle for the rights of the
+oppressed people, and was ready himself to "drain the bitter cup
+intended for those who have been sacrificed." Also at this time
+there appeared the poet Nekrasov and the satirist Saltykov. The
+former, a profound pessimist, described in his best verses the
+bitter fate of the lower classes; the latter with his sarcasm
+scathed bureaucratic arbitrariness, while from abroad was heard the
+free ringing of "The Bell,"--a paper founded by Hertzen,--which
+seemed to be announcing that freedom was coming. Two articles by the
+poet Mikhailov on the situation of women started a vast movement.
+The women soon filled the lecture-halls of the university, and the
+class-rooms, and organized a veritable campaign to defend their
+rights in the name of the principle of liberty. All the partisans of
+democracy or socialism applauded them. The agitation became general;
+it seemed as if they wanted to make up for lost time by this
+tremendous activity; everywhere Sunday schools were started and
+public libraries opened; workingmen's associations were formed on
+socialistic principles, and the ardent younger generation spoke to
+the ignorant masses and asked them to join them in the coming
+struggle.
+
+This epoch has been called "the moral springtime" of Russia, and in
+truth it was a spring with all of its real splendors and illusions.
+A sudden wave of life surged from one end of the empire to the
+other. Up above, the government was making reforms prudently, as if
+afraid of going too far; down below, a great transformation was
+taking place. It was at this time that certain bold projects were
+contemplated at which the government took fright. The "springtime"
+proved ephemeral. A triumphant reaction nipped in the bud this
+movement towards emancipation, with all its hopes. In 1877, after
+the Russo-Turkish war, it seemed as if the movement were going to
+start again. Less vast and less diverse, but more definite, it
+immediately put all of its strength into the popular propaganda and
+showed its activity by the assassination of the emperor and by
+several other crimes. It was a terrible struggle, till finally the
+leaders again succumbed under the mighty blows of their adversaries.
+The years that followed this defeat (1880-1905) were most
+inauspicious in Russian life. A profound apathy deadened society,
+and an atmosphere of anguish and disillusion--which have left
+visible traces in Russian literature--weighed it down.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In short, it may be said that Russian thought has always been led
+away by the theories of certain European parties who are most
+opposed to political and social organization of the state.
+
+The vigor, the clearness, and the force of negation with which this
+characteristic manifests itself in the ideas and customs of the
+Russian radical-socialists have often distorted, in the eyes of
+other countries, opinions or doctrines which it is important to
+present in their true light.
+
+Thus, Bazarov, that nihilistic creation of Turgenev, appeared to the
+English, French, and German public as a mystical hero not viable in
+human society, while Pisarev, one of the sanest of Russian critics,
+considers him as a model of the really free man. As to Turgenev
+himself, he saw that the coming of this type would make concrete a
+rising force worthy of holding attention and also of commanding some
+respect.
+
+In practical life, this negative force has found its most extreme
+expression in what has already been pointed out, that is, in the
+revolutionary anarchism of Bakunin and in Tolstoy's recent theories
+of pacific anarchism, which are founded on the gospel. But, while
+very significant as great illustrations of certain sides of Russian
+mentality, neither the one nor the other of these anarchistic
+doctrines, so opposed in their substance, can be considered as an
+expression of the modern Russian socialistic movement. Having found
+a basis in the workingman movement of their country, the Russian
+socialistic theoreticians have become more practical, and their
+activity turns back to the realm of European socialism, which is to
+be found in the doctrines of Karl Marx.
+
+There was a time in Europe when they christened with the name
+"nihilism" this active negation of civilization and of bourgeois
+customs, so characteristic of the Russian "intellectuals." Taken in
+its literal sense, this word is inexact, since those to whom it was
+applied were inspired by a very high ideal. In a loose use of the
+word, nihilism has, on the contrary, a real significance, especially
+if one connects it with most of the Russian "intellectuals." The
+liberal tendencies which were brewing in the realistic literature of
+the period from 1840 to 1850, and which manifested themselves
+suddenly with particular strength during the tumultuous decade
+between 1860 and 1870, made the substance of the new theories and
+the base of Russian mentality. These theories were very bold in
+their negation, and it is for this reason that they have been called
+"nihilistic."
+
+If this intellectual "élite" should some day triumph in Russia, will
+it be true to its moral idea of justice and liberty? It probably
+will. We may then see the following phenomenon take place: the
+realization of the most advanced program of modern civilization in
+one of the most backward countries of Europe.
+
+However paradoxical such a prevision may seem at first, it has a
+fundamental element of truth. Two obstacles bar the way to
+civilization and the normal development of new ideas, which are the
+foundation of progress. First of all, there is the naïve and boorish
+ignorance of the common people; then the resistance which every
+established society instinctively offers to ideas of reformation. Of
+these two conservative forces, Russia knows but one, pure and simple
+ignorance, while the second, which can have art and science as
+powerful allies, is completely lacking. But ignorance cannot last
+forever. It diminishes more and more; that is why the most advanced
+ideas of European civilization naturally go hand in hand with
+learning in Russia, and occupy all places which knowledge wins from
+ignorance. Since the Russian has had a taste of science he has
+become the champion of social and democratic ideas; the latter
+develop even with elementary instruction, as can easily be seen by
+observing the movements made among the workmen of the city, and also
+among the more advanced elements of the peasant population.
+
+These particulars had already attracted the attention of the
+brilliant peace advocate and profound thinker, Hertzen, who,
+distressed by the bloody reprisals of bourgeoise Europe, following
+the Revolution of 1848, fixed his attention on Russia, from which he
+expected great things,--among others, a new civilization freed from
+the prejudices and customs which held it back in other countries.
+
+Hertzen represented Russia as an immense plain where people were
+getting rid of old thatched cottages, and at the same time
+collecting the necessary materials for new habitations. He saw a
+world in which no one lived as yet, but where life as it should be
+was being prepared for. And this idea, which may seem exaggerated,
+has a good deal of sense in it. Does not every backward nation,
+which hastens to take her place in the circle of the more advanced
+peoples of Europe, resemble a vessel into which a new wine is to be
+poured?
+
+ * * * * *
+
+If modern Russian literature has not deviated from its fundamental
+principles, realism, democracy, and socialism, on the other hand, a
+radical change has taken place in society which has necessarily had
+an influence on it. The populace is not the sombre, inert, and
+ignorant multitude that it has been heretofore. Learning is
+penetrating more and more; and as an advance-guard, it has the
+workingmen of the city and the people of the suburbs. A feeling of
+dignity, of human personality, and a love of liberty is awakening in
+the masses who have joined in the struggle which the "intellectuals"
+are conducting against the passive forces of autocracy.
+
+That is why the literature of this time--always excepting the period
+from 1905 to 1910--is preëminently a literature of fiercer and more
+active combat than ever before. As in times gone by, the heroes of
+this literature are common people. The writers choose them from
+among the students, schoolmasters, and school-mistresses of the
+village schools, who with complete disregard of self carry on the
+great work of popular education in the very heart of the country,
+without caring about the arbitrary power which menaces them, or the
+moral and material conditions of their lives. They also choose them
+from among the doctors of the districts who are worn out in
+despairing efforts to struggle against the terrible epidemics, and
+who are also trying to improve hygienic conditions among the
+peasants. In fine, among the heroes are included all who sacrifice
+their personal interests for the general good.
+
+The results of this terrible struggle against brute force are shown
+in the excessive nervousness of the combatants, who have become
+delirious with their aspirations towards liberty. Hatred of actual
+reality and distrust of those who have resigned themselves to it
+have made them accept sympathetically the most extreme and
+uncompromising measures, and one often thinks one sees a certain
+generosity among the people who are at war with society,--often, it
+is true, for egotistical reasons, far removed from the great ideal
+of reforms profitable to the masses. Such are the celebrated
+barefoot brigade, the eternal vagabonds, the "lumpen-proletariat" of
+Gorky's early works.
+
+Another favorite subject of the Russian authors is the antagonism
+which makes parents and children quarrel. But the children who were
+radicals of the former generation have now became fathers, and are
+often reproached by their sons for the practical impossibility of
+the ideal for which they vainly expended their strength, and, as a
+result of which, they are worn out and useless. Veressayev and
+Chirikov have written most on this point.
+
+However, in spite of repeated attacks, the resistance has grown in
+intensity and the general uneasiness has spread without any one's
+being able as yet to see any lasting or positive result. The
+pessimism of various writers faithfully reflects this crisis.
+Andreyev, for instance, possesses an extraordinary intuition of the
+element of tragic mysteriousness which envelops the slightest
+circumstances of daily life. Tchekoff, the prominent author who died
+a few years ago, has left us remarkably realistic sketches, where he
+obviously shows mental discouragement as a result of the struggle.
+Another contemporary writer, Korolenko, whose poetic talent recalls
+Turgenev to our minds, is distinguished, on the contrary, by the
+attempts he has made to set free the spark of life which exists in
+human beings who have broken down morally. All these writers have
+such a direct and powerful influence on contemporary youth that we
+are going to study them separately in this book, not excepting
+Tchekoff, whose influence is still enormous.
+
+Since the death of the prophet of Yasnaya-Polyana,[1] Russian
+literature cannot boast of any writers who compare with Turgenev,
+Dostoyevsky, Goncharov, or the dramatist Ostrovsky. The cause is to
+be traced rather to circumstances than to the authors themselves.
+For social life to furnish material suitable for the artist's
+description, it must first of all have types which show a certain
+consistency, a more or less determined attitude. But it is futile to
+look for either stability or precision in Russian life since Russia
+has been going through continual crises. It would be just as
+difficult for literature to record rapid changes of ideas, as for an
+artist to copy a model that cannot pose for him. Besides, most
+contemporary writers are struggling hard for the means of
+subsistence.
+
+ [1] Tolstoy.
+
+Sometimes their effort to get food has so sapped their strength that
+they have not had enough time to finish their studies, nor enough
+tranquillity of soul to apply their talents to an impartial view of
+life and to incorporating in their work the documents which they
+have collected. Even in the writing of the best Russian authors of
+to-day one often feels that there is something unfinished, or hasty,
+as if their thoughts had not matured.
+
+I do not think that it will be superfluous to add that all Russian
+literature for the past century has been able to express only a very
+small part of what it had to say. The Russian writer continually
+suffers from the constraint which forces him to check the flight of
+his inspiration in order to escape from the foolish and often stupid
+sternness of the pitiless censor. The poet Nekrasov shows us in one
+of his poems an old soldier who has become a printer, and who speaks
+in the following manner of Pushkin:
+
+"He was a good man, tipped very generously, but he never ceased to
+rage against the censor. When he saw his manuscripts marked with red
+crosses, he became furious. One day, in order to console him, I
+said:
+
+"'Bah! why torment yourself?'
+
+"'Why,' he cried, 'but it is blood that is flowing,--blood,--my
+blood!'"
+
+A great deal of blood was thus shed. And in order to accentuate the
+action of the censor the police dealt cruel blows to the authors.
+One day Pushkin was called to the head of the department. They
+believed that they had recognized in one of his satires a certain
+gentleman, named N. G., who demanded that Pushkin be severely
+punished. Unnerved by the cross-examination to which he was put, the
+poet cried:
+
+"But it isn't N. G. whom I have drawn!"
+
+"Who is it, then?"
+
+"It is you, yourself," replied the poet.
+
+"That is madness, sir," the high dignitary cried out with wrath.
+"You say that wood belonging to the state was stolen. And at the
+time when these thefts were committed I was away."
+
+"Then you do not recognize yourself in my satire?"
+
+"No, a thousand times no!"
+
+"And N. G. recognizes himself?"
+
+"Not exactly, but as he is in the service of the government...."
+
+"Well, is he its spokesman and champion? And why is it precisely he
+who asks to have me arrested?"
+
+"All right," replied the dignitary, suddenly becoming milder, "I
+shall inform His Majesty of our conversation."
+
+The affair ended without further complications. It should be noted
+that the Tsar himself protected Pushkin, for Pushkin had got into
+touch with him in order to influence him more successfully.
+Nevertheless, this acquaintance was only a new source of suffering
+to the poet. In the case of certain less known writers the
+malevolence of the higher authorities often took on a tragic turn.
+For a single poem in which the poet Polezhayev described a students'
+debauch, the author was reduced by Nicholas I to the rank of a
+common soldier. Sokolovsky, another writer of this time, not being
+able to get a footing in literature, abandoned the pen, and like
+many others, sought to forget his disappointment in drink. For
+several years Hertzen was transferred from one place of exile to
+another until he came to England. And how terrible was the fate of
+the talented poet of Little Russia, Shevchenko, who was exiled for
+many years to a corner of European Russia and forbidden to do any
+writing or even painting, a thing that he loved above all! And
+finally, who does not know the sad comedy of Dostoyevsky, who was
+made to go through all the preparations for his execution, but was
+finally sent to that prison which he has so wonderfully described in
+his recollections of "The Dead House"?
+
+The Damocles' sword of defiant authority was suspended over the head
+of every Russian writer. The vocation of literature was filled with
+danger and brought about actual tragedies in some families. Thus,
+Pushkin's father, fearing that the fury of the authorities would
+extend to him, began to hate all literature, and had serious
+quarrels with his son. Griboyedov's mother threw herself at her
+son's feet and begged him not to write any more but rather to enter
+the service of the State. In Griboyedov we have a sad example of a
+great talent virtually buried alive by the censor. His comedy,
+"Intelligence Comes to Grief," is a masterful work, sparkling with
+satiric warmth, the equal of which it would be hard to find
+anywhere. This first work, rich in promise, was never published nor
+produced. Discouraged, the author renounced literature, and on the
+advice of his mother, accepted a position as ambassador to Persia,
+where he was killed in a riot.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Not only does the censorship mutilate literary works, but it often
+suffocates the inspiration of the author. The Russian press has
+lately published a very interesting article on Nekrasov, explaining
+the frequent interruptions of his activity by a momentary paralysis
+of his inspiration. Often, he writes, the ideas and poetic forms
+which come to his mind are so strong that he need only take up his
+pen and write them down. But the thought that what he might write
+would be condemned by the censor, stops him. It was, then, a long
+struggle between the ideas which he wanted to express and the
+obstacles which hindered him. And when finally Nekrasov had
+smothered his inspiration, he was broken down and crushed by fatigue
+and disgust, and for a long time he stopped writing. His friends
+advised him to jot down his ideas in spite of all, in the hope that
+they would be recognized by future generations when happier days
+should dawn on literature. He was not successful, because in order
+to create his genius needed to feel a close bond between him and his
+readers. Thus the censor carried his brutal hand into the very
+laboratory of thought.
+
+Happily, since the movement toward reform between 1860 and 1870, the
+Russian censor has become more lenient and now no one says what was
+once said to the writer Bulgarin: "Your business is to describe
+public activities, popular holidays, the theatre. Do not look for
+other topics." The number of subjects open to the press has
+increased. But the desire to live a free life has developed in
+literature and in society alike, and as resistance to it has also
+strengthened, the pressure has remained relatively the same. The
+censor and the police continue to stifle the natural richness and
+the power of the Russian mind. To-day, as before, Russian literature
+is made up of just that small fraction of the whole which has
+escaped government inquisition.
+
+However, in spite of all the unheard-of constraints which weigh upon
+her, Russia has already given us such great authors, that we need
+not hesitate to say that on the day when she regains liberty of
+speech and of pen, her literature will take its place among the
+first in the world.
+
+
+
+
+II
+
+ANTON TCHEKOFF[2]
+
+ [2] This spelling has been adopted here, rather than Chekhov,
+ since it is more familiar to the public. In all other cases, the
+ _ch_ and _v_ have been retained.
+
+
+"There is a saying that man needs only six feet of ground, but that
+is for a corpse and not for a living man. It is not six feet of
+ground that man requires, not even an entire estate, but the whole
+terrestrial globe, nature in its fullness, so that all his faculties
+can expand freely."
+
+This is the proud profession of faith that Anton Tchekoff made on
+entering the literary world. He was born January 17, 1860, at
+Taganrog, where his father, a freed serf, lived. After attending
+school in his native town, he took up the study of medicine at
+Moscow. Once a doctor, rather than practise, he devoted most of his
+time to literature. His career as an author does not offer us any
+extraordinary situations. He owed his success, and later on his
+glory, to severe and prolonged work. His literary talent manifested
+itself while he was still a student. He began his career with
+humorous short stories which were published in various newspapers.
+They brought him enough for the bare necessities of life.
+
+These stories have been collected in two volumes. They are very
+short, almost miniatures. For the most part they are elegant
+trifles, worked out with painstaking care. One feels that the author
+had no definite goal in sight; he wrote them simply to amuse and
+entertain his readers. One would search in vain for any sort of
+philosophy. On the contrary, one finds there a rather significant
+spirit, a gaiety, care-free, loquacious and, at times, ironical.
+Unimportant people tell pleasant things about themselves or others.
+All these men are a trifle debauched, talky, futile, and their
+companions are flighty, intriguing little women who chatter
+incessantly. Everything begins and ends with a laugh. This recalls
+some of the early works of Gogol, but, we repeat, one finds no moral
+element in this laughter, and these tiny comedies are in reality no
+more than simple vaudeville sketches. Once in a while we find a sad
+note; less frequently, we find the sadness accentuated in order to
+present a terrible drama. Such, then, are the contents of the first
+two volumes which came from the pen of Tchekoff.
+
+However, this melancholy little note, met from time to time,
+gradually grew in intensity in the third volume, until later on it
+lost all trace of the old carelessness, and developed, on the
+contrary, into a profound sadness. Tchekoff unconsciously gave up
+the "genre" of pleasant anecdote in order to concentrate all his
+attention on facts. This practice made him sad. Russia was, at this
+time, going through a period of prostration as a result of the last
+Russo-Turkish war. This war, which, at the cost of enormous
+sacrifices, ended in the liberation of the Bulgarian people,
+awakened among the Russians a hope of obtaining their own liberty,
+and provoked among the younger generation the most energetic efforts
+to obtain this liberty, no matter what the cost might be. Alas, this
+hope was frustrated! All efforts were in vain, a reaction followed,
+and the year 1880 brought the reaction to its height. From then on
+apathy followed in the steps of the great enthusiasm. All illusion
+fled. A kind of disenchantment filled all minds. Those who had hoped
+with such ardor, and had counted on their own strength, felt weak
+and powerless. Some confined themselves to moaning incessantly. A
+grey twilight enveloped Russian life and filled it with melancholy.
+These are the dreary aspects that Tchekoff describes, and none has
+excelled him in portraying the events of this hopeless reaction. His
+stories and dramas give us a long procession of people who succumb
+to the monotony, to the platitudes, to the desolation, of
+existence.
+
+It is in the following manner that one of his characters expresses
+his ideas on the subject of this moral crisis:
+
+"I was then not more than twenty-six years of age; nevertheless I
+was conscious not only that life was senseless, but that it was
+without any visible goal; that all was illusion and dupery; that, in
+its consequences and even in its very essence, the life of the
+exiled on the island of Sakhaline was very much the same as the life
+that was led at Nice; that the difference between the brain of Kant
+and the brain of a fly was very small; finally, that no one in this
+world was either right or wrong."
+
+This idea of the nothingness of life, with its extremes, monstrous
+and profitless, is often found in the work of Tchekoff. His story
+"The Kiss" is but a variation of this theme,--the absurdity of life.
+Lieutenant Riabovich, under the influence of a chance kiss, a kiss
+that was not meant for him, dreams of love for an entire summer; he
+waits impatiently for the return of the pretty stranger; but alas,
+his lovely dream cannot be realized, for the simple and cruel reason
+that no one is waiting for _him_, no one is interested in him. One
+day, on the banks of a stream, the young officer gives himself up to
+his reflections:
+
+"The water flows off; one knows not where nor why; it flowed in
+exactly the same way last May; from the stream it flows into the
+river, and then into the sea; then it evaporates, turns into rain,
+and perhaps the very same water again flows by before my eyes.... To
+what good? Why?" And all life appears to Riabovich an absurd
+mystification and seems thoroughly senseless.
+
+The hero of "The Bet" absolutely scorns humanity, with its petty and
+its great deeds, its little and its great ideas, because he feels
+that after all everything must disappear, be annihilated, and the
+earth itself will turn into a mass of ice.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Tchekoff has given us innumerable rough sketches typical of people
+belonging to the most diverse social classes. He seems to take his
+readers by the hand and to lead them wherever he can show them
+characteristic scenes of modern Russian society,--be it in the
+country, in the factory, in princely dwellings, at the post-office,
+or on the highway. He barely takes the time absolutely necessary to
+depict in a few, appropriate words a state of mind or the secret of
+a gesture. One would say that he hastens to express the totality of
+life with the variety of his detached manifestations of it. That is
+why his stories are short; often mere allusions stand in place of
+actual development. And whatever domains or corners of Russian life
+the reader, under the guiding hand of this perspicacious cicerone,
+may visit, he will almost always go away with one predominating
+impression: the lamentable isolation of Russia.
+
+"The Windswept Grain" shows the reader a religious establishment,
+where a young Jew, recently converted, has taken refuge. Here is a
+young man, very impressionable and eager to learn, who has fled from
+his home and his family, whose prejudices offended him. His family
+tries every means to bring him back and to punish his apostasy.
+
+In order to employ his energies effectively, the young proselyte,
+who has embraced the new religion only that he may follow progress,
+tries to get a position as a school-teacher. But the apostleship of
+learning cannot satisfy his versatile mind: he continues to flit
+from one thing to another, like a gypsophilia, driven by the wind
+across the entire stretch of the steppes of southern Russia.
+
+Then Tchekoff takes us to a postal station to show us another type
+of the "Windswept Grain." This man, like the young convert, is a
+dreamer, who puts heart and soul into any new idea that comes along.
+He also has spent his life in searching for an activity
+corresponding to his ideal. At present, being a widower, he is
+obliged to support both himself and his daughter, who, while loving
+him devotedly, never ceases to reproach him for the many
+inconveniences of their uncertain existence. In the evening, a young
+widow from a neighboring province gets off at the place where he and
+his daughter are living. When she sees the young girl pouting, she
+consoles her by caressing her with the tact peculiar to women. Then,
+at tea time, she starts talking to the father. The idealist tells of
+his life, and reveals to the young woman the plans that he has made.
+The true sympathy with which she listens, and the respectful and
+tender feeling that he has for her, inevitably makes the reader
+think that fate has not brought these two people together in vain,
+and that their lives will be united. This impression persists when
+on the next day we find the young woman entering her carriage
+assisted by her companion of the evening before. We wait for the
+word that will unite this couple. But neither of them pronounces the
+all-important phrase. The carriage leaves; the man remains for a
+long time motionless as a statue, watching with a mingled feeling of
+joy and suffering the distant road and his disappearing happiness,
+which, but a moment ago, he seemed to hold in his hand.
+
+After those who insist on always realizing their temporary ideals,
+let us take up characters of a new type, those whom destiny has
+irredeemably conquered, and who have finally resigned themselves to
+their fate.
+
+An example of this type is Sofia Lvovna in "Volodia the Great and
+Volodia the Small." Married to a rich colonel, she has no other end
+in life. The days pass, tiresome, monotonous, filled only with
+visits and driving; the nights are interminable and sad near this
+husband whom she does not love, and whom she married out of spite
+and for money. Love for a comrade of her youth, Volodia by name,
+fills her heart. But this young man, who has recently finished his
+studies, is just as commonplace and just as debauched as her husband
+and the society which surrounds her. Sofia Lvovna is not yet
+resigned to her fate. She speaks of her aspirations to her childhood
+friend, who, after getting from her what he desires, leaves her at
+the end of a week. And Sofia Lvovna becomes frightened at the
+thought that for the young girls and women of her station there is
+no other alternative than to go on riding in carriages, or to enter
+a convent and gain salvation.
+
+"The Attack" gives us an example of the terrible feeling of terror
+that suddenly enters the proud soul of a young man at his first
+contact with certain realities.
+
+The student Vassiliev, a young man of excessively nervous
+temperament, has visited a house of ill-fame, and since then, he
+cannot rid himself of his painful impressions. Sombre thoughts
+beset his mind: "Women, living women!" he repeats, his head between
+his hands. "If I broke this lamp you would say that it was too bad;
+but down there it is not lamps that they break, it is the existence
+of human creatures! Living women!..."
+
+He dreams of several ways of saving these unfortunates, and he
+decides childishly to stand on a street-corner, and say to each
+passer-by:
+
+"Where are you going? and why? Fear God."
+
+But this desire soon gives place to a general state of anguish and
+hatred of himself. The evil seems too great for him, and its
+vastness crushes him. In the meantime, the people about him do not
+suffer; they are indifferent or incredulous. The student feels that
+he is losing his mind. They confine him. Later on, when, cured, he
+leaves the alienist, "he blushes at his anxiety."... The general
+indifference has broken down his aspirations, smothered his vague
+dream.
+
+In "Peter the Bishop," we see a man, good and simple, the son of
+peasants. This man, thanks to his intelligence, has raised himself
+to the rank of bishop. During all his life he has suffocated in this
+high ecclesiastical position, the pompous tinsel of which troubles
+him to such an extent that the cordial and sincere relationship
+existing between him and his old mother, who is so full of respect
+for her son, is broken off. After his death he is quickly forgotten.
+The old mother, now childless, when she walks in the fields with the
+women of the village, still speaks of her children, of her
+grandchildren, and of her son, the bishop. But she speaks timidly of
+him, as if she feared that they would not believe her. And, in
+truth, no one puts any faith in what she says.
+
+It is among the people and the working classes that man is most
+completely rid of all traces of an artificial and untruthful
+exterior; the struggle against misery does not leave much room for
+other preoccupations; life is merciless, it crushes unrelentingly
+man's dreams of happiness, and often does not leave any one to share
+the burden of sorrows or even its simple cares. The short and very
+touching story of "The Coachman" gives us an excellent example of
+this loneliness. Yona, a poor coachman, has lost his son; he feels
+that he has not the strength to live through this sorrow alone; he
+feels the absolute need of speaking to some one. But he tries in
+vain to confide his sorrows to one or the other of his patrons. No
+one listens to him. Therefore, once his day's work is over, alone in
+the stable, he pours out his heart to his horse: "Yes, my little
+mare, he is dead, my beloved child.... Let us suppose that you had a
+colt, and that this colt should suddenly die, wouldn't that cause
+you sorrow?" The mare looks at him with shining eyes, and snuffles
+the hand of her master, who ends by telling her the entire story of
+the sickness and death of his son.
+
+In "The Dreams," a miserable vagabond, whom two constables are
+taking to the neighboring city, dreams aloud of the pleasant life he
+expects to lead in Siberia, whither he hopes to be deported. His
+gaolers listen to him not without a certain interest. They also
+begin to dream ... they dream of a free country, from which they are
+separated by an enormous stretch of land, a country that they can
+hardly conceive. One of them brusquely interrupts the dreams of the
+vagabond: "That's all right, brother, you'll never get to that
+enchanted land. How are you going to get there? You are going to
+travel 300 versts and then you'll give your soul up to God. You are
+already almost gone." And then, in the imagination of the vagabond,
+other scenes present themselves: the slowness of justice, the
+temporary jails, the prison, the forced marches and the weary halts,
+the hard winters, sickness, the death of comrades.... "A shudder
+passes through his whole body, his head trembles and his body
+contracts like a worm which has been trodden upon...."
+
+Let us now look at those numerous stories of Tchekoff which treat of
+peasant life: "The Peasants," "The Murder," "In the Ravine," and
+others.
+
+"The Peasants" is one of the most important of the stories which
+treat of the country, and was recently conspicuous for bringing up
+the question, violently discussed by the Marxists and the Populists,
+of the life of the people in the city and in the country.
+
+Nicholas Chigueldyev, a waiter in a Moscow hotel, falls sick and has
+to leave his work. All his savings go into the hands of the doctor
+and the druggist. As he does not seem to improve, he decides to
+return to his native village, where his family is still living. If
+the air of the country does not cure him, he will at least die at
+home. He had left the village at an early age, and had never gone
+back to visit. He goes home with his wife and his little daughter.
+There he finds his mother, his father, and his two brothers and
+their wives in the most abject misery. The whole family is entombed
+in a dark and filthy "isba" full of flies. Nicholas and his wife
+immediately see that it would have been better for them to have
+remained in Moscow. But it is too late. They haven't enough money to
+return; they must remain. A horrible life begins for the sick man
+and his family. There are endless quarrels, blows, abuses. They
+reproach one another for eating and even for living. They are angry
+at Nicholas and his wife for having come. The latter is soon tired
+of this existence. In the city Nicholas had broken himself of
+country manners. He wants to go back to Moscow. But where find the
+money for the trip?... His sickness becomes more acute. An old
+tailor, a former nurse, who has been called in, promises to cure
+him; he bleeds him several times and Nicholas dies. The widow and
+her little daughter spend the winter in the village. The young
+woman, who had watched during those long days of suffering, is now
+broken down. When spring comes, the mother and daughter go to the
+church, and, after praying at the grave of their dead, they go
+begging on the highway.
+
+In "The Murder" Tchekoff studies certain manifestations in the
+spiritual life of the peasants. Matvey Terekof belongs to a peasant
+family the members of which are all known for their piety; in the
+village they are called "the singing boys." Very orthodox, they hold
+themselves aloof and give themselves over to mysticism.
+
+Instead of playing with his little comrades, Matvey is constantly
+poring over the Gospel. His piety increases, he prays night and
+day, hardly eats anything, and experiences "a singular joy at
+feeling himself grow weaker through the fasting." One day he notices
+that the priest of the village is less pious than he. He enters a
+convent in the hopes of finding there true Christians. But even
+there his disillusionment comes soon. Finally, he decides to found a
+church of his own. He hires a little room which he transforms into a
+chapel. He finds disciples and soon gains a reputation as a
+thaumaturgical saint.
+
+A sect, of which he is to be the head, is in process of formation,
+when, one day, he finds that he is on the wrong track. He thinks he
+has committed a mortal sin. Pride has taken possession of him; it is
+the Devil and not God who now directs his moves. Conscious of his
+error, he returns to orthodoxy, and, in the hopes of expiating his
+wrong-doing, he humiliates himself everywhere and on every occasion.
+
+But his cousin Jacob, having become infected with his earlier ideas,
+practises them with the fanatic ardor of a neophyte. With his sister
+and several other religious people, he locks himself into his house
+to pray; he sings vespers and matins. In the meanwhile Matvey
+decides that he must read Jacob a sermon.
+
+"Be reasonable," he tells him repeatedly, "repent, cousin. You will
+lose, because you are the prey of the demon. Repent."
+
+Instead of repenting, Jacob and his sister vow an implacable hatred
+against Matvey; so extreme is their feeling, that one day, at the
+end of an altercation, Jacob, blinded by rage, kills his cousin.
+
+He is judged and condemned. He is sent to the island of Sakhaline.
+There, he languishes, suffers, and despairs. But, little by little,
+his mind grows peaceful, and he has consoling visions. In prison he
+is surrounded by pariahs and criminals, and the sight of all this
+human suffering turns him again towards God, towards the religion of
+Love, the religion of pity for mankind. And now he wants to return
+to the country to tell of the miracle that has taken place in him,
+and to save souls from ill and ignorance.
+
+In "The Ravine" evil and injustice triumph at times with revolting
+cynicism. Evil is in everything and everywhere: "in the great
+manufacturers who drive along the streets of the village, crushing
+men and beasts; in the bailiff and the recorder, who are such bad
+characters that their very faces betray their knavery;" and finally,
+in the central figure of the story, Axinia, the wife of Stepan, the
+youngest son of Tzibukine, a usurer and monopolist.
+
+The unhealthy ravine hides a village inhabited by factory workers.
+The best house belongs to Gregory Tzibukine, who traffics in
+everything: brandy, wheat, cattle, lumber, and usury, on the side.
+His eldest son, Anissme, is employed at the police station and
+seldom comes home; the second son, Stepan, is deaf and sickly; he
+helps his father both well and badly, and his wife, the pretty and
+coquettish Axinia, runs all day between the cellar and the shop. The
+father Tzibukine is also friendly to her and respects this young
+woman, for she is a very good worker and is most intelligent.
+Tzibukine, a widower, has married Varvara, an affable and pious soul
+who gives alms,--a strange thing in this family who cheat everybody.
+Anissme often sends home beautiful letters and presents. One day, he
+comes unexpectedly; he has an unquiet, and, at the same time,
+flippant air. His parents have decided to get him married, and,
+although he is a drunkard, ugly and vulgar, they have found him a
+pretty wife. The girl is Lipa, daughter of a poor widow, a laborer
+like her mother. Anissme whistles and looks at the ceiling, and
+shows no signs of pleasure at his coming marriage. He leaves the
+house in a strange manner, and appears again three days before the
+wedding, bringing to his parents, as gifts, some newly coined money.
+The wedding day has come. The clergy and the well-to-do of the
+neighborhood are present at the dinner, which is sumptuously served.
+Lipa seems petrified with fear, for she barely knows her husband.
+The festivities last a long time; at intervals the voices of women
+can be heard outside hurling curses at the usurer. Then Anissme,
+red, drunk, and sweating, is shoved into the room where Lipa has
+already disrobed. Five days later, Anissme comes to his mother and
+bids her good-bye. He confides in her that some one has given him
+advice, and that he has decided either to become rich or to perish.
+Now that her husband has departed, Lipa again becomes gay.
+
+Meanwhile, they have arrested a reaper accused of having circulated
+a bad piece of money which he says he received from Anissme the
+night of the wedding. Tzibukine goes home, examines the money that
+his son has given him, and decides that it is all counterfeit. He
+orders Axinia to throw every bit of it into the well. But, instead
+of obeying, she pays it out as wages to the workmen. A week passes;
+they find out that Anissme has been thrown into prison as a
+counterfeiter. Tzibukine despairs; he feels his strength
+diminishing. Varvara continues to pray and to watch, while Stepan
+and Axinia continue to ply their trade as before. When, later on,
+Anissme is sentenced to ten years at hard labor in Siberia, Varvara
+suggests to her husband that he should leave one of his houses to
+the child which has just been born to Lipa, so that no one will
+speak badly of him after his death. But, at this suggestion, Axinia
+flies into such a fury, that, in her homicidal rage, she throws a
+kettle of boiling water over the child, who dies later at the
+hospital. Finally, she drives the young woman out of the house. Lipa
+returns to her mother. Soon Axinia reigns as absolute mistress of
+the house. Tzibukine becomes distracted; he does not take care of
+his money any more, because he cannot tell the good from the bad.
+Rumor has it that his daughter-in-law is letting him die of hunger.
+Varvara still goes on with her good work. Anissme is forgotten. The
+old man, starving, and driven from home, lodges a complaint against
+the young woman. Coming back to the village, the old man, tottering
+along the street, meets Lipa and her mother, who are now doing tile
+work.
+
+"Both bow deeply to him, and he looks at them with tears in his
+eyes. Lipa offers him a piece of oatmeal cake, and the two women go
+on their way, crossing themselves several times...."
+
+The virtuous Varvara is an extremely characteristic type, with a
+subtle psychology, carefully worked out; her honesty and goodness
+form an indispensable contrast to the ambient horrors.
+
+The author himself explains the rôle of Varvara and her action in
+this system of evil. "Her alms seem to be something strange, joyous
+and free, like the red flowers and the lights that glow before the
+saintly images." On holidays, and on jubilees, which last three
+days, when coarse and rotten meat is sold to the peasants who come
+to pawn their scythes and hats, or their wives' shawls; when the
+workingmen lie in the gutter under the influence of bad brandy, then
+"one feels a bit relieved at the thought that down there, in that
+house, there is a good and quiet woman, always ready to help
+unfortunates."
+
+Lipa and her mother are good and timid souls who suffer in silence,
+and give to the poor the little that they possess:
+
+"It seemed to them that some one up on high, further up than the
+azure, there among the stars, saw what was going on in their
+village, and watched. Big as the evil is, in spite of it, the night
+is beautiful and calm; justice is and will be calm and beautiful on
+God's earth also; the universe awaits the moment when it can melt
+into this justice, as the light of the moon melts into the night."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+These, then, are Tchekoff's favorite themes, on which he has traced
+numerous variations, always breathing forth a profound melancholy.
+
+"The life of our industrial classes," he says, "is dark, and drags
+itself along in sort of a twilight; as to the life of our common
+people, workingmen and peasants, it is a black night, made up of
+ignorance, poverty, and all sorts of prejudices."
+
+But from this ocean of ignorance, of barbarity, of misery which
+makes up the life of a peasant, Tchekoff has taken out the things of
+most importance, things that always happen in the most solemn
+moments of their existence.
+
+"All," he says, in describing a religious procession in the country,
+"the old man, his wife and the others, all stretch forth their hands
+to the ikon of the holy Virgin, regard her ardently, and say through
+their tears: 'Protectress! Virgin protectress!' And all seem to have
+understood that the space between Heaven and Earth is not empty;
+that the rich and the mighty have not swallowed up everything; that
+there is protection against all wrongs, slavery, misery, the fatal
+brandy...."
+
+Besides, in a story entitled "My Life," Poloznev, speaking of the
+peasants, expresses himself in the following manner:
+
+"They were, for the most part, nervous and irritable people,
+ignorant, and improvident, who could think of nothing but the grey
+earth and black bread; a people who were crafty, but were stupid
+about it, like the birds, who, when they want to hide themselves,
+only hide their heads. They would not do the mowing for you for
+twenty rubles, but they would do it for six liters of brandy,
+notwithstanding the fact that with twenty rubles they can buy eight
+times as much. What vice and foolishness! Nevertheless, one feels
+that the life of the peasant has a great deal of depth. It makes no
+difference that he, behind his plough, resembles an awkward beast,
+or that he gets intoxicated. In spite of all, when you look at him
+closely, you feel that he possesses the essential thing, the
+sentiment of justice."
+
+This love of justice Tchekoff has had occasion to observe even among
+convicts. "The convict," he says, in his book on the prison of
+Sakhaline, of which he made a profound study during his stay on the
+island, "the prisoner, completely corrupted and unjust as he himself
+is, loves justice more than any one else does, and if he does not
+find it in his superiors, he becomes angry, and grows baser and more
+distrustful from year to year."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In the last works of Tchekoff the pessimistic tendency grows greater
+and greater. It seems as if the writer had gone through a sort of
+moral crisis, brought on by the conflict of his old despair and his
+new hopes. At this time, Russian society itself began to shake off
+its apathy, and this awakening, sweeping like a vivifying wave into
+the soul of the sad artist, opened for him, at the same time,
+perspectives of new ideas.
+
+This second aspect of Tchekoff's talent is perceptible in the story
+called "The Student." A seminarist, Velikopolsky by name, tells the
+gardener Vassilissa and her daughter Lukeria about St. Peter's
+denial of Christ. As a result of the impression which this story
+makes on her Vassilissa suddenly breaks into tears; she weeps a long
+time and hides her face as if she were ashamed of crying. Lukeria,
+who has been watching the student fixedly, blushes and her face
+takes on the tender and sad expression which is characteristic of
+those whose life is made up of deep suffering. After taking leave of
+them, the student thinks that Vassilissa's tears and the emotion of
+her daughter come from sorrows connected with the things he has just
+told them.
+
+"If the old woman wept, it was not because he knew how to tell the
+story in a touching manner, but because Peter was near to her, and
+because she was interested, heart and soul, in what was going on in
+the mind of the apostle...."
+
+Joy suddenly fills his heart, and he stops a moment to take a long
+breath. "The past," he muses, "is bound to the present by an
+uninterrupted chain of events." "And it seems to him that he has
+just seen the two ends of this chain: he has touched one, and the
+other has vibrated...."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In an ironical manner and by using very personal material, Tchekoff
+paints more than anything else, life in its passive or negative
+manifestations. Nevertheless, it is not satire, at least not in its
+general trend, for in his work we find too much human tenderness for
+satire. He does not laugh at his characters, and does not nail them
+to the pillory in an outburst of indignation. In his writing, the
+fundamental idea is fused with the form; his talent is calm,
+thoughtful, observing; but it seems, at times, that this calmness,
+this seeming indifference, is only a mask. A critic, speaking of
+Tchekoff, has said: "He is a tender crayon." It would be hard to
+find a more suitable expression. The delicacy of tone, the softness
+of touch in the outlines, the polish of some of the details, the
+capricious incompleteness of others are, in fact, the mark of his
+talent.
+
+Tchekoff was such a voluminous author that it would require a
+veritable effort to remember the throng of characters which exists
+in his books; and it is more than difficult not to confuse their
+individual doings and achievements. This abundance is connected with
+a peculiarity in the author's talent. He does not exhaust his
+subject; the psychology of his characters is emphasized by two or
+three expressive traits only, and this epitome is enough to make the
+theme of a story, the simplicity and naturalness of which demand,
+nevertheless, a high degree of art. The author is not interested in
+outlining the details, but the picture that he has sparingly
+conjured up stands out lifelike; he is always in a hurry to observe
+and to tell. Therefore the brevity and quantity of his stories. His
+stories seldom exceed ten pages in length, while some do not exceed
+four. They constitute a series of sketches, of miniatures of rare
+value, among which can be found some real gems. One cannot say as
+much for his longer works, where certain parts are exaggerated, as
+in "The Valet de Chambre," "Ward No. 6," "The Steppe," and "The
+Duel."
+
+The characters of the latter novel are especially weak and bad.
+There is but one exception, the zoologist von Koren, a man of
+determination, who believes that the suppression of useless people
+and degenerates would be a meritorious piece of work. This idea is
+suggested to him by the sight of a functionary called Layevsky, an
+insignificant and lazy person, who has taken the wife of one of his
+friends and fled with her to the Caucasus.
+
+"The Valet de Chambre" is an equally unsatisfactory story. The
+principal character is a young man who is supposed to be a
+revolutionist. He enters the service of a Petersburg dandy in hopes
+of meeting there a minister whom he wants to kill. The employer of
+the pseudo-lackey, who is not aware of any of his projects, is a
+masterful presentation of a type which we know as the sybaritical
+citizen; the character of the valet is so fantastical that the
+account of his adventures belongs absolutely to the "genre" of the
+newspaper novel.[3]
+
+ [3] In many European papers there is always to be found a part
+ called the "feuilleton," which usually consists of a serial story,
+ continued from day to day.
+
+"Ward No. 6" is one of the most powerful, if not the most powerful
+story that Tchekoff has written. It is an analysis of moral
+degeneration, leading progressively to insanity, in a doctor who is
+seized by the pervasive banality of the village in which he
+practises. Tchekoff, like many other Russian writers, has shown
+himself a master in the study of certain psychological anomalies.
+Certain conversations between the doctor, who himself is going mad,
+and a patient who has long since lost his reason, interesting as
+they are from a philosophical standpoint, leave the world of reality
+and run free according to the imagination of the author, who takes
+advantage of this to formulate some of his favorite theories.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Tchekoff has also tried himself out on the drama, and he has there
+established himself in a peculiar manner. His plays, like his other
+literary productions, belong to two distinct periods.
+
+There are some amusing little trifles that do not amount to much.
+Among these are: "The Bear," "The Asking in Marriage," and others.
+Then come the more serious plays, where one feels for a moment the
+influence of Ibsen. We find here again the same heroes, each of whom
+talks about his own particular case, and acts only in starts. These
+are specimens of "failures" belonging to the most tiresome
+provincial society.
+
+In "Ivanov," the author studies the mentality of a "failure."
+Dominated by a sickly self-love, he has known nothing but losses. He
+continually complains of his real and his imaginary sufferings.
+After squandering all his fortune, he marries a young girl, whom he
+wants to have act as his nurse. This empty life ends in suicide.
+
+In "Uncle Vanya," we have Vanya, a man full of goodness, modesty,
+and self-abnegation contrasted with the celebrated professor
+Serebriakof, an egoist, unfeeling, scornful, and ungrateful. The
+latter, who has recently remarried, comes back to the estate which
+Uncle Vanya, the brother of his first wife, has managed for him. For
+several years Vanya has been working incessantly; he has saved in
+every possible way so that he can send as much money as possible to
+his brother-in-law, this professor, fondled and pampered by the
+whole family, who see in him their glorification. But Serebriakof
+soon gets tired of the country; besides, he thinks that the
+doctor--a friend of the family who is taking care of him--does not
+understand his sickness, and he begins to mistrust him. He wants to
+go away, to travel, in order to recover his health, and, in order to
+make money, he proposes to sell the estate, which legally belongs to
+Sonya, the daughter of his first wife.
+
+Up to this time Uncle Vanya and the other members of the family as
+well, had sacrificed themselves entirely to this celebrated man. But
+at this proposition Vanya realizes that their idol is nothing but an
+abominable egoist, and he begins to despise his brother-in-law. What
+is more, he secretly loves the young and beautiful wife of the
+professor, while she suffers from the everlasting complaints and
+caprices of her husband. However, a general reconciliation takes
+place. The professor and his wife leave for the city, and all goes
+on as before; Uncle Vanya and the family will sacrifice themselves
+for the glory of Serebriakof, to whom all the revenues of the estate
+are sent.
+
+The "Three Sisters," that is to say the sisters of Prozorov, live
+with their brother in a vulgar, tiresome town,--a town lacking in
+men of superior minds, a town where one person is like the next.
+
+The great desire of the three sisters is to go to Moscow, but their
+apathy keeps them in the country, and they continue to vegetate
+while philosophizing about everything that they see. However, at the
+arrival of a regiment, they become animated, and have sentimental
+intrigues with the officers till the very day of their departure.
+
+"They are going to leave; we shall be alone; the monotonous life is
+going to begin again," cries one of the sisters.
+
+"We must work; work alone consoles," says the second.
+
+And the youngest exclaims, embracing her two sisters, while the
+military band plays the farewell march:
+
+"Ah, my dear sisters, your life is not yet completed. We are going
+to live. The music is so gay! Just a little bit more, and I feel
+that we shall know why we live, why we suffer...."
+
+This certainly is the dominant note of Tchekoff's philosophy: the
+impotency of living mitigated by a vague hope of progress.
+
+The last, and perhaps the most important play of Tchekoff, is "The
+Cherry Garden."[4] Human beings, locked up in themselves, morally
+bounded, impotent and isolated, wander about in the old seignioral
+estate of the Cherry Garden. The house is several centuries old. In
+former times a happy life was led there; feasts were given, and
+generals and princes were the hosts. The Cherry Garden gave tone to
+the neighborhood, but many years have passed!... Now other houses
+have taken its place: the estate is mortgaged, the interest is not
+paid, and the only guests now are the postman or a railway official
+who lives close by. The occupants of the house do not think of doing
+anything about this state of things. For them the past is gone. All
+that is left is a dislike for work, carelessness, improvidence, and
+ignorance of the necessities of the present. Like all that dies,
+they evoke a certain pity, a certain fatality hangs over them. The
+inhabitants of the Cherry Garden set forth their ideas about one
+another; but in reality none of them see anything but themselves, in
+their small and very limited moral world, and they analyze with
+difficulty the embryos of thought that are left to them. Thus, they
+cannot grasp in full the evil that is falling on the old home, and
+they remain impassive when some one proposes to alleviate this evil
+by energetic means. People speak to them of the downfall to which
+they are doomed; a means of safety is proposed, but they turn a deaf
+ear and continue in their narrow and fruitless dream. Finally, when
+the estate is sold, they look upon this event as a fatal and
+unexpected blow. They say good-bye to the cradle of their family,
+weeping silently, and depart.
+
+ [4] For some reason, unknown to the translator, the author has
+ made no mention of Tchekoff's famous play, "The Sea-Gull." This
+ drama, which, when first produced, was a flat failure, scored a
+ tremendous success a short while afterwards. It is especially
+ interesting in that the author has made one of the characters,
+ Trigorin, largely autobiographical. To-day "The Sea-Gull" is one
+ of the most popular productions on the Russian stage.
+
+They are now thrown out into the world. The old existence has gone,
+as well as the seignioral estate. The Cherry Garden is to be torn
+down; the blinds are all lowered, and in the half-darkened rooms,
+the old servant, who is nearly a century old, wanders about among
+the disordered furniture.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Tchekoff is a true product of Russian literature, an autochthon
+plant, nourished by his natal sap. His humor is completely Russian;
+we hear Tolstoyan notes in his democracy; the "failures" of his
+stories are distantly related to the "superficial characters" of
+Turgenev; finally, the theory of the redemption of the past by
+suffering which he puts in the heart of the hero of the "Cherry
+Garden" makes us think of Dostoyevsky. The qualities which call to
+mind all these great names in Russian literature are found in the
+works of Tchekoff along with characteristics which show a very
+original talent. If one wishes to look for foreign influence, one
+can relate Tchekoff to de Maupassant and Ibsen, of whom he reminds
+one in snatches, although still in a very vague way. And that is
+indeed fortunate, for, in general, Scandinavian symbolism hardly
+goes hand in hand with the Russian spirit, which likes to make
+_direct_ answers to "cursed questions," and whose ideal, elaborated
+since 1840 in the realm of strict realism, is so definite that it
+does not necessitate going back to the circumlocutions of metaphors
+and allegories.
+
+While Tchekoff lived his literary aspect was enigmatical. Some
+judged him to be indifferent, because they did not find in his
+writings that revolutionary spirit which is felt in almost all
+modern writers. Others thought of him as a pessimist who saw nothing
+good in Russian life, because he described principally resigned
+suffering or useless striving for a better life. Since the death of
+Tchekoff, which made it necessary for the critics to study his works
+as a whole, and especially since the publication of his
+correspondence, his character has come to the fore, as it really is:
+he is a writer, who, by the very nature of his talent, was
+irresistibly forced to study the inner life of man impartially, and
+who, consequently, remains the enemy of all religious or
+philosophical dogmas which may hinder the task of the observer.
+
+The division of men into good and bad, according to the point of
+view of this or that doctrine, angered him:
+
+"I fear," he says in one of his letters, "those who look for hidden
+meanings between the lines, and those who look upon me as a
+liberator or as a guardian. I am neither a liberal nor a
+conservative, neither a monk nor an indifferent person. I despise
+lies and violence everywhere and under any form.... I only want to
+be an artist, and that's all."
+
+One realized that this unfettered artist, with his hatred of lies
+and violence, although he belonged to no political party, could be
+nothing but a liberal in the noblest and greatest sense of the word.
+One also realized that he was not the pessimist that he was once
+believed to be, but a writer who suffered for his ideal and who
+awakened by his works a desire to emerge from the twilight of life
+that he depicted.
+
+To some he even appeared as an enchanted admirer of the future
+progress of humanity. Did he not often say, while admiring his own
+little garden: "Do you know that in three or four hundred years the
+entire earth will be a flourishing garden? How wonderful it will be
+to live then!" And did he not pronounce these proud words: "Man must
+be conscious of being superior to the lions, tigers, stars, in
+short, to all nature. We are already superior and great people, and,
+when we come to know all the strength of human genius, we shall be
+comparable to the gods."
+
+These great hopes did not prevent him from painting with a vigorous
+brush the nothingness of mankind, not only at a certain given moment
+and under certain circumstances, but always and everywhere. Is this
+a paradox? No. If he did not doubt progress, he would be most
+pessimistic, if I may so express myself. He would suffer from that
+earthly pessimism, in face of which reason is weak; the pessimism
+which manifests itself by a hopeless sadness in face of the
+stupidity of life and the idea of death.
+
+"I, my friend, am afraid of life, and do not understand it," says
+one of Tchekoff's heroes. "When, lying on the grass, I examine a
+lady-bird, it seems to me that its life is nothing but a texture of
+horrors, and I see myself in it.... Everything frightens me because
+I understand neither the motive nor the end of things. I understand
+neither persons nor things. If you understand I congratulate you.
+
+"When one looks at the blue sky for a long time, one's thoughts and
+one's soul unite mysteriously in a feeling of solitude.... For a
+moment one feels the loneliness of the dead, and the enigma of
+hopeless and terrible life."
+
+This universal hopelessness; this sadness, provoked by the
+platitudes of existence compared with the unrelenting lessons of
+death, of which Tchekoff speaks with such a nervous terror, can be
+found in almost all the works of the best known Russian writers. We
+find it in Byronian Lermontov, who sees nothing in life but "une
+plaisanterie;" in Dostoyevsky, who has written so many striking
+pages of realism on the bitterness of a life without religious
+faith; and in the realist Turgenev, we find the same kind of thing.
+Turgenev even reaches a stage of hopeless nihilism, and one of his
+heroes, Bazarov,--in "Fathers and Sons,"--reflecting one day on the
+lot of the peasant, considering it better than his, says sadly, "He,
+at least, will have his little hut, while all I can hope for is a
+bed of thorns." Finally, all the tortuous quests of the ideal toward
+which Tolstoy strove, were suggested to him, as he himself says, by
+his insatiable desire to find "the meaning of life, destroyed by
+death."
+
+It is sometimes maintained that this state of intellectual sadness
+is innate in the Russians; that their sanguinary and melancholy
+temperaments are a mixture of Don Quixote and Hamlet. Foreign
+critics have often traced this despair to the so-called mysticism
+peculiar to the Slavonic race.
+
+What is there mystical in them? The consciousness of the
+nothingness, of the emptiness of human life, can be found deep down
+in the souls of nearly all mankind. It shows itself, among most
+people, only on rare tragic occasions, when general or particular
+catastrophes take place; at other times it is smothered by the
+immediate cares of life, by passions that grip us, and, finally, by
+religion. But none of these influences had any effect on Tchekoff.
+He was too noble to be completely absorbed by the mean details of
+life; his organism was too delicate to become the prey of an
+overwhelming passion; and his character too positive to give itself
+over to religious dogmas. "I lost my childhood faith a long time
+ago," he once wrote, "and I regard all intelligent belief with
+perplexity.... In reality, the 'intellectuals' only play at
+religion, chiefly because they have nothing else to do." Tchekoff,
+in his sober manner, has seen and recognized the two great aspects
+of life: first, the world of social and historical progress with its
+promise of future comforts; secondly, an aspect that is closely
+related to the above, the obscure world of the unknown man who feels
+the cold breath of death upon him. He was an absolute positivist;
+his positivism did not make him self-assertive nor peremptory; on
+the contrary, it oppressed him.
+
+But why should this sad state of mind, which has been expressed by
+great men in all literatures, be so exceptionally prominent among
+the Russians, and particularly among the modern ones? The reason is,
+without a doubt, because the political and social organization of
+Russia has always been a prison for literature. Oppression had
+reached its height during Tchekoff's life. This period was the
+moment of suffocation before the storm. If Tchekoff were alive
+to-day, now that the tempest has burst forth, his sadness would be
+lessened, or it would at least have before it the screen which,
+according to Pascal, people wear before their eyes that they may not
+see the abyss, on the edge of which they pass their lives. Up to the
+present time, the Russians have lacked these screens.
+
+
+
+
+III
+
+VLADIMIR KOROLENKO
+
+
+"A long time ago, on a dark autumn evening, I was being rowed down a
+rather uninteresting Siberian stream. Suddenly, at a bend in the
+river, I saw a bright fire burning ahead of us at the foot of some
+black mountains. It did not seem far away.
+
+"'Thank Heaven,' I cried with joy, 'we have nearly reached our
+stopping-place!'
+
+"The boatsman turned, looked at the fire over his shoulder, and
+again grasped the oars with an apathetic gesture:
+
+"'That is still a long way off,' he murmured.
+
+"I did not believe him, for the fire seemed to stand out very clear
+against the infinite shadows. However, he was right; we were still
+far away.
+
+"Just so those fires, the conquerors of darkness, deceive us into
+thinking that they are near, while they only cast their distant,
+illusive rays into the night...."
+
+It is with this sober description in "Little Fires" that one of the
+last volumes of Korolenko's "Sketches and Stories" opens. This
+simple picture makes a warm and clear impression on one's very soul.
+It is itself a precious and welcome light.
+
+At times when life is sombre, and when shadows fill the heart, when,
+under the blows of despair and anguish, courage finally fails, the
+mere existence of some brave spirit suffices to give a new birth to
+hope and to rekindle the flame so that the distance is again lighted
+up, and we again put our shoulders to the wheel.
+
+Thus for more than thirty years in Russian literature Korolenko has
+played the part of one of these clear, alluring lights. He has not
+written a single book in which we do not find a fire that warms us
+with its caresses even from afar, not one in which we do not feel
+the vibration of a loving heart, which dreams of giving light and
+joy to all unfortunates, and is confident that if they have not yet
+had their equal share, they will surely have it some day.
+
+Korolenko was born in 1853 in Zhitomir, in Little Russia. On his
+father's side he is descended from an old Cossack family, and by his
+mother he is related to Polish nobility. This double origin, so to
+speak, is shown very clearly in his works, which are filled with the
+melancholy and dreamy poetry of the Little Russians, and also with
+the perennial hope so common among the Poles.
+
+His father was a judge and enjoyed a reputation for strict
+integrity. It was, in fact, often hard for him to ward off those who
+wanted to thank him for his services. One day he had to accept a
+gift. A merchant, whose case he had won, sent him a cart filled with
+various objects, among which was a beautiful large doll. The little
+daughter of the judge saw it, and at once took possession of it. The
+judge, when he found out what had happened, ordered the gifts to be
+returned immediately; but, because of the grief of the little girl,
+they had to give up all thoughts of returning the doll.
+
+The judge, who was a man of firm principles, maintained a severe
+discipline in his family. He made a special study of medicine and
+hygiene, and put his knowledge into practice by treating the sick of
+the neighborhood. His children, although always well dressed, had to
+go around barefoot. Their father was convinced that this was the
+best way to toughen them. Besides, they were compelled, every
+morning, summer and winter, to take a cold plunge bath. The children
+did not like this way of doing things. Early in the morning they
+used to run to the stable in their shirts, and there, cowering in a
+corner, trembling with cold, they would wait for their father to
+leave the house.
+
+Korolenko remembers well this Spartan-like education, which inured
+him to the severity of the seasons. Without this training he
+certainly would have perished in savage and freezing Siberia, where
+he lived in exile for several years.
+
+At the death of the father, the family with its six children was
+left without resources. The mother, a very good and kind woman,
+opened a boys' boarding-school, and Vladimir, then fifteen years of
+age, helped her as well as he could, and also earned money by giving
+lessons outside.
+
+In 1870, after having finished his studies in his native town,
+Korolenko entered the Technological Institute at St. Petersburg,
+where he spent two years in extreme poverty. He had to earn his
+living as well as he could, by giving lessons or doing copying. His
+mother could not help him at all, as she herself had to struggle
+against adversity. The following will show how sparingly he had to
+live in his youth: during his two years, he had a real substantial
+meal only about once in two months, and then in a restaurant run on
+philanthropic principles, where he paid only 30 copecks (about 30
+cents). His regular meals consisted of bread, tea, sausage and
+potatoes. But this was an epoch in which living was cheap: the wave
+of democracy was spreading, and the "intellectuals" were trying to
+get into closer touch with the people. The movement was so powerful
+that many of the younger generation who could have done other
+things took up this work; others, on principle, married humble
+peasants. In 1872 Korolenko left for Moscow, and there entered the
+Academy of Agriculture. He was expelled after two years and sent to
+Kronstadt for having taken part in student manifestations. Several
+years later, we find him again in St. Petersburg without a permanent
+position; he was employed as a reader in a publishing house, and was
+also attempting to do some writing. His first efforts took the form
+of a series of sketches, published under the title, "Episodes in the
+Life of a Seeker." He was at this time accused of being too much
+inspired by the scenes of sadness and injustice of which he had been
+a witness. In 1879 he was imprisoned and then deported to Viatka. He
+remained there a year. Thence he was sent to the miserable town of
+Kama, and a few months later to Tomsk, where he learned that they
+wanted to exile him to Siberia. In a letter, published by a
+newspaper, he eloquently protested against the persecutions of which
+he was the unhappy victim. His protestation was answered by his
+transfer to the frozen region of the province of Yakutsk in Eastern
+Siberia! He passed three years in the midst of the "taiga," the
+immense virgin forest which covers this country, in a village of
+nomads whose miserable huts, very low and smoky, were scattered
+along the shores of the Aldane. Here he wrote several stories, and
+the "Dream of Makar," which was published two years later, and
+greatly praised by the critics for its originality and its setting.
+The dreary country around Yakutsk and the life that is lived there
+made such a profound impression on the young man that even to-day he
+speaks of that time with real emotion.
+
+"My hut was at the extreme end of the town. During the short day one
+could see the small plain, the mountains which surrounded it, and
+the fires in the other huts, in which lived people who were either
+descended from Russian colonists or deported Tartars. But in the
+morning and evening a cold grey mist covered everything so thickly
+that one could not see a foot ahead.
+
+"My little hut was like a lost island in a boundless ocean. Not a
+sound about me.... The minutes, the hours passed, and insensibly the
+fatal moment approached when the 'cursed land' pierced me with the
+hostility of its freezing cold and its terrible shadows, when the
+high mountains covered with black forests rose menacingly before me,
+the endless steppes, all lying between me and my country and all
+that was dear to me.... Then came the terrible sadness ... which, in
+the depths of your heart, suddenly lifts up its sinister head, and
+in the terrible silence among the shadows murmurs these words: 'This
+is the end of you ... the very end ... you will remain in this tomb
+till you die....'
+
+"A low and caressing whine brought me out of my heavy stupor: it was
+my friend, Cerberus, my intelligent and faithful dog, who had been
+placed as a sentinel near the door. Chilled through and through, he
+was asking me what was the matter and why, in such terribly cold
+weather, I did not have a fire.
+
+"Whenever I felt that I was going to be beaten in my struggle with
+silence and the shadows, I turned to this wholesome expedient,--a
+large fire."
+
+In 1885, Korolenko, having returned from Siberia, went to
+Nizhny-Novgorod, and in a relatively short space of time wrote a
+series of stories which, two years later, were collected in book
+form. Afterward, he became the editor of the celebrated St.
+Petersburg review, the "Russkoe Bogatsvo,"--a position which he
+still holds.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In all of Korolenko's works we distinctly feel the living breath
+that inspires the artist, and the ardor of a fervent ideal. His god
+is man; his ideal, humanity; his "leitmotiv," the poetry of human
+suffering. This intimate connection with all that is human is to
+be found in his psychological analysis as well as in his
+descriptions of natural phenomena. Both God and nature are in turn
+spiritualized and humanized. Korolenko looks at life from a human
+standpoint; the world which he describes is made up wholly of men
+and exists for them only. He has a very clear philosophy, and a
+conscience aware of the duties it has to perform. If he has not
+opened up hitherto unknown paths, nor made new roads, he has
+himself nevertheless passed through terrible experiences; he has
+been a prey to profound sorrows and doubts, and in spite of all, he
+has kept his love for the people intact, and deeply pities their
+ignorance and abasement. His work constantly recalls to our minds
+the theory that the cultivated classes are in debt to the people
+for the education which they have received at the people's expense.
+This is the great moral principle which governs the conscience of
+the Russian "intellectuals." It is in this sense then, that
+Korolenko may be said to continue the literature of 1870, and to be
+the successor of Zlatovratsky and Uspensky. But he has reincarnated
+this past in new forms, which naturally result from the activity of
+his far-sighted, powerful intelligence. We do not find in his work
+either the nervousness, often sickly, which pervades the works of
+Uspensky, or the optimism of Zlatovratsky, which often excessively
+idealizes the life of the Russian peasant, who is the principal
+hero of all his works. Korolenko, because he puts a high value on
+human personality, perfectly appreciates the terrible struggle that
+man has to make in order to secure his rights. A desire for justice
+on the one hand, and a defence of man's dignity on the other, form
+the very essence of the talent of this author, and it is with these
+feelings that he observes the people on whom injustice weighs most
+heavily and who have merely remnants of human dignity left in their
+make-up,--for in general, these people are not those whom fate has
+overcome. Most of them lead a hard and gloomy life beset with
+misfortunes. Many of them are vagabonds, escaped convicts,
+drunkards, murderers, who are bowed down with misery, and have no
+wish except to escape the mortal dangers of the Siberian forests
+and marshes. On opening any of Korolenko's books we find ourselves,
+to use his own words, in "bad company." He does not flatter his
+heroes, he does not make gentlemen of them; they are not even men,
+but rather human rubbish.
+
+"Because I knew a lot about the world," he writes, "I knew that
+there were people who had lost every vestige of humanity. I knew
+that they were corroded with vice and sunk deep in debauchery, in
+which they lived contented. But when the recollection of these
+beings surged through my mind, enveloped in the mists of the past, I
+saw nothing but a terrible tragedy, and felt only an inexpressible
+sorrow...."
+
+This author does not give any judgment on life; he does not condemn
+it and does not nourish a preconceived spite against it, but his sad
+heart overflows with pity, and, if he approaches this life, it is
+with the balm of love, in order to try to dress its terrible wounds.
+
+For Korolenko, the sufferings of existence atone for its injustice;
+he does not perceive the iniquities that surround him except through
+the prism of sorrow.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+From the very beginning of his literary career, in his first book,
+"Episodes in the Life of a Seeker," Korolenko shows himself to be a
+seeker after truth. With him, the understanding of life, so ardently
+sought after, is never summed up in a single solution. He dreams of
+it constantly; at times, he seems to have found it, but he loses
+track of it again and starts all over.
+
+This groping about resulted in a moral crisis in which he looked
+forward to death with joy. Beset with the thought of suicide, he
+often prowled around railroad platforms and looked at the
+car-wheels.
+
+"I went there and came back again," he writes, "depressed by my
+realization of the stupidity of life. The snow was falling all
+around me, and shaping itself into a frozen carpet, the telegraph
+poles shivered as if they were cold through and through, and on the
+other side of the road, on a slope, shone the sad little light of
+the watchman's tower. There, in the darkness, lived a whole family.
+Through the shadows the little red fire seemed to be as desolate as
+the family. The children were scrofulous and suffered; the mother
+was thin and sickly. To procreate and to bury! Such was the life of
+the father, probably the most unfortunate of all, because the
+household depended wholly upon him, and he saw no gleam of hope
+anywhere. He bore this condition of things, because, in his
+simplicity, he believed in a superior will, and thought that his
+misery was inevitable. The resignation of this man, the terrible
+bareness of his obscure existence, oppressed me. If I could bear the
+sight of it, it was only because I hoped; I thought that we should
+soon find the road which makes life happier, more agreeable to every
+one. How, where, in what manner? What a mystery! But the future
+beauty of life was in the search for it."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The observations that Korolenko was able to make were many and
+diverse. By going all over Russia he gathered inexhaustible riches,
+in the form of anecdotes and actual experiences. This can be easily
+realized when we consider the sumptuous variety of his descriptions.
+Where do we not go, and whom do we not meet in his books? First, we
+are in a peaceful little town of the southwest, then in the thick
+woods of Poliyessye, in the snow-covered and frozen Siberian
+forests, or in the valleys of Sakhaline, inhabited by half-breed
+Russians and escaped convicts, not to mention the innumerable
+sectarians who fill the Siberian prisons. And Korolenko never
+repeats. Not even a detail occurs more than once. Each of his works
+is a little world in itself. The author, moreover, unlike other
+writers, is never satisfied with pale sketches; each character is
+shown in full relief, each picture is absolutely finished. This
+wholeness, this finish which does not hurt the harmony of the
+proportions, is a precious quality, very rare in our time.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The "Sketches of a Siberian Tourist," published in 1896, in which
+bandits of various odd types tell thrilling tales of nocturnal
+attacks and other adventures, is a kind of artistic novel. The
+postillion is the most original character in the book. Huge of
+stature, audacious and clever, he exercises a mysterious influence
+over the brigands, whom he inspires with a superstitious terror.
+Most of them, thinking him invulnerable, do not dare attack the
+travelers whom he is driving.
+
+That same year another work of Korolenko's appeared, called: "In Bad
+Company,"--a sort of autobiography which added to his renown. The
+story, poetically simple, is laid in a provincial town. The hero is
+a little, seven-year-old boy called Volodya. He is the son of the
+local judge. The mother has been dead for a long time, and the
+father, in his sorrow, more or less loses track of his children, who
+roam about unwatched.
+
+The little town has its historic legends; it boasts of the ruins of
+a castle, which in times gone by was inhabited by rich Polish
+counts, whose descendants, having become poor, have long since left
+their manorial home. The castle has served as a refuge for a nomadic
+population. Expelled by the count's agent, this little band has
+taken up its abode in a dilapidated chapel in the crypts of a
+cemetery.
+
+The chief of this barefoot brigade is called Tibertius Droba. He has
+two children: Vanek, a large, dark-haired lad, whom one sees
+wandering about the village with a sullen look on his face, and
+Maroussya, a small and thin child, who is gradually fading away in
+the darkness of her cellar-like home.
+
+While strolling about one day, Volodya, impelled by his childish
+curiosity, decides, with two of his friends, to explore the chapel.
+He meets there Tibertius' children and they strike up a friendship.
+The description of the ruins and of the superstitious fear of the
+children gives an opportunity for some exquisite pages. If the
+little vagabonds are hungry, poor Volodya, who himself is without
+love or caresses, suffers still more, but every time that he brings
+the children some apples or cakes he feels that he is less unhappy,
+because these offerings are accepted with such an outpouring of
+gratitude. Gradually, the little lad gets to know all the
+inhabitants, and becomes especially intimate with Maroussya, whose
+eyes have an expression of precocious desolation.
+
+"Her smile," says Korolenko, "reminded me of my mother during the
+last few months of her life; so much so, that I almost used to weep
+when I watched this little girl."
+
+One day, Volodya brings her some apples, flowers, and a doll that
+his little sister has given him.
+
+"Why is she always so sad?" he asks Maroussya's brother.
+
+"It is on account of the grey stone," he replies.
+
+"Yes, the grey stone," repeated Maroussya, like a feeble echo.
+
+"What grey stone?"
+
+"The grey stone that has sucked the life out of her," explained
+Vanek, gazing at the sky. "Tibertius says so, and Tibertius knows
+everything."
+
+"I was very much puzzled, but the force with which Tibertius'
+omniscience was affirmed impressed me. I looked at the little girl,
+who was still playing with the flowers, but almost without moving.
+There were dark rings under her eyes and her face was pale. I did
+not exactly understand the meaning of Tibertius' words, but I felt
+dimly that they veiled some terrible reality. The grey stone was, in
+fact, sucking out the life of this frail child. But how could grey
+stones do it? How could this hard and formless thing worm itself
+into Maroussya's very soul, and make the ruddy glow disappear from
+her cheeks and the brilliancy from her eyes? These mysteries puzzled
+me more than the phantoms of the castle."
+
+Volodya's father is not aware that he is spending part of his days
+in the cemetery, and knows nothing of his son's new friends. But one
+day the secret is discovered, and a family storm follows. The judge
+demands a full confession. Volodya heroically remains silent.
+Finally, Tibertius himself pleads the child's cause so eloquently
+that Volodya is not scolded and the father allows him to go and say
+good-bye to his little friend, who has meanwhile died of privation.
+The day after the little girl's funeral the whole band disappears
+without leaving a trace behind them. "Later on," says Korolenko,
+"when we were about to leave our home, it was on the grave of our
+poor little friend that my sister and I, both of us full of life,
+faith, and hope, interchanged our vows of universal compassion...."
+
+Another short story, called "The Murmuring Forest," which was
+published in the same year, made as much of a success as "Bad
+Company."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+But it is in "The Blind Musician" that Korolenko attains perfection.
+This masterly psychological study does not present a very
+complicated plot. From the very start the reader is captivated by a
+powerful poetic quality, free from all artifice, fresh, spontaneous,
+and breathing forth such moral purity, such tender pity, that one
+literally feels regenerated.
+
+Here is a brief outline of this exquisite story. One very dark
+night, a child of rich parents is born in the southwest of Russia.
+Peter--the child--is blind. His whole life is to be but a groping in
+the shadows toward the light. The mother adores the poor child and
+suffers more than he. But she has not enough moral strength to bring
+him up, and give him the necessary comfort and energy. His father,
+a countryman, thinks only of his business. Happily, there is on the
+mother's side an uncle called Maxim, one of the famous "thousand" of
+Garibaldi, who has a noble and generous disposition. It is he who
+brings up the child, with a tenderness just touched by severity.
+Peter's young mind is constantly enriched with new pictures. Thanks
+to the extreme acuteness of his hearing, he catches the very
+slightest sounds of nature. When barely five years of age the boy
+shows his love for music; he spends hours, motionless, listening to
+the playing of one of the servants who has made for himself a kind
+of flute. Soon Peter begins to study music, and especially the
+violin. His rapid progress astonishes his teachers. However, in
+spite of his love for music and the comfort that it gives him, the
+blind boy suffers from his infirmity. To distract his mind from his
+own suffering, his uncle takes him one day to a place where there
+are some blind beggars. Peter listens to their plaintive melody:
+"Alms, alms for a poor blind man ... for the love of Christ"; and as
+if he had heard the voice of some phantom, the child returns home,
+frightened, confused. From that day, he is transformed. Until then,
+he had thought only of himself, he had become grey with his own
+sorrow. Afterward, he suffers for others; his personal sorrow
+diminishes, and his life becomes an expression of the sorrows of
+his fellows in misery, an ardent and passionate prayer for others
+who also are deprived of sight.
+
+For several years he has been friends with a young girl of his
+neighborhood. They marry, and Evelyn, his wife, brings some
+happiness to the poor blind man. But soon there comes a time of
+indescribable anguish. Evelyn gives birth to a boy, and Peter is
+tortured by a presentiment of impending evil. Will the son be blind
+like his father? The few moments when the doctors are testing the
+infant's sight pass like so many centuries. Finally the physician
+says: "The pupil is contracting, the child is not blind." Peter,
+seated by the window, pale and motionless, rises quickly at these
+words. In a moment fear has disappeared and hope is transformed into
+certainty and fills the blind man's heart with joy. "The child is
+not blind." One might say that these few words of the doctor had
+burned a path in his brain.
+
+"His whole frame vibrated like a taut cord which had been snapped. A
+flash went through him, like lightning in a sunless sky, conjuring
+up in him strange phantasms. Whether they were sounds or sights he
+could not determine. But if they were sounds they were sounds which
+he could see. They sparkled like the vault of the sky, shone like
+the sun, waved like the rustling, whispering grass of the steppes.
+These were the sensations of a moment. What followed he was unable
+to recall. But he stubbornly affirmed that in this moment he had
+_seen_. What had he seen? How had he seen? Had he really seen? This
+always remained a mystery. People said that it was impossible. He,
+however, affirmed that in that moment he had seen the earth, his
+wife, his mother, his son, and Uncle Maxim.... He was standing up,
+and his face was so illumined and so strange that every one around
+him was silent.... Later on, there remained nothing but the
+remembrance of a sort of joyous satisfaction, and the absolute
+conviction that, at that moment, he had seen...."
+
+A year later, at Kiev, at a concert for charity, Peter made his
+début. An enormous crowd gathered to hear the blind musician. From
+the very first the audience was captivated. Moved to its depths, the
+crowd became frantic. And Uncle Maxim heard something familiar in
+the playing of his nephew.
+
+He saw a large, crowded street, and a clear, gay wave of scolding
+and jesting humanity. Then, gradually, this picture faded into the
+background. A groaning was heard. It detached itself from the clamor
+of the crowd and passed through the hall in a sweet but powerful
+note, which sobbed and moved one's heart. Maxim knew it well, this
+sad melody: "Alms, alms for the poor blind man ... for the love of
+Christ."
+
+"He understands suffering," murmured the uncle. "He has had his
+share, and that is why he can change it into music for this happy
+audience."
+
+"And the head of the old warrior sank on his breast. His work was
+done. He had made a good man. He had not lived in vain. He had but
+to look at the crowd to be convinced of that."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Korolenko belongs to the school of Turgenev. In all of his works he
+remains true to the principles which his master summed up in a
+letter: "One must penetrate the surroundings, and take life in all
+its manifestations; decipher the laws by which it is governed; get
+at the very essence of life, while remaining always within the
+boundaries of truth; and finally, one must not be contented with a
+superficial study."
+
+Korolenko lives up to all of these principles. Without tiring, he
+watches life in all of its phases. He uses a large canvas for his
+studies of inanimate nature, as well as of individuals in particular
+and the masses in general. That is why his work gives us such an
+exact reproduction of life.
+
+Like Turgenev, he describes nature admirably. His descriptions are
+not irrelevant ornaments, but they constitute an organic and
+integral part of the picture. In both Turgenev and Korolenko the
+surrounding country reflects the feelings and emotions of the
+heroes, and takes on a purely lyric character. One might almost say
+that these country scenes breathe, speak a human language, and
+whisper mysterious legends.
+
+Korolenko has given us several splendid landscapes. In some of these
+nature seems to be in a serene mood, like a good mother whose
+harmonious strength attracts man and shows him the need of reposing
+on her bosom. In others, nature is like a strong, free element which
+incites man to lead an independent life. Thus, in the beautiful
+prose poem, "The Moment," in which the action passes in Spain, it is
+the ocean beating against the prison walls that arouses Diatz from
+his torpor and makes him attempt to escape.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+But, in spite of the importance of the background in Korolenko's
+work, it is really in the conscience of his characters that the
+essential drama takes place. More than anything else, it is
+psychology that beguiles the artist; it is only through psychology
+that Korolenko depicts men and their mentalities. He studies the
+strong and the weak, the simple and the complex; exaltation,
+triumph, revolt, and downfall all interest him equally.
+
+A simple analysis of his story, "Makar's Dream," will show his
+psychological genius to greater advantage than could any critical
+essay.
+
+In the very heart of the dense woods of the "taiga," Makar, a poor
+little peasant, who has become half savage by association with the
+Yakutsk people, dreams of a better future.
+
+Makar does not dream, however, when he is normal; he hasn't time to,
+for he has to chop wood, plough, sow, and grind grain. He only
+dreams when he is drunk. As soon as he is under the influence of
+liquor, he weeps and says that he is going to leave everything and
+go to the "sacred mountain" to gain salvation for his soul. What is
+the name of this mountain? Where is it? He does not know exactly; he
+only knows that it is very far away. On Christmas eve, Makar extorts
+a ruble from two political refugees, and, instead of bringing them
+some wood for the money, he quickly buys some tobacco and brandy.
+After drinking and smoking a great deal, Makar goes to sleep and has
+a dream. He dreams that the frost has got the better of him in the
+woods, that he has died there, and that the priest Ivan, who has
+also been dead a long time, takes him to the great Tayon--the god of
+the woods--to be judged for his former deeds. Even there his
+natural knavery does not forsake him; he tries to fool Tayon. But
+the latter has everything that Makar has ever done, both good and
+bad, written down, and becoming angry, he says: "I see that you are
+a liar, a sluggard, and a drunkard."
+
+He orders Makar to be transformed into a post-horse, to be used by
+the police commissioner. And Makar, this Makar who never in his
+lifetime was known to say more than ten words at a time, suddenly
+finds that he has the faculty of speech. He begins by saying that he
+does not want to be a horse, not because he is afraid of work but
+because this decision is unfair. If one works geldings, one feeds
+them with oats; but people have imposed upon him and tortured him
+all his life and have never fed him, no, not even with oats.
+
+"Who imposed upon you and tortured you?" asks old Tayon, moved by
+compassion.
+
+"Everybody! The men who demanded taxes, the heat and the cold, rain
+and dryness, the pitiless earth, and the forest."
+
+The beam of the balance wavers; the wooden dish, filled with sins,
+rises, while the golden one sinks.
+
+Makar continues: "You have everything written down, have you? Well,
+look and see whether Makar has ever had any kindness shown to him.
+He is here before his judges, dirty, his hair disordered, and his
+clothes in rags. He is ashamed. However, he realizes that he was
+born just like the others, with clear eyes in which both heaven and
+earth were reflected, and with a heart ready to open and receive all
+the beauty of the world."
+
+Makar thus passes in review his miserable life. Old Tayon is moved.
+
+"Makar, you are no longer on earth, and you shall receive justice."
+
+Makar begins to weep, and Tayon weeps too.... And the young gods and
+the angels, they also shed tears.
+
+Again the balance moves. But this time it is in the opposite
+direction.
+
+Makar has received justice from the hands of Tayon.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Korolenko does not try to reconcile us to reality, but to mankind.
+In all of the catastrophes in his books, in the most sombre
+descriptions, he comforts us with a consolation, an ideal, a "little
+fire" that burns in the distance and attracts us. But to get to that
+fire we have to fight against evil. And it is perhaps in answer to
+Tolstoy's doctrine of passive resistance that Korolenko wrote that
+beautiful story called, "The Legend of Florus," the subject of which
+was probably taken from "The War of the Jews," by Flavius Josephus.
+
+This work takes us back to the time when Judæa was bowed down under
+Roman rule. The Jews bear their lot without a murmur, and this
+resignation encourages Florus, the governor of Judæa, to oppress
+them more.
+
+Soon there are two parties formed: the "pacifics" want to rid
+themselves of Roman cruelty by humble submission, while the others
+advise opposing this cruelty to the utmost. The chief of the latter
+party is Menahem, the son of a famous warrior who has inherited from
+his father his generous passions and his hatred of oppression.
+Menahem's words inspire respect even in his enemies. But he does not
+succeed in making peace among his people. In vain he cries to them,
+as his father before him had cried: "It is disgraceful to bow down
+to sovereigns, especially since these sovereigns are men; no human
+being should bow down to any one excepting God, who created men that
+they might be free." With great trouble he finally succeeds in
+rousing a part of the people to rebellion. Then he leaves the city
+with his followers, resolved to defend his country. Menahem has no
+illusions as to the outcome; he knows that he will be conquered by
+the Romans. Nevertheless he is fearless, for his whole being is
+filled with a single thought,--the idea of justice, which imposes
+upon men certain obligations which they must not scorn.
+
+During his stay in Siberia Korolenko had a very good chance to
+observe the deported convicts. Most of them are thieves, forgers,
+and murderers. The others, urged on by a heroic desire to live their
+own true lives, have been sent to this "cursed land" because of
+"political offences."
+
+Korolenko is not resigned to the sadness of life, he is not an enemy
+to manly calls to active struggle, but he neither wants to, nor can
+he, break the ties that bind him to the real life of the present. He
+does not wish either to judge or to renounce this life. Nor does he
+try, by fighting, to perpetuate a conflict which is in itself
+eternal. If he struggles, it is rather in discontent than in
+despair. Not all is evil in his eyes, and reality is not always and
+entirely sad. His protestations hardly ever take the form of disdain
+or contempt; he does not rise to summits which are inaccessible to
+mankind. In fact, his ideal is close to earth; it is the ideal which
+comes from mankind, from tears and sufferings. If the thoughts and
+feelings of the author rise sometimes high above the earth, he never
+forgets the world and its interests. Korolenko loves humanity, and
+his ideals cannot separate themselves from it. He loves man and he
+believes that God lives in their souls.
+
+We find these theories in the sketch called "En Route." The
+vagabond, Panov, is one of a party of deported convicts. At one of
+the stops, an inspector arrives who remembers having seen Panov when
+a young man. The old man goes over the history of his life, which
+has been marked with constant success, with pleasure. He shows the
+vagabond his little son, and with cruel egotism boasts of his
+happiness. Standing before him, his back bent, and a sad light in
+his eyes, Panov listens to the story. He feels vaguely that he has
+not lived and that he lacks personality. There is nothing in store
+for him except the useless existence of prison life. The egotistical
+and debonair inspector, in his simplicity, does not understand the
+anguish of the homeless prisoner, and, by his amicable chatter,
+subjects him to horrible moral torture. It is too much for Panov.
+When the inspector leaves, Panov, gripping the edge of his hard cot
+in his convulsive hands, falls to the ground. He breathes heavily,
+his lips move, but he does not speak. "That night Panov got drunk."
+
+Two very different types appear in the novel called, "The Postillion
+of the Emperor." We have here the idealist Misheka and the sectarian
+Ostrovsky, a transported prisoner who is embittered by his hard lot,
+and by life in general.
+
+If Misheka protests against the complicated conditions of life to
+which he cannot entirely submit, it is rather by instinct than
+through reason. He is attracted by something invisible, something
+distant and strange, to the repugnant world which surrounds him. As
+a postillion of the State he has frequent communications with the
+distant world which glows vaguely on his mental horizon. Everything
+displeases him: both the savage country in which he has to live, and
+the world of stupid, degenerate, and miserable postillions whom he
+mercilessly criticizes. His random attempts to get away fail.
+Despairing, he becomes an accomplice in a crime so that he can leave
+this solitary place and go where his restless soul leads him.
+
+At the side of Misheka we have the tragic figure of Ostrovsky, who
+is the exasperated victim of the evil all around him.
+
+The author and the travelers, driven by Misheka, have seen the
+burning of Ostrovsky's house, which the latter burned himself so
+that no one could profit by it. This action strikes Misheka as
+wonderful.
+
+"He begins to tell the story of the fire. Several years before,
+Ostrovsky had been deported for having given up the orthodox faith.
+His young wife and child followed him. They had been given a plot of
+land in a broad and deep valley, between two walls of rock. The
+place seemed fertile. It was not hard to sell wheat to the miners
+and Ostrovsky worked diligently and steadily. But the inhabitants
+had kept something from him: although the wheat grew in the valley,
+it never ripened, because each year, without fail, in the month of
+July it was destroyed by the cold winds from the northeast."
+
+The first few years Ostrovsky attributed his failure to chance. He
+carefully cared for his crop in the hopes of a better season.
+
+Alas, his wife died of sorrow, and autumn brought him nothing but
+straw. Ostrovsky, without weeping, dug a grave in the frozen ground
+and buried his wife. Then he asked permission to go to the mines,
+and borrowed some money for the trip from his neighbors. The latter
+gladly loaned it to him, thinking thus to get rid of him and to get
+the profit of his house and goods. But Ostrovsky fooled them in
+their naïve simplicity; he heaped up all of his possessions in his
+little cottage and then set fire to it. He no longer thought of
+justice; he was nothing but a despairing man.
+
+The patriarch of the village in which he had taken refuge tried to
+recall to him the faith for which he had been exiled:
+
+"Do you remember," answered Ostrovsky, "the first visit I paid you
+to ask for advice? Ah, so you have forgotten that and you speak of
+God.... You are nothing but a crafty dog! All of you are dogs! There
+is nothing here but woods and rocks, and you are all just as
+insensible as the very rocks that surround you.... And your cursed
+land, and your sky, and your stars...." "He wanted to say something
+more, but he did not dare blaspheme, and there was silence again in
+the little cottage...."
+
+This Ostrovsky is among the very best of Korolenko's heroes. The
+sight of this despairing and lonely man, who wanders about in the
+Siberian forests with his little daughter, calls louder for justice
+than all the speeches in the world.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Through the wealth of his talent and knowledge, Korolenko is of
+tremendous social value in three fields of work,--practical affairs,
+journalism, and art.
+
+Among the many services which he has rendered to humanity, let us
+first mention his brilliant defence of the half-savage Votiaks,
+accused of ritual murder in the famous Malmige case. Although he had
+just suffered great grief himself--he had lost two children--he
+traveled to a distant town in order to be at the trial. He took his
+seat on the bench of the defenders. He used all of his knowledge,
+and all the love in his heart to defend the unhappy Votiaks, whose
+acquittal he succeeded in securing.
+
+As a publicist, he has written some very valuable articles. Among
+them are observations on the famine year (he spent two months in one
+of the worst districts). In other articles he has analyzed a moral
+malady peculiar to our state of society:--honor. In the recent
+Russian duels he studied the perverse notions of honor and the moral
+changes produced by sickly egotism. He has studied the causes that
+bring about the complete loss of individuality. Finally, in 1910, he
+published under the title, "Present Customs (Notes of a Publicist
+under Sentence of Death)" a series of documents gathered here and
+there, which constitute an eloquent and passionate plea in favor of
+the abolitionist thesis.
+
+When the great Tolstoy read the preface of this work, he wrote to
+Korolenko, "I often sobbed and wept. Millions of copies of this work
+ought to be distributed; it ought to be read by every one who has a
+heart. No discourse, no novel or play, can produce the effect that
+your 'Notes' do."
+
+But above all, it is as the pure artist that Korolenko merits most
+attention. It is his talent that has already made him famous, and it
+is his talent that will make him immortal in Russian literature.
+
+Korolenko is at present one of the most popular writers among the
+educated classes. They have amply proved this to him, especially in
+1903 and 1908, when they celebrated his 50th birthday and the 30th
+anniversary of his literary activity. On the occasion of these
+celebrations, delegations from many cities and universities came to
+St. Petersburg to congratulate and to thank the author who, through
+so many trials, had never ceased to uphold the cause of truth and
+goodness, and to claim for each human being the right to work,
+happiness, and free thought.
+
+
+
+
+IV
+
+VIKENTY VERESSAYEV
+
+
+Veressayev is well known in France for his "Memoirs of a Physician,"
+a work that has been translated into almost every language. However,
+his reputation in Russia is not based on this book, which is
+considered his masterpiece, but rather on his stories and tales. Let
+us, however, first take a glance at the life of this author, a life
+so closely connected with the subjects of his works that it forms an
+indispensable commentary on them.
+
+Veressayev, whose real name is Vikenty Smidovich, was born in 1867,
+in Tula. His father was a Pole and his mother a Russian. His father,
+a very pious and strictly moral man, was a well known and well liked
+physician. In 1877, the boy entered the local school and received
+his degree there seven years later. In 1884, he left for the
+University of St. Petersburg, where he enrolled in the department of
+historical sciences. Four years later, when he was twenty-four and a
+half, he received his degree of licentiate of letters.[5] Most of
+his class-mates became school-teachers, but he preferred to pursue
+his studies. Medicine tempted him. He left for Zhouriev (formerly
+Dorpat, already famous for its department of medicine) and entered
+the university, where, at the end of six years, he received his
+doctor's degree.
+
+ [5] On the continent of Europe, a university degree between that
+ of bachelor and of doctor.
+
+Two years before, in 1892, a cholera epidemic had broken out in
+Russia. Young Smidovich, then a fourth-year student, asked to be
+sent immediately to a province in the East, where the epidemic was
+spreading like wildfire. He remained there several months, in fact
+until the plague had gone. As a doctor's assistant in an infirmary
+organized in one of the mining districts of the government of
+Ekaterinoslav, he witnessed a peasant revolt in which several
+doctors were killed and others cruelly burned by the exasperated and
+ignorant mob. Veressayev has traced these sad events with tremendous
+power in his story, "Astray."
+
+His doctor's degree in his pocket, he went to Tula, where he
+practised for several months, but soon the position of house-surgeon
+was offered to him in the Botkin Hospital in St. Petersburg. He
+remained there seven years, till 1901, when, by order of the
+Minister of the Interior, who has charge of all hospital
+appointments, he was forced to retire from office and was expelled
+from St. Petersburg and forbidden to reside in either of the two
+capitals, Moscow or St. Petersburg. The reason for this was, that
+the name Veressayev appeared on the petition of the "intellectuals"
+which had been given to the Minister of the Interior, protesting
+against the brutal attitude of the police during a student
+manifestation in the Kazan cathedral on March 4, 1901. This petition
+brought severe punishment to almost all the people whose names were
+signed to it. Veressayev went abroad; he visited Italy, France,
+Germany and Switzerland.
+
+Gifted with poetic inspiration, he had begun writing at an early
+age. He was not more than fourteen when he translated some poems of
+Koerner and Goethe into Russian verse. Later, when at college, he
+wrote some short prose tales, which were published in various
+papers. But it was in 1896, when the "Russkoe Bogatsvo," the large
+St. Petersburg review, had published his two important stories,
+"Astray" and "The Contagion," that renown came to him. It came so
+suddenly that it troubled him and was almost a blow to his modesty,
+which is one of the sympathetic traits of his personality.
+
+In fact, there came a time when the attention of the literary world,
+especially among the younger generation, became so wrapped up in his
+works that Gorky and Tchekoff sank to a second level. This
+enthusiasm was caused by the fact that Veressayev's works answered a
+general need. They brought into the world of literature a series of
+characters who summed up the rising fermentation of new ideas and
+seemed to be spokesmen, around whom the Russian revolutionary forces
+gathered,--forces which, up to this time, had been scattered. An era
+of struggle for liberty began.
+
+It is rather important, I think, for the proper understanding of
+this period to say a few words concerning its history.
+
+The struggle of the younger generation against the autocracy began
+about 1860, at the time of the freeing of the serfs, a period known
+in Russia as the "epoch of great reforms." These ameliorations,
+which extended into almost every domain of Russian life, left intact
+the autocracy, which, under pretence of protecting itself, fought
+successfully against all activity and thus brought about, among the
+younger generation, a general movement towards freedom and
+socialism. But the autocracy found its best help in the ignorance of
+the people. Urban commerce, little developed at that time,
+practically interested only the peasants--which means nine-tenths of
+the population of Russia. It was natural, then, that the peasants
+should become the principal object of the revolutionary propaganda,
+and that tremendous efforts should be made on all sides in order to
+awaken them from their dangerous sleep.
+
+The peasant uprisings in the history of Russia, especially the two
+revolts directed by Stepan Razin in the 17th century, and Pugachev
+in the 18th, proved the fact that the masses could unite in a
+general insurrection. This time, the "intellectuals" joined. As they
+advocated a sort of communism, periodic redivisions of land
+according to the growth of the population, and as they harped on the
+tradition that land was a gift of God which no one had a right to
+own, we can easily see that the agricultural proletariat would
+welcome with open arms the socialistic ideas.
+
+Although this popular movement did not affect many people, it was
+attacked with such pitiless cruelty, that the revolutionists decided
+to have recourse to the red terror in order to fight the white
+terror which was cutting down their ranks. The secret goal of this
+movement was to replace the autocratic régime with political
+institutions emanating from the will of the people. In order to
+accomplish its reforms more quickly, this party, which called itself
+the "Popular Will," incited several attempts at murder; Russia then
+witnessed dynamite outrages against imperial trains and palaces, and
+finally, the assassination of the Emperor Alexander II. For a moment
+the autocratic régime seemed to totter under these sudden and fierce
+blows, but it soon recovered. The white terror proved to be
+stronger than the red. Many executions and banishments helped to
+crush the partisans of the "Popular Will;" then, when the movement
+had been checked, the authorities began to repress even the
+slightest desire for independence on the part of the press, the
+universities, or any other institutions which could do good to the
+people. Dejection and disillusion dominated this period from 1880 to
+1900, which has been so faithfully portrayed in the works of
+Tchekoff.
+
+Nevertheless, in spite of the fact that their ideals had come to
+nought, those of the red terror had not disappeared, and hope
+remained in their breasts.
+
+Tchekoff was still living when new symptoms of fermentation appeared
+in Russia, and he could have alluded to this in his later works. But
+he did not have a fighting nature, and, in his solitude, he looked
+at conditions with melancholy scepticism. There was need of a man, a
+writer--like Gorky several years later--born right in the midst of
+this movement, who would be the very product of it, and for whom its
+ideas would be a reason for existence.
+
+Veressayev was this man and writer, and it is as much by his
+political opinions as by his literary talents that he gained such a
+wide-spread reputation. If his works are not always irreproachable
+from a literary standpoint, they are always accurate in describing
+exactly what the author himself has seen and lived through.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Veressayev, in three great stories, gives us the three phases of the
+movement between 1880 and 1900. These three stories, "Astray," "The
+Contagion" and "At the Turn," are of such extreme importance, that
+in the following pages there will be a detailed analysis of each of
+them.
+
+The two protagonists of the story, "Astray," are Dr. Chekanhov and
+his cousin Natasha. The former is at the end of his moral life, the
+latter is on the threshold, and both of them are "astray," because
+the one has not found the road on which to travel through life, and
+the other is just beginning to look for it. The entire existence of
+Chekanhov is dominated by the idea that it is _his duty to serve the
+people_, which was the basis of the activity of the "narodnikis."
+According to him, the "intellectuals," who represent a small and
+privileged fraction of the population, are the debtors of the people
+and ought to pay their debt by giving the people knowledge and
+comfort. This theory is burned into his very soul; it is the leading
+thought that directs all of his actions. At this epoch, few men
+showed such absolute devotion. From 1880 to 1890, after the cruel
+suppression of the movement of the "narodnikis," there was a stop in
+this revolutionary activity. Unaware of this pacification, Chekanhov
+makes great exertions; as a doctor, he combats disease and saves
+several people. But how exhaust the source of this evil, this
+misery, which is increased by a despotic social order? Chekanhov
+spends his energy in vain; where else shall he apply his strength?
+
+The famine of 1891! Dr. Chekanhov speaks only of his despair: "A
+terrible malady beats down on one after another of the inhabitants;
+it is an epidemic of typhoid caused by the privations which left us
+numb and weak." In 1892 an epidemic of cholera broke out. In spite
+of the prayers of his parents, the young man rushes off to the most
+infected district. One day, he penetrates into an infected hovel.
+The children are sprawling everywhere, the mother is foolish and
+stupid, and the father, weakened by prison labor, has come down with
+cholera. The wife forbids the doctor, whom she accuses of poisoning
+the sick, to approach her husband. Scorning the danger, in order to
+encourage the sick man, the doctor drinks out of the very cup which
+the invalid has used. Nothing counts with him as long as he can
+inspire confidence and save people from death.
+
+"What good is there in love between good and strong people," adds
+Chekanhov, after having noted down this cure in his "Journal,"
+"since it results only in miserable abortions? And why are the
+people held down to work which is so rough and unpleasant? What
+motive supports them in their painful labor? Is it the desire to
+preserve their infected hovels?"
+
+At the end of these reflections could not Chekanhov, absolutely in
+despair, have abandoned his task? No, he knew how to keep up his
+devotion. Sacrificing his life for others, Chekanhov begins to love
+life again. He says to himself: "Life is good ... but will it be for
+a long time?" We do not catch the answer.
+
+Furious voices are heard, and a savage and cruel mob calls him a
+poisoner and hurls itself upon him, beating and striking him.
+
+Exhausted by the blows and jeered at by those whom he had considered
+his brothers in need and for whom he had put himself in constant
+peril, he lies stretched out on his bed, suffering severely; but he
+nourishes no grudge against his tormentors; on the contrary, his
+apostle-like character is moved with pity at the thought of these
+uncultured and ignorant beings so unconscious of the evil that they
+are doing. And several days before his death he writes the following
+tragic words in his "Journal," almost terrifying in their
+simplicity:
+
+"They have beaten me! They have beaten me like a mad dog because I
+came to help them and because I used all my knowledge and strength,
+in one word, gave all that I had. I am not thinking now about how
+much I loved these people and how badly I feel at the way they have
+treated me. I simply did not succeed in gaining their confidence; I
+did succeed in making them believe in me for a while, but soon a
+mere trifle was enough to plunge them back among their dark shadows
+and to awaken in them an elemental, brutal instinct. And now I have
+to die. I am not afraid of death, but of a tarnished life full of
+empty remorse. Why have I struggled? In the name of what am I going
+to die? I am only a poor victim stripped of the strength of an ideal
+and cared for by no one.... It had to be so, for we were always
+strangers to them, beings belonging to another world; we scornfully
+avoid them, without trying to know them, and a terrible abyss
+separates us from them."
+
+It is interesting to note how Chekanhov is regarded by the new
+generation and especially by the woman he loves, his cousin Natasha.
+She believes in him, she expects a gospel of life from him; but
+Chekanhov cannot respond to her; he adheres to such vague
+expressions as: "work," "idea," "duty towards the people." He says
+to her: "You want an idea which will dominate you entirely and which
+will lead you to a definite goal; you want me to give you a
+standard and say: 'Fight and die for it.' I have read more than you,
+I have had more experience than you, but like you, _I Do Not Know_,
+and that is our torture." According to Chekanhov, all of his
+generation are in the same position: it is _Astray_, without a
+guiding star, it is perishing without realizing it.... Finally, in
+order to avoid the pressing questions of Natasha, who would like to
+work and sacrifice herself for the poor, he points out to her the
+salutary work of the village school-mistress. A few days later he
+dies, welcoming death with joy.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+While the people who were ending their existence and those who were
+beginning it were so carefully looking for a field of action, the
+uncultivated ground of Russian life was gradually being cleared by
+the slow evolution of an economic movement. Between 1895 and 1900,
+as a result of the natural development of national commerce, the
+number of city workingmen grew to vast proportions and they formed
+an important class, which, on account of its situation, was much
+more qualified than the peasants to interest itself in the ideas of
+socialism and liberty. So from the very midst of the people certain
+individuals appeared capable of adopting progressive ideas; Marxism
+awaited them, the theory which is the basis of European democratic
+socialism. This doctrine was nothing new in Russia. But formerly,
+the proletariat of the cities had been very little developed and the
+Marxian doctrines had been of theoretical interest only.
+
+"The Contagion" has for its heroine Natasha,--the Natasha that we
+have already met, but how transformed! She has at last found her
+bearings. If, in 1892, she was waiting for the right road to be
+shown to her, in 1896 she was enthusiastically following the new
+road opened by the doctrines of Marx.
+
+In Zharoshenko's famous picture, "The Student," Uspensky notes
+something new in this type of femininity. He calls it "the masculine
+trait"; it is the mark of thought. He sees there the harmonious
+fusion of a young girl and an adolescent boy, with an expression
+neither feminine nor masculine, but exceptionally human. And this
+transforms Zharoshenko's "Student" into a luminous personification,
+unknown up to this time, a type which synthesizes "le type humain."
+
+In the work of Veressayev this student is Natasha. Reflection has
+ripened her mind since her last talk with poor Chekanhov. She has
+become a regular "mannish woman," having seen and thought a great
+deal. She has traveled; she has lived in St. Petersburg and in the
+south of Russia. Full of courage and energy, she claims to be fully
+satisfied with her lot; she begs her companions to follow the road
+she has found, and when they refuse she becomes angry with them. In
+company with her comrade Dayev she vigorously attacks the
+convictions of the men of Kisselev, who see sufficient safety in the
+workingmen's associations; she rises up, in the name of Marxism,
+against the "narodnikis," whom she considers ingenuous idealists;
+she refuses to endorse the theories of the "intellectuals," who
+oppose the thought of any great work, since they believe that
+smaller deeds are more immediately realizable. When one of them, a
+doctor, Troïtsky, ends his conversation with her with these words:
+"It is not necessary to wear one's brains out trying to solve
+difficult problems while there is so much immediate need and so few
+workers," she puts an end to the discussion. Shrugging her
+shoulders, in a trembling voice she answers: "How can you live and
+think as you do? New problems confront us, and you stand before them
+and do nothing, because you have lost confidence. I can't work any
+longer with you, because it would mean dedicating myself blindly to
+'spiritual death.'"
+
+Veressayev does not show us how she solves the problems of which she
+speaks. The adepts of this sort of social apostleship usually
+propagate their ideas among the workingmen, help them, and play a
+part in conspiracies. Natasha offers herself up. But the censorship
+has not allowed Veressayev to carry his subject on, and he has
+limited himself to showing us Natasha in company with her friends
+and disciples, giving herself up to oratorical tilts, discussing
+principles, and uttering long discourses full of passion, faith, and
+juvenile impatience,--discourses which unfortunately are mistaken in
+their reasoning.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In realizing from the socialist ideal the logical and inevitable
+consequence of capitalism, which continues according to a law
+independent of human will, the Marxian doctrine dissipates the
+doubts and consolidates the faith of those who adopt it. According
+to this faith, the socialists do not have to create socialism, they
+only have to coöperate in the historical process which will
+inevitably make socialism grow. In thus recognizing the supremity of
+the law of history, socialism, utopian up to this time, becomes
+scientific and, under its new form, it is no longer subject to the
+influence of personal opinions, no matter how full of genius they
+may be. But this "scientific socialism," which, on account of the
+backwardness of political economy, could be only a step ahead, was
+taken by the younger generation of Russia as the "dernier mot" of
+the science. The result was, that several narrow and exclusive
+dogmas were grafted on this doctrine. Thus, the theory of "class
+struggle" transformed itself into the absolute negation of all
+community interests between the diverse social strata. The
+"materialistic"--or rather "economic"--point of view, according to
+which the products of spiritual activity in the history of humanity
+lose all independence, being only the consequences of economic
+organization, generated scorn for all idealism; and the proletariat
+character of the socialistic movement impelled society to divide
+into two hostile and irreconcilable parts, one of which is made up
+of the proletariats, the other of the elements opposed to socialism.
+To this last party the enormous mass of half-starved peasants joined
+itself. The peasants, according to the Marxian doctrine, cannot
+understand socialism until they have become proletariats themselves,
+instead of becoming miserable landed proprietors. And this
+"proletariazation" of about 100,000,000 peasants, the fervent
+Marxists consider a fatal and desirable event in the near future.
+
+These theories, carried to excess, were sure to excite a reaction.
+It manifested itself by a neo-idealistic movement, which found the
+principal cause of social progress in the tendency of humanity to
+attain supreme development and perfection. Then there were the
+"narodnikis" who considered the "proletariazation" of the Russian
+peasant impossible and inopportune. There were also the various
+groups of Socialists who applauded the criticism that Bernstein made
+on the Marxian orthodoxy. So several deviations were made from the
+original theory; there were grave dissensions and interminable and
+bitter controversies. All this occupies a large part of "At the
+Turn," one of Veressayev's novels, in which these events are traced
+with almost stenographic exactitude.
+
+The characters are, Tanya, a fanatic Marxist; her brother, Tokarev,
+whose soul is a field for spiritual battles; and Varenka, a village
+school-mistress. There are several eccentric characters around them,
+such as Serge, a young apostle of a somewhat Nietzschean egoism,
+Antsov and others. Tanya is none other than Natasha of "Astray,"
+with this great difference, however, that Tanya has found truth
+already formulated for her, and does not have to grope about for it.
+Nevertheless, the essential characteristics of the two girls are the
+same. They both have the same joyous self-denial, the same love of
+life, the same courage in face of difficulties, and also the same
+faith in a better future. Tanya has lived during the whole winter
+with her comrades in a region devastated by the famine, and she has
+spent there all that she possesses. At Toliminsk, where she arrives
+after a long walk, she speaks of her meagre living and tells amusing
+stories without suspecting her wonderful heroism.
+
+But this young girl, full of the joy of life and ready for any
+sacrifices, is pitiless towards her theoretical adversaries and has
+absolutely no compassion for them. The passage in "Crime and
+Punishment," in which Dostoyevsky depicts one of his heroes in the
+following manner: "He was young, he had abstract ideas, and was,
+consequently, cruel," perfectly fits Tanya. Veressayev tells the
+following incident: "One day, when she was at the station, some
+peasants rushed down from the platform. A railroad guard struck one
+of the peasants. The peasant put his head down and ran off....
+Tanya, knitting her brows, said: 'That's good for him! Oh, these
+peasants!' And her eyes lighted up with scorn and hate...."
+
+Just as Tanya brings Natasha to our mind, so does Varenka make us
+think of Dr. Chekanhov; the same feeling of duty governs them both.
+But, while Chekanhov wanted to devote himself to the social problem,
+without ever succeeding in doing so, because he did not exactly see
+the principles, Varenka was able to devote herself to her work
+without mental reservation. However, she refuses to, because she has
+not enough enthusiasm for this sort of research. Her understanding,
+which is deeper and broader than Tanya's, sees the error, the
+narrowness of her doctrine; she cannot admit it, and, fired by a
+desire to devote herself body and soul to some useful work, she
+chooses the laborious profession of a school-mistress in the
+village. But this humble and unpleasant career does not satisfy her.
+Little by little ennui and anguish drive her to suicide.
+
+Between Tokarev, Tanya's brother, and Varenka, the contrast is
+complete. While still a student, he had accepted, with all the ardor
+of youth, the idea of duty, and he desired to give himself up to the
+cause of justice and truth; but, having encountered many obstacles,
+he felt, when he had reached his thirtieth year, that the sacred
+fire was going out.
+
+He now dreamed only of his personal happiness, and of poor theories
+that justified this egoism. An assured material existence, comfort,
+a happy domestic life, work without risks, without sacrifices, but
+useful enough in appearance to satisfy the conscience, attracted him
+irresistibly. He then went to work to tear out his former ideas,
+which had taken a pretty firm root. Urged on by his conscience,
+which protested, he forced himself at times to resurrect his
+youthful enthusiasm; he thought a great deal about morals, about
+duty, and he read many books treating this subject; he says: "I
+feel that something extremely necessary has left me. My feelings
+about humanity have disappeared and nothing can replace them. I read
+a great deal now, and I am directing my thoughts towards ethics. I
+try to give morality a solid basis and I try to make clearer to
+myself the various categories of duty.... And I blush to pronounce
+the word, 'Duty.'"
+
+Nevertheless, Tokarev tries, at times, to justify his inclinations
+towards peaceable bourgeois prosperity to the struggling youth who
+surround his sister Tanya. These cruel young people, however, answer
+him only with sarcastic remarks, and caustic arguments, and do not
+hesitate to express their doubts as to the sincerity of his
+opinions. To his conscience, they are like a living reproach from
+the past. Once he also was intolerant towards others as these people
+are towards him to-day. And that is why he suffers under their
+condemnation of him. He defends himself weakly, and after one of his
+oratorical tilts, he falls into such spiritual depression, that he
+almost thinks of suicide.
+
+These, then, are the three main characters of Veressayev's novel. In
+the background we have the secondary characters. We have the proud
+proprietor and his wife, both of them liberals; we have the
+pedagogue Osmerkov, who does not like talented people because they
+bother everybody; and then there are the respectable inhabitants of
+Gniezdelovka, Serge's father and mother, who are entirely absorbed
+with their household and with cards.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"The Comrades" is a variation on this theme: old school friends, who
+formerly had been wrapped up in a great ideal, are now living a life
+of shabby prosperity, and they feel that they have deteriorated,
+although they do not dare to confess it to each other.
+
+And Veressayev profits by this to generalize on the causes of this
+fatal fall after the unselfish enthusiasms of youth. He sees them
+especially in a mysterious force: "The Invisible," already studied
+by Maeterlinck, Ibsen, Tchekoff, and especially by de Maupassant;
+and he sees them in the unhappy conditions of Russian history, which
+created a social and political organization favorable only to those
+who crawl along and not to those who plan.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Let us now analyze the stories in which Veressayev describes the
+life of the people.
+
+The story of "The Steppe" is as follows: One beautiful autumn
+evening two men meet on the steppe. One of them, the forger Nikita,
+is returning to his native land; he is wounded in the leg and it is
+hard for him to walk. He is looking for work. The other is a
+professional beggar.
+
+The beggar, who is never hungry because he has no scruples, offers
+Nikita something to eat. After resting a short while, the travelers
+continue on their way. In the first village that they come to, the
+pilgrim beggar makes a speech to the inhabitants and sells them
+certain "sacred properties" which he keeps in his bag. After
+pocketing gifts of money and various other things, the false pilgrim
+pursues his way, still accompanied by Nikita. On the road once more,
+he offers to share with his comrade the fruits of his "work," but
+the latter refuses.
+
+"What a fool!" cries the beggar, and bursts out laughing. But
+Nikita, indignant, gives him a heavy blow and leaves him for good.
+
+"For a Home" and "In Haste" gave Veressayev an opportunity to note
+one of the characteristic traits of the ambitious villagers: their
+strong desire to preserve their homes and to propagate the race.
+
+In the first of these stories, two old people, Athanasius and his
+wife, want to marry their daughter Dunka, but the "mir,"--the
+assembly of peasants,--egotistical and inflexible towards people who
+are growing weak, oppose them. "We have not enough land for our own
+children," is the answer of the "mir." Dunka remains unmarried, and
+dies at an early age. Her mother soon follows her. Old Athanasius
+lives alone in his freezing "isba," which is in a state of ruin,
+while the neighboring isbas, solid and austere, "spitefully watch
+him die."
+
+In the last story, we have a widower who is the father of five
+children, and is therefore looking everywhere for a woman with some
+bodily defect, because he knows that other women will not want to
+have anything to do with him.
+
+It is the same wish to preserve his home that makes a peasant go to
+the city to earn his living while he leaves his family in the
+country to take care of the house.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The peasant is, besides, entirely engrossed with the difficulties of
+existence. Necessity often urges him to desperate acts.... Some, who
+are almost starving, ingratiate themselves with the raftsmen. They
+force wages down by asking only 5 copecks (5 cents) a day.... If
+they are contented with this absurd pay, it is because they avoid
+seeing how their little children are suffering at home. "It's hard
+living at present; there is not enough space; ground is scarce and
+there are too many people." "Men haven't room enough," says a
+sad-looking man with prominent cheek-bones. "But," he goes on, "they
+tell me that sickness has struck our village, and that the men are
+losing blood! Is that true?" "Yes, it's true!" "So much the better!
+That will clean out the people; it will be easier to live then," he
+concludes, thoughtfully. (From "In the Cold Spell.")
+
+In almost all the work of Veressayev a voice proclaims that the
+Russian peasant is near his end; that he is not useful to any one.
+The poverty of the villages is painted in the most sombre colors.
+The people are unanimous in believing that the struggle for life has
+become terrible. "On what will you live?" one asks the other. "The
+earth does not nourish us. The holdings are small; in summer, one
+must cultivate, and in winter the cottages have to be closed while
+we look for work or charity. What is there to eat? Hay! Let us thank
+God that the cattle have enough of that. Oats? We have to give four
+hectoliters and two measures of our oats to the common granary....
+And taxes and clothes? coal-oil, matches, tea, sugar? Tell me, how
+can one live?"
+
+The unfortunates even go so far as to bless war and epidemics.
+"Everything went better then. Men lived peacefully in the fear of
+God, the Lord took care of every one. War, smallpox, famine came and
+cleaned out the populace; those that remained, after having got the
+coffins ready, lived easier. God pitied us. Now there is no more
+war; He leaves us to our own poor devices."
+
+Speeches like this abound in the works of Veressayev. A dull
+sadness, bordering on despair, breathes forth from the pages. It
+seems, at times, as if the Russian peasant could never awake from
+his torpor, because the author represents him as full of infinite
+egoism, without any spirit of solidarity, sacrificing everything for
+love of his sorry little house and his morsel of ground, which is
+insufficient to nourish him. But we must remember that the Marxian
+point of view, which the author takes, explains in part the horror
+of such pictures.
+
+According to Veressayev the poor peasants can better their position
+only by getting rid of their land, in order to become free
+proletarians. But if the peasant class is unfortunate, it is so, for
+the most part, because it is the most exploited and the most
+oppressed. It is not, then, the getting rid of their land that will
+bring the peasants salvation; on the contrary, they must fight for
+it against their oppressors. The peasants are beginning to
+understand the necessity of this struggle, and their late uprisings
+in several provinces have shown that they lack neither solidarity
+nor organization.
+
+In the story called, "The End of Andrey Ivanovich," which is about
+the working class of Russia, we see the transformation of a peasant
+into a "city man." In his new surroundings, it is true, the
+wine-shop plays an important rôle, but schools are organized there
+which inspire a taste for reading, and "thought" gradually awakens.
+
+Andrey has not yet rid himself of his rustic unsociability; however,
+he is beginning to become civilized, and is receiving city culture.
+He tries to free himself from his misery, from his degradation. He
+beats his wife when he is drunk, but, at the same time, he gets
+angry at a friend when he beats his mistress.... According to his
+own confession he reads many useless things, nevertheless he can
+become interested in a serious work. If he drinks to excess, it is
+to "drive away the thoughts" that torment him. He wants to analyze
+every question and find out what is at the bottom of it. He is the
+spiritual brother of Natasha, Chekanhov, and Tanya.
+
+The sequel to this story is "The Straight Road." This time we are
+transported into the world of factory workers, a world lamentable
+for its misery, despair, and crime. Andrey Ivanovich's wife,
+Alexandra Mikhailovna, being without resources after the death of
+her husband, with a little daughter in arms, enters a book-binding
+establishment, belonging to a man named Semidalov. But the foreman,
+a vicious and evil-minded man, reigns as despot. It is he who gives
+out the work. The young girls who listen to his advances are sure
+of being shown partiality; the others are badly treated. As
+Alexandra wants to live honestly, her work in the shop is made very
+hard. Her best friend, Tanya, who inadvertently spilled oil on some
+paper and could not pay for the damage, had to give herself to the
+foreman. Finally Tanya despairs and ends by drowning herself.
+Alexandra is saved, thanks to a "loveless" marriage with the
+locksmith, Lestmann. She accepts this union so that she will not
+have to starve and can remain "straight." Thus, the "straight road"
+which Alexandra wanted to follow has forced her finally to sell
+herself, to marry a man whom she does not love.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Each page of Veressayev's work exists merely to throw light on this
+or that social question, considered from a well defined point of
+view. The secret of his success rests mostly in the frank, sincere
+manner in which he has approached certain problems. At the same
+time, all of his work breathes forth a deep and tender love for
+those who suffer. In reality, there is not a single book by
+Veressayev which might not be a confession; all that he writes he
+has already experienced himself, and his work vibrates with a
+delicate and personal emotion. It is only necessary to read "The
+Memoirs of a Physician," which is almost an autobiography, in order
+to perceive the moral relationship that exists between Veressayev
+and the heroes of his stories.
+
+This book is the confession of a physician from the time of his
+early studies. The young man is astonished at the number of maladies
+that exist and by the unbelievable variety of keen suffering that
+nature inflicts upon the human species, man. Soon he is obliged to
+make a discovery that stuns him: that medicine is incapable of
+curing many evils. It only gropes about, trying thousands of
+remedies before it arrives at a sure result. The scruples and
+anxiety of the student increase, especially after an autopsy on a
+woman in the amphitheatre, when the professor announces that the
+woman has succumbed because the surgeon, who was operating, swooned,
+and ends by saying: "In such difficult operations the very best
+surgeons are not safe from accidents of this kind." After this, the
+professor shook hands with his colleague and every one left. At that
+time, doubt entered the mind of the young man. And so, within a
+period of ten years, he passes from extreme optimism to the same
+degree of pessimism.
+
+We follow him in the hospitals, where he is scandalized by the
+brutality of the teaching, which makes use of the unwilling bodies
+of sick people. "Not being able to pay for their treatment in
+money, they have to pay with their bodies." Finally, the student
+becomes a doctor himself. Full of faith and knowledge, he starts
+practice in a small market-town of central Russia. But his work soon
+cools him down; in the clinic he had studied mostly exceptional
+cases; now he is disconcerted by simple and every-day sicknesses.
+His ignorance leads to the following tragic case:
+
+One day, a poor and widowed washerwoman brings him her sick child,
+whom she does not want to take to the hospital because her two
+oldest children died there. The child is a weak boy of eight years
+who has caught scarlet-fever. At first, the inside of the throat
+begins to swell, and, to prevent an abscess, the doctor orders
+rubbings with a mercurial ointment. The next day, he finds the boy
+all aquiver and covered with pimples. "There is no mistake," he
+says, "the rubbing has spread the infection into the neighboring
+organs and a general poisoning of the blood has taken place. The
+little boy is lost.... All that day and night I wandered about the
+streets. I could think of nothing, and I felt crushed by the horror
+of the thing. Only at times this thought came into my mind: 'I have
+killed a human being!'" The child lived ten days more. The night
+before his death Veressayev comes to see him. The poor mother is
+sobbing in a corner of the miserable room. She pulls herself
+together, however, and taking three rubles out of her pocket, offers
+them to the trembling doctor, who refuses them. Then this woman
+falls down on her knees and thanks him for having pitied her son.
+"I'll leave everything, I'll give up everything," sobs the
+doctor.... "I have decided to leave for St. Petersburg to-morrow in
+order to study some more even if I die of hunger!"
+
+Once the resolution was made to pursue his studies in a more
+practical manner, he becomes the house-surgeon of a hospital. But
+even there a mass of problems disturb him. He sees how dangerous the
+simplest operations are; he is frightened by the unrestraint of the
+doctors, who try new methods on the sick, methods the effects of
+which are not known, methods that result in the patient's being
+inoculated with more sickness. Medicine cannot progress without
+direct experimentation, and experience is gained at the expense of
+the more unfortunate. Nevertheless, Veressayev does not argue
+against this way of working; he shows the facts, and leaves it to
+the reader to decide. On the other hand, he does not hide his fear
+of the common ignorance of all doctors. Every individual differs
+from his neighbor. How distinguish their idiosyncrasies? Once the
+scope of a sickness is known, what remedy shall be used? Some say
+this, others, that. How shall one choose? Veressayev has felt all of
+this; he has tried to harden himself against the unreasonable
+ingratitude of some, the scepticism of others; he realizes that
+patience, resignation, and heroism are needed in order to struggle
+against and support the mortifications in the career of a doctor.
+How much easier it would be not to consider medicine as infallible;
+to study it as an art rather than as a science. But people prefer to
+believe that doctors know everything. They do not want to see the
+reality, and this is the reason why sad, and at times tragic
+conflicts arise between patient and physician.
+
+Finally, what could the most perfect medical science and the
+cleverest doctor do against the enormous mass of sickness and
+suffering that are the inevitable result of the social evils, of
+which poverty is the most conspicuous? How can one tell a man that
+his trade is running him down and that he does not get enough
+nourishment? How can one order a man to eat better food, to get more
+sleep and more pure air? First, and most important, is the necessity
+of curing the social organism.
+
+It is easy to see why this book made many enemies for its author.
+There is too much frankness and conscientiousness in these studies
+not to anger those who have their greatest interest in concealing
+the truth! The upright man who sees primarily in medicine a means to
+relieve human suffering, cannot realize without sadness the many
+abuses hidden under the name of this science.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"In the War," recently published, is the story of Veressayev's
+campaign in Manchuria. In this work, the author has painted
+vividly the peregrinations of his moving hospital, and also the
+terrible sufferings of the Russian army. By the thousands, the
+starved children of the campaign, the Russian foot-soldiers,
+stoics and fatalists, sacrificing their lives for a strange and
+incomprehensible cause, pass before the eyes of the reader. And in
+the background, detaching themselves from the crowd, in their gold
+and silver embroidered uniforms, are "the heroes of the war, these
+vultures of the advance and rear-guard, who enrich themselves at
+the expense of the unfortunate soldiers." A number of these great
+chiefs, whose infamy was evident at the end of the war, since they
+had shown themselves incapable of dealing with the foreign enemy,
+had distinguished themselves by the ferocity they exhibited in
+quelling internal troubles. As to the military doctors, the
+greater number of them went into the campaign only for commercial
+gain. Among the nurses who accompanied them, aside from those who
+were real heroines of goodness and devotion, there were many who
+prostituted themselves shamefully.
+
+Corruption, carelessness, disorder, and cowardice are shown on every
+page of this story, as well as the terrible suffering endured by the
+wounded in the hospitals. The wounded were the real martyrs of this
+frightful campaign.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Veressayev, like all of his heroes and heroines, wants to help the
+people, and for this reason he gets in touch with the revolutionists
+who consecrate their work to political and social regeneration,
+under the various titles, "narodnikis," Marxists, Socialists,
+idealists and so on.... Which of these does he prefer? We do not
+know. We find the influence of Marx in his ideas, but we cannot
+affirm that he is an absolute Marxian. It seems as if Veressayev,
+troubled by the innumerable divergencies of opinion, asks himself
+secretly: "Will this war lead to the unity of opinion and program,
+so necessary for victory, or by its quarrels will it only retard the
+harmony so much sought after?"
+
+It is not discussion that will finally lead to unity, but rather
+life itself, with all its realities.
+
+It would be most interesting to read a sequel to the three famous
+novels of Veressayev--"Astray," "The Contagion," and "At the
+Turning"--in which he would give us the psychology of his former
+heroes under present conditions. To-day, the people are not
+"astray"; the field is big enough for every one to find the place
+that best suits his ideas, tastes, and temperament. Dr. Chekanhov,
+if he were living now, instead of being maltreated by the people,
+would certainly be their well beloved champion, and perhaps
+represent them in the Duma; the timid Tokarev, in spite of his
+aversion to the ideas of the revolutionists, could find a place in
+the liberal party of the Reforming Democrats, or at least among the
+Octobrists; the unfortunate Varenka would not be worn out by her
+work as school-mistress, for she would be supported by the peasants.
+The peasants themselves are not the miserable and resigned creatures
+of Veressayev's earlier stories. Certainly, liberty is not yet a
+legal thing in Russia, and the Duma is still an unstable
+institution, but the end of absolutism is near, for a great event
+has taken place in the empire of the Tsar, namely, this awakening of
+the feeling of human dignity, and the spirit of revolt among the
+lower strata of the Russian people, which in the past, by its
+unconsciousness, formed the granite pedestal of autocracy. The
+struggle is terrible, but confidence in final victory redoubles the
+energy of the strugglers. A certain Russian was right when he said:
+"Formerly, life was formidable, but now it is both formidable and
+gay."
+
+In reading the works of Veressayev, Tchekoff, and other painters of
+modern Russian society, it is easy to note that not one of them
+anticipated this sudden change of scenery on the Russian political
+stage, a change which, however, was being prepared in the souls of
+the peasants. But let us not reproach them! Russia will always
+remain an enigma.
+
+There is a very old story about the son of the peasant Ilya
+Murometz. After remaining lazily resting in his "isba" for thirty
+years, he suddenly arose, and began to walk with such fury that the
+earth trembled. How could these writers conceive the time when this
+lazy giant would make up his mind to walk? It is enough to have the
+assurance that now, no matter what happens, since he _has_ arisen,
+he will not lie down again.
+
+
+
+
+V
+
+MAXIM GORKY
+
+
+Maxim Gorky is the most original and, after Tolstoy, the most
+talented of modern Russian writers. He was born in 1868 or 1869--he
+does not know exactly when himself--in a dyer's back shop at Nizhny
+Novgorod. His mother, Barbara Kashirina, was the daughter of the
+aforementioned dyer; and his father, Maxim Pyeshkov, was an
+upholsterer. The child was christened Alexis. His real name, then,
+is Alexis Pyeshkov, and Maxim Gorky[6] is only his pseudonym. When
+he was four, he lost his father, and three years later, his mother.
+He was then taken by his grandfather, who had been a soldier under
+Nicholas I, a hard, authoritative, pitiless old man, before whom all
+trembled. And it was under his rude tutelage that the child first
+began to read. When he was nine, he was sent to work for a
+shoemaker, an evil sort of man who maltreated him.
+
+ [6] In Russian, Gorky means bitterness.
+
+"One day," Gorky tells us, "I was warming some water for him; the
+bowl fell, and I burned my hands badly. That evening I ran away, my
+grandfather having scolded me severely. I then became a painter's
+apprentice."
+
+He did not remain long in this position. From this time on, his
+unsatisfied soul was seized with the "wanderlust." First apprenticed
+to an engraver, and then as a gardener, he finally became a scullion
+on one of the boats that plies up and down the Volga. Here he felt
+more at ease.
+
+On board, in the person of the master-cook, named Smoury, he
+unexpectedly met a teacher. This cook, who had been a soldier, loved
+to read, and he gave the child all the books that he had in an old
+trunk. They consisted of the works of Gogol, Dumas' novels, the
+"Lives of the Saints," a manual of geography, and some popular
+novels. Surely, a queer collection!
+
+Smoury inspired his scullion, then sixteen years of age, "with an
+ardent curiosity for the printed word." A "furious" desire to learn
+seized the young fellow; he went to Kazan, a university city, in the
+hope of "learning gratuitously all sorts of beautiful things." Cruel
+deception! They explained to him that "this was not according to the
+established order." Discouraged, a few months later, he took a
+position with a baker. He who dreamed of the sun and the open air
+had to be imprisoned in a filthy and damp cellar. He remained there
+for two years, earning two dollars a month, board and lodging
+included; the food, however, was putrid, and his lodging consisted
+of an attic which he shared with five other men.
+
+"My life in that bakery," he has said, "left a bitter impression.
+Those two years were the hardest of my whole life." He has thus
+described his recollections in one of his stories:
+
+"We lived in a wooden box, under a low and heavy ceiling, all
+covered with cobwebs and permeated with fine soot. Night pressed us
+between the two walls, spattered with spots of mud and all mouldy.
+We got up at five in the morning and, stupid and indifferent, began
+work at six o'clock. We made bread out of the dough which our
+comrades had prepared while we slept. The whole day, from dawn till
+ten at night, some of us sat at the table rolling out the dough,
+and, to avoid becoming torpid, we would constantly rock ourselves to
+and fro while the others kneaded in the flour. The enormous oven,
+which resembled a fantastic beast, opened its large jaws, full of
+dazzling flames, and breathed forth upon us its hot breath, while
+its two black and enormous cavities watched our unending work....
+
+"Thus, from one day to the next, in the floury dust, in the mud that
+our feet brought in from the yard, in the suffocating and terrible
+heat, we rolled out the dough and made cracknels, moistening them
+with our sweat; we hated our work with an implacable hatred; we
+never ate what we made, preferring black bread to these odorous
+dainties."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+At this period of his life, he had occasion to study at first hand
+certain places where he received original information which he later
+used in writing "Konovalov" and "The Ex-Men," which have thus
+acquired an autobiographical value. In fact, he worked a long while
+with these "ex-men;" like them, he sawed wood, and carried heavy
+burdens. At the same time, he devoted all his spare time to reading
+and thinking about problems, which became more and more "cursed" and
+alarming. He had found an attentive listener and interlocutor in the
+person of his comrade, the baker Konovalov. These two men, while
+baking their bread, found time to read. And the walls of the cellar
+heard the reading of the works of Gogol, Dostoyevsky, Karamzine, and
+others. Then they used to discuss the meaning of life. On holidays,
+Gorky and Konovalov had for the moment an opportunity to come out of
+the hole--this word does not exaggerate--in which they worked, to
+breathe the fresh air, to live a bit in nature's bosom, and to see
+their fellow men.
+
+"On holidays," Gorky tells us, "we went with Konovalov down to the
+river, into the fields; we took a little brandy and bread with us,
+and, from morning till evening, we were in the open air."
+
+They often went to an old, abandoned house which served as a refuge
+for a whole tribe of miserable and wandering people, who loved to
+tell of their wandering lives. Gorky and his companion were always
+well received on account of the provisions which they distributed so
+generously.
+
+"Each story spread out before our eyes like a piece of lace in which
+the black threads predominated--they represented the truth--and
+where there were threads of light color--they were the lies. These
+people loved us in their way, and were attentive listeners, because
+I often read a great deal to them."
+
+Often, these expeditions were not without their risks. One day, two
+of the baker's workmen happened to drown in a bog; another time,
+they were taken in a police raid and passed the night in the station
+house.
+
+It was also at this time that Gorky frequented the company of
+several students, not care-free and happy ones, but miserable young
+fellows like those whom Turgenev described as "nourished by physical
+privations and moral sufferings."
+
+On leaving the bakery, where his health, very much weakened by the
+lack of air and by bad food, did not permit him to remain any
+longer, he joined those vagabonds, those wanderers, whose
+melancholy companion he had been, and whose painter and poet he was
+to be. In their company, he traveled through Russia in every sense
+of the word, now as a longshoreman, now as a wood-chopper. Whenever
+he had a copeck in his pocket he bought books and newspapers and
+spent the night reading them. He suffered hunger and cold; he slept
+in the open air in summer, and, in winter, in some refuge or cellar.
+The feverish activity of so keen an intellect in an organism so
+crushed had, as its consequence, one of the attempts at suicide
+which are so frequent among the younger generation of the Russians.
+
+In 1889, at the age of twenty-one, Gorky shot himself in the chest,
+but he did not succeed in killing himself. Soon afterwards, he
+became gate-keeper for the winter at Tzaratzine; but the summer had
+hardly come before he began his vagabondage again, in the course of
+which he undertook a thousand little jobs in order to keep himself
+alive. On the road, he noticed those pariahs whom society does not
+want or who do not want society. And of these, in his short stories,
+he has created immortal types.
+
+Life was still very hard for him at this time. He has given us a
+moving sketch of it in his story entitled: "Once in Autumn." The
+hero, who is none other than the author himself, passes the night
+under an old, upturned boat, in the company of a prostitute who is
+just as poor and just as abandoned as himself. They have broken into
+a booth in order to steal enough bread to keep them from starving.
+Gorky is sad; he wants to weep; but the poor girl, miserable as she
+is, consoles him and covers him with kisses.
+
+"Those were the first kisses any woman ever gave me, and they were
+the best, for those that I received later always cost me a lot and
+never gave me any joy.... At this time, I was already preparing
+myself to be an active and powerful force in society; it seemed to
+me at times that I had in part accomplished my purpose.... I dreamed
+of political resolutions, of social reorganization; I used to read
+such deep and impenetrable authors that their thoughts did not seem
+to be a part of them--and now a prostitute warmed me with her body,
+and I was in debt to a miserable, shameful creature, banished by a
+society that did not want to accord her a place. The wind blew and
+groaned, the rain beat down upon the boat, the waves broke around
+us, and both of us, closely entwined, trembled from cold and hunger.
+And Natasha consoled me; she spoke to me in a sweet, caressing
+voice, as only a woman can. In listening to her tender and naïve
+words, I wept, and those tears washed away from my heart many
+impurities, much bitterness, sadness and hatred, all of which had
+accumulated there before this night."
+
+At daybreak, they say good-bye to each other, and never see one
+another again.
+
+"For more than six months, I looked in all the dives and dens in the
+hope of seeing that dear little Natasha once more, but it was in
+vain...."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+We find him again at Nizhny Novgorod at the time of the call for
+military recruits. Gorky was reformed, for, he says, "They do not
+accept those who are fallen." Meanwhile, he became a kvass merchant
+and exercised this trade for several months. Finally, he became the
+secretary of a lawyer, named Lanine. The latter, who had a very good
+reputation, took a deep interest in the poor boy whom life had
+treated so ill. He became interested in his intellectual development
+and, according to Gorky himself, had a great influence on him. At
+Nizhny Novgorod, as at Kazan, Gorky felt himself attracted by the
+circle of young people who discussed the "cursed" questions, and he
+soon was noticed by his comrades. They spoke of him as "a live and
+energetic soul."
+
+Easy as life was for Gorky in this city, where he remained for a
+while, the "wanderlust" again seized him. "Not feeling at home
+among these intelligent people," he traveled. From Nizhny Novgorod,
+he went, in 1893, to Tzaratzine; then he traveled on foot through
+the entire province of the Don, the Ukraine, entered into
+Bessarabia, and from there descended by the coast of the Crimea as
+far as Kuban.
+
+In October, 1892, Gorky found himself at Tiflis, where he worked in
+the railroad shops. That same year, he published in a local paper
+his first story, "Makar Choudra," in which already a remarkable
+talent was evident.
+
+Leaving Tiflis after a short sojourn there, he came to the banks of
+the Volga, in his native country, and began to write stories for the
+local papers. A happy chance made him meet Korolenko, who took a
+great interest in the "debutante" writer. "In the year 1893-1894,"
+writes Gorky, "I made the acquaintance of Vladimir Korolenko, to
+whom I owe my introduction into 'great' literature. He has done a
+great deal for me in teaching me many things."
+
+The important influence of Korolenko on the literary development of
+Gorky can best be seen in one of the latter's letters to his
+biographer, Mr. Gorodetsky. "Write this," he says to his biographer,
+"write this without changing a single word: It is Korolenko who
+taught Gorky to write, and if Gorky has profited but little by the
+teaching of Korolenko, it is the fault of Gorky alone. Write:
+Gorky's first teacher was the soldier-cook Smoury; his second
+teacher was the lawyer Lanine; the third, Alexander Kalouzhny, an
+'ex-man;' the fourth, Korolenko...."
+
+From the day when he met Korolenko, Gorky's stories appeared mostly
+in the more important publications. In 1895, he published
+"Chelkashe" in the important Petersburg review, "Russkoe Bogatsvo;"
+a year later, other publications equally well known published,
+"Konovalov," "Malva," and "Anxiety." These works brought Gorky into
+the literary world, where he soon became one of the favorite
+writers. The critics, at first sceptical, soon joined their voices
+with the enthusiastic clamor of the people.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Gorky's wandering life has given his works a peculiar and
+universally established form. He is, above all others, the poet of
+the "barefoot brigade," of the vagabonds who eternally wander from
+one end of Russia to the other, carelessly spending the few pennies
+that they have succeeded in earning, and who, like the birds of the
+sky, have no cares for the morrow.
+
+But this does not suffice to explain this author's popularity,
+especially among the younger generation. The "barefoot brigade" is
+not a novelty in Russian literature. We find it in the works of
+Reshetnikov, Uspensky, Mamine, Zhassinsky, and others. It is true
+that, up to this time, the vagabonds had been represented as the
+dregs of the people, as hopeless drunkards, thieves, and murderers.
+The writers who represented them were satisfied in rousing in their
+readers pity for the victims of this social disorder, victims so
+wounded by fate, that they have not even a realization of the
+injustice with which they are treated. And it is only in the works
+of the great dramatist Ostrovsky that we find any happy vagabonds,
+with a deep love of nature and beauty.
+
+Gorky's vagabonds have, like Ostrovsky's, exalted feelings for
+natural beauties, but they possess, besides, a full consciousness of
+themselves, and they declare open war against society. Gorky lives
+the lives of his heroes; he seems to sink himself into them, and, at
+the same time, he idealizes them, and often uses them as his
+spokesmen. Far from being crushed by fate, his vagabonds clothe
+themselves with a certain pride in their misery; for them, the ideal
+existence is the one they lead, because it is free; with numerous
+variations, they all exalt the irresistible seduction of
+vagabondage:
+
+"As for me, just listen! How many things I've seen in my fifty-eight
+years," says Makar Choudra. "In what country have I not been? That
+is the only way to live. Walk, walk, and you see everything. Don't
+stay long in one place: what is there out of the ordinary in that?
+Just as day and night eternally run after one another, thus you must
+run, avoiding daily life, so that you will not cease to love it...."
+
+"I, brother,"--says, in turn, Konovalov,--"I have decided to go all
+over the earth, in every sense of the word. You always see something
+new.... You think of nothing.... The wind blows, and you might say
+that it blows the dust out of your soul. You feel free and easy....
+You are not troubled by any one. If you are hungry, you stop, and
+work to earn a few pennies; if there is no work to be had, you ask
+for some bread and it is given to you. So you see many countries,
+and the most diverse beauties...."
+
+Likewise, in "Tedium," Kouzma Kossiyak thus clearly expresses
+himself:
+
+"I would not give up my liberty for any woman, nor for any
+fireplace. I was born in a shed, do you hear, and it is in a shed
+that I am going to die; that is my fate. I am going to wander
+everywhere until my hair turns grey.... I get bored when I stay in
+the same place."
+
+In their feeling of hostility to all authority, and all fixed
+things, including bourgeois happiness and economical principles,
+some of Gorky's characters resemble some of those superior heroes
+of Russian literature, like Pushkin's Evgeny Onyegin, Lermontov's
+Pechorine, and, finally, Turgenev's Rudin, who, in their way, are
+vagabonds, filled with the same independent spirit in their
+respective social, intellectual, or political circles.
+
+On the other hand, Gorky's wandering beggars are closely related to
+those "free men" to whom M. S. Maximov attributes a historic rôle
+which was favorable to the extension of the Russian empire.
+"Russia," he says, in his book, "Siberia and the Prison," "lived by
+vagabondage after she became a State; thanks to the vagabonds, she
+has extended her boundaries: for, it is they who, in order to
+maintain their independence, fought against the nomad tribes who
+attacked them from the south and the east...."
+
+There is a marked difference between these two classes: men of the
+former look for a place on this earth where they can establish
+themselves; while men of the other class, those who are out of work,
+drunkards, and lazy men, have no taste for a sedentary life.
+
+But if Gorky has not created the type of vagabond which is so
+familiar to those who know Russian literature, on the other hand, he
+has remodeled it with his original, energetic, and vibrantly
+realistic talent. His nomad "barefoot brigade," picturesquely
+encamped, is surrounded with a sort of terribly majestic halo in
+these vast stretches of country, a background against which their
+sombre silhouettes are set off. From the perfumed steppes to the
+roaring sea, they conjure up to the eye of their old co-mate the
+enchanting Slavic land of which they are the audacious offsprings.
+And Gorky also lovingly gives them a familiar setting, painted with
+bold strokes, of plains and mountains which border in the distance
+the glaucous stretch of the sea. The sea! With what fervor does
+Gorky depict the anger and the peace of the sea. It always inspires,
+like an adored mistress:
+
+"... The sea sleeps.
+
+"Immense, sighing lazily along the strand, it has gone to sleep,
+peaceful in its huge stretch, bathed in the moonlight. As soft as
+velvet, and black, it mingles with the dark southern sky and sleeps
+profoundly, while on its surface is reflected the transparent tissue
+of the flaky, immobile clouds, in which is incrusted the gilded
+design of the stars."
+
+Thus, like a "leitmotiv," the murmuring of the water interrupts the
+course of the story. And the steppe, this steppe "which has devoured
+so much human flesh and has drunk so much blood that it has become
+fat and fecund," surrounds with its immensity these miserable
+wandering beings and menaces them with its storm:
+
+"Suddenly, the entire steppe undulated, enveloped with a dazzling
+blue light which seemed to enlarge the horizon ... the shadows
+trembled and disappeared for a moment ... a crash of thunder burst
+forth, disturbing the sky, where many black clouds were flying
+past....
+
+"... At times the steppe stretched forth like an oscillating giant
+... the vast stretch of blue and cloudless sky poured light down
+upon us, and seemed like an immense cupola of sombre color."
+
+The wind passed "in large and regular waves, or blew with a sharp
+rattle, the leaves sighed and whispered among themselves, the waves
+of the river washed up on the banks, monotonous, despairing, as if
+they were telling something terribly sad and mournful," the entire
+country vibrated with a powerful life that harmonized with the souls
+of the people.
+
+In "Old Iserguile," Gorky writes: "I should have liked to transform
+myself into dust and be blown about by the wind; I should have liked
+to stretch myself out on the steppe like the warm waters of the
+river, or throw myself into the sea and rise into the sky in an opal
+mist; I should have liked to drink in this evening so wonderful and
+melancholy.... And, I know not why, I was suffering...."
+
+Gorky's stories, always short enough, have little or no plot, and
+the characters are barely sketched. But, in these simple frames, he
+has confined the power of an art which is prolific, supple and
+profoundly living. Let us take, for example, "The Friends." Dancing
+Foot and The One Who Hopes are ordinary thieves, the terror of the
+villagers whose gardens they rob. One day, when they are especially
+desperate, they steal a thin horse which is browsing at the edge of
+the woods. The One Who Hopes gets an incurable sickness, and it is
+perhaps on account of his approaching death that he feels scruples
+at this crime. Dancing Foot expresses the scorn that the weakness of
+his companion inspires him with, but he ends by giving in and
+returns the animal. One hour later, The One Who Hopes falls dead in
+front of Dancing Foot, who is tremendously upset in spite of his
+affected indifference.
+
+A dry outline cannot possibly convey the emotion contained in this
+little drama, where the low mentality of the characters is rendered
+with the mastery which Gorky usually shows in creating his elemental
+heroes. Among other works that should be noted are "Cain and
+Arteme," so poignantly ironical in its simplicity, "To Drive Away
+Tedium," "The Silver Clasps," "The Prisoner," and that little
+masterpiece, "Twenty-Six Men and a Girl," in which we see
+twenty-six bakers pouring out an ideal and mystical love on Tanya,
+the little embroiderer, who they believe, is as pure as an angel.
+One day, a brutal soldier comes to defy them, and boasts that he
+will conquer this young girl. He succeeds. Then the twenty-six
+insult their fallen idol; the tragedy is not so much in the insults
+that they hurl at her, as in the suffering they undergo through
+having lost the illusion that was so dear to them.
+
+Let us note, incidentally, the existence of a sort of comic spirit
+in these works which relieves the tragedy of the situations. In
+spite of their dark pessimism, the actors in these little dramas
+have an appearance of gaiety which deceives. It is by this popular
+humor that Gorky is the continuator of the work of Gogol; this is
+especially noticeable in "The Fair at Goltva."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In studying Gorky, one is often struck by the homogeneity of the
+types which he has described. Open any of his books, and you will
+always meet that "restless" type, dissatisfied with the banality of
+his existence, trying to get away from it, and leaning irresistibly
+towards absolute liberty, far removed from social and political
+obligations.
+
+Who are these "restless" people? Toward what end are they striving?
+What do they represent? First, they have an immense reserve force
+which they do not know what to do with; they have got out of the
+rut, the rut which they despise, but it is hard for them to create
+another sort of existence for themselves. Bourgeois happiness
+repulses them, while all sorts of duties are hateful to them. They
+consider the people who are contented with this sort of a life as
+slaves, unworthy of the name of man, and they show the same disdain
+for the peasants, for the leading classes, and for the workingmen.
+The simple farmer excites the scorn of the "barefoot brigade:"
+
+"As for me," says one of them, "I don't like any peasants.... They
+are all dogs! They have provincial States, and they do for them....
+They tremble, they are hypocrites, but they want to live; they have
+one protection: the soil.... However, we must tolerate the peasant,
+for he has a certain usefulness."
+
+"What is a peasant?" asks another. And he answers the question
+himself: "The peasant is for all men a matter of food, that is to
+say, an animal that can be eaten. The sun, the water, the air, and
+the peasant are indispensable to man's existence...."
+
+One might think that this hostility was the fruit of a feeling of
+envy provoked by the fact that the peasant seems to enjoy so many
+advantages. But, on the contrary, the "barefoot brigade" admits
+that the peasant subjugates his individuality for any sort of
+profit, and that he cannot feel the yoke which he has voluntarily
+taken in the hope of getting his daily bread.
+
+These workingmen "who pitifully dig in the soil" are unfortunate
+slaves. "They do nothing but construct, they work perpetually, their
+blood and sweat are the cement of all the edifices of the earth. And
+yet the remuneration which they receive, although they are crushed
+by their work, does not give them shelter or enough food really to
+live on."
+
+The enlightened classes are always characterized in Gorky's works by
+violent traits. The architect Shebouyev accords a sufficiently
+great, but scarcely honorable, place to the category of intelligent
+men to whom he belongs.
+
+"All of us," he says, "are nonentities, deprived of happiness. We
+are in such great numbers! And our numbers have been a power for so
+long a time! We are animated by so many desires, pure and honest....
+Why is there so much talk among us and so little action? And, all
+the while, the germs are there!... All these papers, novels,
+articles are germs ... just germs, and nothing else.... Some of us
+write, others read; after reading, we discuss; after discussing, we
+forget what we have read. For us, life is tedious, heavy, grey, and
+burdensome. We live our lives, but sigh from fatigue and complain
+of the heavy burdens we are carrying."
+
+The journalist Yezhov, in "Thomas Gordeyev," expresses himself in
+the same manner, but even more decisively:
+
+"I should like to say to the intelligent classes: 'You people are
+the best in my country! Your life is paid for by the blood and tears
+of ten Russian generations! How much you have cost your country! And
+what do you for her? What have you given to life? What have you
+done?...'"
+
+The absence of all independence, of any passion even a little
+sincere, the complete submission of heart and mind to the old
+prescribed morality, the constant effort to realize mere personal
+ambitions--all of these are the reproaches that Gorky addresses to
+cultivated man, whose moral disintegration he proves has been
+produced by routine and prejudice.
+
+In contrast to them, the vagabonds are the instinctive enemies of
+all slavery, in any form whatsoever. The complete independence of
+their personality means everything to them. And no material
+conditions, no matter how prosperous, will induce them to make the
+least compromise on this point. One of these "restless" types,
+Konovalov, tells how, after he had bound himself to the wife of a
+rich merchant, he could have lived in the greatest comfort, but he
+abandoned everything, the easy life, and even the woman, whom he
+loved well enough, in order to go out and look for the unknown. This
+is a common adventure on the part of Gorky's heroes.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+What is the cause of this restlessness?
+
+"Well, you see," explains Konovalov, "I became weary. It was such
+weariness, I must tell you, little brother, that at moments I simply
+could not live. It seemed to me as if I were the only man on the
+whole earth, and, with the exception of myself, there was no living
+thing anywhere. And in those moments, everything was repugnant to
+me, everything in the world; I became a burden to myself, and if
+everybody were dead, I wouldn't even sigh! It must have been a
+disease with me, and the reason why I took to drink, for, before
+this time, I never drank."
+
+For the same reasons, in "Anguish," a workingman leaves his mistress
+and his employer, the miller. Where does this anguish come from?
+Perhaps it is the simple result of a psychological process which,
+Konovalov admits, is nothing other than a disease. It is very
+possible that, in impulsive acts, a psychiatrist would see something
+analogous to alcoholism, or the symptoms of some other anomaly.
+
+Turgenev had already analyzed a similar case in "The Madman." When
+Michael Poltev is asked what evil spirit led him to drink and to
+risk his life, he always refers to his anguish.
+
+"'Why this anguish?' asks his uncle.
+
+"'Why?... When the brain is free, one begins to think of poverty,
+injustice, Russia.... And that's the end! anguish hastens on.... One
+is ready to send a bullet through one's head! There's nothing left
+to do but get drunk!...'
+
+"'And why do you associate Russia with all of that? Why, you are
+nothing but a sluggard!'
+
+"'But I can do nothing, dear uncle!... Teach me what I ought to do,
+to what task I ought to consecrate my life. I will do it
+gladly!...'"
+
+Gorky's characters give the same explanation of their "ennui," and
+almost in identical terms. This disgust comes in great part from not
+knowing how to adapt oneself to life, nor how to become a "useful"
+man.
+
+"Take me, for instance," says Konovalov, "what am I? A vagabond ...
+a drunkard, a crack-brained sort of man. There is no reason for my
+life. Why do I live on earth, and to whom am I useful? I have no
+home, no wife, no children, and I don't feel as if I wanted any. I
+live and am bored.... What about? No one knows. I have no life
+within myself, do you understand? How shall I express it? There's a
+spark, or force lacking in my soul...."
+
+Another character, the shoemaker Orlov, in "Orlov and His Wife,"
+especially reflects this pessimistic disposition. In the same way as
+Konovalov, he is born with "restlessness in his heart."
+
+He is a shoemaker; and why?
+
+"As if there weren't enough of them already! What pleasure is there
+in this trade for me? I sit in a cellar and sew. Then I shall die.
+They say that the cholera is coming.... And after that? Gregory
+Orlov lived, made shoes--and died of the cholera. What does that
+signify? And why was it necessary that I should live, make shoes and
+die, tell me?"
+
+These creatures are under the impression that they are superfluous;
+therefore their pessimistic conclusions. All of them passionately
+want to be able to express the meaning of life in general, their
+life in particular, but the task is too much for them.
+
+Gorky's heroes consider themselves "useless beings," but they never
+humiliate themselves. Their restlessness of spirit does not permit
+them to resign themselves to the reigning banality or to take part
+in it without protesting. At the same time, some of them are gifted
+with sufficient personality to possess an unshaken faith in
+themselves, in their strength, which keeps them from letting the
+responsibility of their torments fall back upon society.
+
+Promtov, the hero of "The Strange Companion," makes these restless
+seekers the descendants of the Wandering Jew: "Their peculiarity,"
+he ironically says, "is, that whether rich or poor, they cannot find
+a suitable place for themselves on earth, and establish themselves
+in it. The greatest of them are satisfied with nothing: money,
+women, nor men."
+
+What, then, do these "greatest" want?
+
+Their desires evidently take a multitude of forms, and have the most
+diverse shades; but the greatest number of them are impatient for
+extraordinary happenings, eager for exploits. Some of them declare
+that they would be willing to throw themselves on a hundred knives
+if humanity could be relieved by their doing so. But simple daily
+activity, even if it is useful, does not satisfy them.
+
+The shoemaker Orlov leaves his cellar, as he calls it, and accepts a
+position in the hospital where they are taking care of cholera
+patients. His devotion makes him an "indispensable man;" he is
+reborn, and, according to his own words, he is "ripe for life." It
+seems as if his end were going to be attained. But not so.
+Restlessness seizes him again. Orlov questions the value of his
+work. He saves sick people from the cholera. Is he doing good? The
+greatest care is taken of these people, but how many people are
+there outside of the hospitals, one hundred times as many as there
+are inside, who are just as unfortunate, but, in spite of that fact,
+are not helped by any one?
+
+"While you live," he declares, "no one will refuse to give you a
+drink of water. And if you are near death, not only will they not
+allow you to die, but they will go to some expense to stop you. They
+organize hospitals.... They give you wine at 'six and a half rubles
+a bottle.' The sick man gets well, the doctors are happy, and Orlov
+would like to share their joy; but he cannot, for he knows that, on
+leaving the threshold of the hospital, a life 'worse than the
+convulsions of the cholera' awaits the convalescent...." And again
+he is seized by the desire to drink, and to be a vagabond, and by a
+wish to experience new sensations.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+These, then, are the vagabonds whom we can class in the category of
+the "restless." After these, come those whom the author terms the
+"ex-men," and whom he studies, under this title, in one of his
+longest stories. The ex-men are closely related to the "restless;"
+however, they differ from them in that they push their opinions to
+an extreme, for they are, more than the others, miserable and at bay
+against society.
+
+"What difference would it make if it all went to the devil," one of
+them philosophizes--"I should like to see the earth go to pieces
+suddenly, provided that I should perish the last, after having seen
+the others die.... I'm an ex-man, am I not? I am a pariah, then,
+estranged from all bonds and duties.... I can spit on everything!"
+
+Thomas Gordeyev's father develops another thesis; a rich and
+rational bourgeois, he tries to inculcate in his son from his
+infancy--a son who later augments the ranks of the "restless"--the
+most perfect spirit of egotism.
+
+"You must pity people," he says, "but do it with discernment. First,
+look at a man, see what good you can get out of him, and see what he
+is good for. If you think he is a strong man, capable of work, help
+him. But if you think him weak and little suited for work, abandon
+him without pity. Remember this: two boards have fallen into the
+mud, one of them is worm-eaten, the other is sound. What are you
+going to do? Pay no attention to the worm-eaten plank, but take out
+the sound one and dry it in the sun. It may be of service to you or
+to some one else...."
+
+The reader will note the absolute egotism in all of Gorky's types.
+The "restless" are interested only in their own misery, and they
+think that all men are like them; nor do they try to stop or bridle
+their passions.
+
+Strong passions are one of the most precious privileges of mankind.
+This truth is well shown in the story: "Once More About the
+Devil."[7] Here, the men have become shabby and insignificant since
+there has been propagated among them, with a new strength, the
+gospel of individual perfection. The demon stifles, in the heart of
+Ivan Ivanovich Ivanov, all the passions that can agitate a human
+soul,--ambition, pity, evil, and anger; this operation makes Ivan an
+absolutely perfect being. On his face there appears that beatitude
+which words cannot express. The devil has crushed all "substance"
+out of him, and he is completely "empty."
+
+ [7] This was preceded by a story called "The Devil."
+
+One understands that Gorky's heroes cannot find what would be good
+for them, nor feel the least satisfaction in doing their fellow men
+a good service. They only dream of action; their sole desire is to
+affirm their individuality by "manifesting" themselves, little
+matter how. Old Iserguille is persuaded that "in life, there is room
+for mighty deeds" and, if a man likes them, he will find occasion to
+do them. Konovalov is most enthusiastic over Zhermak,[8] to whom he
+feels himself akin.
+
+ [8] A celebrated brigand in the time of Ivan the Terrible who, in
+ order to be pardoned, conquered Siberia in the name of the Tsar.
+
+"I'd like to reduce the whole earth to dust," dreams Orlov, "or get
+up a crowd of comrades and kill off all the Jews ... all, to the
+very last one! Or, in general, do something that would place me high
+above all men, so that I could spit on them from up there, and cry
+to them: 'Dogs! Why do you live? You're all hypocritical rascals and
+nothing more....'"
+
+These people demand a boundless liberty, but how obtain it? All of
+them dream of a certain organization which will let them feel
+relieved of all their duties, of all the thousands of petty things
+that make life hard, of all the small details, conventions, and
+obligations which hold such an important place in our society. But
+the time for heroic deeds has passed away, and the "restless" fight
+in vain against the millions of men who are determined to keep their
+habits and advantages.
+
+Thus they are obliged to shake the dust off their feet and to leave
+the ranks in which they are suffocating. No matter what they do or
+what they try to do, their motto is, "each one for himself."
+
+"Come," says a vagabond poetically to Thomas Gordeyev, "come with me
+on the open road, into the fields and steppes, across the plains,
+over the mountains, come out and look at the world in all its
+freedom. The thick forests begin to murmur; their sweet voice
+praises divine wisdom; God's birds sing its glory and the grass of
+the steppe burns with the incense of the Holy Virgin.
+
+"The soul is filled with an ardent yet calm joy, you desire nothing,
+you envy no one.... And it is then that it seems as if on the whole
+earth there is no one but God and you...."
+
+The material inconveniences of such an existence hardly affect
+Gorky's characters. Promtov, one of the prophets of individualism,
+says, in speaking of himself:
+
+"I have been 'on the road' for ten years, and I have not complained
+of my fate to God. I don't want to tell you anything of this period,
+because it is too tedious.... In general, it is the joyous life of a
+bird. Sometimes, grain is lacking, but one must not be too exacting
+and one must remember that kings themselves do not have pleasures
+only. In a life like ours, there are no duties--that is the first
+pleasure--and there are no laws, except those of nature--that is the
+second. Without a doubt, the gentlemen of the police force bother
+one at times ... but you find fleas even in the best hotels. As a
+set-off, one can go to the right, or to the left, or straight ahead,
+wherever your heart bids you go, and if you don't want to go
+anywhere, after having provided yourself with bread from the hut of
+some peasant, who will never refuse it, you can lie down until you
+care to resume your travels...."
+
+This is the final point at which all of the "restless" arrive,
+believing that there they will find what they have always lacked.
+Even the author himself shares their views up to a certain point:
+
+"You have to be born in civilized society," he says, speaking of
+himself, "in order to have the patience to live there all your life
+without having the desire to flee from this circle, where so many
+restrictions hinder you, restrictions sanctioned by the habit of
+little poisoned lies, this sickly center of self-love, in one word,
+all this vanity of vanities which chills the feelings and perverts
+the mind, and which is called in general, without any good reason
+and very falsely, civilization.
+
+"I was born and brought up outside of it, and I am glad of that
+fact. Because of it, I have never been able to absorb culture in
+large doses, without feeling, at the end of a certain time, the
+terrible need of stepping out of this frame.... It does one good to
+go into the dens of the cities, where everything is dirty, but
+simple and sincere; or even to rove in the fields or on the
+highroads; one sees curious things there. It refreshes the mind; and
+all you need in order to do it is a pair of sturdy legs...."
+
+What then is the teaching that we get out of Gorky's works? For,
+faithful to Russian tradition, he does not practise art for art's
+sake. His "barefoot brigade" and his "restless" men are generally
+considered as representative of his own ideals. The principle of "Do
+what seems to you to be good"--a principle which is expressed by a
+wandering and free life--ought to be justified, one thinks. Critics
+have risen up against this ideal, trying to prove how incompatible
+the kind of existence that he conceives is with a solid political
+organization, and how far from reality the men are whom he
+represents.
+
+Doubtless, in real life, people are not as original and not as
+heroic as Gorky represents them to be. And he himself agrees that
+their inventive faculties are very highly developed. He shows this
+in putting the following words into the mouth of Promtov:
+
+"I have very probably exaggerated, but that's not of much
+importance. For, if I have exaggerated what happened, my method of
+exposition has shown the true state of my soul. Perhaps, I have
+served you with an imaginary roast, but the sauce is made of the
+purest truth."
+
+The end that he is after, Gorky has shown us in his story, "The
+Lecturer," which contains his theories on literature. In the person
+of the lecturer, he addresses himself to the men who represent the
+majority of the Russian cultivated classes. He begins by analyzing
+himself carefully and discovers in himself many good feelings and
+honest desires, but he feels that he lacks clear and harmonious
+thought, a thing which keeps all the manifestations of life in
+equilibrium. Numerous doubts torment him, and his mind has been so
+moved with them, his heart so wounded, that, for a long time, he has
+lived "empty inside."
+
+"What have I to say to others?" he asks himself. "That which was
+told them long ago, that which has always been told them, none of
+which makes any one any better. But have I the right to teach these
+ideas and convictions, if I, who was brought up according to them,
+act so often in opposition to them?"
+
+With his usual sincerity, it is not to be wondered at that he
+answered this question in the negative, and, to cite the words of
+one of his characters, that he "refused to live in the chains which
+had already been forged for free thought, and to class himself under
+the label of an ism."
+
+He has not thought it profitable to hide his doubts and has not
+feared to declare openly that none of the existing philosophies suit
+him, and that he is trying to follow his own path. All of his work
+is but the absolute image of his own uncertainties, of his
+passionate researches, and of his constant "restlessness."
+
+At times people have believed that he was a disciple of Nietzsche.
+And, in truth, he has come under his influence, like so many other
+Russian authors. But he has gone on mostly by himself, aided by his
+acute sensibility, which has not, as yet, allowed him to adopt any
+one system to the exclusion of all others, or to formulate a system
+for his personal use.
+
+"I know one thing," he says, "it is not happiness that we should
+hope for. What should we do with it? The meaning of life does not
+lie in the search for happiness, and the satisfaction of the
+material appetites will never suffice to make a man fully contented
+with himself. It is in beauty that we must look for the meaning of
+life, and in the energy of the will! Every moment of our lives ought
+to be devoted to some better end...."
+
+However, he has very neatly set forth what he considers the task of
+the author. According to him, the man of to-day has lost courage; he
+interests himself too little in life, his desire to live with
+dignity has grown weaker, "an odor of putrefaction surrounds him,
+cowardice and slavery corrupt his heart, laziness binds his hands
+and his mind." But, at the same time, life grows in breadth and
+depth, and, from day to day, men are learning to question. And it
+is the writer who ought to answer their questions; but he should not
+content himself with straightening out the balance sheet of social
+deterioration, and in giving photographs of daily life. The writer
+must also awaken in the hearts of men a desire for liberty, and
+speak energetically, in order to infuse in man an ardent desire to
+create other forms of life.... "It seems to me," says Gorky, "that
+we desire new dreams, gracious inventions, unforeseen things,
+because the life which we have created is poor, dreary, and tedious.
+The reality which formerly we wanted so ardently, has frozen us and
+broken us down.... What is there to do? Let us try: perhaps
+invention and imagination will aid man in raising himself so that he
+may again glance for a moment at the place which he has lost on
+earth."
+
+All of Gorky's characters curse life, but without ceasing to love
+it, because they "have the taste for life." Their complaints are
+only a means by which the author hopes to raise up around him "that
+revengeful shame and the taste for life" of which he so often
+speaks. Here is the artful Mayakine, who, indignant at the
+debasement of the younger generation, is ready to take the most
+cruel means in order "to infuse fire into the veins" of his
+contemporaries. Varenka Olessova, the heroine of a story,
+incessantly repeats that people would be more interesting if they
+were more animated, if they laughed, played, sang more, if they were
+more audacious, stronger, and even more coarse and vulgar. Gorky
+admires also the beautiful type, vigorous, with a rudimentary
+mentality, which meets with his approval simply because he sees in
+it a nature which is complete, untouched, and filled with a love of
+life.
+
+Gorky suffers miseries inherent in the mere fact of existence, but
+he has found no remedy; he looks for consolations in the cult of
+beauty, in the strength of free individuality, in the flight towards
+a superior ideal. But he does not know where to find this superior
+ideal, which vivifies everything. This is perhaps the reason why
+people have thought they saw in his work the Nietzschean influence,
+which praises an insistence on individuality in defiance of current
+conventions, and gives us just as vague a solution as Gorky does.
+
+But this enthusiasm for an ideal, vague as it is, this passionate
+appeal for energy in the struggle, has awakened powerful echoes in
+the hearts of the Russians, especially the younger of them. Gorky
+suddenly became their favorite author, and it is to this warm
+reception that he owes a great part of his renown. He has carried
+the young along with him, and they have put their ideals in the
+place which he had left empty.
+
+If we now pass on to the first novels and dramas of Gorky, we shall
+be struck by the fact that, in spite of the talent shown in them,
+they are very inferior to his short stories. His former mastery is
+not found, except in his later novels, which we shall take occasion
+to mention presently.
+
+"Thomas Gordeyev" contains some very fine passages, but is not very
+successful as a whole. Thomas's father is a merchant on the banks of
+the Volga; he is an energetic man who carries out all his ideas.
+Whatever he is engaged on, whether business affairs, or a debauch,
+or repentance thereof, he gives himself entirely to the impression
+of the moment. Like other men of his class, moreover, he lives a
+life which is a singular mixture of refinement and savagery. He
+spends his time in drinking and working, as much for himself as for
+his only son, Thomas, whose mother died in giving birth to him. The
+child grows up under the care of his aunt and shows a serious
+disposition toward study. Gradually, he feels the motives that make
+men act, and he questions his father about them.
+
+Before dying, the latter says to his son: "Don't count on men, don't
+count on great events." In spite of the wealth which he inherits
+Thomas is not happy; he has no friends; his colleagues, the
+merchants, and especially his father's old friend, Mayakine, are
+repulsive to him on account of their cupidity and their
+unscrupulousness. Thomas does not love money and does not understand
+its power, two things that people cannot forgive him for. Besides,
+he does not know how to make use of the forces that are burning
+within him. After having vainly sought for moral relief in
+debauchery, he ends by proposing to strike a bargain with Mayakine
+so that he can be freed from responsibility and go out and look for
+happiness. He will give Mayakine his personal fortune if the latter
+will look after his business affairs. But the old roué, who hopes to
+get possession of the fortune in a surer way, refuses, and their
+conversation turns into a quarrel.
+
+As he does not work, Thomas indulges in many extravagances in
+company with a journalist of very advanced ideas. Finally, one day
+when he is at a fête at which are present all the wealthy members of
+the merchant class, the young man, disgusted with their vices, rises
+to apostrophize them in the most bitter terms. They throw themselves
+on him, and he is arrested as a madman and put into an asylum. He
+comes out, only to abandon himself to drink.
+
+In "The Three," Gorky tells us the life story of Ilya Lounyev, a
+poor creature, born in poverty, whose life is full of deceptions,
+misfortunes, even crimes. Several times, Ilya has tried to lead a
+decent life; but it is his sincerity that makes him lose his
+position with the merchant for whom he works. He has believed in
+beauty and in the purity of love, and he is deceived by the woman he
+loves. Gradually all the baseness of the world becomes clear to him.
+In a moment of jealousy he kills his mistress's lover, an old miser.
+Several months later he publicly confesses his crime, and, in order
+to escape from human justice, he commits suicide.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In his first two dramas, "The Smug Citizen," and "A Night's Refuge,"
+as in his short stories, Gorky shows us his usual characters.
+
+The Bessemenovs, comfortable, petty bourgeois, have given their
+children an education. Their daughter, Tatyana, becomes a
+school-teacher, but her profession does not please her. Peter, their
+son, has been expelled from the university, in spite of his
+indifference toward "new" ideas. The children are continually
+harassed by their father, who bemoans the fact that he has given
+them an education. Besides, another sadness troubles him: Nil, his
+adopted son, whom he has had taught the trade of a mechanician,--an
+alert and industrious fellow,--wants to marry Polya, a girl without
+a fortune. The father is beside himself, for, if Nil marries, he
+will never be in a condition to pay back the money that has been
+spent on him. But Nil protests: he is young, and, some day, he will
+repay his debt. He has not noticed that Tatyana is in love with him;
+and the young girl has not strength enough to live through the
+sorrow of seeing herself abandoned forever. She tries to commit
+suicide, but does not succeed. While Tatyana is bemoaning her fate,
+Peter has fallen in love with a young woman quite different from any
+of the members of his family. Helen understands how sad Peter's
+position is among these ignorant people, and she decides to marry
+him, for pity as much as for love. The father is no more satisfied
+with this match than he was with Nil's, and with death in his soul
+he is present at the dismemberment of his family. While Helen takes
+Peter, Nil goes off with Polya. The mother, a humble and kind woman,
+does not understand the cause of all this dissension and, while
+consoling the weeping Tatyana, she asks her husband: "Why are our
+children punishing us so? Why do they make us suffer?" This play is
+not dramatically effective and has never had a great success on the
+stage.
+
+On the other hand, Gorky's second attempt, "A Night's Refuge," has
+been enormously successful. Here, the author takes us into the world
+of the barefoot brigade. Vasska Pepel, Vassilissa's lover, the
+proprietor of the night refuge in which he sleeps, loves the sister
+of his mistress, Natasha by name, a timid and dreamy young girl,
+who blooms like a lily in this mire. The old vagabond, Luke, advises
+the young girl to run off with Vasska, who wants to begin a new
+life. But Vassilissa, jealous and evil as she is, has noticed the
+coldness which her lover shows towards her. She avenges herself by
+striking her younger sister whenever she can. Her plan was, with the
+aid of Vasska, to kill her husband, Kostylev, and then to live
+openly with her lover. But when she sees Vasska ready to leave with
+Natasha, she starts a terrible scene, which ends in Vasska's killing
+Kostylev without meaning to. Vassilissa and her lover are arrested
+and Natasha disappears.
+
+Although the characters of this play are vagabonds, they differ from
+most of Gorky's creations, whose fiery and enthusiastic souls
+usually discover a real beauty in the life they have chosen.
+Alcoholism, prostitution, and misery have shut off these people who
+live in the cellar. They have fallen so low, that conscience is a
+useless luxury for them. It belongs to the rich only. One of them,
+who is asked if he has a conscience, replies with sincere
+astonishment: "What? Conscience?" And when the question is asked
+again, he answers, "What good is conscience? I'm not a rich man."
+The life of these people is worse than a nightmare: to-morrow they
+will be cold, hungry, and drunk, just as they were yesterday.
+Sometimes, perhaps, they feel like struggling against their evil
+lot, but no one stretches forth a helping hand to them. They do not
+dare think of the future, and they would like to forget the past.
+One of them expresses his fear of life thus:
+
+"At times, I'm afraid, brother; can you understand that?... I
+tremble.... For, what is there after this?" And this fear smothers
+all the energy in them. They are poor and scantily clothed, not only
+in the material sense of the word, but also in the moral sense.
+Money would not be necessary to save them, but a word of sympathy,
+of love, a word that would give them the courage really to live.
+
+And it is here that old Luke appears. He treats the men as if they
+were children, and gains their confidence. In his words there is
+manifested a real experience of things and people. As he says, "They
+moulded me a lot," and that is why he became "tender." He knows just
+the right word for every one. He assures the dying woman that:
+"Eternal rest means happiness. Die, and you will have rest, you will
+have no cares, and no one to fear. Silence will calm you! All you
+have to do is remain lying down! Death pacifies and is tender. You
+will appear before God, and He will say to you: 'Take her to
+Paradise so that she may rest. I know that her life has been hard;
+she is tired, give her peace.'" And the sick woman, who has dragged
+out her existence so long, is consoled.
+
+To the drunkard, a former actor who has fallen, Luke says: "Stop
+drinking, pull yourself together and be patient. You will be cured,
+and you will begin a new existence...." And he succeeds in awakening
+a hope of a better life in the soul of the poor comedian, while he
+himself, perhaps, hardly believes in the possible regeneration of
+his protégé.
+
+After Luke's departure, the temporary dreams of these miserable
+people vanish. One evening, when they are all gathered around a
+bottle of brandy, they strike up a song. A friend, a baron by birth,
+rushes into the cellar and announces that the actor has hung
+himself, and that his corpse is hanging in the court. A deathlike
+silence follows these words. All look at each other in fright. "Ah,
+the fool!" finally murmurs a vagabond, "he spoiled our song...." The
+hope in a better life that Luke had awakened in the actor made him
+kill himself, when he saw that he had not enough strength to realize
+this hope.
+
+This drama is the quintessence of all that Gorky has, up to this
+time, written on the "ex-man," whom he has thoroughly "explored."
+And the figure of old Luke is one of his most original and lifelike
+creations.
+
+His third important play, which, however, has never enjoyed the
+popularity of "A Night's Refuge," is called: "The Children of the
+Sun." The "children of the sun" are the elect of heaven, richly
+endowed with talent and knowledge. They live in a world of noble
+dreams, of elevated thoughts, enveloped though they are in the
+greyness of life. There pass before them long processions of tired
+and oppressed people. The latter, also, have been generated by the
+strong sun; but the light has gone out for them, and they travel on
+life's highway without joy or faith, among those who are proud of
+their beauty or learning. The "children of the sun" are the
+aristocrats of the soul. They have but one end: to make life
+beautiful, good, and agreeable for all. They continually think of
+making it easier, of soothing suffering, and of preparing a better
+future. Their mission is a large one. They are not idle, but are men
+who have the most elevated ends in view.
+
+Between "the children of the sun" and "the children of the earth"
+there is a deep abyss. They do not understand each other. The
+"children of the sun" cannot admit the miseries and ugliness of
+daily life. They have compassion for the people who work below them.
+The "children of the earth" feel the superiority of the "children of
+the sun," but their narrow-mindedness, continually absorbed by the
+necessity of finding shelter and food, cannot rise to the
+preoccupations of so elevated an order. However, life brings these
+two worlds together in a common work; but their mere meeting on the
+ground of practical interests produces a collision.
+
+A third category constitutes the intermediary link. This is made up
+of the university people, the representatives of the liberal
+professions. As "intellectuals," they cannot equal the "children of
+the sun," but they can understand them. They conceive the grandeur
+of their moral activity. At the same time, these men are close to
+the people. They are often obliged to mingle in the life of the
+people, and more than the "children of the sun," they are capable of
+enlarging their minds and ennobling their duties. But, while they
+know and understand the duties of the people completely, they are
+not yet strong enough to help them. This, then, is the general
+meaning of the play.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Although this play is cleverly constructed, with a last act which is
+pathetic and moving in its intensity, and produces a profound
+impression, on the whole, unfortunately, it has the general
+harshness of problem plays. Under its lyric vestments, its solid and
+massive character appears too often. Gorky, a born observer,
+inheritor of the realistic traditions of his country, could not help
+turning aside, one day, from this ideological art, visibly
+influenced by Tolstoy's dramas. The direct part that the romanticist
+has played in the political events of his country sufficiently
+proves that he has taken a different road from that taken by the
+apostle of Yasnaya Polyana. With maturity, he felt the need of
+hastening the dénouement of the crisis in Russia, in actively
+participating in its emancipation. From that time on, he chose his
+heroes from a less singular environment. Instead of the philosophic
+vagabonds, the neurasthenic "restless" ones, and the ex-men, he
+chose the plebeian of the city and country, who is gradually
+awakening from a sleep of ignorance and slavery. A remarkable story,
+called "In Prison," all atremble with new sensations, inaugurates
+this new style. A victim himself of the intolerance of "over-men,"
+Gorky has incarnated his own revolts and hopes in the soul of his
+hero, Misha, a brother of the revolutionary students who do not
+hesitate to sacrifice their life or liberty for a principle or
+ideal.
+
+Written at the same time, the story called "The Soldiers" gives
+proof of an equally careful incorporation of the claims of the
+oppressed in a literary work.
+
+The school-mistress, Vera, has conceived the daring project of
+teaching the soldiers who are quartered in the village. She gets
+some of them together at the edge of the neighboring woods and
+there she tries to show them the ignominy of the rôles they play in
+times of uprisings. Angered by this unexpected talk, the soldiers
+threaten the young girl. But her coolness and sincerity finally make
+them listen to her with a respect mingled with admiration.
+
+A third story, called "Slaves," in a masterful way retraces the
+catastrophes of the now historical journey of January 9, 1905, at
+the end of which, a crowd of 200,000 men, led by the famous pope
+Gapon, went to the Tsar's palace to present their demands to him,
+and were received with cannon shots.
+
+These stories were followed by three works of great merit: "Mother,"
+"A Confession," and "The Spy."
+
+The novel "Mother" takes us into the midst of revolutionary life.
+The heroes of this book belong, for the most part, to that
+workingman and agricultural proletariat whose rôle has lately been
+of such great importance in the Russian political tempests. With
+marvelous psychological analysis, Gorky shows how some of these
+simple creatures understand the new truth, and how it gradually
+penetrates their ardent souls.
+
+Pavel Vlassov, a young, intelligent workingman, is thirsty for
+knowledge, and is the apostle of the new ideal. He throws himself
+heart and soul into the dangerous struggle he has undertaken against
+ignorance and oppression. The Little Russian, Andrey, is all
+feeling and thought, and the peasant Rybine is inflamed by action.
+Sashenka is a young girl who sacrifices herself entirely to the
+Idea, and the coal-man Ignatius is driven by an obscure force to
+help in a cause which he does not understand. Finest of them all is
+Pelaguaya Vlassov, the principal character of the book, and Pavel's
+mother.
+
+Old and grey, Pelaguaya has passed her whole life in misery. She has
+never known anything but how to suffer in silence and endure without
+complaint; she has never dreamed that life could be different. One
+day her father had said to her:
+
+"It's useless to make faces! There is a fool who wants to marry
+you,--take him. All girls marry, all women have children; children
+are, for all parents, a sorrow. And are you, yes or no, a human
+being?"
+
+She then marries the workingman Michael Vlassov, who gets drunk
+every day, beats her cruelly and kicks her, and even on his
+death-bed, says: "Go to the devil.... Bitch! I'll die better alone."
+
+He dies, and his son Pavel begins to bring forbidden books into the
+house. Friends come and talk; a small group is formed. Pelaguaya
+listens to what is said, but understands nothing. Gradually,
+however, there begins to filter into her old breast, like a stream
+of joy, an understanding of something big, of something in which she
+can take part. She discovers that she too is a free creature, and,
+obscurely, there is formed in her mind the notion that every human
+being has a right to live. Then she speaks: "The earth is tired of
+carrying so much injustice and sadness, it trembles softly at the
+hope of seeing the new sun which is rising in the bosom of mankind."
+So the obscure and miserable woman gradually rises to the dignity of
+"The Mother of the Prophet." And when Pavel accepts, like the
+martyrdom of the cross, his banishment to Siberia, with a joyous
+heart she sacrifices her son to the Idea.
+
+Her soul opens wide to the new truth that is lighting it. With the
+most touching abnegation, she tries to carry on the work of the
+absent one. But the police are watching. One day, when she is about
+to take the train to a neighboring town to spread the "good word"
+there, she is recognized and apprehended. Seeing that she is lost,
+the Mother, whose personality at this moment grows absolutely
+symbolic, cries out to the crowd:
+
+"'Listen to me! They condemned my son and his friends because they
+were bringing the truth to everybody! We are dying from work, we are
+tormented by hunger and by cold, we are always in the mire, always
+in the wrong! Our life is a night, a black night!'
+
+"'Hurrah for the old woman!' cries some one in the crowd.
+
+"A policeman struck her in the chest; she tottered, and fell on the
+bench. But she still cried:
+
+"'All of you! get all your forces together under a single leader.'
+
+"The big red hand of the policeman struck her in the throat, and the
+nape of her neck hit against the wall.
+
+"'Shut up, you hag!' cried the officer in a sharp voice.
+
+"The Mother's eyes grew larger and shone brightly. Her jaw trembled.
+
+"'They won't kill a resurrected soul!'
+
+"'Bitch!'
+
+"With a short swing the policeman struck her full in the face.
+
+"Something red and black momentarily blinded the Mother; blood
+filled her mouth.
+
+"A voice from the crowd brought her to herself:
+
+"'You haven't the right to strike her!'
+
+"But the officers pushed her, and hit her on the head.
+
+"'... It's not blood that will drown what's right.'...
+
+"Dulled and weakened, the Mother tottered. But she saw many eyes
+about her, glowing with a bold fire, eyes that she knew well and
+that were dear to her.
+
+"'... They will never get at the truth, even under oceans of blood!'
+
+"The policeman seized her heavily by the throat.
+
+"There was a rattling in her throat:
+
+"... 'The unfortunates!'
+
+"Some one in the crowd answered her, with a deep sigh."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"A Confession" is the story of a restless soul who untiringly
+searches for the God of truth and goodness. Found as a child in a
+village of central Russia, Matvey was first taken by a sacristan,
+and, after his death, by Titov, the inspector of the domain. In
+order to debase Matvey, whose superiority irritates him, Titov asks
+him to participate in his extortions. Having become the son-in-law
+of his adopted father, Matvey, on account of his love for his wife,
+accepts the shameful life. But the God in whom Matvey has placed his
+distracted confidence, seems to want to chastise him cruelly. After
+having lost, one after the other, his wife and child, he goes away
+at a venture. He enters a monastery where, among the dissolute
+monks, whose vices are most repugnant, his soul gradually shakes off
+the Christian dogma. On one of his pilgrimages, he gets to
+Damascus. Among the workingmen, where chance has taken him, he feels
+his heart opening to the truth, which he follows up with the
+determination of a real Gorkyan hero. The life of the people appears
+to him in its sublime simplicity. And it is in the midst of a
+dazzling apotheosis--which reminds one of the most grandiose pages
+of Zola's "Lourdes"--that he finally confesses the God of his ideal:
+it is the people.
+
+"People! you are my God, creator of all the gods that you have
+formed from the beauty of your soul, in your troubled and laborious
+search!
+
+"Let there be no other gods on the earth but yourself, for you are
+the only God, the creator of miracles!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"The Spy" is a study of the Russian police. The novel treats of the
+terrible Okhrana, whose mysterious affairs have become the
+laughing-stock of all the foreign papers.
+
+The principal character, about whom circle the police spies and
+secret agents, is a poor orphan, weak and timid, called Evsey
+Klimkov, whom his uncle, the forger Piotr, has taken into his house
+and brought up with his son, the strong and brutal James. Beaten by
+his schoolmates and by his cousin, the child lives in a perpetual
+trance. Life seems formidable to him, like a jungle in which men are
+the pitiless beasts. Everywhere, brute force or hypocrisy triumph;
+everywhere, the weak are oppressed, downtrodden, conquered. And in
+his feverish imagination, daily excited by facts which his terror
+distorts, Evsey delights in conceiving another existence, all made
+of love and goodness, an existence that he unceasingly opposes
+against the hard realities of daily life, with the stubborn fervor
+of a mystic.
+
+Having entered the service of the old bookseller Raspopov, the young
+man does his duty with the faithfulness of a beast of burden. His
+home no longer pleases him at all; there, things and people are
+still hostile to him; but his uncle Piotr seems enchanted with his
+new position. Evsey spends his days in arranging and classifying the
+books which his master has bought. A young woman, Raïssa Petrovna,
+keeps house for the book-dealer, and as every one knows, they live
+like man and wife. In this queer environment, the faculties of the
+young man become sharpened, and serve him well. It does not take
+long for him to find out what they are hiding from him. A few words
+addressed by Raspopov to a certain Dorimedonte Loukhine reveal to
+Evsey the part that is being played by his patron. Raspopov, who is
+an agent of the secret police, gives Dorimedonte--who, by the way,
+is deceiving him with Raïssa--the names of the buyers of the
+forbidden books in which he trades. And here it is that the tragedy
+suddenly breaks forth.
+
+Raïssa, tired of being tormented by Raspopov, who accuses her of
+poisoning him, strangles the old man in a moment of cold anger,
+under the very eyes of Evsey. Thanks to Dorimedonte, this crime goes
+unpunished. Evsey, having become the lodger of the two lovers, now
+enters the Okhrana, at the advice of his new master. After a while,
+Raïssa, haunted by remorse, commits suicide, and Dorimedonte is
+killed by some revolutionists.
+
+All the interest of the book, however, is centered in the picture of
+the police institutions. From the chief Philip Philipovich to the
+agent Solovyev, Gorky presents, with consummate art, the mass of
+corrupt and greedy agents who wearily accomplish their tasks.
+
+Among them, young Evsey leads a miserable and ridiculous existence.
+Bruised by an invincible power, he sees himself compelled to arrest
+an old man who has confided his revolutionary ideas to him; then a
+young girl with whom he is in love; finally, his own cousin, a
+revolutionary suspect.
+
+Gradually his eyes are opened. He realizes that he cannot extricate
+himself from the position in which he has placed himself. Tired of
+leading a life which his conscience disapproves of, he thinks of
+killing his superior, who has driven him to do so many infamous
+deeds. He will thus get justice. His project miscarries; maddened,
+he throws himself under a passing train.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+These three remarkable works, riddled by the Russian censor, so that
+the complete version has appeared only abroad, have recently been
+followed by two important stories: "Among the People" and "Matvey
+Kozhemyakine."
+
+With his accustomed power, Gorky shows us, in the first of these
+stories, the spread of socialism among the agricultural proletariat.
+He depicts village life with its pettiness and ignominy. The village
+is for the most part a backward place, hostile to everything that
+makes a breach in tradition. The hatching of socialism goes on
+slowly. From day to day, new obstacles, helped on by the ignorance
+of the peasants, hinder those who are trying to carry out their
+belief. Even the village guard, Semyon, pursues them with his
+hatred.
+
+But Igor Petrovich, the propagator of these new ideas, finds, in a
+few old friends and in a village woman who becomes his mistress,
+some precious helpers. Thanks to them, he gradually gets up a little
+circle of firm believers who gather in a cave in the woods. Every
+evening, they read, discuss, and dream of a better organization,
+out there in the cave. All would have gone well, if some of them had
+not betrayed the leader to the police. While being led to the city
+prison, the leader spoke to the soldiers who were escorting him:
+
+"The soldiers trembled as they clicked their bayonets; they silently
+listened to the legend of the generous earth which loves those who
+work it. Again, their red faces were covered with drops of melted
+snow; the drops ran down their cheeks like bitter tears of
+humiliation; they breathed heavily, they snuffled, and I felt that
+they kept walking a little faster, as if they wanted this very day
+to arrive in that fairy land.
+
+"We are no longer prisoners and soldiers; we are simply seven
+Russians. I do not forget the prison, but when I remember all that I
+lived through that summer and before that, my heart fills with joy,
+and I feel like crying out:
+
+"Rejoice, beloved Russian people! Your resurrection is close at
+hand!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"Matvey Kozhemyakine" very brilliantly returns to Gorky's early
+manner. In this book no symbolic character interprets the bold
+thoughts of the author. It is simply a novel of Russian provincial
+life. Its simplicity does not exclude vigor, and it reminds us at
+times of Balzac.
+
+Young Matvey is the son of an old workingman who has become rich,
+thanks to his energy and dishonesty. He has grown up in a large
+house, adjoining a rope-yard, with his father and several servants.
+His mother, whom he never knew, left home shortly after his birth,
+and entered a convent in order to escape the torments of life.
+Later, Matvey's father marries a young girl, in order to provide a
+mother for his son, whom he loves dearly. But his new mother is not
+long in finding out the dreary life which she has to lead with the
+old man. In order to escape from the tedium of it, she listens to
+the interesting experiences of the wandering life of the porter
+Sazanov, and gives her unfaithful love in exchange.
+
+Unexpected circumstances disclose this shameful adultery to Matvey.
+Instead of revealing it to his father, he generously guards the
+secret. He even goes so far as to protect her from the fury of a
+workingman, named Savka, whom Sazanov's success has rendered bold.
+Through gratitude, and later through love, in the absence of
+Kozhemyakine, she becomes the mistress of her step-son. On his
+return, the father, finding out about this "liaison," spares his
+son, but beats his wife to death, and himself, mad with fury, falls,
+struck with apoplexy.
+
+All the newspapers in the world have attacked Gorky's way of living.
+As he is forced to remain away from his beloved country, the great
+writer has made his home in the little island of Capri, the air of
+which is propitious to his failing health. Moreover, its impressive
+scenery inspires his restless genius.
+
+Drunk with liberty, taken up with beauty, always ready to help a man
+who is in political and social difficulties, Gorky, from the depths
+of his peaceful retreat, wanders out over the world of ideas in
+search of truth, as formerly he used to wander over the earth in
+search of bread.
+
+
+
+
+VI
+
+LEONID ANDREYEV
+
+
+Leonid Andreyev was born of a humble bourgeoise family in Orel, in
+1871. "It was there that I began my studies," he says. "I was not a
+good pupil; in the seventh form I was last in my class for a whole
+year, and I had especially poor reports as to my deportment. The
+most agreeable part of my schooling, which I still remember with
+pleasure, was the intervals between the lessons, the 'recesses,' and
+the times, rare as they were, when the instructor sent me from the
+class-room for inattention or lack of respect. In the long deserted
+halls a sonorous silence reigned which vibrated at the solitary
+noise of my steps; on all sides the closed doors, shutting in rooms
+full of pupils; a sunbeam--a free beam--played with the dust which
+had been raised during recess and which had not yet had time to
+settle; all of it was mysterious, interesting, full of a particular
+and secret meaning."
+
+Andreyev's father, who was a geometrician, died while he was still
+at school, and the family was without resources. The young man did
+not hesitate, however, in setting out for St. Petersburg, where he
+entered the university, hoping to gain a livelihood by giving
+lessons. But it was hard to secure what he wanted. "I knew what
+terrible misery was," Andreyev tells us; "during my first years in
+St. Petersburg I was hungry more than once, and sometimes I did not
+eat for two days."
+
+His first literary productions date from this sombre epoch. Andreyev
+gives us remarkably graphic details of this misery. One day, he gave
+a daily paper a story about the tribulations of an ever-hungry
+student: his own life!
+
+"I wept like a child in writing these pages," he confesses. "I had
+put down all of my sufferings. I was still affected by my great
+sadness when I took the manuscript to the editor. I was told to come
+back in a few weeks to find out whether it had been accepted. I
+returned with a light heart, keeping down my anguish in expectation
+of the decision. It came to me in the form of a loud burst of
+laughter from the editor, who declared that my work was absolutely
+worthless...."
+
+Nevertheless, he energetically pursued his studies, which he
+completed at the University of Moscow. "There," he tells us, "life
+was, from a material standpoint, less unbearable; my friends and
+the aid society came to my assistance; but I recall my life at the
+University of St. Petersburg with genuine pleasure; the various
+classes of students are there more differentiated and an individual
+can more easily find a sympathetic surrounding among such distinct
+groups."
+
+Some time after that, Andreyev, disgusted with life, attempted
+suicide. "In January, 1894," he writes, "I tried to shoot myself,
+but without any appreciable result. I was punished by religious
+penance, imposed upon me by authority, and a sickness of the heart
+which, although not dangerous, was persistent. During this time I
+made one or two equally unsuccessful literary attempts, and I gave
+myself up with success to painting, which I have loved since
+childhood; I then painted portraits to order for from 5 to 10
+rubles....
+
+"In 1897, I received my counsellor's degree and I took up that
+profession in Moscow. For want of time I did not succeed in getting
+any sort of a 'clientele'; in all, I pleaded but one civil case,
+which, however, I lost completely, and several gratuitous criminal
+cases. However, I was actively working in reporting these cases for
+an important paper."
+
+Finally, two strangely impressionistic stories: "Silence," and "He
+Was...," published in an important Petersburg review, brought the
+author into prominence. From that time, he devoted himself entirely
+to literature.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Andreyev is considered, to-day, as one of the most brilliant
+representatives of the new constellation of Russian writers, in
+which he takes a place immediately next to Tchekoff, whom he
+resembles in the melancholy tone of his work. In him, as in
+Tchekoff, the number of people who suffer from life, either crushed
+or mutilated by it, by far exceed the number of happy ones;
+moreover, the best of his stories are short and sketchy like those
+of Tchekoff. Andreyev is then, so to speak, his spiritual son. But
+he is a sickly son, who carries the melancholy element to its
+farthest limit. The grey tones of Tchekoff have, in Andreyev, become
+black; his rather sad humor has been transformed into tragic irony;
+his subtle impressionability into morbid sensibility. The two
+writers have had the same visions of the anomalies and the horrors
+of existence; but, where Tchekoff has only a disenchanted smile,
+Andreyev has stopped, dismayed; the sensation of horror and
+suffering which springs from his stories has become an obsession
+with him; it does not penetrate merely the souls of his heroes, but,
+as in Poe, it penetrates even the descriptions of nature.
+
+Thus, the "near and terrible" disk of the moon hovers over the earth
+like the "gigantic menace of an approaching but unknown evil"; the
+river congeals in "mute terror," and silence is particularly
+menacing. Night always comes "black and bad," and fills human hearts
+with shadows. When it falls, the very branches of the trees
+"contract, filled with terror." Under the influence of the
+disturbing sounds of the tocsin, the high linden-trees "suddenly
+begin to talk, only to become quiet again immediately and lapse into
+a sullen silence." The tocsin itself is animated. "Its distinct
+tones spread with rapid intensity. Like a herald of evil who has not
+the time to look behind him, and whose eyes are large with fright,
+the tocsin desperately calls men to the fatal mire."[9]
+
+ [9] This passage is a sort of a variation on the theme that Poe
+ has developed in a masterful way in his poem, "The Bells."
+
+Most of Andreyev's characters, like those of Dostoyevsky, are
+abnormal, madmen and neurasthenics in whom are distinguishable
+marked traces of degeneration and psychic perversion. They are
+beings who have been fatally wounded in their life-struggle, whose
+minds now are completely or partially powerless. Too weak to fight
+against the cruel exigencies of reality, they turn their thoughts
+upon themselves and naturally arrive at the most desolate
+conclusions, and commit the most senseless acts. Some, a prey to the
+mania of pride, despairing because of their weakness and their
+"nothingness," look--as does Serge Petrovich--for relief in suicide.
+Others, who have resigned themselves to their sad lives, become
+passive observers, become transformed into living corpses whose sole
+desire is peace; such a one is the hero of "At the Window." Others
+still instinctively choke in themselves the best tendencies of their
+characters and are passionately fond of futile and senseless
+amusements, by means of which they enjoy themselves like children,
+until a catastrophe makes them "come back to themselves." This is
+the idea of the original story called "The Grand Slam." In "The Lie"
+Andreyev depicts the pathological process in the soul of a man who,
+crushed by the falsehood of his own solitary existence, becomes
+insane at the idea that truth is inaccessible to human reason and
+that the reign of the Lie is invincible. The hero of "The
+Thought"[10] reveres but one thing in the world--his own thought.
+Wrapped up in this one idea, he admires the force and finesse of it,
+while his reason, detached from reality and having only him for an
+end, begins to weaken, becomes gradually perverted to the point
+where this man, harassed by a terrible doubt, begins to ask himself
+whether he is insane. In the long and pathetic story, "The Life of a
+Priest," we are shown the disturbance of the religious feelings of a
+country priest who, although he has an ardent and strong soul, is
+crushed by his moral isolation among the ignorant people of a
+miserable village. It is again this moral isolation that is
+analyzed in "Silence," in which story it is the cause of a domestic
+tragedy. The same cause provokes a rupture between a father and a
+son in "The Obscure Distance," and brings with it in some way the
+death of the neurasthenic student.
+
+ [10] In the English translation this book is called "A Dilemma."
+
+In general, the stories of Andreyev, after passing through various
+catastrophes, lead the reader back to this theme,--the moral
+isolation of a human being, who feels that the world has become
+deserted, and life a game of shadows. The abyss which separates
+Andreyev's heroes from other men makes them weak, numb, and
+miserable. It seems, in fact, that there is no greater misfortune
+than for a man to feel himself alone in the midst of his
+fellow-creatures.
+
+Finally, in "The Gulf," a somewhat imaginary thesis is developed,
+based on the terrible vitality which certain vile instincts keep
+even in the purest and most innocent minds, while the story "He
+Was..." shows us the inside of a clinic, in which there are two
+dying men whose illusions of life persist till the supreme moment.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+If we carefully study a few of Andreyev's characters we can more
+easily understand his feelings and his style. Here is, for
+instance, Serge Petrovich, a student. Although he is not very
+intelligent, he is above the average. His mind is preoccupied with
+all sorts of questions; he reads Nietzsche, he ponders over many
+things, but he does not know how to think for himself. The fact that
+there are people who can find a way to express themselves appears to
+him as an inaccessible ideal; while mediocre minds have no
+attraction for him at all. It is from this feeling that all his
+sufferings come. So "a horse, carrying a heavy burden, breathes
+hard, falls to the ground, but is forced to rise and proceed by
+stinging lashes from a whip."
+
+These lashes are the vision of the superman, of the one who
+rightfully possesses strength, happiness, and liberty. At times a
+thick mist envelops the thoughts of Serge Petrovich, but the light
+of the superman dispels this, and he sees his road before him as if
+it had been drawn or told him by another.
+
+Before his eyes there is a being called Serge Petrovich for whom all
+that makes existence happy or bitter, deep and human, remains a
+closed book. Neither religion nor morality, neither science nor art,
+exists for him. Instead of a real and ardent faith, he feels in
+himself a motley array of feelings. His habitual veneration of
+religious rites mingles with mean superstitions. He is not
+courageous enough to deny God, not strong enough to believe in Him.
+He does not love his fellow-men, and cannot feel the intense
+happiness of devoting himself to his fellow-creatures and even dying
+for them. But neither does he experience that hate for others which
+gives a man a terrible joy in his struggle with his fellow-men. Not
+being capable of elevating himself high enough or falling low enough
+to reign over the lives of men, he lives or rather vegetates with a
+keen feeling of his mediocrity, which makes him despair. And the
+pitiless words of Zarathustra ring in his ears: "If your life is not
+successful, if a venomous worm is gnawing at your heart, know that
+death will succeed." And Serge Petrovich, desperate, commits
+suicide.
+
+The hero of "At the Window" is quite different. This man has
+succeeded in building for himself a sort of fortress, "in which he
+retires, sheltered from life." Like Serge Petrovich, although not as
+often, he is tormented by restless thoughts, and, from time to time,
+he is obliged to defend his "fortress." But usually he is contented
+with watching life, that is to say, that part which he can see from
+his window. Nothing troubles the tranquillity of his mind, not even
+the desire to live like other men. One day, he speaks of his
+theories to a simple, uneducated young girl whom he thinks of
+marrying. She is astonished and stupefied by them. She perceives
+that he leads an insipid and morose life. Andrey Nikolayevich does
+not take into account or understand the stupefaction of the young
+girl.
+
+"This then is your life?" she asks, incredulously.
+
+"This is it. What more could you want?"
+
+"But it must be terribly monotonous to live in that way, apart from
+the world."
+
+"What good does one find in mankind? Nothing but tedium. When I am
+alone, I am my own master, but among men you never know what
+attitude to take to please them. They drag you into drunkenness,
+into gambling; then they denounce you to your superiors. I, however,
+love calmness and frankness. Some of them accept bribes and allow
+themselves to become corrupt; I do not like that.... I adore
+tranquillity."
+
+Moreover, he does not marry the young girl. He gives her up because
+he is afraid of the incumbrances that housekeeping will bring.
+
+In "The Grand Slam" four provincial "intellectuals" are locked up in
+the same fortress, and, by playing cards, they escape the terrible
+problems of a life which is inimical to them. Their existence has
+been passed among these cards, which, by a mysterious phenomenon,
+have become real living creatures to them. One of the players has
+dreamed all through his life of getting a grand slam, when, one
+evening, he sees he has the necessary cards in his hand. He has but
+to take one more card, the ace of spades, and his dream will be
+realized. But at the very moment when he is stretching forth his
+hand to take it, he falls down dead. His partners are terrified. One
+of them, a timorous and exact old man, named Jacob Ivanovich, is
+particularly struck. A thought comes to him; he quickly rises, after
+making sure that it was the ace of spades that the dead man was
+going to take, and cries:
+
+"But he will never know that he was going to get the ace of spades
+and a grand slam! Never.... Never...."
+
+"Then it appeared to Jacob Ivanovich that, up to this moment, he had
+never understood what death was. Now he understood, and what he saw
+was senseless, horrible, and irreparable!... The dead man would
+never know!"
+
+The poignant irony of this story is not unusual with Andreyev.
+
+It is again found in the short and symbolic story "The Laugh." A
+student, profiting by the fact that it is carnival time, disguises
+himself as a Chinaman and goes to the house of the girl he loves.
+The mute, immobile, and stupidly calm mask, and the whole "get-up"
+are so funny, that the unfortunate man rouses irresistible laughter
+wherever he goes. The young girl cannot help herself, and, while
+listening to his very touching and sincere declaration, which, at
+any other time, would have brought tears to her eyes, she bursts out
+laughing and cannot again become serious, although she realizes that
+a living and unhappy being is hidden under this impassive and
+foolish Chinaman's mask.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In "The Lie" we see a man who, by isolating himself from life, has
+lost the feeling of reality, and all capacity of discerning the true
+from the false. He suffers terribly from the feeling that something
+unknown is happening around him. This man, who would be ready to
+sacrifice everything, even his life, in order to know truth, guesses
+the lie that comes between him and the person who is dearest to him.
+He falls into a despair that soon turns to fury. In order to recover
+his calm, he begs the girl he loves, whom he suspects of having
+deceived him, to reveal the whole truth to him. But he cannot
+believe her protestations of innocence. One word bursts from his
+being, breaks forth from the depths of his soul: "Lies! Lies! Lies
+everywhere!"
+
+"In looking at her beautiful pure forehead," he writes, "I dreamed
+that truth was there, on the other side of that thin barrier, and I
+felt a senseless desire to break that barrier and at least to see
+the truth. Lower down, beneath her white breast, I heard the beating
+of her heart, and I had a mad desire to open her breast so that I
+could read, at least once, what there was at the bottom of her
+heart."
+
+He ends by killing that which he loved, and thinks that he is
+satisfied: he believes he has killed the lie.
+
+In "The Thought" we see the gradual development of insanity during
+the period when it is doubtful, when the will is almost entirely
+annihilated and replaced by a fixed idea, and when conscience is not
+entirely abolished. Dr. Kerzhenzev kills his friend, obeying a
+mental suggestion, which now forbids him to do it, now urges him on.
+Then, like the "half-insane" or those sick people who feign madness
+in order more easily to attain their end, this man suggests to
+himself that he is in reality insane. This idea gets a hold on him
+after the murder and fills his soul with mortal terror, the exposure
+of which forms the most supremely pathetic part of the whole story.
+All this drama of a foundering intelligence, complicated by bizarre
+contradictions, is developed with a penetrating power of analysis.
+
+Andreyev tells us that on the day of judgment the alienists are
+divided as to the insanity of Kerzhenzev. The story ends at this
+place. But the principal interest of the story does not lie in this
+or that solution of the problem, which is not mysterious, for the
+doctor is doubtlessly abnormal, and it is only as to the degree of
+insanity that there can be any question. The main interest lies in
+another direction, in the subtle analysis of this special mental
+condition, which is done with consummate art.
+
+This story had the honor of occupying an entire meeting of the
+psychiatrists attached to the Academy of Medicine of St. Petersburg.
+According to the report of Dr. Ivanov, the assembly was almost
+unanimous in declaring the murderer insane. Another psychiatrist,
+who thought he saw proofs of an abnormal mentality in all the
+stories of Andreyev, pronounced the same verdict against Dr.
+Kerzhenzev, in a meeting of doctors.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"All of priest Vassily Fiveyisky's life was weighed down by a cruel
+and enigmatic fatality,"--it is thus that the story, "The Life of a
+Pope," opens. "As if struck by an unknown malediction, he had from
+his youth been made to carry a heavy burden of sorrows, sickness and
+misfortunes; he was solitary among men as a planet is among planets;
+a peculiar and malevolent atmosphere surrounded him. Son of an
+obscure, patient, and submissive village priest, he also was patient
+and submissive, and he was a long time in recognizing the
+particular rancour of destiny. He fell rapidly and arose slowly.
+Twig by twig he restored his nest. Having become a priest, the
+husband of a good woman, the father of a son and a daughter, he
+thought that all was going well with him, that all was solidly
+established, and that he would remain thus forever. And he blessed
+God."
+
+But fate was always on the watch for him. It had showed him
+happiness only to take it away again. After seven years of
+prosperity, his little son is drowned one summer's day in the river.
+Death and nameless misfortunes again invade the home of Vassily. One
+does not live there any more, one prowls around gropingly in a
+mournful stupor. From morning till evening, his wife comes and goes,
+silent and indifferent to everything, as if she were looking for
+some one or something.
+
+In losing his son, poor Vassily has also lost his wife, his helpmate
+and friend, for the unfortunate woman takes to drink. The faith of
+the priest holds in this terrible trial. But his misery increases
+immeasurably. The vice of his wife, his own sick weakness, excite
+the meanness of the people. Insults have to be borne in silence,
+tears hidden. At home, the priest's wife has no rest. She has the
+idea that she can have another son who will take the place of the
+dead one and be a balm to her broken heart. In her alcoholic desire,
+a prey to savage fury, she demands that her husband gratify her
+desire.
+
+"Give him to me, Vassily! Give him back to me, I tell you...."
+
+At last her desire is realized: a son is born to her; but the child,
+conceived in madness, is born half-witted. The mother takes to drink
+again, and the despair of Vassily increases. One day the unfortunate
+woman hangs herself. The pope comes in, however, in time to save
+her; but now another noose has tightened itself about the priest's
+heart. One question oppresses him:
+
+"Why these sufferings? If God exists, and if God is love, how is
+such misery possible?"
+
+Vassily's faith trembles. He decides to leave his cassock, to fly,
+to put his idiot son out to board and to start life over again. This
+resolution relieves him. His wife breathes easier. It seems to him
+that she also can begin a new life. But fate does not loosen its
+reins.
+
+One day, on coming back from the harvest, he finds his house burned.
+His wife, in a drunken stupor, had probably set fire to it. She is
+dying of her burns. Vassily can only sigh. This new misfortune does
+not put an end to the priest, but rather inspires him. His old faith
+comes back, he sees in this supreme test a predestination. He kneels
+down and cries:
+
+"I believe! I believe! I believe!"
+
+From that time on he devotes himself entirely to prayer and
+macerations. He lives in perpetual ecstasy. The people around him
+understand nothing of this change and are astounded. Every one of
+them is waiting for something unusual. And their waiting is not in
+vain. One day, when he is delivering the funeral oration of a
+workingman, who has been suddenly killed, Vassily abruptly
+interrupts the ceremony, approaches the corpse, which has begun to
+decay, and addresses it thus three times:
+
+"I tell you: arise!"
+
+But the dead man does not move. Then the priest looks at this inert
+and deformed corpse. He notices the fetid odor that arises from it,
+the odor of the slow but sure decomposition, and he has a sort of
+sudden revelation. The scepticism which, for a long time, has been
+brooding in his heart suddenly is transformed into absolute
+negation, and addressing himself to Him in whom he had believed,
+Vassily cries out:
+
+"Thou wishest to deceive me? Then why did I believe? Why hast Thou
+kept me in servitude, in captivity, all of my life? No free thought!
+No feeling! No hope! All with Thee! All for Thee! Thee alone! Well,
+appear! I am waiting! I am waiting!... Ah! Thou dost not want to?
+Very well...."
+
+He does not finish. In a burst of savage madness he rushes forth
+from the now empty church. He rushes straight ahead and finally
+falls in the middle of the road. Death has put an end to his
+miseries.
+
+"Silence" also shows us a priest, stubborn in his prejudices. This
+man, Father Ignatius by name, is a sort of rude and authoritative
+Hercules. All tremble before his stern air, except his daughter, who
+has decided to continue her studies in St. Petersburg, against the
+will of her father. Coming back to her home after a long absence,
+she wanders about, sad and silent. For days at a time she wanders
+about, pale and melancholy, speaking little, seeking solitude. She
+hides what oppresses her; she keeps her secret from all. One night,
+she throws herself under a train, taking her secret with her.
+
+Her grief-stricken mother gets a paralytic stroke which transforms
+her into a sort of living corpse. The father, crushed by these two
+catastrophes, which have destroyed all the joy of his life, becomes
+the prey of a singular mental state: his conscience revolts against
+the severe maxims and the pitiless prejudices that he has always
+defended. Tender love, which he has hitherto concealed under his
+pride, now softens him; he needs affection, and a vague feeling
+suggests to him that he himself is to blame for all of these
+misfortunes. His past life, his daughter, and his wife appear to
+him as so many enigmas which raise anguishing questions in his
+heart. He calls out, but no one answers. A death-like silence has
+invaded the presbytery, and this silence is especially dreadful near
+the paralyzed wife, who is dying without speaking. Even her eyes do
+not betray a single thought. Gradually, a terrible desire to know
+why his daughter committed suicide seizes him. At twilight, softly,
+in his bare feet, he goes up to the room of his dead daughter and
+speaks to her. He entreats her to tell him the truth, to confess to
+him why she was always so sad, why she has killed herself. Only the
+silence answers him. Then he rushes to the cemetery, where his
+daughter's tomb irresistibly attracts him; again he implores, begs,
+threatens. For a moment he thinks that a vague answer arises from
+the earth; he places his ear on the rough turf.
+
+"Vera, tell me!" he repeats in a loud and steady voice.
+
+"And now Father Ignatius feels with terror that something
+sepulchrally cold is penetrating his ear and congealing his brain;
+it is Vera, who is continually answering him with the same prolonged
+silence. This silence becomes more and more sinister and restless,
+and when Father Ignatius arises with an effort, his face is as livid
+as death."
+
+Crushed by the same blind destiny which annihilated the powerful
+personality of Father Ignatius, the piteous and tearful hero of "The
+Marseillaise" moves us even more than does the old priest. The poor
+fellow cannot grasp the reason for the ferocity of stupid fate,
+which unrelentingly preys upon him. Arrested by mistake as a
+revolutionist and condemned to deportation, he becomes an object of
+derision to his comrades. However, gradually, he finds the strength
+to share the severe privations of his companions who have sacrificed
+themselves to their ideal of justice and liberty. And, on his
+death-bed, he is elated by all that he has endured; he dreams of
+liberty, which, up to this time, had been indifferent to him, and
+asks them to sing the Marseillaise over his grave.
+
+"He died, and we sang the Marseillaise. Our young and powerful
+voices thundered forth this majestic song of liberty, accompanied by
+the noise of the ocean which carried on the crests of its waves
+towards 'dear France,' pale terror and blood-red hope.
+
+"It became our standard forever, the picture of this nonentity with
+the hare's body and the man's heart.
+
+"On your knees to the hero, friends and comrades!
+
+"We sang. The guns, with their creaking locks, were pointed
+menacingly at us; the steel points of the bayonets were pointed at
+our hearts. The song resounded louder and louder, with increasing
+joy. Held in the friendly hands of the 'strugglers,' the black
+coffin slowly sank into the earth.
+
+"We sang the Marseillaise!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The two main characters of "The Gulf," a student and a school-girl,
+are walking and discussing rather deep things, such as immortality
+and the beauty of pure and noble love. They feel some sadness in
+speaking about these things, but love appears more and more luminous
+to them. It rises before their eyes, as large as the world, bursting
+forth like the sun and marvelously beautiful, and they know that
+there is nothing so powerful as love.
+
+"You could die for the woman you loved?" asked Zinochka.
+
+"Of course," replies Nemovetsky unhesitatingly, in a frank and
+sincere voice, "and you?"
+
+"I too!" She remains pensive a moment. "To die for the one you love,
+that is a great happiness! Would that that were to be my destiny!"
+
+Gradually night falls. Nemovetsky and his companion lose their way
+in the woods; they finally arrive in a clearing, where three
+filthy-looking men are seated about an empty bottle. These
+intoxicated men, whose wicked eyes light up with a brutal envy of
+enjoyment and love of destruction, try to quarrel with Nemovetsky,
+and one of them ends by striking him full in the face with his fist.
+Zinochka runs away. His heart full of terror, Nemovetsky can hear
+the shrieks of his friend, whom the vagabonds have caught. Then a
+feeling of emptiness comes over him, and he loses consciousness. Two
+of the men throw him into a ravine.
+
+An hour later, Nemovetsky regains consciousness; he gets up with
+great pain, for he is badly wounded. He remembers what has happened.
+Fright and despair seize him. He begins to run and call for help
+with all his strength, at the same time looking among all the
+bushes, when at his feet, he sees a dim, white form. It is his
+companion, who lies there motionless. He falls down on his knees and
+touches her. His hand encounters a nude body, damp and cold, but
+still living. It seems to grow warm at his touch. He pictures to
+himself with abominable clearness what the men have done. A feeling
+of strange strength circulates in his members. On his knees in front
+of the young girl, in the obscurity of the forest, he tries to bring
+her back to life, calling her sweet names, caressing her hair,
+rubbing her cold hands.
+
+"With infinite precautions, but also with deep tenderness, he tries
+to cover her with the shreds of her torn dress, and the double
+sensation of the cloth and the nude body are as keen as a sword and
+as inconceivable as madness. And now he cries for help, now he
+presses the sweet and supple body to his breast. His unconscious
+abandonment unchains the savageness of his passion. He whispers in a
+low voice, 'I love you, I love you.' And throwing himself violently
+upon her lips, he feels his teeth entering her flesh.
+
+"Then, in the sadness and impetuousness of the kiss, the last bit of
+his mind gives way. It seems to him that the lips of the young girl
+tremble. For an instant, a terrible terror fills his soul and he
+sees a horrible gulf yawning at his feet.... And he hurls himself
+into the mad throes of his insane passion."
+
+The account of the collegian, which forms the plot of the story "In
+the Fog," is even more daring in its realism. It actually oppresses
+the reader, not so much by certain details that provoke disgust, as
+by the analysis of the sufferings of an unfortunate young man, whose
+mind is pure, but who has let himself be dragged into excesses which
+are followed by a sickness of ill name. Severely reprimanded by his
+father, the poor young fellow, overcome with sorrow, the victim of
+an instinct which he could not conquer, ends his days in a most
+horrible way: one evening, he leaves home and goes out into the
+streets in an adventuresome spirit. A half-intoxicated prostitute
+touches him in passing; he follows her. As they go along, a
+conversation starts up, and the young man, although she is repugnant
+to him, goes home with her. Once in her room, a violent quarrel
+starts up and he kills her, and then commits suicide.
+
+These two stories, especially "The Gulf," caused many lively
+discussions on the part of the public, and then in the newspapers.
+Mr. Bourenine, the well-known critic of the "Novoye Vremya," says
+that he received from several correspondents a series of letters
+which blamed Andreyev vehemently and requested that this "skunk" of
+literature be called to order according to his deserts. These
+protestations were reënforced by an ardent letter from Countess
+Tolstoy, the wife of the great author, who reproached Andreyev for
+having so complacently painted such sombre pictures, with such low
+and violent scenes, all of which tended to pervert youth. The
+writers were not the only ones to take offence. Two important
+Russian newspapers organized a sort of inquiry, and they published
+many of the answers received from the young people of both sexes,
+but these were all favorable to Andreyev.
+
+In truth, all these judgments are too passionate. It is true that
+"most of the critics have understood Andreyev only in a superficial
+manner," as Tolstoy rightfully asserted. The double impression, for
+instance, produced by "The Gulf," is the result of a simple
+misunderstanding. Those who think that the adventure of young
+Nemovetsky is a slice of life and characterizes certain
+psychological states, have, without a doubt, the right to judge this
+story as an indiscretion, and to reproach the author with a
+deviation from morality; but Andreyev has not taken his hero from
+reality; he has not tried to give us a picture of manners, but has
+expressed an idea, born in his brain under the influence of the
+philosophy of Nietzsche. It illustrates the terrible power and the
+brutality of a dormant instinct lurking in the purest minds.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Besides, "The Gulf" and "In the Fog" are compositions which are
+exceptional in the work of Andreyev. The idea that he mostly
+presents is not the power of bestial instincts, but rather the
+indestructible vitality of human feelings and aspirations towards a
+better existence, which sometimes comes to light among the most
+miserable and depraved people, and even among those who are in the
+most abject material condition.
+
+In the destiny of these beings, there are, however, rays of hope.
+The slightest incident serves to transform them; suddenly their
+hearts begin to beat happily, tears of tenderness moisten their
+eyes, they vaguely feel the existence of something luminous and
+good. A profound sensibility, an ardent love of life bursts forth
+in their souls. This sensibility, this attachment to existence, form
+the theme of four touching stories: "He Was," "Petka in the
+Country," "The Cellar," and "The Angel."
+
+The action of "He Was" takes place in a hospital, where a deacon, a
+foolishly debonair man, who is attached to his stunted existence,
+and a pessimistic merchant, thoroughly satiated, are at the point of
+death. The deacon has an incurable sickness, and his days are
+numbered. But he does not know it, and speaks with enthusiasm of the
+pilgrimage he is going to make after he is cured, and of the
+apple-tree in his garden, which he expects will bear a great deal of
+fruit. The fourth Friday of Lent he is taken into the amphitheatre.
+He comes back, very much moved and making the sign of the cross.
+
+"Ah! my brothers," he says, "I am all upset. The doctor made me sit
+down in a chair and said to the students: 'Here you see a sick man.'
+Ah! how painful it was to hear him add: 'He was a deacon!'"
+
+"The unfortunate man stopped, and continued in a choking voice: '"He
+was a deacon," the doctor told them. He told them the story of my
+whole life, he even spoke about my wife. It was terrible! One would
+have said that I was dead already, and that he was talking over my
+coffin.'
+
+"And as the deacon is thus speaking, all of the others see clearly
+that he is going to die. They see it as clearly as if death itself
+was standing there, at the foot of the bed...."
+
+The merchant is a very different sort of man: he does not believe in
+God; he has had enough of life and is not afraid of death. All of
+his strength he has spent unnecessarily, without any appreciable
+result, without joy. When he was young he had stolen meat and fruit
+from his master. Caught in the act, he had been beaten, and he
+detested those who had struck him. Later on, having become rich, he
+crushed the poor with his fortune and scorned those who, on falling
+into his hands, answered his hate with scorn. Finally, old age and
+sickness had come; people now began to steal from him, and he, in
+turn, beat those whom he caught terribly. And thus his life had been
+spent; it had been nothing but a series of transgressions and
+hatreds, where the flames of desire, in dying out, had left nothing
+but cold ashes in his soul. He refuses to believe that any one can
+love this existence, and he disdainfully looks at the sallow face of
+the deacon, and mutters: "Fool!" Then, he looks at the third man in
+the room, a young student who is asleep. This student never fails to
+embrace his fiancée, a pretty young girl, whenever she comes to see
+him. As he looks the merchant, more bitterly than before, repeats:
+"Fool!"
+
+But death approaches; and this man who thinks himself superior and
+who scorns the deacon because he dreams of light and the sun, now
+feels disturbed in his turn. In making up the balance-sheet of this
+existence which, up to this time, he believed he hated, he remembers
+a stream of warm light which, during the day, used to come in
+through the window and gild the ceiling; and he remembers how the
+sun used to shine on the banks of the Volga, near his home. With a
+terrible sob, beating his hands on his breast, he falls back on his
+bed, right against the deacon, whom he hears silently weeping.
+
+"And thus they wept together. They wept for the sun which they were
+never to see again, for the apple-tree with fruit which they were
+not going to eat, for the shadow that was to envelop them, for dear
+life and cruel death!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Petka--the hero of "Petka in the Country"--is, at ten years of age,
+a barber's apprentice. He does not yet smoke as does his thirteen
+year old friend Nicolka, whom he wants to equal in everything.
+Petka's principal occupation, in the rare moments when the shop is
+empty, is to look out of the window at the poorly dressed men and
+women who are sitting on the benches of the boulevard. In the
+meantime, Nicolka goes through the streets of ill fame, and comes
+back and tells Petka all his experiences. The precocious knowledge
+of Nicolka astonishes the child, whose one ambition is to be like
+his friend one of these days. While waiting, he dreams of a vague
+country, but he cannot guess its location nor its character. And no
+one comes to take him there. From morning till evening he always
+hears the same jerky cry: "Some water, boy!"
+
+But one morning his mother, the cook Nadezhda, tells the barber that
+her master and mistress have told her to take Petka to the country
+for a few days. Then begins for him an enchanted existence. He goes
+in bathing four times a day, fishes, goes on long walks, climbs
+trees, rolls in the grass. When, at the end of a week, the barber
+claims his apprentice, the child does not understand: he has
+completely forgotten the city and the dirty barber-shop; and the
+return is very sad. Again is heard the jerky cry: "Some water, boy!"
+followed by a menacing murmur of "Come! Come!" if the child spills
+any of the water, or has not understood the orders.
+
+"And, during the night, in the place where Petka and Nicolka sleep
+side by side, a weak little voice speaks of the country, of things
+that do not exist, of things that no one has ever heard of or
+seen!..."
+
+"The Cellar" is inhabited by absolutely fallen people. A baby has
+just been born there. With down-bent necks, their faces
+unconsciously lighted up by strangely happy smiles, a prostitute and
+a miserable drunkard look at the child. This little life, "weak as a
+fire in the steppe," calls to them vaguely, and it seems to promise
+them something beautiful, clear, and immortal. Among the inhabitants
+of this cellar, the most unfortunate of all, is a man named
+Kizhnakov; he is pale, sickly, worn by work, almost devoured by
+suffering and alcohol; death already lies in wait for him. The most
+terrible thing for this man is the necessity of having to begin to
+live again each day. He would like to lie down all day and think of
+suicide under the heap of rags that serve him as a covering. He
+would like best to have some one come up back of him, and shoot him.
+He fears his own voice and his own thoughts. And it is on him that
+the baby produces the deepest impression. Since the birth of the
+child Kizhnakov does not sleep any more; he tries to protect himself
+from the cold, and weeps softly, without sadness and without
+convulsions, like those who have pure and innocent hearts, like
+children.
+
+"'Why do I weep?' he asks himself.
+
+"Not finding a suitable answer, he replies: 'It is thus....'
+
+"And the meaning of his words is so deep that a new flood of tears
+come to the eyes of the man whose life is so sad and solitary."
+
+We find the same theme again in "The Angel." A child who also lives
+in a cellar comes back from a Christmas-tree; he brings with him a
+toy, and a pretty little wax angel, which he shows to his father.
+The latter has seen better days, but in the last few years he has
+been sick with consumption, and now he is awaiting death, silent and
+continually exasperated by the sight of social injustice. However,
+the delight of the child infects the father, and both of them have a
+feeling "of something that joins all hearts into one, and does away
+with the abyss which separates man from man, and makes him so
+solitary, unfortunate, and weak." The poor dying man seems to hear a
+voice from this better world, where he once lived and from which he
+had been sent forever.
+
+But these are only the dreams of a dying man, the last rays of light
+of the life which is being extinguished. The ray, penetrating this
+sick soul, is like the weak sunlight which passes through the dirty
+windows of a dark hovel.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In his two stories, "The Stranger" and "The Obscure Future,"
+Andreyev shows us two men of entirely different character, animated
+by generous feelings and a firm will. One of them, a young student,
+being disgusted with the miseries of Russian life and having decided
+to expatriate himself, suddenly changes his mind, as a result of the
+patriotism of one of his friends, a Servian, named Raiko. He makes
+it his duty never to leave his country, although life there is so
+terrible and hopeless. There is, in this new feeling, an immense joy
+and a terrible sadness. The other, the hero of the second story,
+having one day expressed to his father the hatred he has for the
+bourgeois life that he is leading, leaves his family, who love him,
+in order to penetrate the "obscure future."
+
+Evidently, these are people who are fitted to struggle. However,
+these strugglers, so infrequent in the work of Andreyev, have, in
+spite of all, something sickly and savage in them; instead of real
+fighting courage, they possess only extreme audaciousness, mystical
+rapture, or nervous exaltation. The "obscure future" toward which
+their eyes are turned is not lighted up by the rays of faith and
+hope.
+
+The question is whether Andreyev himself believes in the triumph of
+the elements of life over the elements of death, the horror of which
+he excels in portraying for us. It is in the following manner that
+he expresses himself in one of his essays entitled, "Impressions of
+the Theatre": "In denying everything, one arrives immediately at
+symbols. In refuting life, one is but an involuntary apologist. I
+never believe so much in life as when I am reading the father of
+pessimism, Schopenhauer! As a result, life is powerful and
+victorious!... It is truth that always triumphs, and not falsehood;
+it is truth which is at the basis of life, and justifies it. All
+that persists is useful; the noxious element must disappear sooner
+or later, will inevitably disappear."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+What, then, constitutes the essence of Andreyev's talent is an
+extreme impressionability, a daring in descriptions of the negative
+sides of reality, melancholy moods and the torments of existence. As
+he usually portrays general suffering and sickness rather than
+definite types, his heroes are mostly incarnations and symbols. The
+very titles of some of his stories indicate the abstract character
+of his work. Such are: "Silence," "The Thought," and "The Lie." In
+this respect he has carried on the work of Poe, whose influence on
+him is incontestable. These two writers have in common a refined and
+morbid sensibility, a predilection for the horrible and a passion
+for the study of the same kind of subjects,--solitude, silence,
+death. But the powerful fantasy of the American author, which does
+not come in touch with reality, wanders freely through the whole
+world and through all the centuries of history. His heroes take
+refuge in half-crumbled castles, they look at the reader from the
+top of craggy rocks, whither their love of solitude has led them;
+even death itself is not a repulsive skeleton, but rather a majestic
+form, full of grandiose mystery. Andreyev, on the other hand, but
+rarely breaks the bounds which unite him to reality. His heroes are
+living people, who act, and whose banal life ends with a banal
+death. This realism and this passionate love of truth make the
+strength and the beauty of all his work.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+A certain harmony between the imaginative and the real element is
+characteristic of the best of Andreyev's productions, especially his
+last stories: "The Red Laugh," "The Governor," "The Shadows," and
+"The Seven Who Were Hanged."
+
+"The Red Laugh" is the symbol, the incarnation, of the bloody and
+implacable cynicism of war. The psychologist of the mysterious has,
+in these pages, recorded the terrifying aspects of the Manchurian
+campaign, which one could not have foreseen in all of its horror. He
+has shown in a lasting manner the poor human creature torn from his
+home, debased to the rôle of a piece of mechanism. Not knowing where
+he is being led to, he goes, making murderous gestures, the meaning
+of which he does not know, without even having the illusory
+consolation of possible personal bravery, being killed by the shots
+of an invisible enemy, or, what is worse, being killed by the shots
+of his own comrades--and all of this, automatically, stupidly. The
+feeling of terror, the somewhat mystical intuition of events which,
+at times, seem to be paradoxes in the other works of Andreyev, are
+perfectly adapted to this terribly real representation of the
+effects of war.
+
+The inner drama which Andreyev analyzes in "The Governor" makes a
+bold contrast with the violent pages of "The Red Laugh," the savage
+powers of which attain the final limits of horror.
+
+The governor has during his whole life been a loyal and strict
+servant of the Tsar. On the day of an uprising he mercilessly beat
+the enemies of his master; he blindly accomplished what he thought
+was his duty. But, since that bloody day, a new and unceasing voice
+speaks in his conscience. The irreparable act has forever isolated
+him from his fellow-creatures, and even from his friends who
+congratulate him upon his fine conduct. A stranger to all that is
+happening around him, he is left alone to fight with his conscience,
+which soon crushes him with all the weight of remorse. He knows that
+he has been condemned by a revolutionary tribunal. A young girl who
+is a stranger to him writes him a compassionate letter: "You are
+going to be killed," she says, "and that will be justice; but I have
+great pity for you." This discerning and youthful sympathy
+penetrates his heart, which finally opens--alas, too late,--to
+justice and pity.
+
+This marks the beginning of a terrible agony. The governor makes no
+effort to escape from the fatal judgment. Always alone, he
+contemplates his terrible distress and awaits the coming of the
+judiciary. He feels that he has incurred universal blame, and at
+times he comes to wish for death, which surprises him suddenly as he
+is turning the corner of a street:
+
+"The whole thing was short and simple, like a scene from a
+moving-picture play. At a cross-ways, close by a muddy spot, a
+hesitating voice called to the governor:
+
+"'Your honor!'
+
+"'What?'
+
+"He stopped and turned his head: two men who had come from behind a
+wall were crossing the street, and were shuffling along in the mud
+towards him. One of them had in his left hand a piece of folded
+paper; his other hand was in his pocket.
+
+"And immediately, the governor knew that death had come; and they
+knew that the governor knew.
+
+"While keeping the paper in his left hand the unknown man took a
+revolver out of his pocket with difficulty.
+
+"The governor glanced about him; he saw a dirty and deserted square,
+with bits of grass growing in the mud, and a wall. But what did it
+matter, it was too late! He gave a short but deep sigh, and stood
+erect again, fearless, but without defiance.... He fell, with three
+shots in his body."
+
+This drama of conscience is set forth with admirable sureness of
+analysis, and the author has been able to represent with impressive
+intensity the mysterious fatality which demands the death of the
+guilty one.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+It is this same fatality, under whose hand all men are equal, which
+makes the hero of "The Shadows," a young terrorist who has taken
+refuge in a house of ill-fame, obey the strange desire of his
+bed-companion.
+
+"Stay with me!" cries the young girl, in whom is incarnated his
+destiny, at the moment that he is going to leave the establishment
+in order to escape from the spies who are following him. "You are an
+honest man! And I've been waiting five years to meet an honest
+man.... Stay with me, because you belong to me."
+
+After a terrible internal combat the man yields to this unknown will
+which is oppressing him. A traitor to his party, he decides to
+become the companion of this painted girl, with whom he then gets
+drunk.
+
+"As long as I am in the shadows," he murmurs with the sombre
+resignation of an Andreyev hero, "I might as well remain there."
+
+At dawn, the police come to arrest him. And while his friend tries
+desperately to resist the agents of the force, he contemplates the
+brutal scene with an ironic smile.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"The Seven Who Were Hanged," written in 1908, right after the
+executions at Kherson and Warsaw, shows us pictures of terror and
+fright aptly described by the genius of Andreyev. This work has
+prodigious color and strength, and one experiences deep emotions on
+reading it. Five terrorists, captured at the very moment when they
+are going to assassinate a minister, and two criminals, are
+condemned to be hanged on the same day. The writer shows them to us
+tortured by the most horrible anguish, that which immediately
+precedes death. The word "madness" appears on every page: mystical
+madness of hallucination that hears music and voices, such is that
+of the young revolutionary Moussya; then there is the brutal madness
+of her comrades Kashirine and Golovine, who are ready to scream with
+terror; the madness of the victims, the frenzy of the executioners.
+
+The night before the execution the prisoners are visited by their
+relatives. The farewell which Serge Golovine takes of his family is
+rightly considered one of the most poignant and most cleverly
+constructed scenes that Andreyev has ever written.
+
+Followed by his mother, who totters along, Serge's father, a retired
+colonel, enters the room where visitors are received. Serge does not
+know that the colonel spent the whole night in preparing for this
+meeting. He has told his wife what to do: embrace her son, keep from
+crying, and say nothing. But the unhappy mother in the presence of
+her son cannot control her emotions; her eyes are strained and she
+breathes faster and faster.
+
+"Don't torture him!" commands the colonel.
+
+Several stupid and insignificant words are exchanged in order to
+hide the terrible suffering that they all are going through. The
+visit ends: the parents must bid their son good-bye forever. The
+mother gives her son a short kiss, then she shakes her head and
+murmurs, trembling:
+
+"'No, it is not that! It is not that!'
+
+"'Good-bye, Serge,' says his father.
+
+"They shake hands, and give each other a brief but hearty kiss.
+
+"'You...' begins Serge.
+
+"'What's that?' asks his father in a jerky voice.
+
+"'No, not like that. No, no! What was I going to say?' repeats his
+mother, shaking her head.
+
+"She was again seated, trembling.
+
+"'You...' continues Serge.
+
+"Suddenly, his face took on a pitiful expression, and he made a
+grimace like a child. The tears then came to his eyes.
+
+"'Father, you are a strong man!'
+
+"'What are you saying? What are you saying?' the colonel cries,
+frightened.
+
+"Then, as if he had been struck, the colonel's head sank down upon
+his son's shoulder. And they kissed each other, again and again, the
+one with white hair and the other with the prisoner's 'capote.'
+
+"'And I?' a hoarse voice brusquely asked.
+
+"They looked: the mother was standing, her head thrown back, and she
+was watching them with anger, almost hate.
+
+"'What is the matter, dear?' cried the colonel.
+
+"'And I?' she repeated. 'You two kiss each other, and I? You are
+men, aren't you? And I?'
+
+"'Mother!'
+
+"And Serge threw himself into his mother's arms....
+
+"The last words of the colonel were:
+
+"'I consecrate you to death, my boy! Die with courage, like a
+soldier!'"
+
+These few lines retrace one of the thousands of daily dramas which
+compose modern Russian history. The work of Andreyev brings to us a
+sad vibrant echo of the sobs which ring out in Russian dungeons. And
+this faithful portrayal of events, events so frequent that they no
+longer move us from our indifference, when we find the echo of them
+in the press, will raise in the conscience of Andreyev's readers a
+cry of horror and pity.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+It is principally in the dramas which he has written in the last few
+years[11] that Andreyev has developed with most force and clearness
+his favorite themes: the fear of living and dying, the madness of
+believing in free-will, and the nonsense of life, the weakness and
+vanity of which he depicts for us.
+
+ [11] Mention should be made of some of Andreyev's other dramas:
+ "To the Stars," "Anfissa," "Gaudeamus," and "Sava," plays of
+ uneven value, but with a strength of observation and analysis
+ which is not inferior to that shown in some of his best stories.
+
+The first of these works to appear was "The Life of Man," which is a
+tragic illustration of this pessimism.
+
+When the curtain rises, "some one in grey," holding a torch, informs
+the audience that Man is about to be born. From this time on, his
+life, lighted like a lamp, will burn until death extinguishes it.
+And Man will live, docile and obedient to the orders that come to
+him from On-High, through the intermediary of this "some one," whom
+he does not know. Each act of the play represents a period in the
+life of Man. In the first act, Man has acquired riches and glory,
+and is found feasting with his friends in his sumptuous home. The
+guests are enchanted with their host, whom they envy. But happiness
+is a fugitive shadow; it soon betrays the man, who becomes poor,
+loses his son, falls into the most abject misery, and dies in a
+filthy and infected cellar, surrounded by vile beggars, while the
+torch, held by "some one in grey," begins to grow weaker, and then
+dies out. And the man, conscious of his powerlessness to conquer
+fate, and conscious of his weakness in face of the mysterious "some
+one in grey," confounds in the same malediction God, Satan,
+Fatality, and Life, who have united to annihilate him.
+
+The themes of the "King of Famine" and "Black Masks" offer a certain
+analogy to the theme of "The Life of Man."
+
+From the top of a belfry the "King of Famine," in company with
+"Time" and "Death," incites a workingmen's revolt. He inspires them
+with an absolute certainty of victory, although he can see that the
+revolt will be quelled and the rebels crushed. Events do not delay,
+in fact, to verify the prophecy of the monarch. Locked up, the
+leaders of the revolt are condemned to death. The scene of judgment
+in the last act is one of the finest in the play. On one side are
+seated the sad and dull judges; on the other, the elegant public,
+which, with a feeling of fear and disgust, gazes at the unfortunates
+whom the King of Famine has robbed of almost all human semblance.
+And in this play, also, Death reaps a bountiful harvest.
+
+"Black Masks" is the study of a pathological case which Andreyev has
+dramatized after the fashion of de Maupassant's "The Horla."
+
+The Duke Lorenzo, young, noble, and the owner of a magnificent
+palace, is getting ready to receive his guests, to whom he is
+giving, on this evening, a masked ball. The masks arrive: they are
+all black, and all look alike. They all crowd around Lorenzo, whom
+this funereal sort of masquerade bothers extremely. He cannot find
+his wife among the guests. In fact, he does not recognize any of
+them until, to cap the climax, he meets his double, fights with him
+and dies, without being able to discern who is the real Lorenzo.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+At times, Andreyev tries to find the justification of life, and
+looks for it in mysticism. He then expounds a doctrine, according to
+which, truth is individual and perhaps conceived by each man,
+thanks to direct intuition. Such is the mystical truth which the
+author tries to affirm in "Anathema."
+
+The play opens with a scene between Anathema, the incarnation of
+Satan, and "He who guards the gates," behind which is the mystery of
+eternity. Anathema entreats the Guardian to give him access. But it
+is in vain that Anathema flatters and insults him; finally, Anathema
+declares that he will choose from among mankind a poor Jew, named
+David Leiser, will enrich him and, in order to prove the absolute
+nonsense of life, will make this man a living protestation against
+the work of Him who knows all. Disguised as the lawyer Nullius,
+Anathema comes down to earth and gives millions to David. The
+latter, the best of men, distributes his riches among the poor. But
+the beggars become more and more numerous, and soon David finds that
+he is as poor as he was before the visit of Anathema.
+
+In the meantime, the crowd of paupers, always increasing, ask more
+money from David; they demand miracles from this man, whose goodness
+has made him a saint, a superman, in their eyes. They bring him
+corpses and ask him to resuscitate them. David flees; the crowd
+follows and stones him to death. But, through his love for his
+fellow-men, David has acquired immortality, as "He who guards the
+gates" tells Anathema, when, in the last act, the evil archangel,
+beaten, returns to lie on the threshold of the inconceivable
+mysterious.
+
+This admirable play, born of a philosophical conception which
+relates it to Goethe's "Faust," has been received with particular
+interest. Andreyev, in writing it, has come very near to solving the
+question of the meaning of life, and its justification. And, to the
+person who ponders a while over this work, it will appear that it is
+not Anathema who entreats "Him who guards the gates" to reveal the
+mystery, but it is Andreyev himself, who, carried away by the force
+of his genius, has thrown himself, as if at an invincible wall,
+against this pitiless guardian, the guardian of the solution of the
+enigma of life.
+
+While "Anathema" is an abstract character, whose form resembles more
+an algebraic formula than a living process of human relations,
+another of Andreyev's plays, "The Love of the Student," written a
+short time before "Anathema," gives us a little picture of customs,
+alert and painted with the touch of a master.
+
+Gloukortzev, a young student, falls in love with a young girl whom
+her mother forces to become a prostitute. Gloukortzev, young and
+inexperienced, has not the slightest suspicion, till the young girl
+herself reveals to him the horrible truth. And, perhaps for the
+first time in his life, the gulf of necessity, toward which fate
+drives men, opens before him. He sees with horror that he cannot
+come to the rescue of the girl he loves, because he is poor himself.
+He cannot even buy her some food, when she tells him that she has
+eaten nothing since the night before. Placed before the absolute
+bare reality of life, Gloukortzev does not know what to do, and his
+comrades, good and upright fellows like himself, have not the means
+to help him.
+
+Several very successful scenes, in which the author blends the
+tragic with the comic, deserve, in this brief analysis, special
+attention. In the first act, there is a students' picnic at which
+Olga and Gloukortzev, still full of happiness, are present. The
+spectator is drawn by personal sympathy to the student Onoufry, a
+good fellow, always drunk, who makes fun of others and himself. We
+see him again in the second act, when Gloukortzev finds out about
+Olga's life. The poignant scene between the poor girl and her lover
+is heightened and softened by the arrival of the students, to whom
+Gloukortzev tells his sorrow. The last two acts take place in Olga's
+home. The mother brings her daughter a rich "client." And, in the
+next room, Gloukortzev suffers terribly, because he knows that his
+beloved is still leading an infamous life. In the same room, in the
+fourth act, we are present at an orgy, during which the student
+quarrels with an officer who has come to spend the night with Olga.
+But Onoufry, interfering in time, prevents an affray the issue of
+which would probably have been fatal. When the curtain falls,
+Gloukortzev, intoxicated, is weeping; at his side is Olga, also
+weeping, while Onoufry and the officer are singing: "The days of our
+lives are as short as the life of a wave."
+
+This drama, as well as most of Andreyev's plays, has been produced
+with great success in Russia and also in Europe.
+
+
+
+
+VII
+
+DMITRY MEREZHKOVSKY
+
+
+Unlike Gorky, Andreyev, and Tchekoff, Merezhkovsky was brought up in
+the midst of comfort and elegance; he received a correct and careful
+education; fate was solicitous for him, in that it allowed him to
+develop that spirit of objective observation and calm meditation
+which permits a man to look down on the spectacle of life, and
+indulge in philosophical speculations very often divorced from
+reality.
+
+The son of an official of the imperial court, Merezhkovsky was born
+in St. Petersburg in 1865. In this city he received his entire
+education, and here he gained the degree of bachelor of letters in
+1886.
+
+He began his literary career with some poems which won for him a
+certain renown. In 1888, he published his first collection, and then
+a second in 1892, "The Symbols." At the same time, he published
+several translations from Greek and Latin authors.
+
+As he was a friend of the unfortunate Nadson, and a pupil of the
+humanitarian Pleshcheyev, Merezhkovsky wrote at first under the
+influence of the liberal ideas of his early masters. His verses,
+always harmonious, and a little affected, soon belied this tendency
+and very frankly revealed his preferences. In the first collection
+of his poems, vibrant with generous ideas, he proclaimed that he
+wanted, above all, "the joy of life," and that a poet should not
+have any other cult than that of beauty.
+
+The poem called "Vera" was his first real success. The extreme
+simplicity of the plot--the unfortunate love of a young professor
+and of a young weakly girl who dies of consumption in the very
+flower of youth--and the very faithful reproduction of the
+intellectual life of Russia in 1880, give to this work the
+importance of a document in some ways almost historic.
+
+This poem is like a last tribute paid by the author to the
+humanitarian and realistic tendencies of Russian literature.
+Afterward, yielding to the inclinations of his nature and his taste
+for classical antiquity, Merezhkovsky insensibly changed. While
+acquiring, both in prose and in verse, an incontestable mastery, he
+could now look only for a cold and haughty beauty which was
+sufficient unto itself. The beginning was hard, but then all came
+easier. After critical articles on the trend of modern literature,
+he published "The Reprobate," a bold dithyrambic on ancient Greek
+philosophy. The poetry that followed was clearly Epicurean and in
+complete contradiction to the altruistic tendencies of the
+neo-Christian period, which found an arch enemy in Nietzsche, whose
+philosophy evidently influenced Merezhkovsky. However, this
+evolution did not have a very favorable effect on his poetry; it
+bordered on an art the clarity of which approached dryness, while at
+the same time its lack of tenderness reduced its symbolism to an
+artificial lyricism or to lifeless allegories.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Merezhkovsky works with untiring constancy to glorify antiquity. He
+has made excellent translations of Sophocles, Euripides, and of
+"Daphne and Chloe," that idyl of Longus that charmed both Goethe and
+Catherine II. He chooses the characters of his new poems from Greek
+and Latin mythology, and from themes inspired by an ardent love of
+paganism. He has written three prose works of considerable value:
+"The Death of the Gods," "The Resurrection of the Gods,"[12] and
+"Peter and Alexis." The general idea of all of these is the struggle
+between Greek polytheism and Christianity, between Christ and
+Antichrist, to use the author's expression, or, as Dostoyevsky used
+to say, between the "man-God" and the "God-man."
+
+ [12] Also called "The Romance of Leonardo da Vinci, the
+ Forerunner."
+
+This struggle touches upon the gravest problem that can occupy the
+human mind, and continually puts before us this perplexing question:
+"Should the purpose of life be only the search for happiness and
+beauty, or must we admit, as a law of nature, the dogma of suffering
+and death?" The former of these conceptions found its supreme
+formula in Greek paganism. The ultimate expansion of the latter
+leads us, on the one hand, to faith,--to the religion of sacrifice,
+and, on the other hand, into the domain of philosophy,--to the
+destruction of the desire to live, as conceived by Schopenhauer. It
+is this struggle between the two principles of Hellenic philosophy
+and Christian faith that Merezhkovsky has tried to show us by
+fixing, in his novels, the historic moments when this struggle
+reached its greatest intensity; and by making appear in these
+periods the characters who, according to him, are most typical and
+representative. For this reason he has chosen to give his readers
+pictures of the three epochs which he considers as culminating:
+first, the last attempt made to restore the worship of the gods a
+short time after the Emperor Constantine had brought about their
+ruin; secondly, the Renaissance, which, in spite of triumphant
+Christianity, shows us a glorious renewal of the arts and sciences
+of antiquity; finally, the beginning of the 18th century, the reign
+of Peter the Great, who tried to make a place for the gods of
+antiquity in Russia, where they were regarded with horror by the
+orthodox clergy.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In his novel, "The Death of the Gods," Merezhkovsky has painted the
+first of these epochs, the different phases of which revolve about
+the principal hero, the emperor Julian the Apostate. In "The
+Resurrection of the Gods" he develops, in sumptuous frescoes, the
+age of the Renaissance, personified by Leonardo da Vinci, who best
+typifies the character and tendencies of that time. In "Peter and
+Alexis," he retraces Russian life in the beginning of the 18th
+century, when it was dominated by the extraordinary character of
+Peter the Great.
+
+Julian the Apostate was one of the last idolaters of expiring
+paganism. But he could do nothing against the infatuation of the
+masses who were embracing the new religion, and it was in vain that
+he employed both so much kindness and so much violence in order to
+suppress Christianity. The reign of the gods was irrevocably ended.
+His soul filled with rage when he saw that he was powerless to
+change the course of events. He ended by undertaking a foolhardy
+expedition into Persia, thinking that that was the only way in which
+to defeat Christ, triumph over the "cursed" religion, and bring
+back victoriously the altars of the dead gods. But the Olympians on
+whom he had counted were of no service to him. According to the
+Christian legend, it was then, at the moment of death, that he cried
+out: "Galilean, thou hast conquered!" They say that he added: "Let
+the Galileans conquer, for the victory will be ours, ... later. The
+gods will come back ... we shall all be gods."
+
+This scene is one of the finest in the book. Surrounded by some
+faithful friends, Julian speaks, with his last breath, the words
+which one of these friends, the historian Ammianus Marcellinus, has
+recorded.
+
+"His voice was low but clear. His whole presence breathed forth
+intellectual triumph, and from his eyes there still gleamed
+invincible will. Ammianus's hand trembled as he wrote. But he knew
+that he was writing on the tables of history, and transmitting to
+future generations the words of a great emperor:
+
+"'Listen, friends; my hour is come, perhaps too soon. But you see
+that I, like an honest debtor, rejoice in giving back my life to
+Nature, and feel in my soul neither pain nor fear; nothing but
+cheerfulness, and a presentiment of eternal repose.... I have done
+my duty, and have nothing to repent. From the days when, like a
+hunted animal, I awaited death in the palace of Marcellum, in
+Cappadocia, up to the time when I assumed the purple of the Roman
+Cæsars, I have tried to keep my soul spotless. If I have failed to
+do all that I desired, do not forget that our earthly deeds are in
+the hands of Fate. And now I thank the Eternal Ruler for having
+allowed me to die, not after a long sickness nor at the hands of an
+executioner, but on the battlefield, in full youth, with work ahead
+of me still to be done.... And, my dear friends, tell both my
+friends and my enemies, how the Hellenes, endowed with divine
+wisdom, can die....'"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Revenge for the dying emperor was long in coming. But now, after
+eleven centuries, the prophecy of Julian is accomplished: heroic
+antiquity, everlastingly young, arises from the grave. On all sides
+the gods are resurrected. Their marble effigies, so long buried,
+reappear. Both the powerful and the humble receive them with
+enthusiasm and rejoice at seeing them. It is an irresistible
+outburst which carries with it all classes of the Italian people.
+Like a wind-blown flame, Greek genius inspires a new life in the
+world. But, while a sweeter and more humane moral feeling tries to
+liberalize the church, the sombre voice of Savonarola, hardened by
+the terrible corruption of manners, mounts ever more menacingly:
+
+"Oh, Italy! oh, Rome! I am going to deliver you up into the hands of
+a people who will efface you from among the nations. I see them, the
+enemies who descend like hungry tigers.... Florence, what have you
+done? Do you want me to tell you? Your iniquity has heaped up the
+measure; prepare for a terrible plague! Oh, Lord, thou art witness
+that I tried to keep off this crumbling ruin from my brothers; but I
+can do no more, my strength is failing me. Do not sleep, oh, Lord!
+Dost Thou not see that we are becoming a shame to the world? How
+many times we have called to Thee! How many tears we have shed!
+Where is Thy providence? Where is Thy goodness? Where is Thy
+fidelity? Stretch forth Thy helping hand to us!"
+
+And thus the antagonism between the "God-man" and the "man-God" of
+Hellenic paganism expresses itself more strongly than ever before.
+
+The picture of the Renaissance that Merezhkovsky paints for us is
+very full, very rich, at times even a little overburdened with
+episodes and people. One constantly rubs shoulders with Leonardo da
+Vinci, the duchess Beatrice of Este, regent of Milan, the favorite
+Lucrecia Crivelli, the mysterious Gioconda, Charles VIII, Louis XII
+and Francis I, kings of France, and also with Cæsar Borgia; we find
+here the preaching of Savonarola, the death of the pope Alexander
+VI (Borgia), Marshal Trivulce, the triumphal entry of the French
+into Milan, the diplomacy of Niccolo Machiavelli. In fact, as has
+been said above, there are too many events and characters.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Two centuries go by and now we come to the third novel, "Peter and
+Alexis." The scene is in Russia, and the hero is Peter the Great,
+whom Merezhkovsky represents as a worshipper of things Olympian. He
+gives a magnificent description of the orgies held by the emperor in
+honor of Bacchus and Venus, especially the latter, whose statue he
+expressly ordered from Rome and installed in the Summer Garden at
+St. Petersburg.
+
+In a veritable fairyland of avenues, of yoke-elms and flower-beds in
+geometric designs, of enormous baskets filled with the choicest
+flowers, of straight canals, of ponds, of islets, of magnificent
+fountains, such a fairyland as Watteau would have dreamed of, there
+is a Venetian fête with all sorts of fire-works and illuminations;
+small crafts, adorned with flags, are filled with men in golden
+garments, girded with swords, and wearing three-cornered hats and
+buckled shoes; and the women are dressed in velvet and covered with
+jewels.
+
+The Tsar himself opens the case, and helps in placing the goddess on
+her pedestal. Again, as two hundred years before in Florence, the
+resurrected goddess, Aphrodite, emerges from the grave. The cords
+stretch, the pulleys creak; she rises higher and higher. Peter is
+almost of the same superhuman height as the statue. And his face,
+close to that of Aphrodite, remains noble: the man is worthy of the
+goddess....
+
+"The Immortal One--Aphrodite--was still the same that she was on the
+hillside in Florence; she had progressed further and further, from
+age to age, from people to people, halting nowhere, till in her
+victorious march she had reached the very ends of the earth, the
+Hyperborean Scythia, beyond which there is naught but darkness and
+death...."
+
+But what miseries this magnificent façade conceals! Not far off, on
+an island in the river, one can see people who are watching the fête
+and who think that they are present at one of the spectacles
+forerunning doomsday. Among the crowd are seen the "raskolnik"
+Cornelius, old Vitalya of the "runners," deserters, the merchant
+Ivanov, the clerk Dokounine ... and several others. In the few
+remarks that they exchange, we can see that, for them, Peter the
+Great is the Antichrist, "the beast announced by the Gospel."
+
+Such is the tie that binds Peter the Great, Julian, and Leonardo
+together. But this tie is weakened by the fact that Peter, an
+essentially practical and utilitarian genius, was not the man to
+become inspired with Hellenic poetry, and if the author introduces
+the Tsar into the society of Julian the Apostate and of Leonardo da
+Vinci, it is because Peter the Great was one of those indefatigable
+strugglers, who, to attain their ends, put themselves above the
+obligations of ordinary morality, one of those supermen, who
+hesitate at nothing in satisfying the instincts of their egoisms, of
+their dominating wills. In fact, the heroes of Merezhkovsky's novels
+all belong in the category of the Nietzschean type of superman,
+which explains their philosophical relationship and the sort of
+trilogy which these three novels form. Thus, Julian the Apostate,
+who tried in vain during his life to make history repeat itself, by
+transplanting pagan traditions into a plot which had become unfit to
+receive them, and who died in the effort to preserve a faith--does
+not this man, then, incarnate that implacable pursuit of the
+"integral personality" so extolled by Nietzsche? Leonardo da Vinci,
+that great universal and keen mind, who gave himself over to all the
+impulses of his creative genius, not caring whether the impulses are
+worthy or harmful, appears as a luminous manifestation of that state
+of the soul "beyond good and bad" which characterizes the superman.
+And is not Peter the Great also a veritable superman; a man who,
+through his iron will, upset all the ancient institutions of aged
+Russia, and who did not even prevent the assassination of his son
+Alexis, inasmuch as he thought that it was for the good of his
+country?
+
+At all events, the interest and value of "Peter and Alexis" does not
+rest in its philosophic ideas and in the Nietzschean obsession, but
+rather in the art with which Merezhkovsky faithfully depicts the
+psychology of his heroes. The successive phases of this terrible
+tragedy lead up to a striking climax, and set off, one against the
+other, temperaments so entirely opposed that the reciprocal
+tenderness of the father and son is transformed finally into
+suspicion and hate, and the father resolves to sacrifice the life of
+his son to what appears to him to be the right of the State. The
+novel, although a little overburdened with details, is an excellent
+analysis of the customs of the Russia of former times.
+
+The source of the struggle between Peter and Alexis was known. Peter
+represented the West and the new ideas, while Alexis represented the
+Russia of old, rebellious to innovations which she considered
+dangerous. The author thus symbolizes the eternal conflict between
+the past and the future. He has analyzed with consummate art the
+characters of his two heroes. Peter is a man full of contrasts; he
+is, like many Russians, "a brute and a child," by turns violent and
+gentle, knavish and simple, cruel and kind, practical and mystical,
+proud and modest. Possessed of a prodigious activity, he conceives
+tremendous projects which he immediately wants to put into
+execution, inspecting everything, verifying everything, finding no
+care beneath his dignity, talking to the workingmen as if he were
+one of them, not making long speeches, and fiercely, with cries of
+rage, fighting dishonest contractors and tradesmen.
+
+Set over against this irascible father, endowed with herculean
+strength, the Tsarevich Alexis, thin, pale, and delicate, makes a
+sad figure. Most historians, following the example of Voltaire, have
+represented this prince as a narrow-minded person, a victim of the
+bigoted and intolerant education of the clergy. Merezhkovsky, a more
+discreet psychologist, does not rely on these superficial data, but
+shades the portrait admirably. He makes Alexis an intelligent man,
+not like his father, but a man with a comprehensive, subtle spirit.
+He probably was crushed by the powerful individuality of his father.
+As he is closely in touch with the people, and knows their
+aspirations, Alexis judges the work of his father with delicate
+insight: "My father hopes," he says, "to do everything in a great
+hurry. One, two, three, and the affair is settled. He does not
+realize that things done hastily do not last...."
+
+While Peter is aware of his unpopularity, his son is loved by the
+townspeople, the peasants, and the clergy. They say that, "Alexis is
+a man who seeks God and who does not want to upset everything: he is
+the hope of the nation."
+
+What the author has best shown in this novel is the degree to which
+the high society of this time was, under its exterior gorgeousness,
+barbarous and vulgar. A German girl, maid-of-honor to the wife of
+Alexis, defines it in the following way: "Brandy, blood, coarseness.
+It is hard to say which is most prominent,--perhaps it is
+coarseness." The boyards[13] she describes as: "Impudent savages,
+baptized bears, who only make themselves more ridiculous when they
+try to ape the Europeans."
+
+ [13] Russian noblemen.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+As is evident, these three works of Merezhkovsky belong to the
+"genre" of the historical and philosophical novel which demands,
+besides the power to call up past ages, a careful education and the
+gift of clear-sightedness. And the novelist completely fulfills
+these requirements. He knows his subject, he studies all the
+necessary documents with the greatest care and follows every story
+to its source; finally, before taking up his pen, he visits the
+countries and the cities in which the stories take place. Thus, in
+order better to understand Leonardo da Vinci, in order to live his
+life, the author of "The Resurrection of the Gods" traversed Italy
+and France from one end to the other, in the same way that he had
+traveled all over Greece so that he could give us a more life-like
+Julian. With the same care, he spent a long time reading Russian
+historical documents in order to present the reader with a better
+picture of the customs of the time of Peter the Great. The result is
+a series of historical pictures, almost perfect in their accuracy.
+If Merezhkovsky had no other merit than this faithful portrayal of
+the past, his novels even then would be read with interest and
+pleasure.
+
+Some critics have remarked that the most glaring defect in his books
+lies in their construction. His novels often disregard the laws
+relating to this sort of literature, which demand the clever
+grouping of the characters and events around a principal hero. It is
+true that this unity and the sense of proportion absolutely
+necessary for any sort of harmony are not to be found in his works.
+The details predominate to the detriment of important facts; the
+people of secondary importance are sometimes drawn better than the
+heroes themselves, whose adventures are entirely unconnected. There
+is a series of jumps from one situation to another, with gaps and
+interruptions of considerable length, which break the chain of
+events. It is for this reason that, instead of seeing a historical
+fresco, we see a whole gallery of sketches, executed with subtle
+artistry, but insufficiently connected with the main action of the
+drama.
+
+These observations apply especially to the first attempt of the
+young author: "The Death of the Gods"; "The Resurrection of the
+Gods" and "Peter and Alexis" are more skilfully composed. They
+indicate a stronger tendency towards unity; one feels that an
+infinitely firmer and more experienced brush has been used; the
+colors are richer and they do not suffer from that monotony of
+effect and of color so noticeable in "The Death of the Gods," where
+the author too often uses the same devices. As to the characters of
+Leonardo da Vinci and Peter the Great, they are very carefully
+worked out, and the events in the lives of the Italian master and
+the Russian Tsar are narrated with magnificent psychological
+analysis, which forces the reader to sympathize with the heroes even
+more than he would naturally.
+
+Merezhkovsky has also been accused of being over-educated. The
+innumerable documents presented do not bear closely enough upon the
+action, the result being that many of his pages read like mere
+annals. They interest the reader but do not move him. This is one
+reason why some critics, essentially different in spirit from
+Merezhkovsky, have believed themselves right in denying that he has
+any talent. But this accusation falls of itself in the face of the
+power of the inspiration which pervades his work, and the dramatic
+sense which he displays in setting forth the events and personages.
+It is impossible, for instance, to read without the deepest emotion
+the story of the last days of Leonardo da Vinci, where the author
+establishes the tragic contrast between the outward signs of glory,
+the superficial honors with which this genius is overwhelmed, and
+the moral solitude which afflicts him to the very end, which comes
+when he is among people who are strangers to his soul. All the
+childhood recollections of this same Da Vinci are full of charm.
+There is a veritable master spirit shown in the chapters in which
+the author portrays for us the enigmatic and seductive Mona Lisa.
+Finally, he has given us a relief of rare energy in the terrible
+struggle between Peter and Alexis, between the man of iron whom
+nothing can affect and his son, kind and timid, who, while having a
+mortal fear of his father, still loves him. As to certain pages,
+like those which describe the strange inner life of the Tsarina
+Marfa Matveyevna, "living by the light of candles, in an old house
+savouring of the oil of night-lamps, the dust and the putrification
+of centuries," these pages are a veritable tour de force if only
+because of the plasticity and richness of the author's vocabulary.
+
+Finally, what tragic horror there is in the supreme struggle where
+the emperor, the assassin of his son, sees his isolation and feels
+his weakness, "like a large deer gnawed at by flies and lice until
+the blood runs!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Besides his novels Merezhkovsky has published several essays, on
+Pushkin, Maykov, Korolenko, Calderon, the French neo-romanticists,
+Ibsen and others.... The most important of all are: "The Causes of
+the Decadence of Modern Russian Literature" and "Tolstoy and
+Dostoyevsky." He reveals here a fine and penetrating power of
+observation, which, however, is often obscured because of his
+obsession by Nietzschean ideas. Moreover, he does not hide his
+antipathy to the people whose literary tastes and ideas differ from
+his. From this characteristic comes strange exaggerations and a
+somewhat limited appreciation of men and events. An example of
+this, for instance, is the impression that he gives in his study of
+the causes of the decadence of modern Russian literature, the
+subject of which imposes upon the author the double task of
+looking up the causes of this decadence and also proving that it
+exists. He has not succeeded. In fact, it appears that this idea of
+decadence exists only in the minds of the author and of a small
+circle of writers who have the same ideas about the mission of
+literature. Merezhkovsky is absolutely right in all that he says
+about the fact that Russian writers live solitary, deprived of that
+precious excitation which is felt when one is in contact with
+original and different temperaments; but if you add to this, as he
+has done, the statement that Russia does not possess a literature
+worthy of the name, you go too far. Without being a great scholar,
+it is easy to perceive that our contemporary Russian authors are
+legitimate sons of Turgenev, Dostoyevsky and Tolstoy, and grandsons
+of Gogol, who himself is closely related to Pushkin. A democratic
+and humanitarian realism--widely separated from the Nietzscheism of
+Merezhkovsky--strongly characterizes the Russian lineage.
+
+In his book on Tolstoy and Dostoyevsky he spends a long time in
+differentiating between the artistic intuition of these two great
+masters, who are, according to him, the most profound expression of
+the popular and higher element of Russian culture.
+
+What strikes him first in Tolstoy is the insistence with which he
+describes "animal man." In a kind of "leitmotiv" Merezhkovsky has
+shown us the Tolstoyan characters individualized by very particular
+corporal signs. "Tolstoy," he says, "has, to the very highest
+degree, the gift of clairvoyance of the flesh; even when dead, the
+flesh has a tongue." He is the subtle painter of all sensations and
+he is a master in this domain. But his art diminishes singularly,
+and even disappears when he tries to analyze the soul within the
+flesh. Dostoyevsky, on the other hand, triumphs in his dialogue; one
+sees his characters because one shares all their sadness, their
+passions, their intelligence, and their sensibility. Dostoyevsky is
+the painter of the depths of the human soul, which he portrays with
+almost supernatural acuteness. And, as Tolstoy is "the seer of the
+flesh," so is Dostoyevsky "the seer of the soul."
+
+Having established this difference in principle, Merezhkovsky, by
+constant deduction, concludes, in consonance with his favorite idea,
+that Tolstoy personifies "the pagan spirit" at its height, while
+Dostoyevsky represents "the Christian spirit." There is a great deal
+of fine drawn reasoning in all of this, some very original ideas,
+but a great many paradoxes. Even the very personality of Tolstoy,
+the analysis of which occupies a large part of the book, is
+belittled in the hands of Merezhkovsky. Instead of a noble
+character, one sees a very vain person, preoccupied only with
+himself. It is in this simple way that Merezhkovsky explains the
+moral evolution which led Tolstoy to make those long and sad studies
+of a kind of life compatible with the true good of humanity, and
+forced him to them by "the anguish of the black mystery of death"
+which, having got possession of the author of "Anna Karenina" in his
+sixtieth year, in the midst of a life of prosperity, made him hate
+his fortune and his comfort, which formerly had been so dear to him.
+In the refusal of Tolstoy to "bow to the great authorities of the
+literary world, such as Æschylus, Dante, and Shakespeare," a refusal
+which is only the logical consequence of his ideas on the principle
+and purpose of art, Merezhkovsky can only see a lack of general
+culture. Finally, the sort of life he led toward the end of his days
+came only "from the desire to know and taste the pleasure of
+simplicity in all its subtleties." "The admirable Epicurus," says
+Merezhkovsky, "that joyous sage, who, in the very center of Athens,
+cultivated with his own hands a tiny garden, and taught men not to
+believe in any human or divine chimeras, but to be contented with
+the simple happiness that can be given by a single sunbeam, a
+flower, a sup of water from an earthen cup, or the summer time,
+would recognize in Tolstoy his faithful disciple, the only one,
+perhaps, who survives in this barbaric silence, where American
+comfort, a mixture of effeminacy and indigence, has made one forget
+the real purpose of life...."
+
+In writing these lines, Merezhkovsky must have forgotten that
+Tolstoy, in proclaiming his ideas on religion and humanity, prepared
+himself, not for Epicurean pleasures, but for seclusion in one of
+the terrible dungeons of a Russian monastery (now in disuse) under
+the persecutions of a temporal and secular authority, and it was not
+his fault that, by a sort of miracle, he escaped this fate.
+
+Dostoyevsky's life is the exact opposite of Tolstoy's. The story of
+Dostoyevsky's terrible existence is probably known. Born in an
+alms-house, he never ceased to suffer, and to love.... It is hard to
+think of two people more absolutely different than Tolstoy and
+Dostoyevsky. But Merezhkovsky loves violent contrasts; in the sharp
+difference between these two writers, he sees the permanent union of
+two controlling ideas of the Russian Renaissance and the imminence
+of a final sympathy, symbolic of a concluding harmony.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+We have, by turns, studied Merezhkovsky as a poet, a novelist, and a
+critic. The greatest merit of his literary personality rests in the
+perfect art with which he calls up the past.
+
+But Merezhkovsky is not only an artist. As we have noted, his
+novels have, as their end, one of the greatest contradictions of
+human life,--the synthesis of the voluptuous representations of the
+religion of classical antiquity and the moral principles of
+Christianity. It is, therefore, natural to ask whether he has in
+any way approached his goal and just where he sees the salvation of
+humanity, the present situation of which seems to him desperate.
+The answer to this question can be found in his book, "Ham
+Triumphant."[14] Our study of Merezhkovsky's literary character
+would be incomplete if the ideas of this book were not set forth.
+
+ [14] In Russia, the name of the biblical Ham has become synonymous
+ with servility and moral baseness. Merezhkovsky employs this
+ scornful term to designate those people who are strangers to the
+ higher tendencies of the mind and are entirely taken up with
+ material interests. His "Ham Triumphant" is the Antichrist, whose
+ reign, as predicted by the Apocalypse, will begin with the final
+ victory of the bourgeoisie. In one chapter of this book,
+ Merezhkovsky proves that the writers of western Europe and Russia
+ (Byron and Lermontov) err in crowning this Antichrist with an
+ aureole of proud revolutionary majesty, for, since he is the enemy
+ of all that is divine in man, he can only be a character of shabby
+ mediocrity and human banality, that is to say, a veritable "Ham."
+
+According to Merezhkovsky, the present evil in the world consists
+entirely in the moral void which results from the disappearance of
+the Christian ideal from the soul. The loss of this ideal was
+inevitable, and even productive of good, because it had been so
+mutilated and deformed by the Church, that Christian religion became
+a symbol of the reaction, and its God synonymous with executioner.
+Humanity will rid itself of Christianity. But nothing will replace
+it, unless it be the philosophy of positivism, a sort of material
+religion of the appetites and the senses, which gives no answer to
+our anguish and our mystical instincts. This philosophy presided at
+the formation of a miserable society, an egotistical and mediocre
+bourgeoisie, who have no spiritual tendencies, and are incapable of
+sacrificing themselves to any ideal other than that of money.
+
+John Stuart Mill said that the bourgeoisie would transform Europe
+into a China; the Russian publicist Hertzen, frightened by the
+victories of socialism, in 1848, foresaw the end of European
+civilization, drowned in a wave of blood. Merezhkovsky affirms that
+the Chinese and the Japanese, being the most complete and the most
+persevering representatives of this "terrestrial" religion, will
+without fail conquer Europe, where positivism still bears some
+traces of Christian romanticism. "The Chinese," he says, "are
+perfect positivists, while the Europeans are not yet perfect
+Chinese, and, in this respect, the Americans are perfect Europeans."
+Where is one to look for safety against this heavy load on the
+understanding and this future humiliation? In socialism, one says.
+But socialism, if it is not yet bourgeois, is almost so. "The
+starved proletariat and the rejected bourgeois have different
+economic opinions," says Merezhkovsky, "but their ideal is the same,
+the pursuit of happiness." As it is but a step from the prudence of
+the bourgeois to the exasperated state of the starved proletariat,
+this pursuit can lead to nothing else but international atrocities
+of militarism and chauvinism. Progress having become the sole
+ambition of the cultivated barbarians, satiety became their
+religion, and the only hope of escaping from this barbarism was to
+adopt the religion of love, founded by Jesus. Jesus said to those
+who were treated with violence, and who, in turn, had used violence
+in trying to free themselves: "Truth (love) will set you free."
+These words, which identify truth with love, contain in themselves
+the profoundest social and personal morality. They inspired the
+first martyrs of Christianity; but in time they were forgotten by
+the Church. Succumbing to the "diabolical seduction of power,"
+religion itself became a power, an autocracy; people submitted to
+this power, and thus the Byzantine and Russian orthodoxy came into
+existence. In this manner, the morals of the government,
+antichristian in essence, became the doctrine of Christianity; and
+the particular morals of the latter became transformed into a
+mysterious gospel of life, relegating its aspirations to an
+existence beyond the tomb. Now there is nothing for Christianity to
+do but return to its first sources and develop the principles of
+universal religion found there. One should no longer be concerned
+with heavenly and personal advantage, but with earthly affairs and
+social conditions; instead of being conquered by the government one
+should conquer it, permeate it with one's spirit, and thus realize
+the prophecy in the Apocalypse of the millennium of the saints on
+earth, and destroy the forms of the power of the government, the
+laws, and the empire. Such a renewal of Christianity demands an
+energetic struggle, self-forgetfulness, and martyrs. But where is
+one to find the necessary forces? Merezhkovsky does not see them in
+the States of western Europe, because the "intellectuals" there are
+antichristians and are congealed in their bourgeois positivism.
+"Above these Christian states, above these old Gothic stores," says
+Merezhkovsky, "rises, here and there, a Protestant wooden cross,
+half rotted; or a Catholic one of iron, all rusted, and no one pays
+any attention to them." What purity and nobility remains can
+manifest itself only in certain scattered individuals, in such great
+hermits as Nietzsche, Ibsen, Flaubert, Goethe in his old age; they
+are like deep artesian wells which prove that, beneath the arid
+earth there is still some flowing water. There is nothing of this
+sort in Russia. Although backward from the point of view of progress
+and politics, this country produced the "intellectuals" who form
+something unique in our present civilization: in essence, they are
+anti-bourgeois. "The positivism which the Russian 'intellectuals'
+have adopted by way of imitation is rejected by their feelings,
+their conscience, and their will; it is an artificial monument that
+is set up in their minds only."
+
+Merezhkovsky, then, has reason for thinking that the social
+renovation of Christianity will be accomplished in Russia. And as
+this work is the especial concern of the clergy, Merezhkovsky, who
+several years ago was present at a meeting where the Russian priests
+affirmed their desire to free themselves from the yoke of their
+religious and secular chiefs, proposed to accomplish this great
+mission. "It is indispensable," he says, "for the Russian Church to
+untie the knots that bind it to the decayed forms of the autocracy,
+to unite itself to the 'intellectuals' and to take an active part in
+the struggle for the great political and social deliverance of
+Russia. The Church should not think of its own liberty at present,
+but of martyrdom."
+
+We will not criticize these, perhaps illusory, ideas and previsions
+of Merezhkovsky. Russian life has become an enigma; who knows to
+what moral crisis the social conscience may be led by the present
+political crisis? Merezhkovsky's Olympian æsthetics have made him a
+foreigner in Russian literature. Yet as soon as the tempest burst
+forth, certain familiar traits showed themselves, traits common to
+the best Russian writers and to the general spirit of Russian
+literature. In his absolute, and even exaggerated, distaste for
+"bourgeoisisme," and his desire for an ideal, he is a legitimate son
+of this literature. The nature of his ideas is in harmony with those
+we have already found in Tolstoy, with his gospel of Christian
+anarchism, in Dostoyevsky, with his ideas about the "omni-humanity"
+of the Russian spirit, in Vladimir Solovyev, with his idea of
+universal theocracy, and, finally, in Chadayev, one of the most
+remarkable thinkers of the first half of the last century, who,
+although now almost forgotten, was the real source of all these
+ideas.
+
+Thus in the conception of socialized Christianity Merezhkovsky seeks
+the end of the great antithesis between the "God-man" and the
+"man-God," between Christ and Bacchus, an antithesis which makes the
+generality of men often conduct themselves after the manner of that
+German petty kingdom, of which Heine speaks, where the people, while
+venerating Christ, do not forget to honor Bacchus by abundant
+libations. Merezhkovsky's idea ought to appear in the form of a
+synthetic fusion of the joyous religion of Greece and the religion
+of love, as taught by Jesus.[15]
+
+ [15] Merezhkovsky has also written a long historical drama, called
+ "The Death of Paul I." He traces there, with his accustomed
+ animation, the figure of the weak and criminal Tsar, now heaping
+ favors upon those who surround him, now persecuting them with the
+ most terrible cruelty. The savage scene of the assassination of
+ this tyrant is of remarkable beauty.
+
+
+
+
+VIII
+
+ALEXANDER KUPRIN
+
+
+The work of Kuprin contrasts strongly with the writings of his
+predecessors and of his contemporaries. It would be useless to try
+to connect him with Dostoyevsky, Tolstoy, or Gorky. This does not
+mean that he came under foreign influence. As a matter of fact his
+work clearly shows the imprint of Slavic genius and receives its
+richness from qualities which have always appeared in Slavic
+literature,--sincerity and accuracy of observation, a passionate
+love for all manifestations of modern life, lyrical fullness, and
+power of suggestion. But Alexander Kuprin does not depict adepts of
+the "religion of pity," nor the psychology of the abnormal, the
+"pathological case," so curious and rare, and so dear to the author
+of "Crime and Punishment."[16] He does not reincarnate the sad
+genius of Korolenko. He is equally separated from Tolstoy and Gorky.
+He is himself. That is to say, he is an exquisite story-teller,
+profound and touching, who imposes neither thesis nor moral upon
+his reader, but paints life as it appears to him,--not seen through
+the medium of a temperament,--but in all sincerity, without too much
+ardor or too much indifference.
+
+ [16] Dostoyevsky.
+
+This author was born in 1870. After having attended the Cadet School
+and the Military School at Moscow, he entered military service as an
+active lieutenant in 1890, but resigned seven years later in order
+to devote his time to literature. Before this, he had published
+several stories.
+
+In spite of the undeniable talent which is found in his earlier
+writings, the public hesitated to praise him. Certain lucky
+circumstances, however, favored the beginning of his work. One of
+his relatives, at the start, offered him a position on a magazine
+which she was then editing. This was a wonderful opportunity for
+him, for usually at his age the more gifted writers are still
+groping around for light. But merit alone seldom suffices to form
+the basis of literary fame. Scandal is often necessary to
+consecrate, as one might say, a growing reputation. Kuprin, without
+seeking to start a scandal, did so, in spite of himself, when he
+published "The Duel," a study of military life, in which he showed
+the most absolute impartiality.
+
+To his great surprise, the public accepted this book as a new
+indictment of the army. It was because the Manchurian campaign was
+so recent. Every portrayal of military life passed as a violent
+satire on the corrupt and disgraced army. Kuprin in vain tried to
+change this unexpected judgment. As he was an ardent partisan of the
+theory of "art for art's sake," he could not allow a purpose to be
+attributed to his work. He had only faithfully portrayed what he had
+witnessed in the course of his brief career. But in order to
+strengthen his defence, he alleged reasons which could not be
+understood in an altruistic country. Besides, several of his
+stories, such as, "The Wedding," full of the dissolute life led by
+the officers in their garrisons, "The Inquest," where the author
+shows the violences to which the Russian soldiers are subjected,
+"The Night's Lodging," and "The Ensign of the Army," which
+stigmatize certain lace-bedecked "Lovelaces," only help to nullify
+his best arguments. In short, his fame spread rapidly and the young
+writer had to accept the renown that became his.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+From that time on Kuprin's road was mapped out. According to the
+dictates of his fancy he depicts thousands of the ever-changing,
+different aspects of life. He is equally impelled to write about
+petty tradesmen, actors, acrobats, and sinners in the Crimea. To
+the accomplishment of his task, he brings an over-minute and cruel
+observation. With the genius that is his he dwells on certain
+important, carefully selected traits of people who live intensely.
+
+In "The Disciple," we see a young sharper on a boat on the Volga. He
+has the tired eyes of a precocious old man, stubby fingers, and the
+hands of a murderer alert to strike the fatal blow. He has just
+fleeced a party of travelers, and he discovers, in a savory
+conversation with an old cheat, who has found him out, that his soul
+is being consumed with insatiable desires. And as the old sharper
+admires the "savoir-faire" of his young friend, the latter observes,
+not without scorn, that they belong to two very different categories
+of sharpers. "Among you old fellows," he sneers, "there was
+romanticism. You loved beautiful women, champagne, music and the
+song of the tziganes.... We, however, we others are tired of
+everything. Fear and debauch are equally unknown to us...."
+
+After the sharper we have the spy in "Captain Rybnikov." He passes
+for a Siberian, and says that he has been wounded in the
+Russo-Japanese war. He goes out into society a great deal, and is
+most commonly seen in the military offices and in the best "salons"
+of St. Petersburg. One night, when he is asleep at a courtesan's
+house, he mutters the war-cry of Japan: "Banzai! Banzai!" The
+courtesan denounces him to a policeman who happens to be there, and
+the pseudo-captain, who is no other than a colonel in the Japanese
+army, is arrested.
+
+Before leaving the military world, let us analyze "The Delirium."
+Captain Markov has been ordered by the government to suppress the
+revolution in certain provinces. Disgusted with the duty of daily
+executioner, the officer frets himself into a high fever. A
+non-commissioned officer enters to ask him to decide the fate of
+three men who have been arrested the previous night, one of whom is
+an old man with a peaceful and strangely beautiful face. The
+sergeant knows that they ought to be shot, but these executions are
+so repulsive to him, that he is anxious to have the sentence of
+death confirmed by his chief, who seems to him to have the sole
+responsibility.
+
+"I don't want you ever again to ask me such a question," cries
+Markov, who has guessed the intention of his subordinate. "You know
+what you ought to do." And he dismisses him. But the soldier remains
+motionless.
+
+"What else do you want?" asks the captain.
+
+"The men," answers the stubborn soldier, "are anxious to know what
+to do with the ... old ... man...."
+
+"Get out of here!" the officer roars, exasperated. "Do you
+understand?"
+
+"Very well, captain. But as to-day is December 31, allow me to offer
+you my best wishes for a happy New Year."
+
+"Thank you, my friend," replies Markov in a voice which has suddenly
+become soft.
+
+During the night the captain begins to rave. The old man whom he has
+just condemned to death appears and speaks to him. He says that his
+name is Cain, and confesses the murder of his brother. Cursed by
+God, he wanders disconsolately through the centuries, followed by
+the groaning of his victim.
+
+Just before dawn the sergeant awakens Markov.
+
+"What about those three men?" asks the captain eagerly.
+
+"Shot, captain!"
+
+"And the old man? The old man?... what have you done with him?"
+
+"We shot him along with the others, captain."
+
+The next day Captain Markov asks for his discharge, having decided
+to leave the army for good.
+
+This story, which is one of the most powerful in Russian literature,
+would have been enough to bring the young writer renown, even if he
+had never written anything else. But his work, which is already
+imposing in amount, abounds in pages of great merit, and especially
+in well-constructed, brief, tragic stories.
+
+Under this class should be mentioned "Humble People," a short story,
+the scene of which is laid in the extreme north. It is the story of
+a close friendship between a nurse in a dispensary and a
+school-teacher.
+
+Snowed in by a terrible winter--a winter of seven months--these two
+friends find in their daily meetings the only pleasure that can make
+their enforced solitude easier for them. However, in spite of their
+mutual friendship, they often find their lot hard to endure. And
+they continually quarrel, only to become reconciled almost
+immediately. But now an unexpected event comes to break the monotony
+of their existence. They are invited to a dance, given by the priest
+of the neighboring village, and there they fall in love with two
+charming young girls, who, they are happy to find, are not
+indifferent to them. Once at home, they bestow lavish praises on
+their new friends. With the touching devotion of simple and starved
+hearts they speak about them as if the young girls already were
+theirs.
+
+"Mine has eyes of velvet," says the one.
+
+"And mine has hair of pure gold," replies the other.
+
+Gradually, however, their recollections grow weaker, and fade, just
+as flowers do. Their sad life would have begun again if the spring
+had not come, and with it brought deliverance. The two friends, full
+of new sprightliness, get up a fishing party one day. A foolish
+accident makes them both fall into the river, and they are drowned.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"The End of a Story," which we are about to analyze, deserves, as
+does "Humble People," a special place in the work of Kuprin. It is a
+little masterpiece of graceful emotion.
+
+Kotik, a child of seven, and the son of a celebrated painter, teases
+his father to tell him a story. The father racks his memory. He has
+told so many that his fount is almost dry.
+
+Suddenly an idea comes to him. Is not his own life a tender,
+melancholy, and charming story? It is not a long time, twelve years
+at the most, since he was a poor, obscure painter, neglected by his
+masters and tormented by the miseries of his life. Discouraged, he
+used continually to curse the hour in which he chose to devote
+himself to art. One day, a young girl, believing in his talent, gave
+him her hand and comforted him with her tenderness and angelic
+goodness. And love had triumphed.
+
+To-day his name is celebrated among the most famous, and his
+paintings adorn the galleries of kings and emperors. The plot of
+the story is ready.
+
+"Listen," says the father to his son. "There was once upon a time a
+king who, feeling that he was going to die, gathered his many
+children about him and said to them: 'I will leave my kingdom to
+that one of you who can enter a marble palace situated in a very
+dense forest, and there light his torch from the sacred fire which
+always burns there. The forest is full of wild beasts and venomous
+serpents. The palace is guarded by three lions: Envy, Poverty, and
+Doubt.'
+
+"The young people set out on the road. But, while the older ones
+search outside of the forest for a road that is not beset with
+dangers, the youngest courageously starts on the regular path. He
+there is exposed to many dangers and temptations. Already, his
+strength failing, he feels that he is almost on the point of
+succumbing, when a fairy appears and stretches forth her hand to
+him. The young man blesses this providential aid. The fairy brings
+back his courage and leads him to the palace."
+
+Near them on the terrace, concealed by some plants, there sat a
+young and beautiful woman who was eagerly listening to the story.
+She was Kotik's mother, the fairy of the story, and the favorite
+pupil of the painter. Some of her paintings had already made a
+sensation.
+
+The story ended, the father led the child to his room and with the
+help of his nurse undressed him and put him to bed.
+
+"He had started back towards the terrace, when suddenly two arms
+embraced his neck, while two sweet lips pressed against his.
+
+"The story was finished."
+
+With these words the story really ends.
+
+Kuprin shows the same grace and the same delicate emotion in his
+recent story, "The Garnet Necklace," a tale which is analogous to
+the legend of the troubadour Geoffrey Rudel, which has been made
+into a play by Rostand in his "Princesse Lointaine."
+
+Geltov, a Russian petty official, loves the beautiful Princess
+Sheïne with a desperate love. After long hesitation he decides to
+send her a garnet necklace, with a tender and respectful note
+enclosed. Alas! his gift is returned to him and the husband of the
+princess angrily threatens the naïve lover. The latter has not the
+strength to face the situation, and commits suicide. But before
+dying he writes to the princess:--
+
+"I saw you for the first time eight years ago in a theatre, and
+since that time I have loved you with boundless passion. It is not
+my fault, Princess, that God has sent this great happiness to me....
+My life for the last eight years has been bound up in one
+thought,--you. Believe what I say, believe me because I am going to
+die.... I am neither a sick man nor an enthusiast.... I consider my
+love for you as the greatest happiness that God could have given
+me.... This happiness I have enjoyed for eight years. May God give
+you happiness, and may nothing henceforth trouble you...."
+
+This naïve and touching letter moves the princess. At the grave of
+her unhappy lover, she recalls the words of an old friend of her
+father's: "Perhaps he was an abnormal man or a maniac....
+Perhaps,--who knows?--your life was illumined by a love of which
+women often dream, a kind of love that one does not see nowadays."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+One can judge by these summaries how little Kuprin "pads" his
+stories. Most of them are reduced to a commonplace anecdote, which
+the author is careful not to ornament in the least. He respects
+truth to such a degree that he offers it to his readers in its
+disconcerting bareness. He would think that he was failing in his
+duty as an observer if he disguised it by any literary mechanism.
+
+His work, stripped of all general ideas and of all subjective
+aspects, is of a rather curious impersonality. Nothing ever betrays
+his intimate thoughts or feelings. And it is in this respect that
+he differs so much from most of the writers of to-day, who give
+themselves up completely to their attractive heroes and vituperate
+their odious people. Kuprin's objective tendencies are best shown in
+his story called "Peaceful Life."
+
+A retired official, Nassedkine, who has been enriched by the
+gratuities which he has exacted from those who have had to do
+business with him, has made it his duty to play censor in his little
+town. He makes use of a very discreet and edifying method: to all of
+the citizens whose honor is in danger, he sends one or more
+anonymous letters telling them of the "extent of their misfortune."
+
+Nassedkine has just finished writing two laconic notes, one of which
+is to a young woman whom he tells to visit one of her friends on a
+certain day, when, he assures her, her husband is always to be found
+there. At this moment the church bells ring, and Nassedkine, who is
+religious, goes to vespers. On entering, he notices a fashionable
+lady, all dressed in black, in a dark corner of the church.
+Nassedkine, more than any one else, knows the heart-rending story of
+this woman. She had recently, against her will, married an
+excessively rich wood merchant who was almost forty years older than
+she. One day, when she thought that her husband had gone off on
+business, he returned unexpectedly and found her in the arms of one
+of his employees. He had been warned that same morning, by an
+anonymous letter, that his wife was deceiving him.
+
+"Beside himself with rage, the merchant threw his employee out of
+the house, and then satiated his brutal jealousy on his wife. He
+struck her with his big, hobnailed boots; then he called his
+coachman and valet, made her undress completely, and had each of
+them in turn lash her beautiful body until, covered with blood, she
+fainted away.
+
+"And as the priest at the altar was reciting: 'Lord, I offer Thee
+the tears of a woman who has sinned,' Nassedkine repeated this
+phrase with satisfaction. Then he left the church in order to post
+the two letters he had just written."
+
+This characteristic dryness does not come, as one is liable to
+think, from ill-disguised insensibility. Kuprin's soul, on the
+contrary, is of such exquisitely fine texture that all human
+emotions vibrate there. The few times when he has expressed himself
+are enough to convince the reader. He has often pitied women with a
+discreet, fraternal compassion. He has also devoted many pages to
+the sufferings of animals, be it the story of circus horses hurt by
+the rolling of the ship, or the story of a kitten mutilated by
+wolves. Only a few words are needed to make us tender and to bring
+tears to our eyes. And it is with the eyes of a poet or a child that
+he has viewed nature.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+No one ever studies a Russian author without finally asking himself
+what the author's influence was on the political manifestations of
+society. The answer here is not hard to find: Kuprin, observer,
+artist, and painter of life, has had no influence. If we except one
+story, "The Toast," in which he shows his deep affection for the
+oppressed classes, nothing in his work betrays even slightly his
+opinions on this subject. Always, the thought of Kuprin deserts the
+social struggle to fly into more vast and serene surroundings than
+the theatre of wars and revolutions. And he is doubtless ready to
+exalt above this terrible struggle, the one thing that he judges
+eternal, the love of woman.
+
+"There have been kingdoms and kings," he says in his beautiful
+novel, "Sulamite," "and the only trace that is left of them is the
+wind in the desert. There have been long and pitiless wars, at the
+end of which the names of the leaders sparkled like stars: time has
+effaced all memory of them.
+
+"But the love of a poor girl of the vineyards and a great king[17]
+will never be effaced and will always live in the minds of men,
+because love is divinely beautiful, because every woman who loves is
+a queen, because love is stronger than death."
+
+ [17] Refers to Solomon.
+
+
+
+
+IX
+
+WRITERS IN VOGUE
+
+
+As we have already noted in the first chapter of this book, Russian
+literature from 1830 to 1905 is distinctly different from European
+literature: it is, above all, a literature of action and social
+propagandas which puts the popular cause in the place of prominence.
+
+This cause has been abandoned by several writers during the last
+few years. From 1905 to 1910, an evolution, accelerated by the
+most audacious hopes and the most lively beliefs, has transformed
+the story and the novel, and has brought to the front certain
+authors who, up to this time, had scarcely been known. It seems
+as if suddenly the ancient tradition of Russian literature had
+been broken. Contrary to the rule of their predecessors, whose
+thoughts were on justice and liberty, and whose works breathe
+forth a wholesome quality, a large number of the present writers
+have been gradually attracted by metaphysical questions, which
+fill their works with a veritable chaos of morbid conceptions and
+disenchantment. Some express with acuteness man's unconquerable
+fear of life or death; others treat of the divine or satanic
+principles in man; still others study, with a sickly passion, the
+problems of the flesh in all of its manifestations.[18]
+
+ [18] Happily, this literary crisis seems to have been ephemeral.
+ Since the beginning of 1910, according to a Russian critic, "the
+ salubrity of the atmosphere" has been accomplished. The "cursed
+ questions" are less prominent in recent works, and it seems that
+ the crisis which desolated Russian literature for several years
+ has come to an end, and that the writers are going back to the old
+ traditions of Russian literature.
+
+Among the latter, Michael Artzybashev is a writer of great breadth,
+whose erotic tendencies have spoiled some of his best traits. His
+novel, "Sanine," which recently caused so much talk, pretends to
+paint the youth of to-day in Russia. If we believed the author, we
+should conclude that the above-mentioned youth consisted of
+hysterical people in whom chastity was the least of virtues.
+
+The heroes of his novel are two representatives of the revolutionary
+youth, Sanine and Yuri Svagorich. Both of them have deserted "the
+cause," Sanine, through lassitude, and Yuri, who has met nothing but
+a despairing indifference among those whom he wanted to save from
+"the oppression of the shadows," through scorn. Yuri, "a man of the
+past," is an "intellectual" entirely impregnated with generous
+altruism, haunted by social and political preoccupations. But he is
+also a "failure" who falls from one deception into another, because
+he is thoroughly powerless to combat life.
+
+On the other hand, his friend, Vladimir Sanine, "the man of the
+future," is, without a doubt, capable of living. None is freer than
+he from all social and political preoccupations, and none is more
+than he resolved to obey only his lucid egotism, or the suggestions
+of his instincts.
+
+These two young fellows meet, one summer, in the country. Yuri lives
+with his father, a retired colonel; Sanine, with his mother.
+Sanine's sister, Lida, is in love with the officer Zaroudine, who
+abandons her later when she is with child. Lida wants to commit
+suicide, but Sanine stops her and proposes that she marry Dr.
+Novikov, who has been in love with her for a long time. Parallel to
+the history of Lida, the life story of Karsavina is presented. Yuri
+falls in love with this young and pretty school-teacher. But,
+although she returns Yuri's love, the young girl, in a moment of
+passion, gives herself to Sanine, whom she does not love. Disgusted
+with life, feeling himself weak, neurasthenic, and sick, Yuri, only
+twenty-six years of age, commits suicide. Karsavina, terribly
+affected by this act of despair, leaves Sanine. And the latter,
+after Yuri's funeral, disappears from the city....
+
+All the characters in the book, from Sanine to Karsavina, are
+continually preyed upon by carnal desires. Long passages of funereal
+scenes alternate with pictures of the transports of love and the
+descriptions of masculine and feminine bodies. "Your body proclaims
+the truth, your reason lies." This is the "leitmotiv" of all the
+theories that the characters in the book preach.
+
+Let us hasten to add to the praise of the Russian public, that the
+enormous success of "Sanine" was not justified by the extreme
+licentiousness of the book, but by the eloquence with which the
+author claims the right of free love for man and woman.
+
+Although its success was less than that of "Sanine," Artzybashev's
+second novel, "Morning Shadows," is more interesting and is more
+realistic than his first.
+
+Tired of their sometimes happy, sometimes monotonous existence, two
+young people from the provinces, Lisa and Dora, go to St. Petersburg
+to take some courses there and to join the revolutionary movement.
+They have read Nietzsche, and want to "live dangerously." In order
+to realize this project, Lisa has not hesitated to break off her
+engagement with the charming and naïve Lieutenant Savinov. However,
+their existence in the capital is nothing but a long and bitter
+deception: Dora's literary ambitions disappointed! the love of Lisa,
+who has given herself to the student Korenyev, disappointed! In a
+fit of despair Lisa kills herself, and her friend, who has not had
+the courage to follow her example, falls victim to a terrorist
+outrage which the author describes with rare power.
+
+In his recent novel, "Before Expiration,"--which recalls "Sanine" to
+our minds again,--Artzybashev has found some ingenious variations on
+the old theme, "love and death." The story of the love affairs of
+the painter Mikhailov, a cynical and brutal Lovelace who abandons
+his mistresses when they are with child, is intermingled incessantly
+with gloomy episodes, such as the agonies of an old man or of a
+child. It is a book for "blasé" people, a book which a reader with
+moral health will not read without a certain feeling of uneasiness.
+
+We are also indebted to Artzybashev for a series of highly colored
+stories. "Sub-Lieutenant Golobov," "Blood," "The Workingman
+Shevshrev," and "The Millions" are some of the most remarkable.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Like Artzybashev, but with less talent, Anatol Kamensky has written
+little stories happily enough conceived. Thus, "Laida"--the story of
+a worldly woman so taken up with liberty that she exhibits herself
+nude before her husband's guests. Another story called "Four," tells
+of four women taken from the most diverse social classes, ranging
+from a young school-girl to the wife of a clergyman, who give
+themselves to an officer at the end of a trip of twenty-four hours.
+Then there is also the story of a woman who proposes to an unknown
+man that he should play a game of cards with her companions, she
+being the prize. This story is called "The Game." Finally, there is
+the story of a young man whose agreeable profession consists in
+living among others gratuitously and in seducing women under the
+eyes of their husbands.
+
+These stories are sadly spoiled by a crude philosophy and by
+"anarchistic" protestations against present values.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Certain authors wander into far-away countries for their subjects:
+to Sodom and Lesbos. The best known is Michael Kouzmine. This
+writer, who happily began with stories of the Orient in the Middle
+Ages, has now acquired a rather sad renown for himself with his
+story called "The Wings," which appeared at the end of 1906. The
+scandalous success which this book won, encouraged the author to go
+on in the same manner. In poor verse, and especially in the story,
+"The Castle of Cards," Kouzmine has exalted the sin of Sodom as
+being the most supreme form of æsthetic emotions.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Closely related to these writers, although surpassing them all in
+original talent, Feodor Sologoub is the most intellectual and subtle
+of the Russian modernists. His principal work consists in depicting
+the small provincial towns. His heroes are little bourgeois petty
+officials, school-teachers, and country proprietors.
+
+This chanter of birth and death, disgusted by the banality of
+existence, has given us, under the title, "The Little Demon," a
+pathetic picture of human baseness and sordidness, which cannot be
+read without emotion.
+
+The atmosphere of an arbitrary regime engenders almost always
+"demonomania." The insecurity of life, and the consecutive
+injustices in the cavils of the police administration, develop in
+society a reciprocal fear and distrust. From feeling themselves in
+danger of being denounced and menaced in their liberty, men rapidly
+become the prey of terror. And the terrible life, sooner or later,
+awakens demoniacal terror among the weak. But people of this sort
+are legion in Russia, and Peredonov, the hero of "The Little Demon,"
+represents this class so graphically that to-day Russian historians
+and authors designate the era from 1880 to 1905 by the name
+"peredonovchina." The following is a brief outline of the story:
+
+Peredonov is a school-teacher in a provincial town. His fondest
+dream is to be nominated primary inspector. He lives with his
+mistress, the old dressmaker, Varvara by name. One of his mistress's
+clients, a virtuous and philanthropic princess, makes him
+understand, one day, that she will have him nominated if he marries
+Varvara. Peredonov does not love his mistress; he simply lives with
+her from habit and because she bears, without complaining too much,
+his coarseness, his cavilling, and his bad humor. However, he will
+marry her if the princess can get him the position he desires. But
+will the princess keep her word? It is some time since she has let
+herself be heard from. What is to be done?
+
+"Marry," says his friend Routilov to him, when he is told the
+condition of things. "I have three sisters," he continues. "Choose
+the one you like best and marry her immediately. Thus Varvara will
+know nothing and cannot throw any obstacles in the way."
+
+"Done!" cries Peredonov, who has known the three sisters for a long
+time. He chooses the youngest, Valerie.
+
+"Go and tell her about it. I will wait for you in the hall and then
+we'll go to the priest's together."
+
+Alone, Peredonov again muses: "Doubtless, Valerie is pretty and I
+shall be happy to have her as my wife. But she is young,
+pretentious; she will demand lots of new clothes, she will want to
+go out a lot, in fact, so much that I'll not be able to lay anything
+aside. Moreover, she'll not look after the kitchen, I'll have poor
+food, and the cook will rob us." Anguish seizes him. He knocks at
+the window, calls his friend, and says:
+
+"I've changed my mind."
+
+"Ah!" exclaimed the other, horrified.
+
+"Yes, I have reflected, and I have decided that I prefer the second,
+Lyoudmila."
+
+Lyoudmila consents, for, besides his personal fortune, Peredonov
+occupies an enviable position, and the sisters are poor. She
+hurriedly gets dressed; in a quarter of an hour she will be ready to
+accompany him to the priest's.
+
+However, Peredonov reflects: "Lyoudmila is pretty and plump; she
+doubtless has a perfect body, but she is always jolly, she loves to
+laugh. She will laugh incessantly and will make her husband seem
+ridiculous." Full of fear, he knocks at the window: "I have
+reflected," he cries. "I prefer the oldest, Darya."
+
+"What an awful man!" cries his friend. "Hurry up, Darya, or he'll
+leave all of us in the lurch."
+
+Again Peredonov reflects: "Darya is nice, not young any more, and
+economical; she knows life. But ... she is decisive in her
+resolutions, and she has an energetic character. She is not the kind
+who would listen to my observations. She could make life hard for
+me, and use me ill. Frankly, do I have to marry any of the three
+sisters? What will the princess say when she hears of my marriage?
+And my position as inspector? How stupid it is to stand waiting in
+this court! Without a doubt, Routilov ensnared me. I've got to get
+out of this at any cost!"
+
+He spits on all sides to conjure up the spirits, then knocks at the
+window, and tells the amazed family:
+
+"I am going away.... I have thought it over. I don't want to get
+married."
+
+Meanwhile, his position in school becomes intolerable; complaints
+are registered against him; he is reproached with having ill-treated
+and even with having beaten the poor children, and with treating the
+noble and rich children with too much respect. His ridiculous and
+evil passions cause him to be detested by all. Luckily, he will soon
+be nominated inspector, and then he will say good-bye to all this
+riff-raff. In the meantime, Varvara writes a letter, filled with the
+most alluring promises, to which she signs the princess's name, and
+has it mailed from St. Petersburg. Peredonov is at the height of
+joy; but, being a prudent man, he does not want to marry before he
+has received the nomination. He waits and waits for it, and,
+meanwhile, he is not even sure of his position in the school. He
+discovers enemies everywhere, and believes there are always spies at
+his heels. In order to cajole the administration, he begins to
+frequent the church, and to pay visits to the city authorities. He
+assures the chief of police of his respect, and, in order to give a
+glaring proof of his devotion to the established institutions, he
+lodges information against a school-mistress of the locality. But
+still the nomination does not come, and he lives in a continual
+trance. The evil in him increases. He torments beasts and human
+beings. He whips his pupils, throws nettles at his cat, and
+maltreats his cook. He believes himself more and more in the power
+of the demon, and terrible visions follow him:
+
+"He saw running before him, a little, grey, noisy beast. It sneered,
+its head trembled, and it ran quickly around Peredonov. When he
+wanted to seize it, it escaped under the cupboard, only to reappear
+a moment later...."
+
+This strange book, written with rare perfection, had a great
+success. To several readers who thought that they recognized the
+author himself in the person of Peredonov (Sologoub had had the same
+position as his hero for several years) the author replied in the
+preface of a recent edition, by these malicious lines:
+
+"Men like to be loved. They adore noble and elevated descriptions
+and portrayals. They even search among the scum for a 'divine
+spark.' They also are surprised and offended when any one offers
+them a veracious and sombre picture. And most of them then do not
+fail to declare: 'The author has described himself in his work.'
+But no, my dear friends and readers, it is you, and only you, whom I
+have painted in my book, 'The Little Demon.'"
+
+In "The Charms of Navii" Sologoub happily blends fantasy and
+reality. Revolutionary meetings alternate with improbable hypnotic
+seances, and terrible cortèges of corpses contrast violently with
+scenes of platonic and ethereal love.
+
+The plot of the story, "The Old Home," is not less distressing than
+the preceding one. A young revolutionary, condemned to death by
+court-martial, has been executed, but for his dear ones this death
+has never been a reality. His mother and sister, and even the old
+servant, have not the strength to admit his disappearance. They wait
+and wait for his return until their own death carries them off.
+
+Another story, "The Crowd," shows us a "fair" at which pewter
+goblets are being given away. These so excite the greediness of the
+crowd that a fray results, in which three children are seriously
+wounded. While dying, the unfortunates have terrible visions of life
+and humanity. "It seemed to them that ferocious demons were
+chuckling and sneering silently behind human faces. And this
+masquerade lasted so long that the poor little tots thought that it
+would never end...."
+
+Sologoub is, above all, a chanter of death. Almost all of his works
+unveil a murder, suicide, or madness. Moreover, the author, who
+shows only the injustices, evils, and infamy of life, and who
+affirms that the only happiness that he foresees for man is the
+possibility of "creating for himself a chimera" by turning away from
+reality, finds the clearest colors and the sweetest expressions in
+speaking of death.
+
+"There is not a surer and more tender friend on earth than death,"
+says one of his heroes. "And if men fear the name of death, it is
+because they do not know that it is the real life, eternal and
+invariable. Life deceives very often, death never. It is sweet to
+think of death, as it is to think of a dear friend, distant and yet
+always close at hand.... One forgets all in the arms of the
+consoling angel, the angel of death."
+
+The ever supremely correct and beautiful language of Sologoub shows
+the power of a master, and it is most regrettable that an artist of
+his merit should confine himself to so morbid an art.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+These then are the principal authors--some of whom have enjoyed an
+immense popularity--who treat the "cursed questions:" the rights of
+the flesh, the problem of death, and other equally "cursed"
+problems.
+
+The other writers are principally occupied with social questions,
+and, without rigorously following in the steps of their
+predecessors, remain, however, most of the time, realists.
+
+Among these, Sergyev-Tzensky occupies a prominent place. The stories
+of this writer show us beings who seem strangers to what is going on
+around them. This peculiarity comes from the fact that Tzensky does
+not understand the physical facts in the same way that the
+naturalists do. For him, they are the manifestations of the will of
+a supernatural entity, incomprehensible, inconceivable, and, at the
+same time, clearly hostile to man.
+
+His story, "The Sadness of the Fields," testifies to this singular
+conception. A farmer and his wife, good and peaceful people, have
+for many years wished for a child. Up to this time, the six children
+which the mother has given birth to have died in their infancy. They
+are anxiously awaiting the seventh. Will this one live? Will not the
+sadness of the fields, which puts its imprint on everything, kill it
+as it has killed the others? Alas! the child is not viable, and the
+mother dies in child-birth. They are buried, and "the fields and the
+surrounding country forever keep their powerful and mysterious
+melancholy."
+
+"The Fluctuation" is one of the most curious and beautiful of all of
+Tzensky's stories. Anton Antonovich, a rich and enterprising
+merchant, of a very violent and unruly character, lives like a wolf
+in his domains, alone with his family, without seeing any of his
+neighbors. The peasants detest him. As his partners and helpers, he
+always engages nonentities, without power of initiative, who blindly
+follow his orders. Intellectual and energetic men cannot get along
+with him. Men, beasts, and nature in its entirety, are considered by
+this man as having been especially created for his service. The one
+end of his life is wealth and power. The only beings he loves are
+his wife and his three sons; but even they have to bow down to his
+will.
+
+One day, he buys some straw and insures it against fire. Sometime
+later, it burns. They accuse him of having been the incendiary.
+Ridiculous accusation! He is a millionaire and the straw barely cost
+a few hundred rubles. The old man makes fun of the whole affair; he
+insults the judge, his own lawyer, and even the jury. He feels the
+impending misfortune, but his inborn violence carries him away from
+prudence. He is condemned to hard labor and he succumbs to a
+sickness that he has been feeling coming on for a long time. He had
+made a pillager's nest for himself, and he died like a pillager,
+abandoned even by those who were dear to him.
+
+In Tzensky's short stories, "I Shall Soon Die," "Diphtheria,"
+"Tedium," and "The Masks," there is something mysterious, fatal, and
+terrible that constantly surrounds his people. As to his longer
+works, "The Swamp in the Forest," and "Lieutenant Babayev," they
+plunge the reader into the mad chaos of the often abnormal emotions
+felt by the characters. These characters imagine the divine side of
+human nature; they consider it as having existed before in the
+essence of things, but the reality does not harmonize with their
+dream. The authentication of this discord torments Tzensky's heroes
+and their souls protest passionately, but in vain, against these
+outrages.
+
+Sergyev-Tzensky's style, graphic and pure, often strange, has found
+imitators among the younger writers. Thus, Mouyzhel, who describes
+village life, is visibly influenced by his writings. According to
+him, the soul goes through life without understanding it, without
+being able to ascribe any meaning to it. And he is so sincere, that
+his works obtain the frankest sort of success.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+While Mouyzhel studies peasant life, Simon Youshkevich, to the
+exclusion of all else, makes a study of the poor Russian Jews. Some
+of his stories have produced an overwhelming impression. They show
+us beings, heaped up, pell-mell in the ghettos of the cities of
+western and southern Russia, dirty and unwholesome ghettos, where
+consumption and all kinds of terrible sickness reign. These stories,
+often tragic, always sad, have given Youshkevich the name of
+"chanter of human suffering."
+
+In his earlier works--the best of which are "The Jews,"
+"Tavern-Keeper Heimann," "The Innocents," "The Prologue" and "The
+Assassin"--he devoted himself to portraying, not isolated persons,
+but the immense Russian Jewish proletariat, with its sad past, its
+bloody present, and its exalted faith in the future. Youshkevich has
+created this sphere; he considers the poor people of the cities not
+as a social class, but as a symbolic representation of an entire
+organization. If his work is at times infected with romanticism and
+some exaggeration the reader will gladly forget these imperfections
+when he recognizes the fact that they are necessary to enable this
+author to express the truth. What makes this writer unique, is that
+he cannot be confounded with any one else. He has never influenced
+any of his readers and, in turn, has never imitated any one. He made
+himself what he is.
+
+His last literary productions--with the exception of his very
+touching drama, "Misere"--have been inferior to his former work.
+But the abundance of the materials furnished by Jewish life would
+still give this author opportunity to give us more of the
+magnificently colored pictures that he gave us in his initial
+productions.
+
+Close to Youshkevich should be placed the two young writers, Sholom
+Ash and Izemann. Sholom Ash has principally depicted the Jewish
+world and its psychology. "The God of Vengeance" is a touching
+picture of the life of young Jewish girls who have been obliged to
+prostitute themselves for a living. "Sabbatai-Zevi,"[19] a
+philosophical poem, treats of the powerful personality of that
+Jewish prophet and of the surroundings in which he passed his life.
+
+ [19] A famous impostor of the 17th century: 1626-1676.
+
+Izemann, who has written quite a few tales and stories, is a very
+uneven author. His best work is "The Thorn Bush," a drama of the
+life of the Russian-Jewish revolutionists. Manousse, the son of a
+poor tinsmith, has been arrested, and then hanged for having taken
+part in a terrorist uprising. His sister, Dara, engaged to the son
+of a wealthy manufacturer, has, in her turn, been killed at a
+barricade. She is carried back to her home, and there, revolver in
+hand, the mother receives the soldiers. She falls mortally wounded
+at the side of her fourteen year old son. Thus, the entire family
+perishes. The last act of this sombre drama makes a tremendous
+impression on the stage.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+After having been a country doctor for several years, Eugene
+Chirikov abandoned his practice in order to devote himself to
+literature. His drama, "The Jews," has aroused great interest and
+has been played with great success both in Russia and abroad. It is
+one of the most significant works of this writer. The story concerns
+itself with the children of a poor Jewish watchmaker, who are
+infatuated with ideas of progress. Their infatuation is such, that
+the daughter becomes engaged to a Gentile. A delirious mob invades
+the houses of the Jews. The store of the poor watchmaker is not
+spared, and the fiancée of the Gentile is ravished and then
+murdered. The rapid action of the play makes it a dramatic "slice of
+life."
+
+The other plays and stories of this author give us pictures both of
+the petty "bourgeois" and of the "intellectuals." Thus, "The
+Strangers" tells the story of a group of "intellectuals" who have
+strayed into a small market town in the provinces where all are
+hostile to them. Then there is "The Invalids," which gives the story
+of the life of an old man who, after having been exiled to Siberia
+for several years on account of "advanced" ideas, returns to Russia
+as confident as ever, ready to consecrate the rest of his life to
+the people. Finally, "At the Bottom of the Court," "The Mysteries of
+the Forest" and "Marya Ivanovna" are dramas from bourgeois life,
+while "The Sorceress" is a play, taken from a national epic.
+
+Not less well known than Chirikov, is Ossip Dymov. He forsook the
+"Imperial Institute of Foresters" in order to devote himself to
+literature. He has written numerous stories, among which "Vlass" is
+the most captivating. It is the childhood of Vlass told by himself.
+An observing little person, the child notices everything and
+everybody around him. His father had killed himself before the child
+was old enough to talk, and his mother, a very intelligent and stern
+woman, alone had to care for four children. Vlass has an older
+brother, Yuri, a sister, Olya, and a younger brother, Vladimir, a
+kind and inoffensive creature. Life runs along smoothly in the
+little country town. The days pass, one like the other, and the most
+insignificant event takes on grave importance in this monotonous
+life. One night, Vlass's young teacher is arrested and sent to
+Siberia. A year later, a friend of the family, who has been in exile
+a long time, comes back secretly and passes several days at the
+house. Later on, it is "the beautiful, good aunt" who comes
+unexpectedly; but she soon departs, leaving a mass of confused and
+restless thoughts in the child's mind. Vlass ends his story with a
+most pathetic account. Far away from the little town, in one of the
+prisons of St. Petersburg, they are going to hang Yuri. The entire
+family has broken down since they have heard the news, and they sit
+up the night before the execution, trying, in thought, to alleviate
+the torment of their cherished one.
+
+In his other stories, the author paints nature in an original and
+entirely personal manner. According to a Russian critic, the works
+of Dymov breathe forth "the fresh breeze and the quickening aroma of
+the forests."
+
+Dymov has also written some very well-liked plays, of which "Niyu"
+is the most original. Niyu, a young woman, abandons her husband and
+child in order to follow a poet, whose beautiful language and
+touching poetry have won her admiration and brought her under his
+spell. She hopes that her lover will create a new world, a higher
+and nobler world than the every-day one, because he is a poet, that
+is to say, one of the elect. The abandoned husband and the
+uncared-for child desperately call out for their wife and mother. In
+vain! However, the days that she passes with the poet are filled
+with disenchantment, disillusion, and bitterness. Despairing, she
+writes a letter to her old parents who live in a distant town, and
+then commits suicide. And hardly is Niyu buried, when the poet,
+although sadly affected by the premature loss of his companion,
+again begins to charm and entrance by his beautiful words other
+women, whose lives he ruins.
+
+"Niyu" has had a tremendous success, because it brings a really new
+formula into the theatrical world. Very little action, very few
+"situations;" no artificial procedure: life; dialogue imitated from
+reality; an atmosphere of despair and tedium in which three beings
+cruelly struggle; sincere evolution, very much pessimism, and
+happiness and love, constitute the traits that characterize this
+very human piece of writing.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Mention should also be made of Sayitzev, certain of whose stories
+are comparable to the aquarelles of a landscape painter. One of his
+best works is "Agrafena," a touching picture of the life of a
+peasant woman. During her lifetime, she was a domestic in the
+cities, and when finally, bent under years of labor, she comes back
+to her native village and her daughter, whom she has secretly
+brought up at great pains, it is only to find that she has committed
+suicide, having been abandoned by her lover.
+
+Among others, should be mentioned Gussev-Orenburgsky, who has
+written some very interesting stories about the Russian clergy;
+Skitaletz, whose "Rural Tribunal" has had a great success, and has
+been translated into several languages; Seraphimovich and Teleshov,
+who, like Chirikov, depict the life of the "intellectuals," and
+Olizhey, the psychologist of revolutionary spheres, known
+particularly by his "The Day of Judgment," which tells of an
+officer, a member of a council of war, who is forced to condemn his
+future brother-in-law to death. This story leaves an indescribable
+impression of terror and horror.
+
+Let us finally mention Count Alexis Tolstoy, the homonym of the
+great Russian thinker, to whom the critics predict a brilliant
+future. His first work appeared in 1909. He generally depicts landed
+proprietors. His recent stories, "The Asking in Marriage," and
+"Beyond the Volga," show signs of great strength and power of
+observation.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Among the women, there are three who show real talent. In fact, Mme.
+Hippius-Merezhkovskaya is regarded as one of the founders of Russian
+modernism. We are indebted to her for some rather daring verses and
+some very good stories. The most recent of these, "The Creature," is
+the curious history of a love-sick prostitute; "The Devil's Doll" is
+an episode in the life of the Russian "intellectuals." Endowed with
+a caustic spirit, she excels all others in literary criticism.
+
+Then comes Mme. Verbitzkaya, who has declared herself a champion of
+women, who, she thinks, should throw off the often tyrannical yoke
+of their husbands. Her novels, "Vavochka," and "The Story of a
+Life," have given her just renown. In "The Spirit of the Time" she
+has tried, not without some success, to paint the immense picture of
+the revolution of 1905. Her recent novel, "The Keys of Happiness,"
+has had an enormous success.
+
+Finally, mention should be made of Mme. Shepkina-Koupernik, who has
+written some verses and charming stories, full of caressing
+tenderness and delicate psychology. Her stories, in which she shows
+us two old Italian masters, are very interesting. Thus, "Eternity in
+a Moment" is delicious. In a painter's studio, a young model by
+chance meets her old lover, who has also been reduced to posing in
+studios. Happy at heart, the woman rushes toward him, but he pushes
+her away: he is too miserable, he has fallen too low to dare to love
+her again. Repulsed by him, she stands as if petrified, with death
+in her soul, and her face changed by terrible despair. At this
+moment the master enters; he looks at the young woman and utters a
+cry of joy; finally he has found what he wants for his picture:
+human traits ravaged by suffering and despair!
+
+Russia is also indebted to this author for impeccable translations
+of Rostand's "Princesse Lointaine" and "Chantecler."
+
+
+THE END
+
+
+
+
+
+End of Project Gutenberg's Contemporary Russian Novelists, by Serge Persky
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CONTEMPORARY RUSSIAN NOVELISTS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 31503-8.txt or 31503-8.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/1/5/0/31503/
+
+Produced by Juliet Sutherland and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/31503-8.zip b/31503-8.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..13f79d9
--- /dev/null
+++ b/31503-8.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/31503-h.zip b/31503-h.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..596bafd
--- /dev/null
+++ b/31503-h.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/31503-h/31503-h.htm b/31503-h/31503-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f0666fb
--- /dev/null
+++ b/31503-h/31503-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,11187 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
+ "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
+ <head>
+ <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=iso-8859-1" />
+ <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
+ <title>Contemporary Russian Novelists, by Serge Persky; an eBook from Project Gutenberg</title>
+ <style type="text/css">
+ /* <![CDATA[ */
+body {
+ margin-left: 10%;
+ margin-right: 10%;
+}
+
+h1,h2,h3,h4,h5,h6 {
+ text-align: center;
+ clear: both;
+}
+
+p {
+ margin-top: .75em;
+ text-align: justify;
+ margin-bottom: .75em;
+}
+
+hr {
+ width: 33%;
+ margin-top: 2em;
+ margin-bottom: 2em;
+ margin-left: auto;
+ margin-right: auto;
+ clear: both;
+}
+
+.pagenum {
+ /*visibility: hidden;*/
+ color: #999;
+ position: absolute;
+ left: 92%;
+ font-size: smaller;
+ text-align: right;
+} /* page numbers */
+
+.center { text-align: center; }
+.smcap { font-variant: small-caps; }
+.caps { text-transform: uppercase; }
+.smaller { font-size: smaller; }
+.larger { font-size: larger; }
+
+/* Images */
+img { border: none; }
+.figcenter {
+ margin: auto;
+ text-align: center;
+}
+
+/* Footnotes */
+.footnotes { border: dashed 1px; }
+
+.footnote { margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; }
+
+.footnote .label { position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right; font-size: 0.9em; }
+
+.fnanchor {
+ /*vertical-align: super;*/
+ font-size: 80%;
+ text-decoration: none;
+}
+h2 .fnanchor { font-size: 60%; font-weight: normal; }
+
+/***/
+
+.trnote {
+ font-family: sans-serif;
+ background-color: #ccc;
+ color: #000;
+ border: black 1px dotted;
+ margin: 2em 10% 2em 10%;
+ padding: .8em;
+}
+.trnote ul li { list-style-type: none; }
+
+.toc { margin-left: 25%; margin-right: 25%; padding-right: 2em; margin-top: 0; padding-top: 0; }
+.toc li { list-style-type: upper-roman; }
+.toc li.nonum { list-style-type: none; }
+.toc li p { margin-top: 0; padding-top: 0; text-align: left; }
+.toc .num { position: absolute; right: 30%; top: auto; }
+.tocchap { position: absolute; left: 26%; top: auto; }
+html>/**/body .tocchap { left: 29%; }
+p.toc { font-size: 60%; margin-bottom: 0; padding-bottom: 0; }
+
+h2 { line-height: 150%; }
+p.theend { text-align: center; margin-top: 3em; font-size: smaller; }
+.topmarg { margin-top: 3em; }
+
+hr.chapbreak { width: 65%; /*visibility: hidden;*/ }
+.w65 { width: 65%; }
+hr.tb, .w45 { width: 45%; }
+.w25 { width: 25%; }
+.l4 { padding-left: 4em; }
+.l5 { padding-left: 5em; }
+
+a.corr { /*border-bottom: 1px dotted #333;*/ }
+
+ /* ]]> */
+ </style>
+ </head>
+<body>
+
+
+<pre>
+
+Project Gutenberg's Contemporary Russian Novelists, by Serge Persky
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: Contemporary Russian Novelists
+
+Author: Serge Persky
+
+Translator: Frederick Eisemann
+
+Release Date: March 4, 2010 [EBook #31503]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CONTEMPORARY RUSSIAN NOVELISTS ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Juliet Sutherland and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+
+<div class="trnote">
+<h2>Transcriber's note</h2>
+<ol>
+<li>Obvious punctuation errors have been repaired silently.</li>
+<li>Word errors have been corrected and a <a href="#trcorrections">list
+ of corrections</a> can be found after the book.</li>
+</ol>
+</div>
+
+<div class="figcenter"><img alt="Book cover" src="images/cover.jpg" width="390" height="600" /></div>
+
+<h1 class="caps">Contemporary<br />
+Russian Novelists</h1>
+
+<p class="center topmarg">Translated from the French of Serge Persky<br />
+By <span class="caps">Frederick Eisemann</span></p>
+
+
+<p class="center caps topmarg">John W. Luce and Company<br />
+Boston &mdash; 1913</p>
+
+<hr class="w45" />
+
+<p class="center"><i>Copyright, 1912</i><br />
+<span class="smcap">By C. Delagrave</span></p>
+
+<p class="center"><i>Copyright, 1913</i><br />
+<span class="smcap">By L. E. Bassett</span></p>
+
+<hr class="w45" />
+
+<p class="center">To<br />
+THE MEMORY OF<br />
+F. N. S.<br />
+<span class="smcap l4">by</span><br />
+<span class="smcap l5">The Translator</span></p>
+
+
+<hr class="w45" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_v" id="Page_v">[Pg v]</a></span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="PREFACE" id="PREFACE"></a>PREFACE</h2>
+
+
+<p>The principal aim of this book is to give
+the reader a good general knowledge of Russian
+literature as it is to-day. The author, Serge
+Persky, has subordinated purely critical material,
+because he wants his readers to form their
+own judgments and criticize for themselves.
+The element of literary criticism is not, however,
+by any means entirely lacking.</p>
+
+<p>In the original text, there is a thorough and
+exhaustive treatment of the "great prophet"
+of Russian literature&mdash;Tolstoy&mdash;but the
+translator has deemed it wise to omit this essay,
+because so much has recently been written about
+this great man.</p>
+
+<p>As the title of the book is "Contemporary
+Russian Novelists," the essay on Anton
+Tchekoff, who is no longer living, does not
+rightly belong here, but Tchekoff is such an
+important figure in modern Russian literature
+and has attracted so little attention from English
+writers that it seems advisable to retain
+the essay that treats of his work.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vi" id="Page_vi">[Pg vi]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Finally, let me express my sincerest thanks
+to Dr.&nbsp;G.&nbsp;H.&nbsp;Maynadier of Harvard for his
+kind advice; to Miss Edna Wetzler for her unfailing
+and valuable help, and to Miss Carrie
+Harper, who has gone over this work with painstaking
+care.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<h2><a name="CONTENTS" id="CONTENTS"></a>CONTENTS</h2>
+
+<p class="toc"><span class="caps tocchap">Chapter</span>&nbsp;
+ <span class="num caps">Page</span></p>
+<ul class="toc">
+
+<li><p><a href="#I" class="smcap">A Brief Survey of Russian Literature</a>
+ <span class="num">1</span></p></li>
+
+<li><p><a href="#II" class="smcap">Anton Tchekoff</a>
+ <span class="num">40</span></p></li>
+
+<li><p><a href="#III" class="smcap">Vladimir Korolenko</a>
+ <span class="num">76</span></p></li>
+
+<li><p><a href="#IV" class="smcap">Vikenty Veressayev</a>
+ <span class="num">108</span></p></li>
+
+<li><p><a href="#V" class="smcap">Maxim Gorky</a>
+ <span class="num">142</span></p></li>
+
+<li><p><a href="#VI" class="smcap">Leonid Andreyev</a>
+ <span class="num">199</span></p></li>
+
+<li><p><a href="#VII" class="smcap">Dmitry Merezhkovsky</a>
+ <span class="num">246</span></p></li>
+
+<li><p><a href="#VIII" class="smcap">Alexander Kuprin</a>
+ <span class="num">274</span></p></li>
+
+<li><p><a href="#IX" class="smcap">Writers in Vogue</a>
+ <span class="num">289</span></p></li>
+
+<li class="nonum"><p><a href="#NOTES" class="smcap">Notes</a>
+ <span class="num">315</span></p></li>
+</ul>
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">[Pg 1]</a></span></p>
+<h1 class="caps">Contemporary<br />Russian Novelists</h1>
+
+<h2><a name="I" id="I"></a>I<br />
+A BRIEF SURVEY OF RUSSIAN LITERATURE</h2>
+
+
+<p>In order to get a clear idea of modern Russian
+literature, a knowledge of its past is indispensable.
+This knowledge will help us in
+understanding that which distinguishes it from
+other European literatures, not only from the
+viewpoint of the art which it expresses, but also
+as the historical and sociological mirror of the
+nation's life in the course of centuries.</p>
+
+<p>The dominant trait of this literature is found
+in its very origins. Unlike the literatures of
+other European countries, which followed, in a
+more or less regular way, the development of
+life and civilization during historic times, Russian
+literature passed through none of these
+stages. Instead of being a product of the past,
+it is a protestation against it; instead of retracing
+the old successive stages, it appears, intermittently,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">[Pg 2]</a></span>
+like a light suddenly struck in the
+darkness. Its whole history is a long continual
+struggle against this darkness, which has gradually
+melted away beneath these rays of light,
+but has never entirely ceased to veil the general
+trend of Russian thought.</p>
+
+<p>As a result of the unfortunate circumstances
+which characterize her history, Russia was for
+a long time deprived of any relations with civilized
+Europe. The necessity of concentrating all
+her strength on fighting the Mongolians laid the
+corner-stone of a sort of semi-Asiatic political
+autocracy. Besides, the influence of the Byzantine
+clergy made the nation hostile to the ideas
+and science of the Occident, which were represented
+as heresies incompatible with the orthodox
+faith. However, when she finally threw off
+the Mongolian yoke, and when she found herself
+face to face with Europe, Russia was led to
+enter into diplomatic relations with the various
+Western powers. She then realized that European
+art and science were indispensable to her,
+if only to strengthen her in warfare against
+these States. For this reason a number of European
+ideas began to come into Russia during
+the reigns of the last Muscovite sovereigns.
+But they assumed a somewhat sacerdotal character
+in passing through the filter of Polish
+society, and took on, so to speak, a dogmatic
+air. In general, European influence was not
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">[Pg 3]</a></span>
+accepted in Russia except with extreme repugnance
+and restless circumspection, until the accession
+of Peter I. This great monarch,
+blessed with unusual intelligence and a will of
+iron, decided to use all his autocratic power in
+impressing, to use the words of Pushkin, "a new
+direction upon the Russian vessel;"&mdash;Europe
+instead of Asia.</p>
+
+<p>Peter the Great had to contend against the
+partisans of ancient tradition, the "obscurists"
+and the adversaries of profane science; and this
+inevitable struggle determined the first character
+of Russian literature, where the satiric
+element, which in essence is an attack on the
+enemies of reform, predominates. In organizing
+grotesque processions, clownish masquerades,
+in which the long-skirted clothes and the
+streaming beards of the honorable champions
+of times gone by were ridiculed, Peter himself
+appeared as a pitiless destroyer of the ancient
+costumes and superannuated ideas.</p>
+
+<p>The example set by the practical irony of
+this man was followed, soon after the death of
+the Tsar, by Kantemir, the first Russian author
+who wrote satirical verses. These verses were
+very much appreciated in his time. In them,
+he mocks with considerable fervor the ignorant
+contemners of science, who taste happiness only
+in the gratification of their material appetites.</p>
+
+<p>At the same time that the Russian authors
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">[Pg 4]</a></span>
+pursued the enemies of learning with sarcasm,
+they heaped up eulogies, which bordered on
+idolatry, on Peter I, and, after him, on his successors.
+In these praises, which were excessively
+hyperbolical, there was always some sincerity.
+Peter had, in fact, in his reign, paved
+the way for European civilization, and it seemed
+merely to be waiting for the sovereigns, Peter's
+successors, to go on with the work started by
+their illustrious ancestor. The most powerful
+leaders, and the first representatives of the new
+literature, strode ahead, then, hand in hand, but
+their paths before long diverged. Peter the
+Great wanted to use European science for practical
+purposes only: it was only to help the
+State, to make capable generals, to win wars,
+to help savants find means to develop the national
+wealth by industry and commerce; he&mdash;Peter&mdash;had
+no time to think of other
+things. But science throws her light into the
+most hidden corners, and when it brings social
+and political iniquities to light, then the government
+hastens to persecute that which, up to
+this time, it has encouraged.</p>
+
+<p>The protective, and later hostile, tendencies
+of the government in regard to authors manifested
+themselves with a special violence during
+the reign of Catherine II. This erudite woman,
+an admirer of Voltaire and of the French "encyclop&eacute;distes,"
+was personally interested in
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">[Pg 5]</a></span>
+writing. She wrote several plays in which she
+ridiculed the coarse manners and the ignorance
+of the society of her time. Under the influence
+of this new impulse, which had come from one
+in such a high station in life, a legion of
+satirical journals flooded the country. The
+talented and spiritual von Vizin wrote comedies,
+the most famous of which exposes the ignorance
+and cruelty of country gentlemen; in another,
+he shows the ridiculousness of people who take
+only the brilliant outside shell from European
+civilization. Shortly, Radishchev's "Voyage
+from Moscow to St.&nbsp;Petersburg" appeared.
+Here the author, with the fury of passionate
+resentment, and with sad bitterness, exposes the
+miserable condition of the people under the
+yoke of the high and mighty. It was then that
+the empress, Catherine the Great, so gentle to
+the world at large and so authoritative at home,
+perceiving that satire no longer spared the
+guardian principles necessary for the security
+of the State, any more than they did popular
+superstitions, manifested a strong displeasure
+against it. Consequently, the satirical journals
+disappeared as quickly as they had appeared.
+Von Vizin, who, in his pleasing "Questions to
+Catherine" had touched on various subjects
+connected with court etiquette, and on the
+miseries of political life, had to content himself
+with silence. Radishchev was arrested, thrown
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">[Pg 6]</a></span>
+into a fortress, and then sent to Siberia. They
+went so far as to accuse Derzhavin, the greatest
+poet of this time, the celebrated "chanter of
+Catherine," in his old age, of Jacobinism for
+having translated into verse one of the psalms
+of David; besides this, the energetic apostle of
+learning, Novikov, a journalist, a writer, and
+the founder of a remarkable society which devoted
+itself to the publication and circulation
+of useful books, was accused of having had relations
+with foreign secret societies. He was
+confined in the fortress at Schluesselburg after
+all his belongings had been confiscated. The
+critic and the satirist had had their wings
+clipped. But it was no longer possible to check
+this tendency, for, by force of circumstances,
+it had been planted in the very soul of every
+Russian who compared the conditions of life
+in his country with what European civilization
+had done for the neighboring countries.</p>
+
+<p>Excluded from journalism, this satiric tendency
+took refuge in literature, where the novel
+and the story trace the incidents of daily life.
+Since the writers could not touch the evil at its
+source, they showed its consequences for social
+life. They represented with eloquence the
+empty and deplorable banality of the existence
+forced upon most of them. By expressing in
+various ways general aspirations towards something
+better, they let literature continue its
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">[Pg 7]</a></span>
+teaching, even in times particularly hostile to
+freedom of thought, like the reign of Nicholas I,
+the most typical and decided adversary of the
+freedom of the pen that Europe has ever seen.
+Literature was, then, considered as an inevitable
+evil, but one from which the world wanted to
+free itself; and every man of letters seemed to
+be under suspicion. During this reign, not only
+criticisms of the government, but also praises
+of it, were considered offensive and out of place.
+Thus, the chief of the secret police, when he
+found that a writer of that time, Bulgarine,
+whose name was synonymous with accuser and
+like evils, had taken the liberty to praise the
+government for some insignificant improvements
+made on a certain street, told him with severity:
+"You are not asked to praise the government,
+you must only praise men of letters."</p>
+
+<p>Nothing went to print without the authorization
+of the general censor, an authorization that
+had to be confirmed by the various parts of the
+complex machine, and, finally, by a superior
+committee which censored the censors. The
+latter were themselves so terrorized that they
+scented subversive ideas even in cook-books, in
+technical musical terms, and in punctuation
+marks. It would seem that under such conditions
+no kind of literature, and certainly no
+satire, could exist. Nevertheless, it was at this
+period that Gogol produced his best works.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">[Pg 8]</a></span>
+The two most important are, his comedy "The
+Revizor," where he stigmatizes the abuses of
+administration, and "Dead Souls," that classic
+work which de Vog&uuml;&eacute; judges worthy of being
+given a place in universal literature, between
+"Don Quixote" and "Gil Blas," and which,
+in a series of immortal types, flagellates the
+moral emptiness and the mediocrity of life in
+high Russian society at that time.</p>
+
+<p>At the same time, Griboyedov's famous
+comedy, "Intelligence Comes to Grief," which
+the censorship forbade to be produced or even
+published, was being circulated in manuscript
+form. This comedy, a veritable masterpiece,
+has for its hero a man named Chatsky, who was
+condemned as a madman by the aristocratic
+society of Moscow on account of his independent
+spirit and patriotic sentiments. It is true
+that in all of these works the authors hardly
+attack important personages or the essential
+bases of political organization. The functionaries
+and proprietors of Gogol's works are
+"petites gens," and the civic pathos of Chatsky
+aims at certain individuals and not at the national
+institutions. But these attacks, cleverly
+veiling the general conditions of Russian life,
+led the intelligent reader to meditate on certain
+questions, and it also permitted satire to live
+through the most painful periods. Later, with
+the coming of the reforms of Alexander II,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[Pg 9]</a></span>
+satire manifested itself more openly in the
+works of Saltykov, who was not afraid to use
+all his talent in scourging, with his biting sarcasm,
+violence and arbitrariness.</p>
+
+<p>Another salient trait of Russian literature is
+its tendency toward realism, the germ of which
+can be seen even in the most old-fashioned
+works, when, following the precepts of the
+West, they were taken up first with pseudo-classicism,
+and then with the romantic spirit
+which followed.</p>
+
+<p>Pseudo-classicism had but few worthy representatives
+in Russia, if we omit the poet Derzhavin,
+whom Pushkin accused of having a poor
+knowledge of his mother tongue, and whose
+monotonous work shows signs of genius only
+here and there.</p>
+
+<p>As to romanticism! Here we find excellent
+translations of the German poets by Zhukovsky,
+and the poems of Lermontov and Pushkin, all
+impregnated with the spirit of Byron. But
+these two movements came quickly to an end.
+Soon realism, under the influence of Dickens
+and Balzac, installed itself as master of this
+literature, and, in spite of the repeated efforts
+of the symbolist schools, nothing has yet been
+able to wipe it out. Thus, the triumph of realism
+was not, as in the case of earlier tendencies,
+the simple result of the spirit of imitation which
+urges authors to choose models that are in
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[Pg 10]</a></span>
+vogue, but it was a response to a powerful instinct.
+The truth of this statement is very evident
+in view of the fact that realism appeared
+in Russian literature at a time when it was still
+a novelty in Europe. The need of representing
+naked reality, without any decorations, is, so
+to speak, innate in the Russian author, who cannot,
+for any length of time, be led away from
+this practice. This is the very reason why the
+Byronian influence, at the time of Pushkin and
+Lermontov, lasted such a short time. After
+having written several poems inspired by the
+English poet, Pushkin soon disdained this
+model, which was the sole object of European
+imitation. "Byron's characters," he says,
+"are not real people, but rather incarnations
+of the various moods of the poet," and he ends
+by saying that Byron is "great but monotonous."
+We find the same thing in Lermontov,
+who was fond of Byron, not only in a transient
+mood of snobbery, but because the very strong
+and sombre character of his imagination naturally
+led him to choose this kind of intense
+poetry. He was exerting himself to regard
+reality seriously and to reproduce it with exactitude,
+at the very time when he was killed in a
+duel at the youthful age of twenty-seven.</p>
+
+<p>Pushkin's best work, his novel in verse,
+"Evgeny Onyegin," although it came so early,
+was constructed according to realistic principles;
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[Pg 11]</a></span>
+and although we still distinguish romantic
+tints, it is a striking picture of Russian society
+at the beginning of the 19th century. We
+find the same tendency in Lermontov's prose
+novel, "A Hero of Our Times," in which the
+hero, Pechorin, has many traits in common
+with Evgeny Onyegin. This book immediately
+made a deep impression. It was really nothing
+more than a step taken in a new direction by its
+author. But it was a step that promised much.
+An absurd fatality destroyed this promise, and
+hindered the poet, according to the expression
+of an excellent critic of that time, from "rummaging
+with his eagle eye, among the recesses
+of the world."</p>
+
+<p>The works of writers of secondary rank, contemporaneous
+with the above mentioned, also
+reveal a realistic tendency. Then appeared, to
+declare it with a master's power, that genius of
+a realist, of whom we have already made mention,
+Gogol. There was general enthusiasm;
+Gogol absorbed almost the entire attention of
+the public and men of letters. The great critic
+and publicist Byelinsky, in particular, took it
+upon himself to elaborate in his works the theories
+of realism; he formulated the program
+about 1850 under the name of the "naturalistic
+school." Thus the germs of the past had expanded
+triumphantly in the work of Gogol, and
+the way was now clear for Turgenev, Dostoyevsky,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[Pg 12]</a></span>
+Tolstoy, Goncharov, Ostrovsky, and
+Pisemsky, who, while enlarging the range and
+perfecting the methods of the naturalistic
+school, conquered for their native literature the
+place which it has definitely assumed in the
+world.</p>
+
+<p>Although we may infer that Russian realism
+has its roots in a special spiritual predilection,
+we must not nevertheless forget the historical
+conditions which prepared the way for it and
+made its logical development easy. Russian
+literature, called on to struggle against tremendous
+obstacles, could hardly have gone
+astray in the domain of a nebulous idealism.</p>
+
+<p>The third distinctive trait of this literature
+is found in its democratic spirit. Most of the
+heroes are not titled personages; they are
+peasants, bourgeois, petty officials, students,
+and, finally, "intellectuals." This democratic
+taste is explained by the very constitution of
+Russian society.</p>
+
+<p>The spirit of the literature of a nation is usually
+a reflection of the social class which possesses
+the preponderant influence from a political
+or economic standpoint or which is marked
+by the strength of its numbers. The preponderance
+of the upper middle class in England has
+impressed on all the literature of that country
+the seal of morality belonging to that class;
+while in France, where aristocracy predominated,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[Pg 13]</a></span>
+one still feels the influence of the aristocratic
+traditions which are so brilliantly manifested
+in the pseudo-classic period of its literature.
+But many reasons have hindered the aristocracy
+and the bourgeoisie from developing
+in Russia. The Russian bourgeois was,
+for a long time, nothing but a peasant who had
+grown rich, while the noble was distinguished
+more by the number of his serfs and his authority
+than by his moral superiority. Deprived
+of independence, these two classes blended
+and still blend with the immense number of
+peasants who surround them on all sides and
+submerge them irresistibly, however they may
+wish to free themselves.</p>
+
+<p>Very naturally, the first Russian authors
+came from the class of proprietors, rural lords,
+who were the most intelligent, not to say the
+only intelligent people. In general, the life of
+the lord was barely distinguishable from that of
+the peasant. As he was usually reared in the
+country, he passed his childhood among the village
+children; the people most dear to his heart,
+often more dear to him than his father or mother,
+were his nurse and the other servants,&mdash;simple
+people, who took care of him and gave him the
+pleasures of his youthful existence. Before he
+entered the local government school, he had
+been impregnated with goodness and popular
+poetry, drawn from stories, legends, and tales
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[Pg 14]</a></span>
+to which he had been an ardent listener. We
+find the great Pushkin dedicating his most
+pathetic verses to his old nurse, and we often
+see him inspired by the most humble people. In
+this way, to the theoretic democracy imported
+from Europe is united, in the case of the Russian
+author, a treasure of ardent personal recollections;
+democracy is not for him an abstract
+love of the people, but a real affection, a tenderness
+made up of lasting reminiscences which
+he feels deeply.</p>
+
+<p>This then was the mental state of the most
+intelligent part of this Russian nobility, which
+showed itself a pioneer of the ideas of progress
+in literature and life. There were even singular
+political manifestations produced. Rostopchin
+said: "In France the shoemakers want to become
+noble; while here, the nobles would like to
+turn shoemakers." But, in spite of all, the
+greater part of this caste, with its essential conservative
+instincts, was nothing more than an
+inert mass, without initiative, and incapable
+even of defending its own interests except by
+the aid of the government.</p>
+
+<p>Rostopchin did not suspect the profound
+truth of his capricious saying.</p>
+
+<p>This truth burst forth in all its strength
+about 1870, the time of the great reforms undertaken
+by Alexander II, when the interests of
+the people were, for the first time, the order of
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[Pg 15]</a></span>
+the day. It was at this period that a great deal
+of studying was being done with great enthusiasm
+and that a general infatuation for folklore
+and for a "union with the masses" was
+being shown. The desire to become "simplified,"
+that is to say to have all people live
+the same kind of life, the appearance of a type,
+celebrated under the sarcastic name of "noble
+penitent" (meaning the titled man who is
+ashamed of his privileged position as if it were
+a humiliating and infamous thing), the politico-socialistic
+ideology of the first Slavophiles, still
+half conservative, but wholly democratic; all
+these things were the results of the manifestations
+which astonished Rostopchin and made the
+more intelligent class of Russians fraternize
+more with the masses. In our day, this tendency
+has been eloquently illustrated by the greatest
+Russian artist and thinker, Tolstoy, who was
+the very incarnation of the ideas named above,
+and who always appears to us as a highly cultured
+peasant. The hero of "Resurrection"
+sums up in a few words this sympathy for the
+people: "This is it, the big world, the true
+world!" he says, on seeing the crowd of peasants
+and workingmen packed into a third-class
+compartment.</p>
+
+<p>In the last half of the 19th century, Russian
+literature took a further step in the way of
+democracy. It passed from the hands of the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[Pg 16]</a></span>
+nobility into the hands of the middle class, as
+the conditions under which it existed brought it
+closer to the people and made it therefore more
+accessible to their aspirations. It is no longer
+the great humanitarians of the privileged class
+who paint the miserable conditions among which
+people vegetate; it is the people themselves who
+are beginning to speak of their miseries and of
+their hopes for a better life. The result is a
+deep penetration of the popular mind, in conjunction
+with an acute, and sometimes sickly,
+nervousness, which is shown in the works of the
+great Uspensky, and, more recently still, in
+Tchekoff, Andreyev, and many others.</p>
+
+<p>None of these writers belong to the aristocracy,
+and two of them&mdash;Tchekoff and Gorky&mdash;have
+come up from the masses: the former
+was the son of a serf, and the latter the son of
+a workingman. Let me add that, among the
+women of letters, the one who is most distinguished
+by her talent in describing scenes from
+popular life&mdash;Mme. Dmitrieva&mdash;is the
+daughter of a peasant woman.</p>
+
+<p>Thus, as we have shown, the Russian writers
+alone, under the cover of imaginative works
+which became expressive symbols, could undertake
+a truly efficacious struggle against tyranny
+and arbitrariness. They found themselves in
+that way placed in a peculiar social position
+with corresponding duties. Men expected from
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[Pg 17]</a></span>
+them, naturally, a new gospel and also a plan
+of conduct necessary in order to escape from
+the circle of oppression. The best of the Russian
+writers have undertaken a difficult and
+perilous task; they have become the guides, and,
+so to speak, the "masters" of life. This tendency
+constitutes a new trait in Russian literature,
+one of its most characteristic; not that
+other literatures have neglected it, but no other
+literature in the world has proclaimed this mission
+with such a degree of energy and with such
+a spirit of sacrifice. Never, in any other country,
+have novelists or poets felt with such intensity
+the burden on their souls. At this point
+Gogol, first of all, became the victim of this
+state of things.</p>
+
+<p>The enthusiasm stirred up by his works and
+by the immense hopes that he had evoked suddenly
+elevated him to such a height in the minds
+of his contemporaries that he felt real anguish.
+Artist he was, and now he forced himself to
+become a moralist; he rushed into philosophical
+speculations which led him on to a nebulous mysticism,
+from which his talent suffered severely.
+When he realized what had happened, despair
+seized him, his ideas troubled him, and he died
+in terrible intellectual distress.</p>
+
+<p>We see also the great admirer of Gogol&mdash;Dostoyevsky&mdash;under
+different pretexts making
+known in almost all his novels and especially in
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[Pg 18]</a></span>
+his magazine articles, "Recollections of an
+Author," his opinions on the reforms about to
+be realized. He studies the problems of civilization
+which concern humanity in general, and
+particularly insists upon the mission of the
+Russian people, who are destined, he believes,
+to end all the conflicts of the world by virtue
+of a system based upon Christian love and pity.</p>
+
+<p>Turgenev, himself, although above all an
+artist, does not remain aloof from this educational
+work. In his "Annals of a Sportsman,"
+he attacks bondage. And when it was abolished,
+and when in the very heart of Russian society,
+among the younger generation, the revolutionists
+appeared, Turgenev attempted to paint
+these "new men." Thus in his novel, "Fathers
+and Sons," he sketches in bold strokes the character
+of the nihilist Bazarov. This celebrated
+type cannot, however, be considered a true representative
+of the mentality of the "new men,"
+for it gave only a few aspects of their character,
+which, besides, did not have Turgenev's
+sympathy.</p>
+
+<p>They are valued in an entirely different way
+by Chernyshevsky in his novel, "What Is To
+Be Done?" where the author, one of the most
+powerful representatives of the great movement
+toward freedom from 1860 to 1870, carefully
+studied the bases of the new morals and the
+means to be used in struggling against the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[Pg 19]</a></span>
+prejudices of the old society. Finally let us
+mention Tolstoy, whose entire literary activity
+was a constant search for truth, till the day
+when his mind found an answer to his doubts
+in the religion of love and harmony which he
+preached from then on.</p>
+
+<p>The earnestness which sees an apostle in a
+writer has not ceased to grow and has almost
+blinded the public.</p>
+
+<p>For example, Gorky needed only to write
+some stories in which he places before us beings
+belonging to the most miserable classes of society,
+to be suddenly, and perhaps against his
+own will, elevated to the r&ocirc;le of prophet of a
+new gospel, of annunciator from whom they
+were waiting for the Word, although one could
+also find the Word in the anti-socialistic circles
+which he depicts. Another contemporaneous
+author, Tchekoff, once wrote a story about the
+precarious position of the workingman in the
+city; he showed how this man, after he had become
+old and had gone back to his native village,
+suffered even more misery than before instead
+of getting the rest he had hoped for. Immediately
+an ardent controversy took place between
+the two factions of the youth of that time,
+the Populists and the Marxists. The former,
+defending the rural population, accused the
+author of having exaggerated and of having
+only superficially considered the question, while
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[Pg 20]</a></span>
+the others triumphed, confident in the activity
+of the people of the city.</p>
+
+<p>The literary critic, however, in carefully
+studying the works of these authors, tried to
+get at the real meaning,&mdash;the idea between the
+lines. Gorky's philosophy has often been discussed;
+a great many men of letters have tried
+to unravel what there was of pessimism, of indifference
+or of mystic idealism in the soul of
+Tchekoff. This everlasting habit, not to say
+this mania, of analyzing the mind or soul of an
+author in order to get at his conception, his
+personal doctrine of life, often leads to partial
+and erroneous conclusions, especially when, as
+in most cases, the critic has only a very vague
+idea of the main current of thought which
+formed the genesis of the work.</p>
+
+<p>The hopes and emotions which are aroused by
+every original expression in literature, show
+more than ever what hopes are based upon its
+r&ocirc;le, the mission which has devolved on it to
+serve life, by formulating the facts of the ideal
+to be realized.</p>
+
+<p>But what is this ideal? What are these ideal
+aspirations? Of what elements are they made
+up? What is the state of mind of the great
+majority of Russian "intellectuals" in the
+midst of the enmity which compromises and
+menaces them?</p>
+
+<p>Thanks to the window pierced by Peter the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[Pg 21]</a></span>
+Great in the thick Muscovite wall, the Russian
+"intellectuals" have begun to have a general
+idea of European civilization. They have admired
+the beauty of this culture, and the greatness
+of European political and social institutions,
+guarantees of the dignity of human beings;
+they have endured mental suffering because
+they have found that in Russia such
+independence would be impossible, and, consequently,
+they have had a feeling of extreme bitterness,
+which has forced them either to deny or
+calumniate the moral forces of their country, or
+to formulate very strange theories about this situation.
+Thus at the end of the first twenty-five
+years of the century, Chadayev, one of the most
+original and brilliant thinkers of Russia, developed
+the following thesis in his "Philosophical
+Letters":&mdash;the fatal course of history having
+opposed the union of the Russian people with
+Catholicism, through which European civilization
+developed, Russia found herself reduced
+forever to the existence of an inert mass, deprived
+of all interior energy, as can be shown
+adequately by her history, her customs, and
+even the aspect of her national type with its
+ill-defined traits and apathetic expression.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In the course of the terrible struggle which
+he waged against the censorship and against
+influential persons evilly disposed toward him,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[Pg 22]</a></span>
+Pushkin cried out: "It was the idea of the
+devil himself that made me be born in Russia!"
+And in one of his letters, he says, "Naturally,
+I despise my country from east to west, but,
+nevertheless, I hate to hear a stranger speak
+of it with scorn." Lermontov, exiled to the
+Caucasus, ironically takes leave of his country,
+which he calls, "a squalid country of slaves and
+masters." And he salutes the Caucasian mountains
+as the immense screen which may hide him
+from the eyes of the Russian pachas. The
+Slavophiles themselves, the patriots who in their
+way idealized both Russian orthodoxy and autocracy,
+and who were wrongly considered the
+champions of the existing order of things,
+showed themselves no less hostile. One of their
+most celebrated representatives, Khomyakov,
+sees in Russia "a land stigmatized" by serfdom,
+where all is injustice, lies, morbid laziness
+and turpitude.</p>
+
+<p>Dostoyevsky, who shared some of the illusions
+of the Slavophiles, speaks of Europe as
+"a land of sacred miracles." Nevertheless,
+yielding to his desire to heighten the prestige
+of his country, he adds: "The Russian is not
+partially European, but essentially so, in the
+very largest sense of the word, because he
+watches, with an impartial love, the progress
+achieved by the various peoples of Europe,
+while each one of <i>them</i> appreciates, above all,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[Pg 23]</a></span>
+the progress of his own country, and often does
+not want to let the others share it."</p>
+
+<p>In spite of the seductive powers which European
+civilization exercised upon Russia, the
+Russians perceived its weak sides, which they
+studied by the light of the ideal which they
+promised themselves to attain in some indefinite
+future, a future which they nevertheless hoped
+was near at hand.</p>
+
+<p>To them, enthusiastic observers that they
+were, these defects became more apparent than
+to the Europeans themselves; as their critical
+sense was not deadened by the wear of constant
+use, they saw in a clear light the inconveniences
+of certain institutions, they perceived the sad
+consequences of the excessive triumph of individualism
+in its struggle for life, the enfranchisement
+of the proletariat, the satisfaction
+of the few at the cost of the many. At
+times the bases of this civilization seemed fragile
+to the Russians; they had a feeling that it was
+not finished; they also aspired more and more
+to the harmonious equilibrium of society which
+appealed to their ideal.</p>
+
+<p>In a word, that which has always been called
+socialism, has had an irresistible attraction for
+the more intelligent Russians; all of Russian
+literature is permeated with it, and it has developed
+all the more easily because it found a
+favorable basis in Russia's natural democracy.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[Pg 24]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>During the period when this literature was
+most persecuted&mdash;that is to say in the second
+half of the 19th century&mdash;its most influential
+representatives were ardent socialists. Among
+them should be mentioned the critic Byelinsky,
+the "Petracheviens,"&mdash;adepts in the doctrine
+of Fourier,&mdash;and that powerful agitator of
+ideas, Hertzen, who founded the Russian free
+press in London. Among Western writers,
+there were two well liked in Russia: George
+Sand and Charles Dickens. The former was a
+socialist, the latter was a democrat. Their influence
+was very great in Russia; their works
+were read with ardor, and gave rise to thoughts
+which escaped the severities of the censor, but
+betrayed themselves in private conversation, as
+well as in certain literary circles.</p>
+
+<p>All the celebrated writers of Europe who
+professed liberal tendencies met with a greater
+sympathy among the Russians of that time than
+in their own country. Dickens, received with
+great enthusiasm in Russia, was not appreciated
+by the English public. His excellent translator,
+Vedensky, tried hard to persuade him to come
+to Russia to live, where his talents would be
+valued at their true worth. We can then readily
+understand how Dostoyevsky, in his "Memoirs
+of an Author," had the right to say that
+the European socialistic-democrats had two
+countries, first their own, then Russia.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[Pg 25]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>The Russian writers who gave themselves up
+so passionately to this influence,&mdash;still so new
+even in Europe,&mdash;not able to support their
+political ideal, with a press, as it were, gagged
+by the censor, engaged in the struggle along the
+line of customs. They attacked the prejudices
+which clog the relations among men, and rose
+up against family despotism and the inferior
+position of women from a civil and economic
+point of view. But, between 1860 and 1870,
+when the enfranchisement of the serfs reduced
+the power of the censor, all that had been confined
+in the souls of the Russians burst forth.
+Chernishevsky wrote economic articles on capital
+and on the agricultural community; he studied
+the system of John Stuart Mill, from which he
+deduced his socialistic conclusions, and his reputation
+grew immediately at home and abroad.
+He became a leader of thought among the new
+generation.</p>
+
+<p>At the same time, the young critic Dobrolyubov,
+author of an analytical study of Russian
+customs, "The Kingdom of Shadows," called
+the "intellectuals" to a struggle for the rights
+of the oppressed people, and was ready himself
+to "drain the bitter cup intended for those who
+have been sacrificed." Also at this time there
+appeared the poet Nekrasov and the satirist
+Saltykov. The former, a profound pessimist,
+described in his best verses the bitter fate of the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[Pg 26]</a></span>
+lower classes; the latter with his sarcasm
+scathed bureaucratic arbitrariness, while from
+abroad was heard the free ringing of "The
+Bell,"&mdash;a paper founded by Hertzen,&mdash;which
+seemed to be announcing that freedom was coming.
+Two articles by the poet Mikhailov on
+the situation of women started a vast movement.
+The women soon filled the lecture-halls of the
+university, and the class-rooms, and organized
+a veritable campaign to defend their rights in
+the name of the principle of liberty. All the
+partisans of democracy or socialism applauded
+them. The agitation became general; it seemed
+as if they wanted to make up for lost time by
+this tremendous activity; everywhere Sunday
+schools were started and public libraries opened;
+workingmen's associations were formed on socialistic
+principles, and the ardent younger generation
+spoke to the ignorant masses and asked
+them to join them in the coming struggle.</p>
+
+<p>This epoch has been called "the moral springtime"
+of Russia, and in truth it was a spring
+with all of its real splendors and illusions. A
+sudden wave of life surged from one end of the
+empire to the other. Up above, the government
+was making reforms prudently, as if afraid
+of going too far; down below, a great transformation
+was taking place. It was at this time
+that certain bold projects were contemplated
+at which the government took fright. The
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[Pg 27]</a></span>
+"springtime" proved ephemeral. A triumphant
+reaction nipped in the bud this movement
+towards emancipation, with all its hopes. In
+1877, after the Russo-Turkish war, it seemed as
+if the movement were going to start again.
+Less vast and less diverse, but more definite, it
+immediately put all of its strength into the
+popular propaganda and showed its activity by
+the assassination of the emperor and by several
+other crimes. It was a terrible struggle, till
+finally the leaders again succumbed under the
+mighty blows of their adversaries. The years
+that followed this defeat (1880-1905) were most
+inauspicious in Russian life. A profound
+apathy deadened society, and an atmosphere
+of anguish and disillusion&mdash;which have left
+visible traces in Russian literature&mdash;weighed
+it down.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In short, it may be said that Russian thought
+has always been led away by the theories of
+certain European parties who are most opposed
+to political and social organization of the state.</p>
+
+<p>The vigor, the clearness, and the force of
+negation with which this characteristic manifests
+itself in the ideas and customs of the Russian
+radical-socialists have often distorted, in the
+eyes of other countries, opinions or doctrines
+which it is important to present in their true
+light.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[Pg 28]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Thus, Bazarov, that nihilistic creation of
+Turgenev, appeared to the English, French,
+and German public as a mystical hero not viable
+in human society, while Pisarev, one of the
+sanest of Russian critics, considers him as a
+model of the really free man. As to Turgenev
+himself, he saw that the coming of this type
+would make concrete a rising force worthy of
+holding attention and also of commanding some
+respect.</p>
+
+<p>In practical life, this negative force has found
+its most extreme expression in what has already
+been pointed out, that is, in the revolutionary
+anarchism of Bakunin and in Tolstoy's recent
+theories of pacific anarchism, which are founded
+on the gospel. But, while very significant as
+great illustrations of certain sides of Russian
+mentality, neither the one nor the other of these
+anarchistic doctrines, so opposed in their substance,
+can be considered as an expression of the
+modern Russian socialistic movement. Having
+found a basis in the workingman movement of
+their country, the Russian socialistic theoreticians
+have become more practical, and their activity
+turns back to the realm of European
+socialism, which is to be found in the doctrines
+of Karl Marx.</p>
+
+<p>There was a time in Europe when they christened
+with the name "nihilism" this active negation
+of civilization and of bourgeois customs,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[Pg 29]</a></span>
+so characteristic of the Russian "intellectuals."
+Taken in its literal sense, this word
+is inexact, since those to whom it was applied
+were inspired by a very high ideal. In a loose
+use of the word, nihilism has, on the contrary,
+a real significance, especially if one connects it
+with most of the Russian "intellectuals." The
+liberal tendencies which were brewing in the
+realistic literature of the period from 1840 to
+1850, and which manifested themselves suddenly
+with particular strength during the tumultuous
+decade between 1860 and 1870, made the substance
+of the new theories and the base of Russian
+mentality. These theories were very bold
+in their negation, and it is for this reason that
+they have been called "nihilistic."</p>
+
+<p>If this intellectual "&eacute;lite" should some day
+triumph in Russia, will it be true to its moral
+idea of justice and liberty? It probably will.
+We may then see the following phenomenon take
+place: the realization of the most advanced program
+of modern civilization in one of the most
+backward countries of Europe.</p>
+
+<p>However paradoxical such a prevision may
+seem at first, it has a fundamental element of
+truth. Two obstacles bar the way to civilization
+and the normal development of new ideas, which
+are the foundation of progress. First of all,
+there is the na&iuml;ve and boorish ignorance of the
+common people; then the resistance which every
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[Pg 30]</a></span>
+established society instinctively offers to ideas
+of reformation. Of these two conservative
+forces, Russia knows but one, pure and simple
+ignorance, while the second, which can have art
+and science as powerful allies, is completely lacking.
+But ignorance cannot last forever. It
+diminishes more and more; that is why the most
+advanced ideas of European civilization naturally
+go hand in hand with learning in Russia,
+and occupy all places which knowledge wins
+from ignorance. Since the Russian has had a
+taste of science he has become the champion of
+social and democratic ideas; the latter develop
+even with elementary instruction, as can easily
+be seen by observing the movements made among
+the workmen of the city, and also among the
+more advanced elements of the peasant population.</p>
+
+<p>These particulars had already attracted the
+attention of the brilliant peace advocate and
+profound thinker, Hertzen, who, distressed by
+the bloody reprisals of bourgeoise Europe,
+following the Revolution of 1848, fixed his attention
+on Russia, from which he expected great
+things,&mdash;among others, a new civilization freed
+from the prejudices and customs which held it
+back in other countries.</p>
+
+<p>Hertzen represented Russia as an immense
+plain where people were getting rid of old
+thatched cottages, and at the same time collecting
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[Pg 31]</a></span>
+the necessary materials for new habitations.
+He saw a world in which no one lived as yet, but
+where life as it should be was being prepared for.
+And this idea, which may seem exaggerated, has
+a good deal of sense in it. Does not every backward
+nation, which hastens to take her place in
+the circle of the more advanced peoples of Europe,
+resemble a vessel into which a new wine is
+to be poured?</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>If modern Russian literature has not deviated
+from its fundamental principles, realism, democracy,
+and socialism, on the other hand, a radical
+change has taken place in society which has
+necessarily had an influence on it. The populace
+is not the sombre, inert, and ignorant multitude
+that it has been heretofore. Learning is
+penetrating more and more; and as an advance-guard,
+it has the workingmen of the city and
+the people of the suburbs. A feeling of dignity,
+of human personality, and a love of liberty is
+awakening in the masses who have joined in the
+struggle which the "intellectuals" are conducting
+against the passive forces of autocracy.</p>
+
+<p>That is why the literature of this time&mdash;always
+excepting the period from 1905 to 1910&mdash;is
+pre&euml;minently a literature of fiercer and
+more active combat than ever before. As in
+times gone by, the heroes of this literature are
+common people. The writers choose them from
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[Pg 32]</a></span>
+among the students, schoolmasters, and school-mistresses
+of the village schools, who with complete
+disregard of self carry on the great work
+of popular education in the very heart of the
+country, without caring about the arbitrary
+power which menaces them, or the moral and
+material conditions of their lives. They also
+choose them from among the doctors of the districts
+who are worn out in despairing efforts to
+struggle against the terrible epidemics, and who
+are also trying to improve hygienic conditions
+among the peasants. In fine, among the heroes
+are included all who sacrifice their personal interests
+for the general good.</p>
+
+<p>The results of this terrible struggle against
+brute force are shown in the excessive nervousness
+of the combatants, who have become delirious
+with their aspirations towards liberty.
+Hatred of actual reality and distrust of those
+who have resigned themselves to it have made
+them accept sympathetically the most extreme
+and uncompromising measures, and one often
+thinks one sees a certain generosity among the
+people who are at war with society,&mdash;often, it
+is true, for egotistical reasons, far removed from
+the great ideal of reforms profitable to the
+masses. Such are the celebrated barefoot
+brigade, the eternal vagabonds, the "lumpen-proletariat"
+of Gorky's early works.</p>
+
+<p>Another favorite subject of the Russian authors
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[Pg 33]</a></span>
+is the antagonism which makes parents
+and children quarrel. But the children who were
+radicals of the former generation have now became
+fathers, and are often reproached by their
+sons for the practical impossibility of the ideal
+for which they vainly expended their strength,
+and, as a result of which, they are worn out and
+useless. Veressayev and Chirikov have written
+most on this point.</p>
+
+<p>However, in spite of repeated attacks, the resistance
+has grown in intensity and the general
+uneasiness has spread without any one's being
+able as yet to see any lasting or positive result.
+The pessimism of various writers faithfully reflects
+this crisis. Andreyev, for instance, possesses
+an extraordinary intuition of the element
+of tragic mysteriousness which envelops the
+slightest circumstances of daily life. Tchekoff,
+the prominent author who died a few years ago,
+has left us remarkably realistic sketches, where
+he obviously shows mental discouragement as a
+result of the struggle. Another contemporary
+writer, Korolenko, whose poetic talent recalls
+Turgenev to our minds, is distinguished, on the
+contrary, by the attempts he has made to set
+free the spark of life which exists in human beings
+who have broken down morally. All these
+writers have such a direct and powerful influence
+on contemporary youth that we are going to
+study them separately in this book, not excepting
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[Pg 34]</a></span>
+Tchekoff, whose influence is still enormous.</p>
+
+<p>Since the death of the prophet of Yasnaya-Polyana,<a name="FNanchor_1" id="FNanchor_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a>
+Russian literature cannot boast of
+any writers who compare with Turgenev, Dostoyevsky,
+Goncharov, or the dramatist Ostrovsky.
+The cause is to be traced rather to circumstances
+than to the authors themselves. For
+social life to furnish material suitable for the
+artist's description, it must first of all have
+types which show a certain consistency, a more
+or less determined attitude. But it is futile to
+look for either stability or precision in Russian
+life since Russia has been going through continual
+crises. It would be just as difficult for
+literature to record rapid changes of ideas, as
+for an artist to copy a model that cannot pose
+for him. Besides, most contemporary writers
+are struggling hard for the means of subsistence.</p>
+
+<p>Sometimes their effort to get food has so
+sapped their strength that they have not had
+enough time to finish their studies, nor enough
+tranquillity of soul to apply their talents to an
+impartial view of life and to incorporating in
+their work the documents which they have collected.
+Even in the writing of the best Russian
+authors of to-day one often feels that there is
+something unfinished, or hasty, as if their
+thoughts had not matured.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[Pg 35]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>I do not think that it will be superfluous to
+add that all Russian literature for the past
+century has been able to express only a very
+small part of what it had to say. The Russian
+writer continually suffers from the constraint
+which forces him to check the flight of his inspiration
+in order to escape from the foolish
+and often stupid sternness of the pitiless censor.
+The poet Nekrasov shows us in one of his poems
+an old soldier who has become a printer, and
+who speaks in the following manner of Pushkin:</p>
+
+<p>"He was a good man, tipped very generously,
+but he never ceased to rage against the
+censor. When he saw his manuscripts marked
+with red crosses, he became furious. One day,
+in order to console him, I said:</p>
+
+<p>"'Bah! why torment yourself?'</p>
+
+<p>"'Why,' he cried, 'but it is blood that is
+flowing,&mdash;blood,&mdash;my blood!'"</p>
+
+<p>A great deal of blood was thus shed. And in
+order to accentuate the action of the censor the
+police dealt cruel blows to the authors. One
+day Pushkin was called to the head of the department.
+They believed that they had recognized
+in one of his satires a certain gentleman,
+named N.&nbsp;G., who demanded that Pushkin be
+severely punished. Unnerved by the cross-examination
+to which he was put, the poet cried:</p>
+
+<p>"But it isn't N.&nbsp;G. whom I have drawn!"</p>
+
+<p>"Who is it, then?"
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[Pg 36]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"It is you, yourself," replied the poet.</p>
+
+<p>"That is madness, sir," the high dignitary
+cried out with wrath. "You say that wood belonging
+to the state was stolen. And at the
+time when these thefts were committed I was
+away."</p>
+
+<p>"Then you do not recognize yourself in my
+satire?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, a thousand times no!"</p>
+
+<p>"And N.&nbsp;G. recognizes himself?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not exactly, but as he is in the service of
+the government...."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, is he its spokesman and champion?
+And why is it precisely he who asks to have me
+arrested?"</p>
+
+<p>"All right," replied the dignitary, suddenly
+becoming milder, "I shall inform His Majesty
+of our conversation."</p>
+
+<p>The affair ended without further complications.
+It should be noted that the Tsar himself
+protected Pushkin, for Pushkin had got into
+touch with him in order to influence him more
+successfully. Nevertheless, this acquaintance
+was only a new source of suffering to the poet.
+In the case of certain less known writers the
+malevolence of the higher authorities often took
+on a tragic turn. For a single poem in which
+the poet Polezhayev described a students' debauch,
+the author was reduced by Nicholas I to
+the rank of a common soldier. Sokolovsky, another
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[Pg 37]</a></span>
+writer of this time, not being able to get
+a footing in literature, abandoned the pen, and
+like many others, sought to forget his disappointment
+in drink. For several years Hertzen
+was transferred from one place of exile to another
+until he came to England. And how terrible
+was the fate of the talented poet of Little
+Russia, Shevchenko, who was exiled for many
+years to a corner of European Russia and forbidden
+to do any writing or even painting, a
+thing that he loved above all! And finally, who
+does not know the sad comedy of Dostoyevsky,
+who was made to go through all the preparations
+for his execution, but was finally sent to
+that prison which he has so wonderfully described
+in his recollections of "The Dead
+House"?</p>
+
+<p>The Damocles' sword of defiant authority was
+suspended over the head of every Russian writer.
+The vocation of literature was filled with danger
+and brought about actual tragedies in some
+families. Thus, Pushkin's father, fearing that
+the fury of the authorities would extend to him,
+began to hate all literature, and had serious
+quarrels with his son. Griboyedov's mother
+threw herself at her son's feet and begged him
+not to write any more but rather to enter the
+service of the State. In Griboyedov we have a
+sad example of a great talent virtually buried
+alive by the censor. His comedy, "Intelligence
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[Pg 38]</a></span>
+Comes to Grief," is a masterful work, sparkling
+with satiric warmth, the equal of which it would
+be hard to find anywhere. This first work, rich
+in promise, was never published nor produced.
+Discouraged, the author renounced literature,
+and on the advice of his mother, accepted a position
+as ambassador to Persia, where he was
+killed in a riot.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Not only does the censorship mutilate literary
+works, but it often suffocates the inspiration
+of the author. The Russian press has lately
+published a very interesting article on Nekrasov,
+explaining the frequent interruptions of his
+activity by a momentary paralysis of his inspiration.
+Often, he writes, the ideas and
+poetic forms which come to his mind are so
+strong that he need only take up his pen and
+write them down. But the thought that what
+he might write would be condemned by the
+censor, stops him. It was, then, a long struggle
+between the ideas which he wanted to express
+and the obstacles which hindered him. And
+when finally Nekrasov had smothered his inspiration,
+he was broken down and crushed by
+fatigue and disgust, and for a long time he
+stopped writing. His friends advised him to
+jot down his ideas in spite of all, in the hope
+that they would be recognized by future generations
+when happier days should dawn on
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[Pg 39]</a></span>
+literature. He was not successful, because in
+order to create his genius needed to feel a close
+bond between him and his readers. Thus the
+censor carried his brutal hand into the very
+laboratory of thought.</p>
+
+<p>Happily, since the movement toward reform
+between 1860 and 1870, the Russian censor
+has become more lenient and now no one says
+what was once said to the writer Bulgarin:
+"Your business is to describe public activities,
+popular holidays, the theatre. Do not look for
+other topics." The number of subjects open to
+the press has increased. But the desire to live
+a free life has developed in literature and in
+society alike, and as resistance to it has also
+strengthened, the pressure has remained relatively
+the same. The censor and the police continue
+to stifle the natural richness and the power
+of the Russian mind. To-day, as before, Russian
+literature is made up of just that small
+fraction of the whole which has escaped government
+inquisition.</p>
+
+<p>However, in spite of all the unheard-of constraints
+which weigh upon her, Russia has already
+given us such great authors, that we
+need not hesitate to say that on the day when
+she regains liberty of speech and of pen, her
+literature will take its place among the first in
+the world.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[Pg 40]</a></span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="II" id="II"></a>II<br />
+ANTON TCHEKOFF<a name="FNanchor_2" id="FNanchor_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a></h2>
+
+
+<p>"There is a saying that man needs only
+six feet of ground, but that is for a corpse and
+not for a living man. It is not six feet of
+ground that man requires, not even an entire
+estate, but the whole terrestrial globe, nature
+in its fullness, so that all his faculties can expand
+freely."</p>
+
+<p>This is the proud profession of faith that
+Anton Tchekoff made on entering the literary
+world. He was born January 17, 1860, at
+Taganrog, where his father, a freed serf, lived.
+After attending school in his native town, he
+took up the study of medicine at Moscow.
+Once a doctor, rather than practise, he devoted
+most of his time to literature. His career as
+an author does not offer us any extraordinary
+situations. He owed his success, and later on
+his glory, to severe and prolonged work. His
+literary talent manifested itself while he was
+still a student. He began his career with
+humorous short stories which were published
+in various newspapers. They brought him
+enough for the bare necessities of life.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[Pg 41]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>These stories have been collected in two
+volumes. They are very short, almost miniatures.
+For the most part they are elegant
+trifles, worked out with painstaking care. One
+feels that the author had no definite goal in
+sight; he wrote them simply to amuse and
+entertain his readers. One would search in
+vain for any sort of philosophy. On the contrary,
+one finds there a rather significant spirit,
+a gaiety, care-free, loquacious and, at times,
+ironical. Unimportant people tell pleasant
+things about themselves or others. All these
+men are a trifle debauched, talky, futile, and
+their companions are flighty, intriguing little
+women who chatter incessantly. Everything
+begins and ends with a laugh. This recalls
+some of the early works of Gogol, but, we
+repeat, one finds no moral element in this
+laughter, and these tiny comedies are in reality
+no more than simple vaudeville sketches. Once
+in a while we find a sad note; less frequently,
+we find the sadness accentuated in order to present
+a terrible drama. Such, then, are the contents
+of the first two volumes which came from
+the pen of Tchekoff.</p>
+
+<p>However, this melancholy little note, met
+from time to time, gradually grew in intensity
+in the third volume, until later on it lost all
+trace of the old carelessness, and developed, on
+the contrary, into a profound sadness. Tchekoff
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[Pg 42]</a></span>
+unconsciously gave up the "genre" of
+pleasant anecdote in order to concentrate all
+his attention on facts. This practice made him
+sad. Russia was, at this time, going through
+a period of prostration as a result of the last
+Russo-Turkish war. This war, which, at the
+cost of enormous sacrifices, ended in the liberation
+of the Bulgarian people, awakened among
+the Russians a hope of obtaining their own
+liberty, and provoked among the younger generation
+the most energetic efforts to obtain this
+liberty, no matter what the cost might be.
+Alas, this hope was frustrated! All efforts
+were in vain, a reaction followed, and the year
+1880 brought the reaction to its height.
+From then on apathy followed in the steps
+of the great enthusiasm. All illusion fled. A
+kind of disenchantment filled all minds.
+Those who had hoped with such ardor, and
+had counted on their own strength, felt weak
+and powerless. Some confined themselves to
+moaning incessantly. A grey twilight enveloped
+Russian life and filled it with melancholy.
+These are the dreary aspects that Tchekoff
+describes, and none has excelled him in portraying
+the events of this hopeless reaction.
+His stories and dramas give us a long procession
+of people who succumb to the monotony,
+to the platitudes, to the desolation, of existence.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[Pg 43]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>It is in the following manner that one of his
+characters expresses his ideas on the subject of
+this moral crisis:</p>
+
+<p>"I was then not more than twenty-six years
+of age; nevertheless I was conscious not only
+that life was senseless, but that it was without
+any visible goal; that all was illusion and
+dupery; that, in its consequences and even in
+its very essence, the life of the exiled on the
+island of Sakhaline was very much the same as
+the life that was led at Nice; that the difference
+between the brain of Kant and the brain
+of a fly was very small; finally, that no one in
+this world was either right or wrong."</p>
+
+<p>This idea of the nothingness of life, with its
+extremes, monstrous and profitless, is often
+found in the work of Tchekoff. His story
+"The Kiss" is but a variation of this theme,&mdash;the
+absurdity of life. Lieutenant Riabovich,
+under the influence of a chance kiss, a kiss that
+was not meant for him, dreams of love for an
+entire summer; he waits impatiently for the
+return of the pretty stranger; but alas, his
+lovely dream cannot be realized, for the simple
+and cruel reason that no one is waiting for
+<i>him</i>, no one is interested in him. One day, on
+the banks of a stream, the young officer gives
+himself up to his reflections:</p>
+
+<p>"The water flows off; one knows not where
+nor why; it flowed in exactly the same way
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[Pg 44]</a></span>
+last May; from the stream it flows into the
+river, and then into the sea; then it evaporates,
+turns into rain, and perhaps the very same
+water again flows by before my eyes.... To
+what good? Why?" And all life appears to
+Riabovich an absurd mystification and seems
+thoroughly senseless.</p>
+
+<p>The hero of "The Bet" absolutely scorns
+humanity, with its petty and its great deeds,
+its little and its great ideas, because he feels
+that after all everything must disappear, be
+annihilated, and the earth itself will turn into
+a mass of ice.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Tchekoff has given us innumerable rough
+sketches typical of people belonging to the
+most diverse social classes. He seems to take
+his readers by the hand and to lead them
+wherever he can show them characteristic scenes
+of modern Russian society,&mdash;be it in the country,
+in the factory, in princely dwellings, at the
+post-office, or on the highway. He barely takes
+the time absolutely necessary to depict in a
+few, appropriate words a state of mind or the
+secret of a gesture. One would say that he
+hastens to express the totality of life with the
+variety of his detached manifestations of it.
+That is why his stories are short; often mere
+allusions stand in place of actual development.
+And whatever domains or corners of Russian
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[Pg 45]</a></span>
+life the reader, under the guiding hand of this
+perspicacious cicerone, may visit, he will almost
+always go away with one predominating impression:
+the lamentable isolation of Russia.</p>
+
+<p>"The Windswept Grain" shows the reader
+a religious establishment, where a young Jew,
+recently converted, has taken refuge. Here is
+a young man, very impressionable and eager
+to learn, who has fled from his home and his
+family, whose prejudices offended him. His
+family tries every means to bring him back
+and to punish his apostasy.</p>
+
+<p>In order to employ his energies effectively,
+the young proselyte, who has embraced the new
+religion only that he may follow progress,
+tries to get a position as a school-teacher. But
+the apostleship of learning cannot satisfy his
+versatile mind: he continues to flit from one
+thing to another, like a gypsophilia, driven by
+the wind across the entire stretch of the steppes
+of southern Russia.</p>
+
+<p>Then Tchekoff takes us to a postal station
+to show us another type of the "Windswept
+Grain." This man, like the young convert, is
+a dreamer, who puts heart and soul into any
+new idea that comes along. He also has spent
+his life in searching for an activity corresponding
+to his ideal. At present, being a
+widower, he is obliged to support both himself
+and his daughter, who, while loving him devotedly,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[Pg 46]</a></span>
+never ceases to reproach him for the
+many inconveniences of their uncertain existence.
+In the evening, a young widow from a
+neighboring province gets off at the place
+where he and his daughter are living. When
+she sees the young girl pouting, she consoles
+her by caressing her with the tact peculiar to
+women. Then, at tea time, she starts talking
+to the father. The idealist tells of his life, and
+reveals to the young woman the plans that he
+has made. The true sympathy with which she
+listens, and the respectful and tender feeling
+that he has for her, inevitably makes the reader
+think that fate has not brought these two
+people together in vain, and that their lives
+will be united. This impression persists when
+on the next day we find the young woman entering
+her carriage assisted by her companion
+of the evening before. We wait for the word
+that will unite this couple. But neither of
+them pronounces the all-important phrase.
+The carriage leaves; the man remains for a
+long time motionless as a statue, watching with
+a mingled feeling of joy and suffering the
+distant road and his disappearing happiness,
+which, but a moment ago, he seemed to hold in
+his hand.</p>
+
+<p>After those who insist on always realizing
+their temporary ideals, let us take up characters
+of a new type, those whom destiny has
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[Pg 47]</a></span>
+irredeemably conquered, and who have finally
+resigned themselves to their fate.</p>
+
+<p>An example of this type is Sofia Lvovna in
+"Volodia the Great and Volodia the Small."
+Married to a rich colonel, she has no other end
+in life. The days pass, tiresome, monotonous,
+filled only with visits and driving; the nights
+are interminable and sad near this husband whom
+she does not love, and whom she married out of
+spite and for money. Love for a comrade of
+her youth, Volodia by name, fills her heart.
+But this young man, who has recently finished
+his studies, is just as commonplace and just as
+debauched as her husband and the society which
+surrounds her. Sofia Lvovna is not yet resigned
+to her fate. She speaks of her aspirations
+to her childhood friend, who, after getting
+from her what he desires, leaves her at the end
+of a week. And Sofia Lvovna becomes frightened
+at the thought that for the young girls
+and women of her station there is no other
+alternative than to go on riding in carriages,
+or to enter a convent and gain salvation.</p>
+
+<p>"The Attack" gives us an example of the
+terrible feeling of terror that suddenly enters
+the proud soul of a young man at his first contact
+with certain realities.</p>
+
+<p>The student Vassiliev, a young man of excessively
+nervous temperament, has visited a
+house of ill-fame, and since then, he cannot rid
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[Pg 48]</a></span>
+himself of his painful impressions. Sombre
+thoughts beset his mind: "Women, living
+women!" he repeats, his head between his hands.
+"If I broke this lamp you would say that it
+was too bad; but down there it is not lamps
+that they break, it is the existence of human
+creatures! Living women!..."</p>
+
+<p>He dreams of several ways of saving these
+unfortunates, and he decides childishly to
+stand on a street-corner, and say to each
+passer-by:</p>
+
+<p>"Where are you going? and why? Fear
+God."</p>
+
+<p>But this desire soon gives place to a general
+state of anguish and hatred of himself. The
+evil seems too great for him, and its vastness
+crushes him. In the meantime, the people
+about him do not suffer; they are indifferent
+or incredulous. The student feels that he is
+losing his mind. They confine him. Later on,
+when, cured, he leaves the alienist, "he blushes
+at his anxiety."... The general indifference
+has broken down his aspirations, smothered his
+vague dream.</p>
+
+<p>In "Peter the Bishop," we see a man, good
+and simple, the son of peasants. This man,
+thanks to his intelligence, has raised himself
+to the rank of bishop. During all his life he
+has suffocated in this high ecclesiastical position,
+the pompous tinsel of which troubles him
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[Pg 49]</a></span>
+to such an extent that the cordial and sincere
+relationship existing between him and his old
+mother, who is so full of respect for her son,
+is broken off. After his death he is quickly forgotten.
+The old mother, now childless, when
+she walks in the fields with the women of the
+village, still speaks of her children, of her
+grandchildren, and of her son, the bishop.
+But she speaks timidly of him, as if she feared
+that they would not believe her. And, in
+truth, no one puts any faith in what she
+says.</p>
+
+<p>It is among the people and the working
+classes that man is most completely rid of all
+traces of an artificial and untruthful exterior;
+the struggle against misery does not leave
+much room for other preoccupations; life is
+merciless, it crushes unrelentingly man's dreams
+of happiness, and often does not leave any one
+to share the burden of sorrows or even its simple
+cares. The short and very touching story
+of "The Coachman" gives us an excellent
+example of this loneliness. Yona, a poor coachman,
+has lost his son; he feels that he has not
+the strength to live through this sorrow alone;
+he feels the absolute need of speaking to some
+one. But he tries in vain to confide his sorrows
+to one or the other of his patrons. No
+one listens to him. Therefore, once his day's
+work is over, alone in the stable, he pours out
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[Pg 50]</a></span>
+his heart to his horse: "Yes, my little mare, he
+is dead, my beloved child.... Let us suppose
+that you had a colt, and that this colt should
+suddenly die, wouldn't that cause you sorrow?"
+The mare looks at him with shining eyes, and
+snuffles the hand of her master, who ends by
+telling her the entire story of the sickness and
+death of his son.</p>
+
+<p>In "The Dreams," a miserable vagabond,
+whom two constables are taking to the neighboring
+city, dreams aloud of the pleasant life
+he expects to lead in Siberia, whither he hopes
+to be deported. His gaolers listen to him not
+without a certain interest. They also begin to
+dream ... they dream of a free country, from
+which they are separated by an enormous
+stretch of land, a country that they can hardly
+conceive. One of them brusquely interrupts
+the dreams of the vagabond: "That's all right,
+brother, you'll never get to that enchanted
+land. How are you going to get there? You
+are going to travel 300 versts and then you'll
+give your soul up to God. You are already
+almost gone." And then, in the imagination
+of the vagabond, other scenes present themselves:
+the slowness of justice, the temporary
+jails, the prison, the forced marches and the
+weary halts, the hard winters, sickness, the
+death of comrades.... "A shudder passes
+through his whole body, his head trembles and
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[Pg 51]</a></span>
+his body contracts like a worm which has been
+trodden upon...."</p>
+
+<p>Let us now look at those numerous stories of
+Tchekoff which treat of peasant life: "The
+Peasants," "The Murder," "In the Ravine,"
+and others.</p>
+
+<p>"The Peasants" is one of the most important
+of the stories which treat of the country,
+and was recently conspicuous for bringing up
+the question, violently discussed by the Marxists
+and the Populists, of the life of the people
+in the city and in the country.</p>
+
+<p>Nicholas Chigueldyev, a waiter in a Moscow
+hotel, falls sick and has to leave his work. All
+his savings go into the hands of the doctor and
+the druggist. As he does not seem to improve,
+he decides to return to his native village, where
+his family is still living. If the air of the
+country does not cure him, he will at least die
+at home. He had left the village at an early
+age, and had never gone back to visit. He
+goes home with his wife and his little daughter.
+There he finds his mother, his father, and his
+two brothers and their wives in the most abject
+misery. The whole family is entombed in a
+dark and filthy "isba" full of flies. Nicholas
+and his wife immediately see that it would have
+been better for them to have remained in Moscow.
+But it is too late. They haven't enough
+money to return; they must remain. A horrible
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[Pg 52]</a></span>
+life begins for the sick man and his family.
+There are endless quarrels, blows, abuses.
+They reproach one another for eating and even
+for living. They are angry at Nicholas and
+his wife for having come. The latter is soon
+tired of this existence. In the city Nicholas
+had broken himself of country manners. He
+wants to go back to Moscow. But where find
+the money for the trip?... His sickness becomes
+more acute. An old tailor, a former
+nurse, who has been called in, promises to cure
+him; he bleeds him several times and Nicholas
+dies. The widow and her little daughter spend
+the winter in the village. The young woman,
+who had watched during those long days of
+suffering, is now broken down. When spring
+comes, the mother and daughter go to the
+church, and, after praying at the grave of
+their dead, they go begging on the highway.</p>
+
+<p>In "The Murder" Tchekoff studies certain
+manifestations in the spiritual life of the
+peasants. Matvey Terekof belongs to a peasant
+family the members of which are all
+known for their piety; in the village they are
+called "the singing boys." Very orthodox,
+they hold themselves aloof and give themselves
+over to mysticism.</p>
+
+<p>Instead of playing with his little comrades,
+Matvey is constantly poring over the Gospel.
+His piety increases, he prays night and day,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[Pg 53]</a></span>
+hardly eats anything, and experiences "a singular
+joy at feeling himself grow weaker through
+the fasting." One day he notices that the priest
+of the village is less pious than he. He enters
+a convent in the hopes of finding there true
+Christians. But even there his disillusionment
+comes soon. Finally, he decides to found a
+church of his own. He hires a little room which
+he transforms into a chapel. He finds disciples
+and soon gains a reputation as a thaumaturgical
+saint.</p>
+
+<p>A sect, of which he is to be the head, is in
+process of formation, when, one day, he finds
+that he is on the wrong track. He thinks he
+has committed a mortal sin. Pride has taken
+possession of him; it is the Devil and not God
+who now directs his moves. Conscious of his
+error, he returns to orthodoxy, and, in the
+hopes of expiating his wrong-doing, he humiliates
+himself everywhere and on every occasion.</p>
+
+<p>But his cousin Jacob, having become infected
+with his earlier ideas, practises them
+with the fanatic ardor of a neophyte. With
+his sister and several other religious people, he
+locks himself into his house to pray; he sings
+vespers and matins. In the meanwhile Matvey
+decides that he must read Jacob a sermon.</p>
+
+<p>"Be reasonable," he tells him repeatedly,
+"repent, cousin. You will lose, because you
+are the prey of the demon. Repent."
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[Pg 54]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Instead of repenting, Jacob and his sister
+vow an implacable hatred against Matvey; so
+extreme is their feeling, that one day, at the
+end of an altercation, Jacob, blinded by rage,
+kills his cousin.</p>
+
+<p>He is judged and condemned. He is sent to
+the island of Sakhaline. There, he languishes,
+suffers, and despairs. But, little by little, his
+mind grows peaceful, and he has consoling
+visions. In prison he is surrounded by pariahs
+and criminals, and the sight of all this human
+suffering turns him again towards God, towards
+the religion of Love, the religion of pity for
+mankind. And now he wants to return to the
+country to tell of the miracle that has taken
+place in him, and to save souls from ill and
+ignorance.</p>
+
+<p>In "The Ravine" evil and injustice triumph
+at times with revolting cynicism. Evil is in
+everything and everywhere: "in the great
+manufacturers who drive along the streets of
+the village, crushing men and beasts; in the
+bailiff and the recorder, who are such bad characters
+that their very faces betray their knavery;"
+and finally, in the central figure of the
+story, Axinia, the wife of Stepan, the youngest
+son of Tzibukine, a usurer and monopolist.</p>
+
+<p>The unhealthy ravine hides a village inhabited
+by factory workers. The best house belongs
+to Gregory Tzibukine, who traffics in
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[Pg 55]</a></span>
+everything: brandy, wheat, cattle, lumber, and
+usury, on the side. His eldest son, Anissme,
+is employed at the police station and seldom
+comes home; the second son, Stepan, is deaf
+and sickly; he helps his father both well and
+badly, and his wife, the pretty and coquettish
+Axinia, runs all day between the cellar and the
+shop. The father Tzibukine is also friendly
+to her and respects this young woman, for she
+is a very good worker and is most intelligent.
+Tzibukine, a widower, has married Varvara, an
+affable and pious soul who gives alms,&mdash;a
+strange thing in this family who cheat everybody.
+Anissme often sends home beautiful
+letters and presents. One day, he comes unexpectedly;
+he has an unquiet, and, at the same
+time, flippant air. His parents have decided
+to get him married, and, although he is a
+drunkard, ugly and vulgar, they have found
+him a pretty wife. The girl is Lipa, daughter
+of a poor widow, a laborer like her mother.
+Anissme whistles and looks at the ceiling, and
+shows no signs of pleasure at his coming marriage.
+He leaves the house in a strange manner,
+and appears again three days before the
+wedding, bringing to his parents, as gifts, some
+newly coined money. The wedding day has
+come. The clergy and the well-to-do of the
+neighborhood are present at the dinner, which is
+sumptuously served. Lipa seems petrified with
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[Pg 56]</a></span>
+fear, for she barely knows her husband. The
+festivities last a long time; at intervals the
+voices of women can be heard outside hurling
+curses at the usurer. Then Anissme, red,
+drunk, and sweating, is shoved into the room
+where Lipa has already disrobed. Five days
+later, Anissme comes to his mother and bids her
+good-bye. He confides in her that some one
+has given him advice, and that he has decided
+either to become rich or to perish. Now that
+her husband has departed, Lipa again becomes
+gay.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile, they have arrested a reaper accused
+of having circulated a bad piece of
+money which he says he received from Anissme
+the night of the wedding. Tzibukine goes
+home, examines the money that his son has
+given him, and decides that it is all counterfeit.
+He orders Axinia to throw every bit of it into
+the well. But, instead of obeying, she pays it
+out as wages to the workmen. A week passes;
+they find out that Anissme has been thrown into
+prison as a counterfeiter. Tzibukine despairs;
+he feels his strength diminishing. Varvara continues
+to pray and to watch, while Stepan
+and Axinia continue to ply their trade as before.
+When, later on, Anissme is sentenced to
+ten years at hard labor in Siberia, Varvara suggests
+to her husband that he should leave one
+of his houses to the child which has just been
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[Pg 57]</a></span>
+born to Lipa, so that no one will speak badly of
+him after his death. But, at this suggestion,
+Axinia flies into such a fury, that, in her homicidal
+rage, she throws a kettle of boiling water
+over the child, who dies later at the hospital.
+Finally, she drives the young woman out of the
+house. Lipa returns to her mother. Soon
+Axinia reigns as absolute mistress of the house.
+Tzibukine becomes distracted; he does not take
+care of his money any more, because he cannot
+tell the good from the bad. Rumor has it that
+his daughter-in-law is letting him die of hunger.
+Varvara still goes on with her good work.
+Anissme is forgotten. The old man, starving,
+and driven from home, lodges a complaint
+against the young woman. Coming back to
+the village, the old man, tottering along the
+street, meets Lipa and her mother, who are now
+doing tile work.</p>
+
+<p>"Both bow deeply to him, and he looks at
+them with tears in his eyes. Lipa offers him
+a piece of oatmeal cake, and the two women
+go on their way, crossing themselves several
+times...."</p>
+
+<p>The virtuous Varvara is an extremely characteristic
+type, with a subtle psychology, carefully
+worked out; her honesty and goodness
+form an indispensable contrast to the ambient
+horrors.</p>
+
+<p>The author himself explains the r&ocirc;le of Varvara
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[Pg 58]</a></span>
+and her action in this system of evil.
+"Her alms seem to be something strange, joyous
+and free, like the red flowers and the lights
+that glow before the saintly images." On holidays,
+and on jubilees, which last three days,
+when coarse and rotten meat is sold to the peasants
+who come to pawn their scythes and hats,
+or their wives' shawls; when the workingmen
+lie in the gutter under the influence of bad
+brandy, then "one feels a bit relieved at the
+thought that down there, in that house, there
+is a good and quiet woman, always ready to help
+unfortunates."</p>
+
+<p>Lipa and her mother are good and timid souls
+who suffer in silence, and give to the poor the
+little that they possess:</p>
+
+<p>"It seemed to them that some one up on
+high, further up than the azure, there among
+the stars, saw what was going on in their village,
+and watched. Big as the evil is, in spite
+of it, the night is beautiful and calm; justice
+is and will be calm and beautiful on God's earth
+also; the universe awaits the moment when it
+can melt into this justice, as the light of the
+moon melts into the night."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>These, then, are Tchekoff's favorite themes,
+on which he has traced numerous variations, always
+breathing forth a profound melancholy.</p>
+
+<p>"The life of our industrial classes," he says,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[Pg 59]</a></span>
+"is dark, and drags itself along in sort of a
+twilight; as to the life of our common people,
+workingmen and peasants, it is a black night,
+made up of ignorance, poverty, and all sorts of
+prejudices."</p>
+
+<p>But from this ocean of ignorance, of barbarity,
+of misery which makes up the life of a
+peasant, Tchekoff has taken out the things of
+most importance, things that always happen
+in the most solemn moments of their existence.</p>
+
+<p>"All," he says, in describing a religious procession
+in the country, "the old man, his wife
+and the others, all stretch forth their hands to
+the ikon of the holy Virgin, regard her ardently,
+and say through their tears: 'Protectress!
+Virgin protectress!' And all seem to have
+understood that the space between Heaven and
+Earth is not empty; that the rich and the
+mighty have not swallowed up everything;
+that there is protection against all wrongs,
+slavery, misery, the fatal brandy...."</p>
+
+<p>Besides, in a story entitled "My Life,"
+Poloznev, speaking of the peasants, expresses
+himself in the following manner:</p>
+
+<p>"They were, for the most part, nervous and
+irritable people, ignorant, and improvident,
+who could think of nothing but the grey earth
+and black bread; a people who were crafty,
+but were stupid about it, like the birds, who,
+when they want to hide themselves, only hide
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[Pg 60]</a></span>
+their heads. They would not do the mowing
+for you for twenty rubles, but they would do it
+for six liters of brandy, notwithstanding the
+fact that with twenty rubles they can buy eight
+times as much. What vice and foolishness!
+Nevertheless, one feels that the life of the
+peasant has a great deal of depth. It makes no
+difference that he, behind his plough, resembles
+an awkward beast, or that he gets intoxicated.
+In spite of all, when you look at him closely,
+you feel that he possesses the essential thing,
+the sentiment of justice."</p>
+
+<p>This love of justice Tchekoff has had occasion
+to observe even among convicts. "The
+convict," he says, in his book on the prison of
+Sakhaline, of which he made a profound study
+during his stay on the island, "the prisoner,
+completely corrupted and unjust as he himself
+is, loves justice more than any one else does,
+and if he does not find it in his superiors, he
+becomes angry, and grows baser and more distrustful
+from year to year."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In the last works of Tchekoff the pessimistic
+tendency grows greater and greater. It seems
+as if the writer had gone through a sort of
+moral crisis, brought on by the conflict of his
+old despair and his new hopes. At this time,
+Russian society itself began to shake off its
+apathy, and this awakening, sweeping like a
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[Pg 61]</a></span>
+vivifying wave into the soul of the sad artist,
+opened for him, at the same time, perspectives
+of new ideas.</p>
+
+<p>This second aspect of Tchekoff's talent is
+perceptible in the story called "The Student."
+A seminarist, Velikopolsky by name, tells the
+gardener Vassilissa and her daughter Lukeria
+about St.&nbsp;Peter's denial of Christ. As a result
+of the impression which this story makes on
+her Vassilissa suddenly breaks into tears; she
+weeps a long time and hides her face as if she
+were ashamed of crying. Lukeria, who has been
+watching the student fixedly, blushes and her
+face takes on the tender and sad expression
+which is characteristic of those whose life is
+made up of deep suffering. After taking leave
+of them, the student thinks that Vassilissa's
+tears and the emotion of her daughter come
+from sorrows connected with the things he has
+just told them.</p>
+
+<p>"If the old woman wept, it was not because
+he knew how to tell the story in a touching
+manner, but because Peter was near to her, and
+because she was interested, heart and soul, in
+what was going on in the mind of the
+apostle...."</p>
+
+<p>Joy suddenly fills his heart, and he stops a
+moment to take a long breath. "The past,"
+he muses, "is bound to the present by an uninterrupted
+chain of events." "And it seems
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[Pg 62]</a></span>
+to him that he has just seen the two ends of
+this chain: he has touched one, and the other
+has vibrated...."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In an ironical manner and by using very
+personal material, Tchekoff paints more than
+anything else, life in its passive or negative
+manifestations. Nevertheless, it is not satire,
+at least not in its general trend, for in his work
+we find too much human tenderness for satire.
+He does not laugh at his characters, and does
+not nail them to the pillory in an outburst of
+indignation. In his writing, the fundamental
+idea is fused with the form; his talent is calm,
+thoughtful, observing; but it seems, at times,
+that this calmness, this seeming indifference, is
+only a mask. A critic, speaking of Tchekoff,
+has said: "He is a tender crayon." It would
+be hard to find a more suitable expression.
+The delicacy of tone, the softness of touch in
+the outlines, the polish of some of the details,
+the capricious incompleteness of others are, in
+fact, the mark of his talent.</p>
+
+<p>Tchekoff was such a voluminous author that
+it would require a veritable effort to remember
+the throng of characters which exists in his
+books; and it is more than difficult not to confuse
+their individual doings and achievements.
+This abundance is connected with a peculiarity
+in the author's talent. He does not exhaust his
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[Pg 63]</a></span>
+subject; the psychology of his characters is
+emphasized by two or three expressive traits
+only, and this epitome is enough to make the
+theme of a story, the simplicity and naturalness
+of which demand, nevertheless, a high degree
+of art. The author is not interested in outlining
+the details, but the picture that he has
+sparingly conjured up stands out lifelike; he
+is always in a hurry to observe and to tell.
+Therefore the brevity and quantity of his
+stories. His stories seldom exceed ten pages in
+length, while some do not exceed four. They
+constitute a series of sketches, of miniatures of
+rare value, among which can be found some real
+gems. One cannot say as much for his longer
+works, where certain parts are exaggerated, as
+in "The Valet de Chambre," "Ward No. 6,"
+"The Steppe," and "The Duel."</p>
+
+<p>The characters of the latter novel are especially
+weak and bad. There is but one exception,
+the zoologist von Koren, a man of determination,
+who believes that the suppression of
+useless people and degenerates would be a meritorious
+piece of work. This idea is suggested
+to him by the sight of a functionary called
+Layevsky, an insignificant and lazy person,
+who has taken the wife of one of his friends
+and fled with her to the Caucasus.</p>
+
+<p>"The Valet de Chambre" is an equally unsatisfactory
+story. The principal character is
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[Pg 64]</a></span>
+a young man who is supposed to be a revolutionist.
+He enters the service of a Petersburg
+dandy in hopes of meeting there a minister
+whom he wants to kill. The employer of the
+pseudo-lackey, who is not aware of any of his
+projects, is a masterful presentation of a type
+which we know as the sybaritical citizen; the
+character of the valet is so fantastical that the
+account of his adventures belongs absolutely
+to the "genre" of the newspaper novel.<a name="FNanchor_3" id="FNanchor_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a></p>
+
+<p>"Ward No. 6" is one of the most powerful,
+if not the most powerful story that Tchekoff
+has written. It is an analysis of moral degeneration,
+leading progressively to insanity,
+in a doctor who is seized by the pervasive banality
+of the village in which he practises. Tchekoff,
+like many other Russian writers, has shown
+himself a master in the study of certain psychological
+anomalies. Certain conversations
+between the doctor, who himself is going mad,
+and a patient who has long since lost his reason,
+interesting as they are from a philosophical
+standpoint, leave the world of reality and run
+free according to the imagination of the author,
+who takes advantage of this to formulate
+some of his favorite theories.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Tchekoff has also tried himself out on the
+drama, and he has there established himself in
+a peculiar manner. His plays, like his other
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[Pg 65]</a></span>
+literary productions, belong to two distinct
+periods.</p>
+
+<p>There are some amusing little trifles that do
+not amount to much. Among these are: "The
+Bear," "The Asking in Marriage," and others.
+Then come the more serious plays, where one
+feels for a moment the influence of Ibsen. We
+find here again the same heroes, each of whom
+talks about his own particular case, and acts
+only in starts. These are specimens of "failures"
+belonging to the most tiresome provincial
+society.</p>
+
+<p>In "Ivanov," the author studies the mentality
+of a "failure." Dominated by a sickly
+self-love, he has known nothing but losses. He
+continually complains of his real and his imaginary
+sufferings. After squandering all his fortune,
+he marries a young girl, whom he wants
+to have act as his nurse. This empty life ends
+in suicide.</p>
+
+<p>In "Uncle Vanya," we have Vanya, a man
+full of goodness, modesty, and self-abnegation
+contrasted with the celebrated professor Serebriakof,
+an egoist, unfeeling, scornful, and ungrateful.
+The latter, who has recently remarried,
+comes back to the estate which Uncle
+Vanya, the brother of his first wife, has managed
+for him. For several years Vanya has
+been working incessantly; he has saved in
+every possible way so that he can send as much
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[Pg 66]</a></span>
+money as possible to his brother-in-law, this
+professor, fondled and pampered by the whole
+family, who see in him their glorification. But
+Serebriakof soon gets tired of the country; besides,
+he thinks that the doctor&mdash;a friend of
+the family who is taking care of him&mdash;does
+not understand his sickness, and he begins to
+mistrust him. He wants to go away, to travel,
+in order to recover his health, and, in order to
+make money, he proposes to sell the estate,
+which legally belongs to Sonya, the daughter
+of his first wife.</p>
+
+<p>Up to this time Uncle Vanya and the other
+members of the family as well, had sacrificed
+themselves entirely to this celebrated man. But
+at this proposition Vanya realizes that their
+idol is nothing but an abominable egoist, and he
+begins to despise his brother-in-law. What is
+more, he secretly loves the young and beautiful
+wife of the professor, while she suffers from
+the everlasting complaints and caprices of her
+husband. However, a general reconciliation
+takes place. The professor and his wife leave
+for the city, and all goes on as before; Uncle
+Vanya and the family will sacrifice themselves
+for the glory of Serebriakof, to whom all the
+revenues of the estate are sent.</p>
+
+<p>The "Three Sisters," that is to say the sisters
+of Prozorov, live with their brother in a
+vulgar, tiresome town,&mdash;a town lacking in
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[Pg 67]</a></span>
+men of superior minds, a town where one person
+is like the next.</p>
+
+<p>The great desire of the three sisters is to go
+to Moscow, but their apathy keeps them in the
+country, and they continue to vegetate while
+philosophizing about everything that they see.
+However, at the arrival of a regiment, they
+become animated, and have sentimental intrigues
+with the officers till the very day of
+their departure.</p>
+
+<p>"They are going to leave; we shall be alone;
+the monotonous life is going to begin again,"
+cries one of the sisters.</p>
+
+<p>"We must work; work alone consoles," says
+the second.</p>
+
+<p>And the youngest exclaims, embracing her
+two sisters, while the military band plays the
+farewell march:</p>
+
+<p>"Ah, my dear sisters, your life is not yet
+completed. We are going to live. The music
+is so gay! Just a little bit more, and I feel that
+we shall know why we live, why we suffer...."</p>
+
+<p>This certainly is the dominant note of Tchekoff's
+philosophy: the impotency of living mitigated
+by a vague hope of progress.</p>
+
+<p>The last, and perhaps the most important
+play of Tchekoff, is "The Cherry Garden."<a name="FNanchor_4" id="FNanchor_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a>
+Human beings, locked up in themselves, morally
+bounded, impotent and isolated, wander
+about in the old seignioral estate of the Cherry
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[Pg 68]</a></span>
+Garden. The house is several centuries old. In
+former times a happy life was led there; feasts
+were given, and generals and princes were the
+hosts. The Cherry Garden gave tone to the
+neighborhood, but many years have passed!...
+Now other houses have taken its place:
+the estate is mortgaged, the interest is not paid,
+and the only guests now are the postman or a
+railway official who lives close by. The occupants
+of the house do not think of doing anything
+about this state of things. For them the
+past is gone. All that is left is a dislike for
+work, carelessness, improvidence, and ignorance
+of the necessities of the present. Like all that
+dies, they evoke a certain pity, a certain fatality
+hangs over them. The inhabitants of the
+Cherry Garden set forth their ideas about one
+another; but in reality none of them see anything
+but themselves, in their small and very
+limited moral world, and they analyze with difficulty
+the embryos of thought that are left to
+them. Thus, they cannot grasp in full the evil
+that is falling on the old home, and they remain
+impassive when some one proposes to alleviate
+this evil by energetic means. People speak to
+them of the downfall to which they are doomed;
+a means of safety is proposed, but they turn a
+deaf ear and continue in their narrow and fruitless
+dream. Finally, when the estate is sold,
+they look upon this event as a fatal and unexpected
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[Pg 69]</a></span>
+blow. They say good-bye to the cradle
+of their family, weeping silently, and depart.</p>
+
+<p>They are now thrown out into the world.
+The old existence has gone, as well as the seignioral
+estate. The Cherry Garden is to be
+torn down; the blinds are all lowered, and in
+the half-darkened rooms, the old servant, who
+is nearly a century old, wanders about among
+the disordered furniture.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Tchekoff is a true product of Russian literature,
+an autochthon plant, nourished by his
+natal sap. His humor is completely Russian;
+we hear Tolstoyan notes in his democracy; the
+"failures" of his stories are distantly related
+to the "superficial characters" of Turgenev;
+finally, the theory of the redemption of the past
+by suffering which he puts in the heart of the
+hero of the "Cherry Garden" makes us think
+of Dostoyevsky. The qualities which call to
+mind all these great names in Russian literature
+are found in the works of Tchekoff along
+with characteristics which show a very original
+talent. If one wishes to look for foreign
+influence, one can relate Tchekoff to de
+Maupassant and Ibsen, of whom he reminds
+one in snatches, although still in a very vague
+way. And that is indeed fortunate, for, in general,
+Scandinavian symbolism hardly goes hand
+in hand with the Russian spirit, which likes to
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[Pg 70]</a></span>
+make <i>direct</i> answers to "cursed questions," and
+whose ideal, elaborated since 1840 in the realm
+of strict realism, is so definite that it does not
+necessitate going back to the circumlocutions
+of metaphors and allegories.</p>
+
+<p>While Tchekoff lived his literary aspect was
+enigmatical. Some judged him to be indifferent,
+because they did not find in his writings
+that revolutionary spirit which is felt in almost
+all modern writers. Others thought of him as
+a pessimist who saw nothing good in Russian
+life, because he described principally resigned
+suffering or useless striving for a better life.
+Since the death of Tchekoff, which made it
+necessary for the critics to study his works as
+a whole, and especially since the publication of
+his correspondence, his character has come to
+the fore, as it really is: he is a writer, who, by
+the very nature of his talent, was irresistibly
+forced to study the inner life of man impartially,
+and who, consequently, remains the
+enemy of all religious or philosophical dogmas
+which may hinder the task of the observer.</p>
+
+<p>The division of men into good and bad, according
+to the point of view of this or that
+doctrine, angered him:</p>
+
+<p>"I fear," he says in one of his letters,
+"those who look for hidden meanings between
+the lines, and those who look upon me as a
+liberator or as a guardian. I am neither a
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[Pg 71]</a></span>
+liberal nor a conservative, neither a monk nor
+an indifferent person. I despise lies and violence
+everywhere and under any form.... I
+only want to be an artist, and that's all."</p>
+
+<p>One realized that this unfettered artist, with
+his hatred of lies and violence, although he belonged
+to no political party, could be nothing
+but a liberal in the noblest and greatest sense
+of the word. One also realized that he was not
+the pessimist that he was once believed to be,
+but a writer who suffered for his ideal and who
+awakened by his works a desire to emerge from
+the twilight of life that he depicted.</p>
+
+<p>To some he even appeared as an enchanted
+admirer of the future progress of humanity.
+Did he not often say, while admiring his own
+little garden: "Do you know that in three or
+four hundred years the entire earth will be a
+flourishing garden? How wonderful it will be
+to live then!" And did he not pronounce these
+proud words: "Man must be conscious of being
+superior to the lions, tigers, stars, in short, to
+all nature. We are already superior and great
+people, and, when we come to know all the
+strength of human genius, we shall be comparable
+to the gods."</p>
+
+<p>These great hopes did not prevent him from
+painting with a vigorous brush the nothingness
+of mankind, not only at a certain given moment
+and under certain circumstances, but always
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[Pg 72]</a></span>
+and everywhere. Is this a paradox? No. If
+he did not doubt progress, he would be most
+pessimistic, if I may so express myself. He
+would suffer from that earthly pessimism, in
+face of which reason is weak; the pessimism
+which manifests itself by a hopeless sadness in
+face of the stupidity of life and the idea of
+death.</p>
+
+<p>"I, my friend, am afraid of life, and do not
+understand it," says one of Tchekoff's heroes.
+"When, lying on the grass, I examine a lady-bird,
+it seems to me that its life is nothing but
+a texture of horrors, and I see myself in it....
+Everything frightens me because I understand
+neither the motive nor the end of things. I
+understand neither persons nor things. If you
+understand I congratulate you.</p>
+
+<p>"When one looks at the blue sky for a long
+time, one's thoughts and one's soul unite mysteriously
+in a feeling of solitude.... For a
+moment one feels the loneliness of the dead, and
+the enigma of hopeless and terrible life."</p>
+
+<p>This universal hopelessness; this sadness,
+provoked by the platitudes of existence compared
+with the unrelenting lessons of death, of
+which Tchekoff speaks with such a nervous
+terror, can be found in almost all the works of
+the best known Russian writers. We find it in
+Byronian Lermontov, who sees nothing in life
+but "une plaisanterie;" in Dostoyevsky, who
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[Pg 73]</a></span>
+has written so many striking pages of realism
+on the bitterness of a life without religious
+faith; and in the realist Turgenev, we find the
+same kind of thing. Turgenev even reaches a
+stage of hopeless nihilism, and one of his heroes,
+Bazarov,&mdash;in "Fathers and Sons,"&mdash;reflecting
+one day on the lot of the peasant, considering
+it better than his, says sadly, "He, at
+least, will have his little hut, while all I can hope
+for is a bed of thorns." Finally, all the tortuous
+quests of the ideal toward which Tolstoy
+strove, were suggested to him, as he himself
+says, by his insatiable desire to find "the meaning
+of life, destroyed by death."</p>
+
+<p>It is sometimes maintained that this state of
+intellectual sadness is innate in the Russians;
+that their sanguinary and melancholy temperaments
+are a mixture of Don Quixote and Hamlet.
+Foreign critics have often traced this
+despair to the so-called mysticism peculiar to
+the Slavonic race.</p>
+
+<p>What is there mystical in them? The consciousness
+of the nothingness, of the emptiness
+of human life, can be found deep down in the
+souls of nearly all mankind. It shows itself,
+among most people, only on rare tragic occasions,
+when general or particular catastrophes
+take place; at other times it is smothered by
+the immediate cares of life, by passions that
+grip us, and, finally, by religion. But none of
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[Pg 74]</a></span>
+these influences had any effect on Tchekoff.
+He was too noble to be completely absorbed by
+the mean details of life; his organism was too
+delicate to become the prey of an overwhelming
+passion; and his character too positive to give
+itself over to religious dogmas. "I lost my
+childhood faith a long time ago," he once
+wrote, "and I regard all intelligent belief with
+perplexity.... In reality, the 'intellectuals'
+only play at religion, chiefly because they have
+nothing else to do." Tchekoff, in his sober
+manner, has seen and recognized the two great
+aspects of life: first, the world of social and
+historical progress with its promise of future
+comforts; secondly, an aspect that is closely
+related to the above, the obscure world of the
+unknown man who feels the cold breath of
+death upon him. He was an absolute positivist;
+his positivism did not make him self-assertive
+nor peremptory; on the contrary, it oppressed
+him.</p>
+
+<p>But why should this sad state of mind, which
+has been expressed by great men in all literatures,
+be so exceptionally prominent among the
+Russians, and particularly among the modern
+ones? The reason is, without a doubt, because
+the political and social organization of Russia
+has always been a prison for literature. Oppression
+had reached its height during Tchekoff's
+life. This period was the moment of suffocation
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[Pg 75]</a></span>
+before the storm. If Tchekoff were
+alive to-day, now that the tempest has burst
+forth, his sadness would be lessened, or it would
+at least have before it the screen which, according
+to Pascal, people wear before their eyes
+that they may not see the abyss, on the edge
+of which they pass their lives. Up to the present
+time, the Russians have lacked these
+screens.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[Pg 76]</a></span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="III" id="III"></a>III<br />
+VLADIMIR KOROLENKO</h2>
+
+
+<p>"A long time ago, on a dark autumn evening,
+I was being rowed down a rather uninteresting
+Siberian stream. Suddenly, at a
+bend in the river, I saw a bright fire burning
+ahead of us at the foot of some black mountains.
+It did not seem far away.</p>
+
+<p>"'Thank Heaven,' I cried with joy, 'we have
+nearly reached our stopping-place!'</p>
+
+<p>"The boatsman turned, looked at the fire
+over his shoulder, and again grasped the oars
+with an apathetic gesture:</p>
+
+<p>"'That is still a long way off,' he murmured.</p>
+
+<p>"I did not believe him, for the fire seemed
+to stand out very clear against the infinite
+shadows. However, he was right; we were still
+far away.</p>
+
+<p>"Just so those fires, the conquerors of darkness,
+deceive us into thinking that they are near,
+while they only cast their distant, illusive rays
+into the night...."</p>
+
+<p>It is with this sober description in "Little
+Fires" that one of the last volumes of Korolenko's
+"Sketches and Stories" opens. This
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[Pg 77]</a></span>
+simple picture makes a warm and clear impression
+on one's very soul. It is itself a
+precious and welcome light.</p>
+
+<p>At times when life is sombre, and when
+shadows fill the heart, when, under the blows
+of despair and anguish, courage finally fails,
+the mere existence of some brave spirit suffices
+to give a new birth to hope and to rekindle the
+flame so that the distance is again lighted up,
+and we again put our shoulders to the wheel.</p>
+
+<p>Thus for more than thirty years in Russian
+literature Korolenko has played the part of
+one of these clear, alluring lights. He has not
+written a single book in which we do not find
+a fire that warms us with its caresses even from
+afar, not one in which we do not feel the vibration
+of a loving heart, which dreams of giving
+light and joy to all unfortunates, and is confident
+that if they have not yet had their equal
+share, they will surely have it some day.</p>
+
+<p>Korolenko was born in 1853 in Zhitomir, in
+Little Russia. On his father's side he is descended
+from an old Cossack family, and by his
+mother he is related to Polish nobility. This
+double origin, so to speak, is shown very clearly
+in his works, which are filled with the melancholy
+and dreamy poetry of the Little Russians,
+and also with the perennial hope so common
+among the Poles.</p>
+
+<p>His father was a judge and enjoyed a reputation
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[Pg 78]</a></span>
+for strict integrity. It was, in fact,
+often hard for him to ward off those who
+wanted to thank him for his services. One day
+he had to accept a gift. A merchant, whose
+case he had won, sent him a cart filled with
+various objects, among which was a beautiful
+large doll. The little daughter of the judge
+saw it, and at once took possession of it. The
+judge, when he found out what had happened,
+ordered the gifts to be returned immediately;
+but, because of the grief of the little girl, they
+had to give up all thoughts of returning the
+doll.</p>
+
+<p>The judge, who was a man of firm principles,
+maintained a severe discipline in his family.
+He made a special study of medicine and
+hygiene, and put his knowledge into practice
+by treating the sick of the neighborhood. His
+children, although always well dressed, had to
+go around barefoot. Their father was convinced
+that this was the best way to toughen
+them. Besides, they were compelled, every
+morning, summer and winter, to take a cold
+plunge bath. The children did not like this
+way of doing things. Early in the morning
+they used to run to the stable in their shirts,
+and there, cowering in a corner, trembling with
+cold, they would wait for their father to leave
+the house.</p>
+
+<p>Korolenko remembers well this Spartan-like
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[Pg 79]</a></span>
+education, which inured him to the severity of
+the seasons. Without this training he certainly
+would have perished in savage and freezing
+Siberia, where he lived in exile for several years.</p>
+
+<p>At the death of the father, the family with
+its six children was left without resources. The
+mother, a very good and kind woman, opened
+a boys' boarding-school, and Vladimir, then
+fifteen years of age, helped her as well as he
+could, and also earned money by giving lessons
+outside.</p>
+
+<p>In 1870, after having finished his studies in
+his native town, Korolenko entered the Technological
+Institute at St.&nbsp;Petersburg, where he
+spent two years in extreme poverty. He had
+to earn his living as well as he could, by giving
+lessons or doing copying. His mother could
+not help him at all, as she herself had to struggle
+against adversity. The following will show
+how sparingly he had to live in his youth:
+during his two years, he had a real substantial
+meal only about once in two months, and then
+in a restaurant run on philanthropic principles,
+where he paid only 30 copecks (about 30 cents).
+His regular meals consisted of bread, tea,
+sausage and potatoes. But this was an epoch
+in which living was cheap: the wave of democracy
+was spreading, and the "intellectuals"
+were trying to get into closer touch with the
+people. The movement was so powerful that
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[Pg 80]</a></span>
+many of the younger generation who could have
+done other things took up this work; others,
+on principle, married humble peasants. In
+1872 Korolenko left for Moscow, and there
+entered the Academy of Agriculture. He was
+expelled after two years and sent to Kronstadt
+for having taken part in student manifestations.
+Several years later, we find him again in St.&nbsp;Petersburg
+without a permanent position; he
+was employed as a reader in a publishing house,
+and was also attempting to do some writing.
+His first efforts took the form of a series of
+sketches, published under the title, "Episodes
+in the Life of a Seeker." He was at this time
+accused of being too much inspired by the
+scenes of sadness and injustice of which he had
+been a witness. In 1879 he was imprisoned and
+then deported to Viatka. He remained there
+a year. Thence he was sent to the miserable
+town of Kama, and a few months later to
+Tomsk, where he learned that they wanted to
+exile him to Siberia. In a letter, published by
+a newspaper, he eloquently protested against
+the persecutions of which he was the unhappy
+victim. His protestation was answered by his
+transfer to the frozen region of the province
+of Yakutsk in Eastern Siberia! He passed
+three years in the midst of the "taiga," the
+immense virgin forest which covers this country,
+in a village of nomads whose miserable huts,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[Pg 81]</a></span>
+very low and smoky, were scattered along the
+shores of the Aldane. Here he wrote several
+stories, and the "Dream of Makar," which
+was published two years later, and greatly
+praised by the critics for its originality and its
+setting. The dreary country around Yakutsk
+and the life that is lived there made such a
+profound impression on the young man that
+even to-day he speaks of that time with real
+emotion.</p>
+
+<p>"My hut was at the extreme end of the
+town. During the short day one could see
+the small plain, the mountains which surrounded
+it, and the fires in the other huts, in
+which lived people who were either descended
+from Russian colonists or deported Tartars.
+But in the morning and evening a cold grey
+mist covered everything so thickly that one
+could not see a foot ahead.</p>
+
+<p>"My little hut was like a lost island in a
+boundless ocean. Not a sound about me....
+The minutes, the hours passed, and insensibly
+the fatal moment approached when the 'cursed
+land' pierced me with the hostility of its freezing
+cold and its terrible shadows, when the high
+mountains covered with black forests rose
+menacingly before me, the endless steppes, all
+lying between me and my country and all that
+was dear to me.... Then came the terrible
+sadness ... which, in the depths of your
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[Pg 82]</a></span>
+heart, suddenly lifts up its sinister head, and
+in the terrible silence among the shadows murmurs
+these words: 'This is the end of you ...
+the very end ... you will remain in this tomb
+till you die....'</p>
+
+<p>"A low and caressing whine brought me out
+of my heavy stupor: it was my friend, Cerberus,
+my intelligent and faithful dog, who had
+been placed as a sentinel near the door. Chilled
+through and through, he was asking me what
+was the matter and why, in such terribly cold
+weather, I did not have a fire.</p>
+
+<p>"Whenever I felt that I was going to be
+beaten in my struggle with silence and the
+shadows, I turned to this wholesome expedient,&mdash;a
+large fire."</p>
+
+<p>In 1885, Korolenko, having returned from
+Siberia, went to Nizhny-Novgorod, and in a
+relatively short space of time wrote a series of
+stories which, two years later, were collected in
+book form. Afterward, he became the editor
+of the celebrated St.&nbsp;Petersburg review, the
+"Russkoe Bogatsvo,"&mdash;a position which he
+still holds.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In all of Korolenko's works we distinctly feel
+the living breath that inspires the artist, and
+the ardor of a fervent ideal. His god is man;
+his ideal, humanity; his "leitmotiv," the
+poetry of human suffering. This intimate connection
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[Pg 83]</a></span>
+with all that is human is to be found
+in his psychological analysis as well as in his
+descriptions of natural phenomena. Both God
+and nature are in turn spiritualized and humanized.
+Korolenko looks at life from a human
+standpoint; the world which he describes is
+made up wholly of men and exists for them
+only. He has a very clear philosophy, and a
+conscience aware of the duties it has to perform.
+If he has not opened up hitherto unknown
+paths, nor made new roads, he has himself
+nevertheless passed through terrible experiences;
+he has been a prey to profound sorrows
+and doubts, and in spite of all, he has
+kept his love for the people intact, and deeply
+pities their ignorance and abasement. His work
+constantly recalls to our minds the theory that
+the cultivated classes are in debt to the people
+for the education which they have received at
+the people's expense. This is the great moral
+principle which governs the conscience of the
+Russian "intellectuals." It is in this sense then,
+that Korolenko may be said to continue the
+literature of 1870, and to be the successor of
+Zlatovratsky and Uspensky. But he has reincarnated
+this past in new forms, which naturally
+result from the activity of his far-sighted,
+powerful intelligence. We do not find in his
+work either the nervousness, often sickly, which
+pervades the works of Uspensky, or the optimism
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[Pg 84]</a></span>
+of Zlatovratsky, which often excessively
+idealizes the life of the Russian peasant, who is
+the principal hero of all his works. Korolenko,
+because he puts a high value on human personality,
+perfectly appreciates the terrible struggle
+that man has to make in order to secure his
+rights. A desire for justice on the one hand,
+and a defence of man's dignity on the other,
+form the very essence of the talent of this author,
+and it is with these feelings that he observes
+the people on whom injustice weighs most
+heavily and who have merely remnants of human
+dignity left in their make-up,&mdash;for in general,
+these people are not those whom fate has overcome.
+Most of them lead a hard and gloomy
+life beset with misfortunes. Many of them are
+vagabonds, escaped convicts, drunkards, murderers,
+who are bowed down with misery, and
+have no wish except to escape the mortal dangers
+of the Siberian forests and marshes. On
+opening any of Korolenko's books we find ourselves,
+to use his own words, in "bad company."
+He does not flatter his heroes, he does not make
+gentlemen of them; they are not even men, but
+rather human rubbish.</p>
+
+<p>"Because I knew a lot about the world," he
+writes, "I knew that there were people who had
+lost every vestige of humanity. I knew that
+they were corroded with vice and sunk deep in
+debauchery, in which they lived contented. But
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[Pg 85]</a></span>
+when the recollection of these beings surged
+through my mind, enveloped in the mists of the
+past, I saw nothing but a terrible tragedy, and
+felt only an inexpressible sorrow...."</p>
+
+<p>This author does not give any judgment on
+life; he does not condemn it and does not nourish
+a preconceived spite against it, but his sad
+heart overflows with pity, and, if he approaches
+this life, it is with the balm of love, in order to
+try to dress its terrible wounds.</p>
+
+<p>For Korolenko, the sufferings of existence
+atone for its injustice; he does not perceive
+the iniquities that surround him except through
+the prism of sorrow.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>From the very beginning of his literary career,
+in his first book, "Episodes in the Life
+of a Seeker," Korolenko shows himself to be a
+seeker after truth. With him, the understanding
+of life, so ardently sought after, is never
+summed up in a single solution. He dreams of
+it constantly; at times, he seems to have found
+it, but he loses track of it again and starts all
+over.</p>
+
+<p>This groping about resulted in a moral crisis
+in which he looked forward to death with joy.
+Beset with the thought of suicide, he often
+prowled around railroad platforms and looked
+at the car-wheels.</p>
+
+<p>"I went there and came back again," he
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[Pg 86]</a></span>
+writes, "depressed by my realization of the
+stupidity of life. The snow was falling all
+around me, and shaping itself into a frozen
+carpet, the telegraph poles shivered as if they
+were cold through and through, and on the
+other side of the road, on a slope, shone the sad
+little light of the watchman's tower. There, in
+the darkness, lived a whole family. Through
+the shadows the little red fire seemed to be as
+desolate as the family. The children were
+scrofulous and suffered; the mother was thin
+and sickly. To procreate and to bury! Such
+was the life of the father, probably the most
+unfortunate of all, because the household depended
+wholly upon him, and he saw no gleam
+of hope anywhere. He bore this condition of
+things, because, in his simplicity, he believed
+in a superior will, and thought that his misery
+was inevitable. The resignation of this man,
+the terrible bareness of his obscure existence,
+oppressed me. If I could bear the sight of it,
+it was only because I hoped; I thought that
+we should soon find the road which makes life
+happier, more agreeable to every one. How,
+where, in what manner? What a mystery! But
+the future beauty of life was in the search for
+it."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>The observations that Korolenko was able to
+make were many and diverse. By going all
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[Pg 87]</a></span>
+over Russia he gathered inexhaustible riches,
+in the form of anecdotes and actual experiences.
+This can be easily realized when we consider the
+sumptuous variety of his descriptions. Where
+do we not go, and whom do we not meet in his
+books? First, we are in a peaceful little town
+of the southwest, then in the thick woods of
+Poliyessye, in the snow-covered and frozen
+Siberian forests, or in the valleys of Sakhaline,
+inhabited by half-breed Russians and escaped
+convicts, not to mention the innumerable
+sectarians who fill the Siberian prisons. And
+Korolenko never repeats. Not even a detail
+occurs more than once. Each of his works is
+a little world in itself. The author, moreover,
+unlike other writers, is never satisfied with pale
+sketches; each character is shown in full relief,
+each picture is absolutely finished. This wholeness,
+this finish which does not hurt the harmony
+of the proportions, is a precious quality,
+very rare in our time.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>The "Sketches of a Siberian Tourist," published
+in 1896, in which bandits of various odd
+types tell thrilling tales of nocturnal attacks
+and other adventures, is a kind of artistic novel.
+The postillion is the most original character in
+the book. Huge of stature, audacious and
+clever, he exercises a mysterious influence over
+the brigands, whom he inspires with a superstitious
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[Pg 88]</a></span>
+terror. Most of them, thinking him
+invulnerable, do not dare attack the travelers
+whom he is driving.</p>
+
+<p>That same year another work of Korolenko's
+appeared, called: "In Bad Company,"&mdash;a
+sort of autobiography which added to his renown.
+The story, poetically simple, is laid in a
+provincial town. The hero is a little, seven-year-old
+boy called Volodya. He is the son of
+the local judge. The mother has been dead for
+a long time, and the father, in his sorrow, more
+or less loses track of his children, who roam
+about unwatched.</p>
+
+<p>The little town has its historic legends; it
+boasts of the ruins of a castle, which in times
+gone by was inhabited by rich Polish counts,
+whose descendants, having become poor, have
+long since left their manorial home. The castle
+has served as a refuge for a nomadic population.
+Expelled by the count's agent, this little
+band has taken up its abode in a dilapidated
+chapel in the crypts of a cemetery.</p>
+
+<p>The chief of this barefoot brigade is called
+Tibertius Droba. He has two children:
+Vanek, a large, dark-haired lad, whom one sees
+wandering about the village with a sullen look
+on his face, and Maroussya, a small and thin
+child, who is gradually fading away in the
+darkness of her cellar-like home.</p>
+
+<p>While strolling about one day, Volodya, impelled
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[Pg 89]</a></span>
+by his childish curiosity, decides, with
+two of his friends, to explore the chapel. He
+meets there Tibertius' children and they strike
+up a friendship. The description of the ruins
+and of the superstitious fear of the children
+gives an opportunity for some exquisite pages.
+If the little vagabonds are hungry, poor Volodya,
+who himself is without love or caresses,
+suffers still more, but every time that he brings
+the children some apples or cakes he feels that
+he is less unhappy, because these offerings are
+accepted with such an outpouring of gratitude.
+Gradually, the little lad gets to know all the
+inhabitants, and becomes especially intimate
+with Maroussya, whose eyes have an expression
+of precocious desolation.</p>
+
+<p>"Her smile," says Korolenko, "reminded me
+of my mother during the last few months of her
+life; so much so, that I almost used to weep
+when I watched this little girl."</p>
+
+<p>One day, Volodya brings her some apples,
+flowers, and a doll that his little sister has
+given him.</p>
+
+<p>"Why is she always so sad?" he asks Maroussya's
+brother.</p>
+
+<p>"It is on account of the grey stone," he
+replies.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, the grey stone," repeated Maroussya,
+like a feeble echo.</p>
+
+<p>"What grey stone?"
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[Pg 90]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"The grey stone that has sucked the life
+out of her," explained Vanek, gazing at the sky.
+"Tibertius says so, and Tibertius knows everything."</p>
+
+<p>"I was very much puzzled, but the force with
+which Tibertius' omniscience was affirmed impressed
+me. I looked at the little girl, who
+was still playing with the flowers, but almost
+without moving. There were dark rings under
+her eyes and her face was pale. I did not
+exactly understand the meaning of Tibertius'
+words, but I felt dimly that they veiled some
+terrible reality. The grey stone was, in fact,
+sucking out the life of this frail child. But
+how could grey stones do it? How could this
+hard and formless thing worm itself into
+Maroussya's very soul, and make the ruddy
+glow disappear from her cheeks and the brilliancy
+from her eyes? These mysteries puzzled
+me more than the phantoms of the castle."</p>
+
+<p>Volodya's father is not aware that he is
+spending part of his days in the cemetery, and
+knows nothing of his son's new friends. But
+one day the secret is discovered, and a family
+storm follows. The judge demands a full confession.
+Volodya heroically remains silent.
+Finally, Tibertius himself pleads the child's
+cause so eloquently that Volodya is not scolded
+and the father allows him to go and say good-bye
+to his little friend, who has meanwhile died
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[Pg 91]</a></span>
+of privation. The day after the little girl's
+funeral the whole band disappears without
+leaving a trace behind them. "Later on," says
+Korolenko, "when we were about to leave our
+home, it was on the grave of our poor little
+friend that my sister and I, both of us full of
+life, faith, and hope, interchanged our vows of
+universal compassion...."</p>
+
+<p>Another short story, called "The Murmuring
+Forest," which was published in the same
+year, made as much of a success as "Bad Company."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>But it is in "The Blind Musician" that
+Korolenko attains perfection. This masterly
+psychological study does not present a very
+complicated plot. From the very start the
+reader is captivated by a powerful poetic quality,
+free from all artifice, fresh, spontaneous,
+and breathing forth such moral purity, such
+tender pity, that one literally feels regenerated.</p>
+
+<p>Here is a brief outline of this exquisite story.
+One very dark night, a child of rich parents is
+born in the southwest of Russia. Peter&mdash;the
+child&mdash;is blind. His whole life is to be but a
+groping in the shadows toward the light. The
+mother adores the poor child and suffers more
+than he. But she has not enough moral
+strength to bring him up, and give him the
+necessary comfort and energy. His father, a
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[Pg 92]</a></span>
+countryman, thinks only of his business. Happily,
+there is on the mother's side an uncle called
+Maxim, one of the famous "thousand" of
+Garibaldi, who has a noble and generous disposition.
+It is he who brings up the child, with
+a tenderness just touched by severity. Peter's
+young mind is constantly enriched with new
+pictures. Thanks to the extreme acuteness of
+his hearing, he catches the very slightest sounds
+of nature. When barely five years of age the
+boy shows his love for music; he spends hours,
+motionless, listening to the playing of one of
+the servants who has made for himself a kind
+of flute. Soon Peter begins to study music,
+and especially the violin. His rapid progress
+astonishes his teachers. However, in spite of
+his love for music and the comfort that it gives
+him, the blind boy suffers from his infirmity.
+To distract his mind from his own suffering,
+his uncle takes him one day to a place where
+there are some blind beggars. Peter listens to
+their plaintive melody: "Alms, alms for a poor
+blind man ... for the love of Christ"; and
+as if he had heard the voice of some phantom,
+the child returns home, frightened, confused.
+From that day, he is transformed. Until then,
+he had thought only of himself, he had become
+grey with his own sorrow. Afterward, he suffers
+for others; his personal sorrow diminishes,
+and his life becomes an expression of the sorrows
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[Pg 93]</a></span>
+of his fellows in misery, an ardent and
+passionate prayer for others who also are deprived
+of sight.</p>
+
+<p>For several years he has been friends with a
+young girl of his neighborhood. They marry,
+and Evelyn, his wife, brings some happiness to
+the poor blind man. But soon there comes a
+time of indescribable anguish. Evelyn gives
+birth to a boy, and Peter is tortured by a presentiment
+of impending evil. Will the son be
+blind like his father? The few moments when
+the doctors are testing the infant's sight pass
+like so many centuries. Finally the physician
+says: "The pupil is contracting, the child is
+not blind." Peter, seated by the window, pale
+and motionless, rises quickly at these words.
+In a moment fear has disappeared and hope is
+transformed into certainty and fills the blind
+man's heart with joy. "The child is not blind."
+One might say that these few words of the
+doctor had burned a path in his brain.</p>
+
+<p>"His whole frame vibrated like a taut cord
+which had been snapped. A flash went through
+him, like lightning in a sunless sky, conjuring
+up in him strange phantasms. Whether they
+were sounds or sights he could not determine.
+But if they were sounds they were sounds which
+he could see. They sparkled like the vault of
+the sky, shone like the sun, waved like the rustling,
+whispering grass of the steppes. These
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[Pg 94]</a></span>
+were the sensations of a moment. What followed
+he was unable to recall. But he stubbornly
+affirmed that in this moment he had
+<i>seen</i>. What had he seen? How had he seen?
+Had he really seen? This always remained a
+mystery. People said that it was impossible.
+He, however, affirmed that in that moment he
+had seen the earth, his wife, his mother, his son,
+and Uncle Maxim.... He was standing up,
+and his face was so illumined and so strange
+that every one around him was silent....
+Later on, there remained nothing but the remembrance
+of a sort of joyous satisfaction,
+and the absolute conviction that, at that moment,
+he had seen...."</p>
+
+<p>A year later, at Kiev, at a concert for charity,
+Peter made his d&eacute;but. An enormous crowd
+gathered to hear the blind musician. From the
+very first the audience was captivated. Moved
+to its depths, the crowd became frantic. And
+Uncle Maxim heard something familiar in the
+playing of his nephew.</p>
+
+<p>He saw a large, crowded street, and a clear,
+gay wave of scolding and jesting humanity.
+Then, gradually, this picture faded into the
+background. A groaning was heard. It detached
+itself from the clamor of the crowd and
+passed through the hall in a sweet but powerful
+note, which sobbed and moved one's heart.
+Maxim knew it well, this sad melody: "Alms,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[Pg 95]</a></span>
+alms for the poor blind man ... for the love
+of Christ."</p>
+
+<p>"He understands suffering," murmured the
+uncle. "He has had his share, and that is why
+he can change it into music for this happy
+audience."</p>
+
+<p>"And the head of the old warrior sank on his
+breast. His work was done. He had made a
+good man. He had not lived in vain. He had
+but to look at the crowd to be convinced of
+that."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Korolenko belongs to the school of Turgenev.
+In all of his works he remains true to
+the principles which his master summed up in
+a letter: "One must penetrate the surroundings,
+and take life in all its manifestations;
+decipher the laws by which it is governed; get
+at the very essence of life, while remaining always
+within the boundaries of truth; and
+finally, one must not be contented with a superficial
+study."</p>
+
+<p>Korolenko lives up to all of these principles.
+Without tiring, he watches life in all of its
+phases. He uses a large canvas for his studies
+of inanimate nature, as well as of individuals in
+particular and the masses in general. That is
+why his work gives us such an exact reproduction
+of life.</p>
+
+<p>Like Turgenev, he describes nature admirably.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[Pg 96]</a></span>
+His descriptions are not irrelevant ornaments,
+but they constitute an organic and integral
+part of the picture. In both Turgenev
+and Korolenko the surrounding country reflects
+the feelings and emotions of the heroes, and
+takes on a purely lyric character. One might
+almost say that these country scenes breathe,
+speak a human language, and whisper mysterious
+legends.</p>
+
+<p>Korolenko has given us several splendid landscapes.
+In some of these nature seems to be
+in a serene mood, like a good mother whose
+harmonious strength attracts man and shows
+him the need of reposing on her bosom. In
+others, nature is like a strong, free element
+which incites man to lead an independent life.
+Thus, in the beautiful prose poem, "The Moment,"
+in which the action passes in Spain, it
+is the ocean beating against the prison walls
+that arouses Diatz from his torpor and makes
+him attempt to escape.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>But, in spite of the importance of the background
+in Korolenko's work, it is really in the
+conscience of his characters that the essential
+drama takes place. More than anything else,
+it is psychology that beguiles the artist; it is
+only through psychology that Korolenko depicts
+men and their mentalities. He studies the
+strong and the weak, the simple and the complex;
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[Pg 97]</a></span>
+exaltation, triumph, revolt, and downfall
+all interest him equally.</p>
+
+<p>A simple analysis of his story, "Makar's
+Dream," will show his psychological genius to
+greater advantage than could any critical essay.</p>
+
+<p>In the very heart of the dense woods of the
+"taiga," Makar, a poor little peasant, who has
+become half savage by association with the
+Yakutsk people, dreams of a better future.</p>
+
+<p>Makar does not dream, however, when he is
+normal; he hasn't time to, for he has to chop
+wood, plough, sow, and grind grain. He only
+dreams when he is drunk. As soon as he is under
+the influence of liquor, he weeps and says
+that he is going to leave everything and go to
+the "sacred mountain" to gain salvation for
+his soul. What is the name of this mountain?
+Where is it? He does not know exactly; he
+only knows that it is very far away. On Christmas
+eve, Makar extorts a ruble from two political
+refugees, and, instead of bringing them
+some wood for the money, he quickly buys some
+tobacco and brandy. After drinking and
+smoking a great deal, Makar goes to sleep and
+has a dream. He dreams that the frost has
+got the better of him in the woods, that he has
+died there, and that the priest Ivan, who has
+also been dead a long time, takes him to the
+great Tayon&mdash;the god of the woods&mdash;to be
+judged for his former deeds. Even there his
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[Pg 98]</a></span>
+natural knavery does not forsake him; he tries
+to fool Tayon. But the latter has everything
+that Makar has ever done, both good and bad,
+written down, and becoming angry, he says:
+"I see that you are a liar, a sluggard, and a
+drunkard."</p>
+
+<p>He orders Makar to be transformed into a
+post-horse, to be used by the police commissioner.
+And Makar, this Makar who never in
+his lifetime was known to say more than ten
+words at a time, suddenly finds that he has the
+faculty of speech. He begins by saying that
+he does not want to be a horse, not because he
+is afraid of work but because this decision is
+unfair. If one works geldings, one feeds them
+with oats; but people have imposed upon him
+and tortured him all his life and have never fed
+him, no, not even with oats.</p>
+
+<p>"Who imposed upon you and tortured
+you?" asks old Tayon, moved by compassion.</p>
+
+<p>"Everybody! The men who demanded taxes,
+the heat and the cold, rain and dryness, the pitiless
+earth, and the forest."</p>
+
+<p>The beam of the balance wavers; the wooden
+dish, filled with sins, rises, while the golden one
+sinks.</p>
+
+<p>Makar continues: "You have everything
+written down, have you? Well, look and see
+whether Makar has ever had any kindness
+shown to him. He is here before his judges,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[Pg 99]</a></span>
+dirty, his hair disordered, and his clothes in
+rags. He is ashamed. However, he realizes
+that he was born just like the others, with clear
+eyes in which both heaven and earth were reflected,
+and with a heart ready to open and receive
+all the beauty of the world."</p>
+
+<p>Makar thus passes in review his miserable life.
+Old Tayon is moved.</p>
+
+<p>"Makar, you are no longer on earth, and you
+shall receive justice."</p>
+
+<p>Makar begins to weep, and Tayon weeps too....
+And the young gods and the angels, they
+also shed tears.</p>
+
+<p>Again the balance moves. But this time it
+is in the opposite direction.</p>
+
+<p>Makar has received justice from the hands
+of Tayon.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Korolenko does not try to reconcile us to
+reality, but to mankind. In all of the catastrophes
+in his books, in the most sombre descriptions,
+he comforts us with a consolation,
+an ideal, a "little fire" that burns in the distance
+and attracts us. But to get to that fire
+we have to fight against evil. And it is perhaps
+in answer to Tolstoy's doctrine of passive resistance
+that Korolenko wrote that beautiful
+story called, "The Legend of Florus," the subject
+of which was probably taken from "The
+War of the Jews," by Flavius Josephus.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[Pg 100]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>This work takes us back to the time when
+Jud&aelig;a was bowed down under Roman rule. The
+Jews bear their lot without a murmur, and this
+resignation encourages Florus, the governor of
+Jud&aelig;a, to oppress them more.</p>
+
+<p>Soon there are two parties formed: the
+"pacifics" want to rid themselves of Roman
+cruelty by humble submission, while the others
+advise opposing this cruelty to the utmost.
+The chief of the latter party is Menahem, the
+son of a famous warrior who has inherited
+from his father his generous passions and his
+hatred of oppression. Menahem's words inspire
+respect even in his enemies. But he does
+not succeed in making peace among his people.
+In vain he cries to them, as his father before
+him had cried: "It is disgraceful to bow down
+to sovereigns, especially since these sovereigns
+are men; no human being should bow down to
+any one excepting God, who created men that
+they might be free." With great trouble he
+finally succeeds in rousing a part of the people
+to rebellion. Then he leaves the city with his
+followers, resolved to defend his country.
+Menahem has no illusions as to the outcome;
+he knows that he will be conquered by the
+Romans. Nevertheless he is fearless, for his
+whole being is filled with a single thought,&mdash;the
+idea of justice, which imposes upon men
+certain obligations which they must not scorn.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[Pg 101]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>During his stay in Siberia Korolenko had a
+very good chance to observe the deported convicts.
+Most of them are thieves, forgers, and
+murderers. The others, urged on by a heroic
+desire to live their own true lives, have been
+sent to this "cursed land" because of "political
+offences."</p>
+
+<p>Korolenko is not resigned to the sadness of
+life, he is not an enemy to manly calls to
+active struggle, but he neither wants to, nor
+can he, break the ties that bind him to the real
+life of the present. He does not wish either to
+judge or to renounce this life. Nor does he
+try, by fighting, to perpetuate a conflict which
+is in itself eternal. If he struggles, it is rather
+in discontent than in despair. Not all is evil
+in his eyes, and reality is not always and entirely
+sad. His protestations hardly ever take
+the form of disdain or contempt; he does not
+rise to summits which are inaccessible to mankind.
+In fact, his ideal is close to earth; it is
+the ideal which comes from mankind, from tears
+and sufferings. If the thoughts and feelings
+of the author rise sometimes high above the
+earth, he never forgets the world and its interests.
+Korolenko loves humanity, and his
+ideals cannot separate themselves from it. He
+loves man and he believes that God lives in their
+souls.</p>
+
+<p>We find these theories in the sketch called
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[Pg 102]</a></span>
+"En Route." The vagabond, Panov, is one
+of a party of deported convicts. At one of
+the stops, an inspector arrives who remembers
+having seen Panov when a young man. The
+old man goes over the history of his life, which
+has been marked with constant success, with
+pleasure. He shows the vagabond his little
+son, and with cruel egotism boasts of his happiness.
+Standing before him, his back bent,
+and a sad light in his eyes, Panov listens to the
+story. He feels vaguely that he has not lived
+and that he lacks personality. There is nothing
+in store for him except the useless existence
+of prison life. The egotistical and debonair
+inspector, in his simplicity, does not understand
+the anguish of the homeless prisoner, and,
+by his amicable chatter, subjects him to horrible
+moral torture. It is too much for Panov.
+When the inspector leaves, Panov, gripping the
+edge of his hard cot in his convulsive hands,
+falls to the ground. He breathes heavily, his
+lips move, but he does not speak. "That night
+Panov got drunk."</p>
+
+<p>Two very different types appear in the novel
+called, "The Postillion of the Emperor." We
+have here the idealist Misheka and the sectarian
+Ostrovsky, a transported prisoner who is embittered
+by his hard lot, and by life in general.</p>
+
+<p>If Misheka protests against the complicated
+conditions of life to which he cannot entirely
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[Pg 103]</a></span>
+submit, it is rather by instinct than through
+reason. He is attracted by something invisible,
+something distant and strange, to the repugnant
+world which surrounds him. As a postillion
+of the State he has frequent communications
+with the distant world which glows
+vaguely on his mental horizon. Everything
+displeases him: both the savage country in
+which he has to live, and the world of stupid,
+degenerate, and miserable postillions whom he
+mercilessly criticizes. His random attempts to
+get away fail. Despairing, he becomes an accomplice
+in a crime so that he can leave this
+solitary place and go where his restless soul
+leads him.</p>
+
+<p>At the side of Misheka we have the tragic
+figure of Ostrovsky, who is the exasperated victim
+of the evil all around him.</p>
+
+<p>The author and the travelers, driven by
+Misheka, have seen the burning of Ostrovsky's
+house, which the latter burned himself so that
+no one could profit by it. This action strikes
+Misheka as wonderful.</p>
+
+<p>"He begins to tell the story of the fire.
+Several years before, Ostrovsky had been deported
+for having given up the orthodox faith.
+His young wife and child followed him. They
+had been given a plot of land in a broad and
+deep valley, between two walls of rock. The
+place seemed fertile. It was not hard to sell
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[Pg 104]</a></span>
+wheat to the miners and Ostrovsky worked diligently
+and steadily. But the inhabitants had
+kept something from him: although the wheat
+grew in the valley, it never ripened, because
+each year, without fail, in the month of July
+it was destroyed by the cold winds from the
+northeast."</p>
+
+<p>The first few years Ostrovsky attributed his
+failure to chance. He carefully cared for his
+crop in the hopes of a better season.</p>
+
+<p>Alas, his wife died of sorrow, and autumn
+brought him nothing but straw. Ostrovsky,
+without weeping, dug a grave in the frozen
+ground and buried his wife. Then he asked
+permission to go to the mines, and borrowed
+some money for the trip from his neighbors.
+The latter gladly loaned it to him, thinking
+thus to get rid of him and to get the profit of
+his house and goods. But Ostrovsky fooled
+them in their na&iuml;ve simplicity; he heaped up
+all of his possessions in his little cottage and
+then set fire to it. He no longer thought
+of justice; he was nothing but a despairing
+man.</p>
+
+<p>The patriarch of the village in which he had
+taken refuge tried to recall to him the faith for
+which he had been exiled:</p>
+
+<p>"Do you remember," answered Ostrovsky,
+"the first visit I paid you to ask for advice?
+Ah, so you have forgotten that and you speak
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[Pg 105]</a></span>
+of God.... You are nothing but a crafty
+dog! All of you are dogs! There is nothing
+here but woods and rocks, and you are all just
+as insensible as the very rocks that surround
+you.... And your cursed land, and your sky,
+and your stars...." "He wanted to say
+something more, but he did not dare blaspheme,
+and there was silence again in the little cottage...."</p>
+
+<p>This Ostrovsky is among the very best of
+Korolenko's heroes. The sight of this despairing
+and lonely man, who wanders about in the
+Siberian forests with his little daughter, calls
+louder for justice than all the speeches in the
+world.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Through the wealth of his talent and knowledge,
+Korolenko is of tremendous social value
+in three fields of work,&mdash;practical affairs,
+journalism, and art.</p>
+
+<p>Among the many services which he has rendered
+to humanity, let us first mention his
+brilliant defence of the half-savage Votiaks,
+accused of ritual murder in the famous Malmige
+case. Although he had just suffered
+great grief himself&mdash;he had lost two children&mdash;he
+traveled to a distant town in order to be
+at the trial. He took his seat on the bench
+of the defenders. He used all of his knowledge,
+and all the love in his heart to defend the unhappy
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[Pg 106]</a></span>
+Votiaks, whose acquittal he succeeded in
+securing.</p>
+
+<p>As a publicist, he has written some very valuable
+articles. Among them are observations on
+the famine year (he spent two months in one
+of the worst districts). In other articles he
+has analyzed a moral malady peculiar to our
+state of society:&mdash;honor. In the recent Russian
+duels he studied the perverse notions of
+honor and the moral changes produced by
+sickly egotism. He has studied the causes that
+bring about the complete loss of individuality.
+Finally, in 1910, he published under the title,
+"Present Customs (Notes of a Publicist under
+Sentence of Death)" a series of documents
+gathered here and there, which constitute an
+eloquent and passionate plea in favor of the
+abolitionist thesis.</p>
+
+<p>When the great Tolstoy read the preface of
+this work, he wrote to Korolenko, "I often
+sobbed and wept. Millions of copies of this
+work ought to be distributed; it ought to be
+read by every one who has a heart. No discourse,
+no novel or play, can produce the effect
+that your 'Notes' do."</p>
+
+<p>But above all, it is as the pure artist that
+Korolenko merits most attention. It is his
+talent that has already made him famous, and
+it is his talent that will make him immortal in
+Russian literature.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[Pg 107]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Korolenko is at present one of the most
+popular writers among the educated classes.
+They have amply proved this to him, especially
+in 1903 and 1908, when they celebrated his
+50th birthday and the 30th anniversary of his
+literary activity. On the occasion of these
+celebrations, delegations from many cities and
+universities came to St.&nbsp;Petersburg to congratulate
+and to thank the author who, through
+so many trials, had never ceased to uphold the
+cause of truth and goodness, and to claim for
+each human being the right to work, happiness,
+and free thought.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[Pg 108]</a></span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="IV" id="IV"></a>IV<br />
+VIKENTY VERESSAYEV</h2>
+
+
+<p>Veressayev is well known in France for his
+"Memoirs of a Physician," a work that has
+been translated into almost every language.
+However, his reputation in Russia is not based
+on this book, which is considered his masterpiece,
+but rather on his stories and tales. Let
+us, however, first take a glance at the life of this
+author, a life so closely connected with the subjects
+of his works that it forms an indispensable
+commentary on them.</p>
+
+<p>Veressayev, whose real name is Vikenty
+Smidovich, was born in 1867, in Tula. His
+father was a Pole and his mother a Russian.
+His father, a very pious and strictly moral man,
+was a well known and well liked physician. In
+1877, the boy entered the local school and received
+his degree there seven years later. In
+1884, he left for the University of St.&nbsp;Petersburg,
+where he enrolled in the department of
+historical sciences. Four years later, when he
+was twenty-four and a half, he received his
+degree of licentiate of letters.<a name="FNanchor_5" id="FNanchor_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> Most of his
+class-mates became school-teachers, but he preferred
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[Pg 109]</a></span>
+to pursue his studies. Medicine tempted
+him. He left for Zhouriev (formerly Dorpat,
+already famous for its department of medicine)
+and entered the university, where, at the end of
+six years, he received his doctor's degree.</p>
+
+<p>Two years before, in 1892, a cholera epidemic
+had broken out in Russia. Young Smidovich,
+then a fourth-year student, asked to be sent
+immediately to a province in the East, where the
+epidemic was spreading like wildfire. He remained
+there several months, in fact until the
+plague had gone. As a doctor's assistant in an
+infirmary organized in one of the mining districts
+of the government of Ekaterinoslav, he
+witnessed a peasant revolt in which several doctors
+were killed and others cruelly burned by
+the exasperated and ignorant mob. Veressayev
+has traced these sad events with tremendous
+power in his story, "Astray."</p>
+
+<p>His doctor's degree in his pocket, he went
+to Tula, where he practised for several months,
+but soon the position of house-surgeon was
+offered to him in the Botkin Hospital in St.&nbsp;Petersburg.
+He remained there seven years,
+till 1901, when, by order of the Minister of the
+Interior, who has charge of all hospital appointments,
+he was forced to retire from office
+and was expelled from St.&nbsp;Petersburg and forbidden
+to reside in either of the two capitals,
+Moscow or St.&nbsp;Petersburg. The reason for this
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[Pg 110]</a></span>
+was, that the name Veressayev appeared on the
+petition of the "intellectuals" which had been
+given to the Minister of the Interior, protesting
+against the brutal attitude of the police
+during a student manifestation in the Kazan
+cathedral on March 4, 1901. This petition
+brought severe punishment to almost all the
+people whose names were signed to it. Veressayev
+went abroad; he visited Italy, France,
+Germany and Switzerland.</p>
+
+<p>Gifted with poetic inspiration, he had begun
+writing at an early age. He was not more than
+fourteen when he translated some poems of
+Koerner and Goethe into Russian verse. Later,
+when at college, he wrote some short prose tales,
+which were published in various papers. But it
+was in 1896, when the "Russkoe Bogatsvo,"
+the large St.&nbsp;Petersburg review, had published
+his two important stories, "Astray" and "The
+Contagion," that renown came to him. It came
+so suddenly that it troubled him and was almost
+a blow to his modesty, which is one of the sympathetic
+traits of his personality.</p>
+
+<p>In fact, there came a time when the attention
+of the literary world, especially among the
+younger generation, became so wrapped up in
+his works that Gorky and Tchekoff sank to a
+second level. This enthusiasm was caused by
+the fact that Veressayev's works answered a
+general need. They brought into the world
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[Pg 111]</a></span>
+of literature a series of characters who summed
+up the rising fermentation of new ideas and
+seemed to be spokesmen, around whom the
+Russian revolutionary forces gathered,&mdash;forces
+which, up to this time, had been scattered.
+An era of struggle for liberty began.</p>
+
+<p>It is rather important, I think, for the
+proper understanding of this period to say a
+few words concerning its history.</p>
+
+<p>The struggle of the younger generation
+against the autocracy began about 1860, at
+the time of the freeing of the serfs, a period
+known in Russia as the "epoch of great reforms."
+These ameliorations, which extended
+into almost every domain of Russian life, left
+intact the autocracy, which, under pretence of
+protecting itself, fought successfully against
+all activity and thus brought about, among the
+younger generation, a general movement
+towards freedom and socialism. But the autocracy
+found its best help in the ignorance of
+the people. Urban commerce, little developed
+at that time, practically interested only the
+peasants&mdash;which means nine-tenths of the
+population of Russia. It was natural, then,
+that the peasants should become the principal
+object of the revolutionary propaganda, and
+that tremendous efforts should be made on all
+sides in order to awaken them from their dangerous
+sleep.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[Pg 112]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>The peasant uprisings in the history of
+Russia, especially the two revolts directed by
+Stepan Razin in the 17th century, and Pugachev
+in the 18th, proved the fact that the
+masses could unite in a general insurrection.
+This time, the "intellectuals" joined. As they
+advocated a sort of communism, periodic redivisions
+of land according to the growth of
+the population, and as they harped on the
+tradition that land was a gift of God which
+no one had a right to own, we can easily see
+that the agricultural proletariat would welcome
+with open arms the socialistic ideas.</p>
+
+<p>Although this popular movement did not
+affect many people, it was attacked with such
+pitiless cruelty, that the revolutionists decided
+to have recourse to the red terror in order to
+fight the white terror which was cutting down
+their ranks. The secret goal of this movement
+was to replace the autocratic r&eacute;gime with
+political institutions emanating from the will
+of the people. In order to accomplish its reforms
+more quickly, this party, which called
+itself the "Popular Will," incited several attempts
+at murder; Russia then witnessed dynamite
+outrages against imperial trains and
+palaces, and finally, the assassination of the
+Emperor Alexander II. For a moment the autocratic
+r&eacute;gime seemed to totter under these
+sudden and fierce blows, but it soon recovered.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[Pg 113]</a></span>
+The white terror proved to be stronger than
+the red. Many executions and banishments
+helped to crush the partisans of the "Popular
+Will;" then, when the movement had been
+checked, the authorities began to repress even
+the slightest desire for independence on the
+part of the press, the universities, or any other
+institutions which could do good to the people.
+Dejection and disillusion dominated this period
+from 1880 to 1900, which has been so faithfully
+portrayed in the works of Tchekoff.</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, in spite of the fact that their
+ideals had come to nought, those of the red
+terror had not disappeared, and hope remained
+in their breasts.</p>
+
+<p>Tchekoff was still living when new symptoms
+of fermentation appeared in Russia, and he
+could have alluded to this in his later works.
+But he did not have a fighting nature, and, in
+his solitude, he looked at conditions with
+melancholy scepticism. There was need of a
+man, a writer&mdash;like Gorky several years later&mdash;born
+right in the midst of this movement,
+who would be the very product of it, and for
+whom its ideas would be a reason for existence.</p>
+
+<p>Veressayev was this man and writer, and it
+is as much by his political opinions as by his
+literary talents that he gained such a wide-spread
+reputation. If his works are not always
+irreproachable from a literary standpoint,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[Pg 114]</a></span>
+they are always accurate in describing exactly
+what the author himself has seen and lived
+through.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Veressayev, in three great stories, gives us
+the three phases of the movement between 1880
+and 1900. These three stories, "Astray,"
+"The Contagion" and "At the Turn," are of
+such extreme importance, that in the following
+pages there will be a detailed analysis of each
+of them.</p>
+
+<p>The two protagonists of the story, "Astray,"
+are Dr.&nbsp;Chekanhov and his cousin Natasha. The
+former is at the end of his moral life, the latter
+is on the threshold, and both of them are
+"astray," because the one has not found the
+road on which to travel through life, and the
+other is just beginning to look for it. The
+entire existence of Chekanhov is dominated by
+the idea that it is <i>his duty to serve the people</i>,
+which was the basis of the activity of the
+"narodnikis." According to him, the "intellectuals,"
+who represent a small and privileged
+fraction of the population, are the debtors of
+the people and ought to pay their debt by giving
+the people knowledge and comfort. This
+theory is burned into his very soul; it is the
+leading thought that directs all of his actions.
+At this epoch, few men showed such absolute
+devotion. From 1880 to 1890, after the cruel
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[Pg 115]</a></span>
+suppression of the movement of the "narodnikis,"
+there was a stop in this revolutionary
+activity. Unaware of this pacification, Chekanhov
+makes great exertions; as a doctor, he combats
+disease and saves several people. But how
+exhaust the source of this evil, this misery,
+which is increased by a despotic social order?
+Chekanhov spends his energy in vain; where
+else shall he apply his strength?</p>
+
+<p>The famine of 1891! Dr.&nbsp;Chekanhov speaks
+only of his despair: "A terrible malady beats
+down on one after another of the inhabitants;
+it is an epidemic of typhoid caused by the privations
+which left us numb and weak." In 1892
+an epidemic of cholera broke out. In spite of
+the prayers of his parents, the young man
+rushes off to the most infected district. One
+day, he penetrates into an infected hovel. The
+children are sprawling everywhere, the mother
+is foolish and stupid, and the father, weakened
+by prison labor, has come down with cholera.
+The wife forbids the doctor, whom she accuses
+of poisoning the sick, to approach her husband.
+Scorning the danger, in order to encourage the
+sick man, the doctor drinks out of the very cup
+which the invalid has used. Nothing counts
+with him as long as he can inspire confidence
+and save people from death.</p>
+
+<p>"What good is there in love between good
+and strong people," adds Chekanhov, after having
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[Pg 116]</a></span>
+noted down this cure in his "Journal,"
+"since it results only in miserable abortions?
+And why are the people held down to work which
+is so rough and unpleasant? What motive supports
+them in their painful labor? Is it the
+desire to preserve their infected hovels?"</p>
+
+<p>At the end of these reflections could not
+Chekanhov, absolutely in despair, have abandoned
+his task? No, he knew how to keep up
+his devotion. Sacrificing his life for others,
+Chekanhov begins to love life again. He says
+to himself: "Life is good ... but will it be
+for a long time?" We do not catch the answer.</p>
+
+<p>Furious voices are heard, and a savage and
+cruel mob calls him a poisoner and hurls itself
+upon him, beating and striking him.</p>
+
+<p>Exhausted by the blows and jeered at by
+those whom he had considered his brothers in
+need and for whom he had put himself in constant
+peril, he lies stretched out on his bed,
+suffering severely; but he nourishes no grudge
+against his tormentors; on the contrary, his
+apostle-like character is moved with pity at the
+thought of these uncultured and ignorant beings
+so unconscious of the evil that they are
+doing. And several days before his death he
+writes the following tragic words in his "Journal,"
+almost terrifying in their simplicity:</p>
+
+<p>"They have beaten me! They have beaten
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[Pg 117]</a></span>
+me like a mad dog because I came to help them
+and because I used all my knowledge and
+strength, in one word, gave all that I had. I
+am not thinking now about how much I loved
+these people and how badly I feel at the way
+they have treated me. I simply did not succeed
+in gaining their confidence; I did succeed in
+making them believe in me for a while, but soon
+a mere trifle was enough to plunge them back
+among their dark shadows and to awaken in
+them an elemental, brutal instinct. And now I
+have to die. I am not afraid of death, but of a
+tarnished life full of empty remorse. Why have
+I struggled? In the name of what am I going
+to die? I am only a poor victim stripped of
+the strength of an ideal and cared for by no
+one.... It had to be so, for we were always
+strangers to them, beings belonging to another
+world; we scornfully avoid them, without trying
+to know them, and a terrible abyss separates
+us from them."</p>
+
+<p>It is interesting to note how Chekanhov is
+regarded by the new generation and especially
+by the woman he loves, his cousin Natasha.
+She believes in him, she expects a gospel of life
+from him; but Chekanhov cannot respond to
+her; he adheres to such vague expressions as:
+"work," "idea," "duty towards the people."
+He says to her: "You want an idea which will
+dominate you entirely and which will lead you
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[Pg 118]</a></span>
+to a definite goal; you want me to give you a
+standard and say: 'Fight and die for it.' I
+have read more than you, I have had more
+experience than you, but like you, <i>I Do Not
+Know</i>, and that is our torture." According
+to Chekanhov, all of his generation are in the
+same position: it is <i>Astray</i>, without a guiding
+star, it is perishing without realizing it....
+Finally, in order to avoid the pressing questions
+of Natasha, who would like to work and sacrifice
+herself for the poor, he points out to her the
+salutary work of the village school-mistress.
+A few days later he dies, welcoming death with
+joy.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>While the people who were ending their existence
+and those who were beginning it were so
+carefully looking for a field of action, the uncultivated
+ground of Russian life was gradually
+being cleared by the slow evolution of an
+economic movement. Between 1895 and 1900,
+as a result of the natural development of national
+commerce, the number of city workingmen
+grew to vast proportions and they formed
+an important class, which, on account of its
+situation, was much more qualified than the
+peasants to interest itself in the ideas of socialism
+and liberty. So from the very midst of
+the people certain individuals appeared capable
+of adopting progressive ideas; Marxism
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[Pg 119]</a></span>
+awaited them, the theory which is the basis of
+European democratic socialism. This doctrine
+was nothing new in Russia. But formerly,
+the proletariat of the cities had been very little
+developed and the Marxian doctrines had been
+of theoretical interest only.</p>
+
+<p>"The Contagion" has for its heroine
+Natasha,&mdash;the Natasha that we have already
+met, but how transformed! She has at last
+found her bearings. If, in 1892, she was waiting
+for the right road to be shown to her, in
+1896 she was enthusiastically following the new
+road opened by the doctrines of Marx.</p>
+
+<p>In Zharoshenko's famous picture, "The
+Student," Uspensky notes something new in
+this type of femininity. He calls it "the masculine
+trait"; it is the mark of thought. He
+sees there the harmonious fusion of a young
+girl and an adolescent boy, with an expression
+neither feminine nor masculine, but exceptionally
+human. And this transforms Zharoshenko's
+"Student" into a luminous personification,
+unknown up to this time, a type which
+synthesizes "le type humain."</p>
+
+<p>In the work of Veressayev this student is
+Natasha. Reflection has ripened her mind since
+her last talk with poor Chekanhov. She has
+become a regular "mannish woman," having
+seen and thought a great deal. She has traveled;
+she has lived in St.&nbsp;Petersburg and in the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[Pg 120]</a></span>
+south of Russia. Full of courage and energy,
+she claims to be fully satisfied with her lot; she
+begs her companions to follow the road she has
+found, and when they refuse she becomes angry
+with them. In company with her comrade
+Dayev she vigorously attacks the convictions
+of the men of Kisselev, who see sufficient safety
+in the workingmen's associations; she rises
+up, in the name of Marxism, against the
+"narodnikis," whom she considers ingenuous
+idealists; she refuses to endorse the theories
+of the "intellectuals," who oppose the thought
+of any great work, since they believe that
+smaller deeds are more immediately realizable.
+When one of them, a doctor, Tro&iuml;tsky, ends
+his conversation with her with these words:
+"It is not necessary to wear one's brains out
+trying to solve difficult problems while there is
+so much immediate need and so few workers,"
+she puts an end to the discussion. Shrugging
+her shoulders, in a trembling voice she answers:
+"How can you live and think as you do? New
+problems confront us, and you stand before
+them and do nothing, because you have lost
+confidence. I can't work any longer with you,
+because it would mean dedicating myself blindly
+to 'spiritual death.'"</p>
+
+<p>Veressayev does not show us how she solves
+the problems of which she speaks. The adepts
+of this sort of social apostleship usually propagate
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[Pg 121]</a></span>
+their ideas among the workingmen, help
+them, and play a part in conspiracies. Natasha
+offers herself up. But the censorship has not
+allowed Veressayev to carry his subject on, and
+he has limited himself to showing us Natasha
+in company with her friends and disciples, giving
+herself up to oratorical tilts, discussing
+principles, and uttering long discourses full of
+passion, faith, and juvenile impatience,&mdash;discourses
+which unfortunately are mistaken in
+their reasoning.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In realizing from the socialist ideal the logical
+and inevitable consequence of capitalism,
+which continues according to a law independent
+of human will, the Marxian doctrine dissipates
+the doubts and consolidates the faith of those
+who adopt it. According to this faith, the
+socialists do not have to create socialism, they
+only have to co&ouml;perate in the historical process
+which will inevitably make socialism grow. In
+thus recognizing the supremity of the law of
+history, socialism, utopian up to this time, becomes
+scientific and, under its new form, it is
+no longer subject to the influence of personal
+opinions, no matter how full of genius they
+may be. But this "scientific socialism," which,
+on account of the backwardness of political
+economy, could be only a step ahead, was taken
+by the younger generation of Russia as the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[Pg 122]</a></span>
+"dernier mot" of the science. The result was,
+that several narrow and exclusive dogmas were
+grafted on this doctrine. Thus, the theory of
+"class struggle" transformed itself into the
+absolute negation of all community interests
+between the diverse social strata. The "materialistic"&mdash;or
+rather "economic"&mdash;point of
+view, according to which the products of spiritual
+activity in the history of humanity lose all
+independence, being only the consequences of
+economic organization, generated scorn for all
+idealism; and the proletariat character of
+the socialistic movement impelled society to
+divide into two hostile and irreconcilable parts,
+one of which is made up of the proletariats, the
+other of the elements opposed to socialism. To
+this last party the enormous mass of half-starved
+peasants joined itself. The peasants,
+according to the Marxian doctrine, cannot understand
+socialism until they have become proletariats
+themselves, instead of becoming miserable
+landed proprietors. And this "proletariazation"
+of about 100,000,000 peasants, the
+fervent Marxists consider a fatal and desirable
+event in the near future.</p>
+
+<p>These theories, carried to excess, were sure
+to excite a reaction. It manifested itself by a
+neo-idealistic movement, which found the principal
+cause of social progress in the tendency
+of humanity to attain supreme development and
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[Pg 123]</a></span>
+perfection. Then there were the "narodnikis"
+who considered the "proletariazation" of the
+Russian peasant impossible and inopportune.
+There were also the various groups of Socialists
+who applauded the criticism that Bernstein
+made on the Marxian orthodoxy. So several
+deviations were made from the original theory;
+there were grave dissensions and interminable
+and bitter controversies. All this occupies a
+large part of "At the Turn," one of Veressayev's
+novels, in which these events are traced
+with almost stenographic exactitude.</p>
+
+<p>The characters are, Tanya, a fanatic Marxist;
+her brother, Tokarev, whose soul is a field
+for spiritual battles; and Varenka, a village
+school-mistress. There are several eccentric
+characters around them, such as Serge, a young
+apostle of a somewhat Nietzschean egoism, Antsov
+and others. Tanya is none other than
+Natasha of "Astray," with this great difference,
+however, that Tanya has found truth already
+formulated for her, and does not have
+to grope about for it. Nevertheless, the essential
+characteristics of the two girls are the same.
+They both have the same joyous self-denial, the
+same love of life, the same courage in face of
+difficulties, and also the same faith in a better
+future. Tanya has lived during the whole winter
+with her comrades in a region devastated
+by the famine, and she has spent there all that
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[Pg 124]</a></span>
+she possesses. At Toliminsk, where she arrives
+after a long walk, she speaks of her meagre living
+and tells amusing stories without suspecting
+her wonderful heroism.</p>
+
+<p>But this young girl, full of the joy of life
+and ready for any sacrifices, is pitiless towards
+her theoretical adversaries and has absolutely
+no compassion for them. The passage in
+"Crime and Punishment," in which Dostoyevsky
+depicts one of his heroes in the following
+manner: "He was young, he had abstract ideas,
+and was, consequently, cruel," perfectly fits
+Tanya. Veressayev tells the following incident:
+"One day, when she was at the station, some
+peasants rushed down from the platform. A
+railroad guard struck one of the peasants.
+The peasant put his head down and ran off....
+Tanya, knitting her brows, said: 'That's good
+for him! Oh, these peasants!' And her eyes
+lighted up with scorn and hate...."</p>
+
+<p>Just as Tanya brings Natasha to our mind,
+so does Varenka make us think of Dr.&nbsp;Chekanhov;
+the same feeling of duty governs them
+both. But, while Chekanhov wanted to devote
+himself to the social problem, without ever succeeding
+in doing so, because he did not exactly
+see the principles, Varenka was able to devote
+herself to her work without mental reservation.
+However, she refuses to, because she has not
+enough enthusiasm for this sort of research.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[Pg 125]</a></span>
+Her understanding, which is deeper and
+broader than Tanya's, sees the error, the narrowness
+of her doctrine; she cannot admit it,
+and, fired by a desire to devote herself body and
+soul to some useful work, she chooses the laborious
+profession of a school-mistress in the
+village. But this humble and unpleasant career
+does not satisfy her. Little by little ennui and
+anguish drive her to suicide.</p>
+
+<p>Between Tokarev, Tanya's brother, and
+Varenka, the contrast is complete. While still
+a student, he had accepted, with all the ardor
+of youth, the idea of duty, and he desired to
+give himself up to the cause of justice and
+truth; but, having encountered many obstacles,
+he felt, when he had reached his thirtieth year,
+that the sacred fire was going out.</p>
+
+<p>He now dreamed only of his personal happiness,
+and of poor theories that justified this
+egoism. An assured material existence, comfort,
+a happy domestic life, work without risks,
+without sacrifices, but useful enough in appearance
+to satisfy the conscience, attracted him irresistibly.
+He then went to work to tear out
+his former ideas, which had taken a pretty firm
+root. Urged on by his conscience, which protested,
+he forced himself at times to resurrect
+his youthful enthusiasm; he thought a great
+deal about morals, about duty, and he read
+many books treating this subject; he says: "I
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[Pg 126]</a></span>
+feel that something extremely necessary has left
+me. My feelings about humanity have disappeared
+and nothing can replace them. I read
+a great deal now, and I am directing my
+thoughts towards ethics. I try to give morality
+a solid basis and I try to make clearer to myself
+the various categories of duty.... And I
+blush to pronounce the word, 'Duty.'"</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, Tokarev tries, at times, to justify
+his inclinations towards peaceable bourgeois
+prosperity to the struggling youth who
+surround his sister Tanya. These cruel young
+people, however, answer him only with sarcastic
+remarks, and caustic arguments, and do not
+hesitate to express their doubts as to the sincerity
+of his opinions. To his conscience, they
+are like a living reproach from the past. Once
+he also was intolerant towards others as these
+people are towards him to-day. And that is
+why he suffers under their condemnation of
+him. He defends himself weakly, and after one
+of his oratorical tilts, he falls into such spiritual
+depression, that he almost thinks of suicide.</p>
+
+<p>These, then, are the three main characters of
+Veressayev's novel. In the background we have
+the secondary characters. We have the proud
+proprietor and his wife, both of them liberals;
+we have the pedagogue Osmerkov, who does not
+like talented people because they bother everybody;
+and then there are the respectable inhabitants
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[Pg 127]</a></span>
+of Gniezdelovka, Serge's father and
+mother, who are entirely absorbed with their
+household and with cards.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"The Comrades" is a variation on this
+theme: old school friends, who formerly had
+been wrapped up in a great ideal, are now
+living a life of shabby prosperity, and they
+feel that they have deteriorated, although they
+do not dare to confess it to each other.</p>
+
+<p>And Veressayev profits by this to generalize
+on the causes of this fatal fall after the unselfish
+enthusiasms of youth. He sees them especially
+in a mysterious force: "The Invisible," already
+studied by Maeterlinck, Ibsen, Tchekoff, and
+especially by de Maupassant; and he sees them
+in the unhappy conditions of Russian history,
+which created a social and political organization
+favorable only to those who crawl along
+and not to those who plan.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Let us now analyze the stories in which
+Veressayev describes the life of the people.</p>
+
+<p>The story of "The Steppe" is as follows:
+One beautiful autumn evening two men meet on
+the steppe. One of them, the forger Nikita, is
+returning to his native land; he is wounded in
+the leg and it is hard for him to walk. He is
+looking for work. The other is a professional
+beggar.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[Pg 128]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>The beggar, who is never hungry because he
+has no scruples, offers Nikita something to eat.
+After resting a short while, the travelers continue
+on their way. In the first village that
+they come to, the pilgrim beggar makes a
+speech to the inhabitants and sells them certain
+"sacred properties" which he keeps in his bag.
+After pocketing gifts of money and various
+other things, the false pilgrim pursues his way,
+still accompanied by Nikita. On the road once
+more, he offers to share with his comrade the
+fruits of his "work," but the latter refuses.</p>
+
+<p>"What a fool!" cries the beggar, and bursts
+out laughing. But Nikita, indignant, gives
+him a heavy blow and leaves him for good.</p>
+
+<p>"For a Home" and "In Haste" gave
+Veressayev an opportunity to note one of the
+characteristic traits of the ambitious villagers:
+their strong desire to preserve their homes and
+to propagate the race.</p>
+
+<p>In the first of these stories, two old people,
+Athanasius and his wife, want to marry their
+daughter Dunka, but the "mir,"&mdash;the assembly
+of peasants,&mdash;egotistical and inflexible
+towards people who are growing weak, oppose
+them. "We have not enough land for our own
+children," is the answer of the "mir." Dunka
+remains unmarried, and dies at an early age.
+Her mother soon follows her. Old Athanasius
+lives alone in his freezing "isba," which is in a
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[Pg 129]</a></span>
+state of ruin, while the neighboring isbas, solid
+and austere, "spitefully watch him die."</p>
+
+<p>In the last story, we have a widower who is
+the father of five children, and is therefore
+looking everywhere for a woman with some
+bodily defect, because he knows that other
+women will not want to have anything to do
+with him.</p>
+
+<p>It is the same wish to preserve his home that
+makes a peasant go to the city to earn his
+living while he leaves his family in the country
+to take care of the house.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>The peasant is, besides, entirely engrossed
+with the difficulties of existence. Necessity
+often urges him to desperate acts.... Some,
+who are almost starving, ingratiate themselves
+with the raftsmen. They force wages down by
+asking only 5 copecks (5 cents) a day....
+If they are contented with this absurd pay, it
+is because they avoid seeing how their little
+children are suffering at home. "It's hard
+living at present; there is not enough space;
+ground is scarce and there are too many
+people." "Men haven't room enough," says a
+sad-looking man with prominent cheek-bones.
+"But," he goes on, "they tell me that sickness
+has struck our village, and that the men are
+losing blood! Is that true?" "Yes, it's true!"
+"So much the better! That will clean out the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[Pg 130]</a></span>
+people; it will be easier to live then," he concludes,
+thoughtfully. (From "In the Cold
+Spell.")</p>
+
+<p>In almost all the work of Veressayev a voice
+proclaims that the Russian peasant is near his
+end; that he is not useful to any one. The
+poverty of the villages is painted in the most
+sombre colors. The people are unanimous in
+believing that the struggle for life has become
+terrible. "On what will you live?" one asks
+the other. "The earth does not nourish us.
+The holdings are small; in summer, one must
+cultivate, and in winter the cottages have to
+be closed while we look for work or charity.
+What is there to eat? Hay! Let us thank God
+that the cattle have enough of that. Oats? We
+have to give four hectoliters and two measures
+of our oats to the common granary.... And
+taxes and clothes? coal-oil, matches, tea,
+sugar? Tell me, how can one live?"</p>
+
+<p>The unfortunates even go so far as to bless
+war and epidemics. "Everything went better
+then. Men lived peacefully in the fear of God,
+the Lord took care of every one. War, smallpox,
+famine came and cleaned out the populace;
+those that remained, after having got the
+coffins ready, lived easier. God pitied us. Now
+there is no more war; He leaves us to our own
+poor devices."</p>
+
+<p>Speeches like this abound in the works of
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[Pg 131]</a></span>
+Veressayev. A dull sadness, bordering on
+despair, breathes forth from the pages. It
+seems, at times, as if the Russian peasant could
+never awake from his torpor, because the author
+represents him as full of infinite egoism,
+without any spirit of solidarity, sacrificing
+everything for love of his sorry little house
+and his morsel of ground, which is insufficient
+to nourish him. But we must remember that
+the Marxian point of view, which the author
+takes, explains in part the horror of such pictures.</p>
+
+<p>According to Veressayev the poor peasants
+can better their position only by getting
+rid of their land, in order to become free
+proletarians. But if the peasant class is unfortunate,
+it is so, for the most part, because it is
+the most exploited and the most oppressed. It
+is not, then, the getting rid of their land that
+will bring the peasants salvation; on the contrary,
+they must fight for it against their oppressors.
+The peasants are beginning to understand
+the necessity of this struggle, and
+their late uprisings in several provinces have
+shown that they lack neither solidarity nor organization.</p>
+
+<p>In the story called, "The End of Andrey
+Ivanovich," which is about the working class of
+Russia, we see the transformation of a peasant
+into a "city man." In his new surroundings,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[Pg 132]</a></span>
+it is true, the wine-shop plays an important
+r&ocirc;le, but schools are organized there which inspire
+a taste for reading, and "thought"
+gradually awakens.</p>
+
+<p>Andrey has not yet rid himself of his rustic
+unsociability; however, he is beginning to become
+civilized, and is receiving city culture.
+He tries to free himself from his misery, from
+his degradation. He beats his wife when he
+is drunk, but, at the same time, he gets angry
+at a friend when he beats his mistress....
+According to his own confession he reads many
+useless things, nevertheless he can become interested
+in a serious work. If he drinks to
+excess, it is to "drive away the thoughts" that
+torment him. He wants to analyze every question
+and find out what is at the bottom of it.
+He is the spiritual brother of Natasha, Chekanhov,
+and Tanya.</p>
+
+<p>The sequel to this story is "The Straight
+Road." This time we are transported into the
+world of factory workers, a world lamentable
+for its misery, despair, and crime. Andrey
+Ivanovich's wife, Alexandra Mikhailovna, being
+without resources after the death of her
+husband, with a little daughter in arms, enters
+a book-binding establishment, belonging to a
+man named Semidalov. But the foreman, a
+vicious and evil-minded man, reigns as despot.
+It is he who gives out the work. The young
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[Pg 133]</a></span>
+girls who listen to his advances are sure of
+being shown partiality; the others are badly
+treated. As Alexandra wants to live honestly,
+her work in the shop is made very hard. Her
+best friend, Tanya, who inadvertently spilled
+oil on some paper and could not pay for the
+damage, had to give herself to the foreman.
+Finally Tanya despairs and ends by drowning
+herself. Alexandra is saved, thanks to a "loveless"
+marriage with the locksmith, Lestmann.
+She accepts this union so that she will not have
+to starve and can remain "straight." Thus,
+the "straight road" which Alexandra wanted
+to follow has forced her finally to sell herself,
+to marry a man whom she does not love.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Each page of Veressayev's work exists
+merely to throw light on this or that social
+question, considered from a well defined point
+of view. The secret of his success rests mostly
+in the frank, sincere manner in which he has
+approached certain problems. At the same
+time, all of his work breathes forth a deep and
+tender love for those who suffer. In reality,
+there is not a single book by Veressayev which
+might not be a confession; all that he writes
+he has already experienced himself, and his
+work vibrates with a delicate and personal emotion.
+It is only necessary to read "The Memoirs
+of a Physician," which is almost an autobiography,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[Pg 134]</a></span>
+in order to perceive the moral relationship
+that exists between Veressayev and the
+heroes of his stories.</p>
+
+<p>This book is the confession of a physician
+from the time of his early studies. The young
+man is <a class="corr" name="TC_1" id="TC_1" title="astonishd">astonished</a> at the number of maladies
+that exist and by the unbelievable variety of
+keen suffering that nature inflicts upon the
+human species, man. Soon he is obliged to
+make a discovery that stuns him: that medicine
+is incapable of curing many evils. It only
+gropes about, trying thousands of remedies before
+it arrives at a sure result. The scruples
+and anxiety of the student increase, especially
+after an autopsy on a woman in the amphitheatre,
+when the professor announces that the
+woman has succumbed because the surgeon, who
+was operating, swooned, and ends by saying:
+"In such difficult operations the very best surgeons
+are not safe from accidents of this kind."
+After this, the professor shook hands with his
+colleague and every one left. At that time,
+doubt entered the mind of the young man. And
+so, within a period of ten years, he passes from
+extreme optimism to the same degree of pessimism.</p>
+
+<p>We follow him in the hospitals, where he is
+scandalized by the brutality of the teaching,
+which makes use of the unwilling bodies of sick
+people. "Not being able to pay for their
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[Pg 135]</a></span>
+treatment in money, they have to pay with
+their bodies." Finally, the student becomes a
+doctor himself. Full of faith and knowledge,
+he starts practice in a small market-town of
+central Russia. But his work soon cools him
+down; in the clinic he had studied mostly exceptional
+cases; now he is disconcerted by
+simple and every-day sicknesses. His ignorance
+leads to the following tragic case:</p>
+
+<p>One day, a poor and widowed washerwoman
+brings him her sick child, whom she does not
+want to take to the hospital because her two
+oldest children died there. The child is a weak
+boy of eight years who has caught scarlet-fever.
+At first, the inside of the throat begins
+to swell, and, to prevent an abscess, the doctor
+orders rubbings with a mercurial ointment.
+The next day, he finds the boy all aquiver and
+covered with pimples. "There is no mistake,"
+he says, "the rubbing has spread the infection
+into the neighboring organs and a general
+poisoning of the blood has taken place. The
+little boy is lost.... All that day and night
+I wandered about the streets. I could think of
+nothing, and I felt crushed by the horror of the
+thing. Only at times this thought came into
+my mind: 'I have killed a human being!'"
+The child lived ten days more. The night before
+his death Veressayev comes to see him.
+The poor mother is sobbing in a corner of the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[Pg 136]</a></span>
+miserable room. She pulls herself together,
+however, and taking three rubles out of her
+pocket, offers them to the trembling doctor,
+who refuses them. Then this woman falls down
+on her knees and thanks him for having pitied
+her son. "I'll leave everything, I'll give up
+everything," sobs the doctor.... "I have
+decided to leave for St.&nbsp;Petersburg to-morrow
+in order to study some more even if I die of
+hunger!"</p>
+
+<p>Once the resolution was made to pursue his
+studies in a more practical manner, he becomes
+the house-surgeon of a hospital. But even
+there a mass of problems disturb him. He sees
+how dangerous the simplest operations are; he
+is frightened by the unrestraint of the doctors,
+who try new methods on the sick, methods the
+effects of which are not known, methods that
+result in the patient's being inoculated with
+more sickness. Medicine cannot progress without
+direct experimentation, and experience is
+gained at the expense of the more unfortunate.
+Nevertheless, Veressayev does not argue
+against this way of working; he shows the
+facts, and leaves it to the reader to decide. On
+the other hand, he does not hide his fear of the
+common ignorance of all doctors. Every individual
+differs from his neighbor. How distinguish
+their idiosyncrasies? Once the scope
+of a sickness is known, what remedy shall be
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[Pg 137]</a></span>
+used? Some say this, others, that. How shall
+one choose? Veressayev has felt all of this;
+he has tried to harden himself against the unreasonable
+ingratitude of some, the scepticism
+of others; he realizes that patience, resignation,
+and heroism are needed in order to struggle
+against and support the mortifications in
+the career of a doctor. How much easier it
+would be not to consider medicine as infallible;
+to study it as an art rather than as a science.
+But people prefer to believe that doctors know
+everything. They do not want to see the reality,
+and this is the reason why sad, and at times
+tragic conflicts arise between patient and
+physician.</p>
+
+<p>Finally, what could the most perfect medical
+science and the cleverest doctor do against the
+enormous mass of sickness and suffering that
+are the inevitable result of the social evils, of
+which poverty is the most conspicuous? How
+can one tell a man that his trade is running
+him down and that he does not get enough
+nourishment? How can one order a man to
+eat better food, to get more sleep and more
+pure air? First, and most important, is the
+necessity of curing the social organism.</p>
+
+<p>It is easy to see why this book made many
+enemies for its author. There is too much
+frankness and conscientiousness in these
+studies not to anger those who have their
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[Pg 138]</a></span>
+greatest interest in concealing the truth! The
+upright man who sees primarily in medicine a
+means to relieve human suffering, cannot realize
+without sadness the many abuses hidden under
+the name of this science.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"In the War," recently published, is the
+story of Veressayev's campaign in Manchuria.
+In this work, the author has painted vividly
+the peregrinations of his moving hospital, and
+also the terrible sufferings of the Russian army.
+By the thousands, the starved children of the
+campaign, the Russian foot-soldiers, stoics and
+fatalists, sacrificing their lives for a strange
+and incomprehensible cause, pass before the
+eyes of the reader. And in the background,
+detaching themselves from the crowd, in their
+gold and silver embroidered uniforms, are "the
+heroes of the war, these vultures of the advance
+and rear-guard, who enrich themselves at the
+expense of the unfortunate soldiers." A number
+of these great chiefs, whose infamy was
+evident at the end of the war, since they had
+shown themselves incapable of dealing with the
+foreign enemy, had distinguished themselves by
+the ferocity they exhibited in quelling internal
+troubles. As to the military doctors, the
+greater number of them went into the campaign
+only for commercial gain. Among the
+nurses who accompanied them, aside from those
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[Pg 139]</a></span>
+who were real heroines of goodness and devotion,
+there were many who prostituted themselves
+shamefully.</p>
+
+<p>Corruption, carelessness, disorder, and cowardice
+are shown on every page of this story,
+as well as the terrible suffering endured by
+the wounded in the hospitals. The wounded
+were the real martyrs of this frightful campaign.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Veressayev, like all of his heroes and heroines,
+wants to help the people, and for this reason
+he gets in touch with the revolutionists who
+consecrate their work to political and social
+regeneration, under the various titles, "narodnikis,"
+Marxists, Socialists, idealists and so on....
+Which of these does he prefer? We do
+not know. We find the influence of Marx in
+his ideas, but we cannot affirm that he is an absolute
+Marxian. It seems as if Veressayev,
+troubled by the innumerable divergencies of
+opinion, asks himself secretly: "Will this war
+lead to the unity of opinion and program, so
+necessary for victory, or by its quarrels will it
+only retard the harmony so much sought
+after?"</p>
+
+<p>It is not discussion that will finally lead to
+unity, but rather life itself, with all its realities.</p>
+
+<p>It would be most interesting to read a sequel
+to the three famous novels of Veressayev&mdash;"Astray,"
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[Pg 140]</a></span>
+"The Contagion," and "At the
+Turning"&mdash;in which he would give us the
+psychology of his former heroes under present
+conditions. To-day, the people are not
+"astray"; the field is big enough for every
+one to find the place that best suits his ideas,
+tastes, and temperament. Dr.&nbsp;Chekanhov, if he
+were living now, instead of being maltreated by
+the people, would certainly be their well beloved
+champion, and perhaps represent them in the
+Duma; the timid Tokarev, in spite of his aversion
+to the ideas of the revolutionists, could
+find a place in the liberal party of the Reforming
+Democrats, or at least among the Octobrists;
+the unfortunate Varenka would not be
+worn out by her work as school-mistress, for
+she would be supported by the peasants. The
+peasants themselves are not the miserable and
+resigned creatures of Veressayev's earlier
+stories. Certainly, liberty is not yet a legal
+thing in Russia, and the Duma is still an unstable
+institution, but the end of absolutism is
+near, for a great event has taken place in the
+empire of the Tsar, namely, this awakening of
+the feeling of human dignity, and the spirit of
+revolt among the lower strata of the Russian
+people, which in the past, by its unconsciousness,
+formed the granite pedestal of autocracy.
+The struggle is terrible, but confidence in final
+victory redoubles the energy of the strugglers.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[Pg 141]</a></span>
+A certain Russian was right when he said:
+"Formerly, life was formidable, but now it is
+both formidable and gay."</p>
+
+<p>In reading the works of Veressayev, Tchekoff,
+and other painters of modern Russian
+society, it is easy to note that not one of
+them anticipated this sudden change of scenery
+on the Russian political stage, a change which,
+however, was being prepared in the souls of the
+peasants. But let us not reproach them!
+Russia will always remain an enigma.</p>
+
+<p>There is a very old story about the son of
+the peasant Ilya Murometz. After remaining
+lazily resting in his "isba" for thirty years, he
+suddenly arose, and began to walk with such
+fury that the earth trembled. How could these
+writers conceive the time when this lazy giant
+would make up his mind to walk? It is enough
+to have the assurance that now, no matter what
+happens, since he <i>has</i> arisen, he will not lie
+down again.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[Pg 142]</a></span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="V" id="V"></a>V<br />
+MAXIM GORKY</h2>
+
+
+<p>Maxim Gorky is the most original and, after
+Tolstoy, the most talented of modern Russian
+writers. He was born in 1868 or 1869&mdash;he
+does not know exactly when himself&mdash;in a
+dyer's back shop at Nizhny Novgorod. His
+mother, Barbara Kashirina, was the daughter of
+the aforementioned dyer; and his father,
+Maxim Pyeshkov, was an upholsterer. The
+child was christened Alexis. His real name,
+then, is Alexis Pyeshkov, and Maxim Gorky<a name="FNanchor_6" id="FNanchor_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a>
+is only his pseudonym. When he was four, he
+lost his father, and three years later, his mother.
+He was then taken by his grandfather, who had
+been a soldier under Nicholas I, a hard, authoritative,
+pitiless old man, before whom all
+trembled. And it was under his rude tutelage
+that the child first began to read. When he was
+nine, he was sent to work for a shoemaker, an
+evil sort of man who maltreated him.</p>
+
+<p>"One day," Gorky tells us, "I was warming
+some water for him; the bowl fell, and I burned
+my hands badly. That evening I ran away,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[Pg 143]</a></span>
+my grandfather having scolded me severely. I
+then became a painter's apprentice."</p>
+
+<p>He did not remain long in this position.
+From this time on, his unsatisfied soul was
+seized with the "wanderlust." First apprenticed
+to an engraver, and then as a gardener,
+he finally became a scullion on one of the boats
+that plies up and down the Volga. Here he felt
+more at ease.</p>
+
+<p>On board, in the person of the master-cook,
+named Smoury, he unexpectedly met a teacher.
+This cook, who had been a soldier, loved to read,
+and he gave the child all the books that he had
+in an old trunk. They consisted of the works
+of Gogol, Dumas' novels, the "Lives of the
+Saints," a manual of geography, and some
+popular novels. Surely, a queer collection!</p>
+
+<p>Smoury inspired his scullion, then sixteen
+years of age, "with an ardent curiosity for the
+printed word." A "furious" desire to learn
+seized the young fellow; he went to Kazan, a
+university city, in the hope of "learning gratuitously
+all sorts of beautiful things." Cruel
+deception! They explained to him that "this
+was not according to the established order."
+Discouraged, a few months later, he took a
+position with a baker. He who dreamed of the
+sun and the open air had to be imprisoned in a
+filthy and damp cellar. He remained there for
+two years, earning two dollars a month, board
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[Pg 144]</a></span>
+and lodging included; the food, however, was
+putrid, and his lodging consisted of an attic
+which he shared with five other men.</p>
+
+<p>"My life in that bakery," he has said, "left
+a bitter impression. Those two years were the
+hardest of my whole life." He has thus described
+his recollections in one of his stories:</p>
+
+<p>"We lived in a wooden box, under a low and
+heavy ceiling, all covered with cobwebs and permeated
+with fine soot. Night pressed us between
+the two walls, spattered with spots of mud and
+all mouldy. We got up at five in the morning
+and, stupid and indifferent, began work at six
+o'clock. We made bread out of the dough
+which our comrades had prepared while we
+slept. The whole day, from dawn till ten at
+night, some of us sat at the table rolling out
+the dough, and, to avoid becoming torpid, we
+would constantly rock ourselves to and fro while
+the others kneaded in the flour. The enormous
+oven, which resembled a fantastic beast, opened
+its large jaws, full of dazzling flames, and
+breathed forth upon us its hot breath, while its
+two black and enormous cavities watched our
+unending work....</p>
+
+<p>"Thus, from one day to the next, in the
+floury dust, in the mud that our feet brought in
+from the yard, in the suffocating and terrible
+heat, we rolled out the dough and made cracknels,
+moistening them with our sweat; we hated
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[Pg 145]</a></span>
+our work with an implacable hatred; we never
+ate what we made, preferring black bread to
+these odorous dainties."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>At this period of his life, he had occasion
+to study at first hand certain places where he
+received original information which he later used
+in writing "Konovalov" and "The Ex-Men,"
+which have thus acquired an autobiographical
+value. In fact, he worked a long while with
+these "ex-men;" like them, he sawed wood,
+and carried heavy burdens. At the same time,
+he devoted all his spare time to reading and
+thinking about problems, which became more
+and more "cursed" and alarming. He had
+found an attentive listener and interlocutor in
+the person of his comrade, the baker Konovalov.
+These two men, while baking their bread, found
+time to read. And the walls of the cellar heard
+the reading of the works of Gogol, Dostoyevsky,
+Karamzine, and others. Then they used
+to discuss the meaning of life. On holidays,
+Gorky and <a class="corr" name="TC_2" id="TC_2" title="Konavolov">Konovalov</a> had for the moment an
+opportunity to come out of the hole&mdash;this
+word does not exaggerate&mdash;in which they
+worked, to breathe the fresh air, to live a bit
+in nature's bosom, and to see their fellow men.</p>
+
+<p>"On holidays," Gorky tells us, "we went
+with Konovalov down to the river, into the
+fields; we took a little brandy and bread with
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[Pg 146]</a></span>
+us, and, from morning till evening, we were in
+the open air."</p>
+
+<p>They often went to an old, abandoned house
+which served as a refuge for a whole tribe of
+miserable and wandering people, who loved to
+tell of their wandering lives. Gorky and his
+companion were always well received on account
+of the provisions which they distributed so generously.</p>
+
+<p>"Each story spread out before our eyes like
+a piece of lace in which the black threads predominated&mdash;they
+represented the truth&mdash;and
+where there were threads of light color&mdash;they
+were the lies. These people loved us in their
+way, and were attentive listeners, because I
+often read a great deal to them."</p>
+
+<p>Often, these expeditions were not without
+their risks. One day, two of the baker's workmen
+happened to drown in a bog; another time,
+they were taken in a police raid and passed the
+night in the station house.</p>
+
+<p>It was also at this time that Gorky frequented
+the company of several students, not
+care-free and happy ones, but miserable young
+fellows like those whom Turgenev described as
+"nourished by physical privations and moral
+sufferings."</p>
+
+<p>On leaving the bakery, where his health, very
+much weakened by the lack of air and by bad
+food, did not permit him to remain any longer,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[Pg 147]</a></span>
+he joined those vagabonds, those wanderers,
+whose melancholy companion he had been, and
+whose painter and poet he was to be. In their
+company, he traveled through Russia in every
+sense of the word, now as a longshoreman, now
+as a wood-chopper. Whenever he had a copeck
+in his pocket he bought books and newspapers
+and spent the night reading them. He suffered
+hunger and cold; he slept in the open air in
+summer, and, in winter, in some refuge or cellar.
+The feverish activity of so keen an intellect in
+an organism so crushed had, as its consequence,
+one of the attempts at suicide which are so
+frequent among the younger generation of the
+Russians.</p>
+
+<p>In 1889, at the age of twenty-one, Gorky
+shot himself in the chest, but he did not succeed
+in killing himself. Soon afterwards, he became
+gate-keeper for the winter at Tzaratzine;
+but the summer had hardly come before he began
+his vagabondage again, in the course of
+which he undertook a thousand little jobs in
+order to keep himself alive. On the road, he
+noticed those pariahs whom society does not
+want or who do not want society. And of
+these, in his short stories, he has created immortal
+types.</p>
+
+<p>Life was still very hard for him at this time.
+He has given us a moving sketch of it in his
+story entitled: "Once in Autumn." The hero,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[Pg 148]</a></span>
+who is none other than the author himself,
+passes the night under an old, upturned boat,
+in the company of a prostitute who is just as
+poor and just as abandoned as himself. They
+have broken into a booth in order to steal
+enough bread to keep them from starving.
+Gorky is sad; he wants to weep; but the poor
+girl, miserable as she is, consoles him and covers
+him with kisses.</p>
+
+<p>"Those were the first kisses any woman ever
+gave me, and they were the best, for those that
+I received later always cost me a lot and never
+gave me any joy.... At this time, I was already
+preparing myself to be an active and
+powerful force in society; it seemed to me
+at times that I had in part accomplished my
+purpose.... I dreamed of political resolutions,
+of social reorganization; I used to read
+such deep and impenetrable authors that their
+thoughts did not seem to be a part of them&mdash;and
+now a prostitute warmed me with her body,
+and I was in debt to a miserable, shameful creature,
+banished by a society that did not want
+to accord her a place. The wind blew and
+groaned, the rain beat down upon the boat, the
+waves broke around us, and both of us, closely
+entwined, trembled from cold and hunger. And
+Natasha consoled me; she spoke to me in a
+sweet, caressing voice, as only a woman can.
+In listening to her tender and na&iuml;ve words, I
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[Pg 149]</a></span>
+wept, and those tears washed away from my
+heart many impurities, much bitterness, sadness
+and hatred, all of which had accumulated there
+before this night."</p>
+
+<p>At daybreak, they say good-bye to each
+other, and never see one another again.</p>
+
+<p>"For more than six months, I looked in all
+the dives and dens in the hope of seeing that
+dear little Natasha once more, but it was in
+vain...."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>We find him again at Nizhny Novgorod at
+the time of the call for military recruits. Gorky
+was reformed, for, he says, "They do not
+accept those who are fallen." Meanwhile, he
+became a kvass merchant and exercised this
+trade for several months. Finally, he became
+the secretary of a lawyer, named Lanine. The
+latter, who had a very good reputation, took a
+deep interest in the poor boy whom life had
+treated so ill. He became interested in his intellectual
+development and, according to Gorky
+himself, had a great influence on him. At
+Nizhny Novgorod, as at Kazan, Gorky felt himself
+attracted by the circle of young people who
+discussed the "cursed" questions, and he soon
+was noticed by his comrades. They spoke of
+him as "a live and energetic soul."</p>
+
+<p>Easy as life was for Gorky in this city, where
+he remained for a while, the "wanderlust"
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[Pg 150]</a></span>
+again seized him. "Not feeling at home among
+these intelligent people," he traveled. From
+Nizhny Novgorod, he went, in 1893, to Tzaratzine;
+then he traveled on foot through the
+entire province of the Don, the Ukraine, entered
+into Bessarabia, and from there descended
+by the coast of the Crimea as far as Kuban.</p>
+
+<p>In October, 1892, Gorky found himself at
+Tiflis, where he worked in the railroad shops.
+That same year, he published in a local paper
+his first story, "Makar Choudra," in which already
+a remarkable talent was evident.</p>
+
+<p>Leaving Tiflis after a short sojourn there,
+he came to the banks of the Volga, in his native
+country, and began to write stories for the
+local papers. A happy chance made him meet
+Korolenko, who took a great interest in the
+"debutante" writer. "In the year 1893-1894,"
+writes Gorky, "I made the acquaintance of
+Vladimir Korolenko, to whom I owe my introduction
+into 'great' literature. He has done
+a great deal for me in teaching me many
+things."</p>
+
+<p>The important influence of Korolenko on the
+literary development of Gorky can best be seen
+in one of the latter's letters to his biographer,
+Mr. Gorodetsky. "Write this," he says to his
+biographer, "write this without changing a
+single word: It is Korolenko who taught Gorky
+to write, and if Gorky has profited but little by
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[Pg 151]</a></span>
+the teaching of Korolenko, it is the fault of
+Gorky alone. Write: Gorky's first teacher was
+the soldier-cook Smoury; his second teacher
+was the lawyer Lanine; the third, Alexander
+Kalouzhny, an 'ex-man;' the fourth, Korolenko...."</p>
+
+<p>From the day when he met Korolenko,
+Gorky's stories appeared mostly in the more
+important publications. In 1895, he published
+"Chelkashe" in the important Petersburg review,
+"Russkoe Bogatsvo;" a year later,
+other publications equally well known published,
+"Konovalov," "Malva," and "Anxiety."
+These works brought Gorky into the literary
+world, where he soon became one of the favorite
+writers. The critics, at first sceptical, soon
+joined their voices with the enthusiastic clamor
+of the people.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Gorky's wandering life has given his works
+a peculiar and universally established form.
+He is, above all others, the poet of the "barefoot
+brigade," of the vagabonds who eternally
+wander from one end of Russia to the other,
+carelessly spending the few pennies that they
+have succeeded in earning, and who, like the
+birds of the sky, have no cares for the morrow.</p>
+
+<p>But this does not suffice to explain this author's
+popularity, especially among the younger
+generation. The "barefoot brigade" is not
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[Pg 152]</a></span>
+a novelty in Russian literature. We find it in
+the works of Reshetnikov, Uspensky, Mamine,
+Zhassinsky, and others. It is true that, up to
+this time, the vagabonds had been represented
+as the dregs of the people, as hopeless drunkards,
+thieves, and murderers. The writers who
+represented them were satisfied in rousing in
+their readers pity for the victims of this social
+disorder, victims so wounded by fate, that they
+have not even a realization of the injustice with
+which they are treated. And it is only in the
+works of the great dramatist Ostrovsky that we
+find any happy vagabonds, with a deep love of
+nature and beauty.</p>
+
+<p>Gorky's vagabonds have, like Ostrovsky's,
+exalted feelings for natural beauties, but they
+possess, besides, a full consciousness of themselves,
+and they declare open war against
+society. Gorky lives the lives of his heroes; he
+seems to sink himself into them, and, at the
+same time, he idealizes them, and often uses them
+as his spokesmen. Far from being crushed by
+fate, his vagabonds clothe themselves with a certain
+pride in their misery; for them, the ideal
+existence is the one they lead, because it is free;
+with numerous variations, they all exalt the irresistible
+seduction of vagabondage:</p>
+
+<p>"As for me, just listen! How many things
+I've seen in my fifty-eight years," says Makar
+Choudra. "In what country have I not been?
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[Pg 153]</a></span>
+That is the only way to live. Walk, walk, and
+you see everything. Don't stay long in one
+place: what is there out of the ordinary in that?
+Just as day and night eternally run after one
+another, thus you must run, avoiding daily life,
+so that you will not cease to love it...."</p>
+
+<p>"I, brother,"&mdash;says, in turn, Konovalov,&mdash;"I
+have decided to go all over the earth, in
+every sense of the word. You always see something
+new.... You think of nothing....
+The wind blows, and you might say that it
+blows the dust out of your soul. You feel free
+and easy.... You are not troubled by any
+one. If you are hungry, you stop, and work
+to earn a few pennies; if there is no work to
+be had, you ask for some bread and it is given
+to you. So you see many countries, and the
+most diverse beauties...."</p>
+
+<p>Likewise, in "Tedium," Kouzma Kossiyak
+thus clearly expresses himself:</p>
+
+<p>"I would not give up my liberty for any
+woman, nor for any fireplace. I was born in a
+shed, do you hear, and it is in a shed that I am
+going to die; that is my fate. I am going to
+wander everywhere until my hair turns grey....
+I get bored when I stay in the same place."</p>
+
+<p>In their feeling of hostility to all authority,
+and all fixed things, including bourgeois
+happiness and economical principles, some of
+Gorky's characters resemble some of those superior
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[Pg 154]</a></span>
+heroes of Russian literature, like Pushkin's
+Evgeny Onyegin, Lermontov's Pechorine, and,
+finally, Turgenev's Rudin, who, in their way,
+are vagabonds, filled with the same independent
+spirit in their respective social, intellectual, or
+political circles.</p>
+
+<p>On the other hand, Gorky's wandering beggars
+are closely related to those "free men" to
+whom M.&nbsp;S. Maximov attributes a historic r&ocirc;le
+which was favorable to the extension of the
+Russian empire. "Russia," he says, in his book,
+"Siberia and the Prison," "lived by vagabondage
+after she became a State; thanks to the
+vagabonds, she has extended her boundaries:
+for, it is they who, in order to maintain their
+independence, fought against the nomad tribes
+who attacked them from the south and the
+east...."</p>
+
+<p>There is a marked difference between these
+two classes: men of the former look for a place
+on this earth where they can establish themselves;
+while men of the other class, those who
+are out of work, drunkards, and lazy men, have
+no taste for a sedentary life.</p>
+
+<p>But if Gorky has not created the type of
+vagabond which is so familiar to those who
+know Russian literature, on the other hand, he
+has remodeled it with his original, energetic, and
+vibrantly realistic talent. His nomad "barefoot
+brigade," picturesquely encamped, is surrounded
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[Pg 155]</a></span>
+with a sort of terribly majestic halo in
+these vast stretches of country, a background
+against which their sombre silhouettes are set
+off. From the perfumed steppes to the roaring
+sea, they conjure up to the eye of their old
+co-mate the enchanting Slavic land of which
+they are the audacious offsprings. And Gorky
+also lovingly gives them a familiar setting,
+painted with bold strokes, of plains and mountains
+which border in the distance the glaucous
+stretch of the sea. The sea! With what fervor
+does Gorky depict the anger and the peace of
+the sea. It always inspires, like an adored mistress:</p>
+
+<p>"... The sea sleeps.</p>
+
+<p>"Immense, sighing lazily along the strand,
+it has gone to sleep, peaceful in its huge
+stretch, bathed in the moonlight. As soft as
+velvet, and black, it mingles with the dark
+southern sky and sleeps profoundly, while on
+its surface is reflected the transparent tissue of
+the flaky, immobile clouds, in which is incrusted
+the gilded design of the stars."</p>
+
+<p>Thus, like a "leitmotiv," the murmuring of
+the water interrupts the course of the story. And
+the steppe, this steppe "which has devoured so
+much human flesh and has drunk so much blood
+that it has become fat and fecund," surrounds
+with its immensity these miserable wandering
+beings and menaces them with its storm:
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[Pg 156]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Suddenly, the entire steppe undulated, enveloped
+with a dazzling blue light which seemed
+to enlarge the horizon ... the shadows trembled
+and disappeared for a moment ... a
+crash of thunder burst forth, disturbing the
+sky, where many black clouds were flying
+past....</p>
+
+<p>"... At times the steppe stretched forth
+like an oscillating giant ... the vast stretch
+of blue and cloudless sky poured light down
+upon us, and seemed like an immense cupola of
+sombre color."</p>
+
+<p>The wind passed "in large and regular
+waves, or blew with a sharp rattle, the leaves
+sighed and whispered among themselves, the
+waves of the river washed up on the banks,
+monotonous, despairing, as if they were telling
+something terribly sad and mournful," the entire
+country vibrated with a powerful life
+that harmonized with the souls of the people.</p>
+
+<p>In "Old Iserguile," Gorky writes: "I should
+have liked to transform myself into dust and
+be blown about by the wind; I should have liked
+to stretch myself out on the steppe like the
+warm waters of the river, or throw myself into
+the sea and rise into the sky in an opal mist;
+I should have liked to drink in this evening so
+wonderful and melancholy.... And, I know
+not why, I was suffering...."
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[Pg 157]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Gorky's stories, always short enough, have
+little or no plot, and the characters are barely
+sketched. But, in these simple frames, he has
+confined the power of an art which is prolific,
+supple and profoundly living. Let us take, for
+example, "The Friends." Dancing Foot and
+The One Who Hopes are ordinary thieves, the
+terror of the villagers whose gardens they rob.
+One day, when they are especially desperate,
+they steal a thin horse which is browsing at the
+edge of the woods. The One Who Hopes gets
+an incurable sickness, and it is perhaps on account
+of his approaching death that he feels
+scruples at this crime. Dancing Foot expresses
+the scorn that the weakness of his companion
+inspires him with, but he ends by giving in and
+returns the animal. One hour later, The One
+Who Hopes falls dead in front of Dancing Foot,
+who is tremendously upset in spite of his affected
+indifference.</p>
+
+<p>A dry outline cannot possibly convey the emotion
+contained in this little drama, where the
+low mentality of the characters is rendered with
+the mastery which Gorky usually shows in creating
+his elemental heroes. Among other works
+that should be noted are "Cain and Arteme,"
+so poignantly ironical in its simplicity, "To
+Drive Away Tedium," "The Silver Clasps,"
+"The Prisoner," and that little masterpiece,
+"Twenty-Six Men and a Girl," in which we see
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[Pg 158]</a></span>
+twenty-six bakers pouring out an ideal and mystical
+love on Tanya, the little embroiderer, who
+they believe, is as pure as an angel. One day, a
+brutal soldier comes to defy them, and boasts
+that he will conquer this young girl. He succeeds.
+Then the twenty-six insult their fallen
+idol; the tragedy is not so much in the insults
+that they hurl at her, as in the suffering they
+undergo through having lost the illusion that
+was so dear to them.</p>
+
+<p>Let us note, incidentally, the existence of a
+sort of comic spirit in these works which relieves
+the tragedy of the situations. In spite
+of their dark pessimism, the actors in these
+little dramas have an appearance of gaiety
+which deceives. It is by this popular humor
+that Gorky is the continuator of the work of
+Gogol; this is especially noticeable in "The
+Fair at Goltva."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In studying Gorky, one is often struck by
+the homogeneity of the types which he has described.
+Open any of his books, and you will
+always meet that "restless" type, dissatisfied
+with the banality of his existence, trying to get
+away from it, and leaning irresistibly towards
+absolute liberty, far removed from social and
+political obligations.</p>
+
+<p>Who are these "restless" people? Toward
+what end are they striving? What do they
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[Pg 159]</a></span>
+represent? First, they have an immense reserve
+force which they do not know what to do with;
+they have got out of the rut, the rut which they
+despise, but it is hard for them to create another
+sort of existence for themselves. Bourgeois
+happiness repulses them, while all sorts
+of duties are hateful to them. They consider
+the people who are contented with this sort of
+a life as slaves, unworthy of the name of man,
+and they show the same disdain for the peasants,
+for the leading classes, and for the workingmen.
+The simple farmer excites the scorn of the
+"barefoot brigade:"</p>
+
+<p>"As for me," says one of them, "I don't like
+any peasants.... They are all dogs! They
+have provincial States, and they do for them....
+They tremble, they are hypocrites, but
+they want to live; they have one protection:
+the soil.... However, we must tolerate the
+peasant, for he has a certain usefulness."</p>
+
+<p>"What is a peasant?" asks another. And
+he answers the question himself: "The peasant
+is for all men a matter of food, that is to say,
+an animal that can be eaten. The sun, the
+water, the air, and the peasant are indispensable
+to man's existence...."</p>
+
+<p>One might think that this hostility was the
+fruit of a feeling of envy provoked by the fact
+that the peasant seems to enjoy so many advantages.
+But, on the contrary, the "barefoot
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[Pg 160]</a></span>
+brigade" admits that the peasant subjugates
+his individuality for any sort of profit, and that
+he cannot feel the yoke which he has voluntarily
+taken in the hope of getting his daily
+bread.</p>
+
+<p>These workingmen "who pitifully dig in the
+soil" are unfortunate slaves. "They do nothing
+but construct, they work perpetually, their
+blood and sweat are the cement of all the edifices
+of the earth. And yet the remuneration which
+they receive, although they are crushed by their
+work, does not give them shelter or enough food
+really to live on."</p>
+
+<p>The enlightened classes are always characterized
+in Gorky's works by violent traits. The
+architect Shebouyev accords a sufficiently great,
+but scarcely honorable, place to the category of
+intelligent men to whom he belongs.</p>
+
+<p>"All of us," he says, "are nonentities, deprived
+of happiness. We are in such great numbers!
+And our numbers have been a power for
+so long a time! We are animated by so many
+desires, pure and honest.... Why is there so
+much talk among us and so little action? And,
+all the while, the germs are there!... All
+these papers, novels, articles are germs ...
+just germs, and nothing else.... Some of
+us write, others read; after reading, we discuss;
+after discussing, we forget what we have read.
+For us, life is tedious, heavy, grey, and burdensome.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[Pg 161]</a></span>
+We live our lives, but sigh from fatigue
+and complain of the heavy burdens we are carrying."</p>
+
+<p>The journalist Yezhov, in "Thomas Gordeyev,"
+expresses himself in the same manner, but
+even more decisively:</p>
+
+<p>"I should like to say to the intelligent classes:
+'You people are the best in my country! Your
+life is paid for by the blood and tears of ten
+Russian generations! How much you have cost
+your country! And what do you for her?
+What have you given to life? What have you
+done?...'"</p>
+
+<p>The absence of all independence, of any passion
+even a little sincere, the complete submission
+of heart and mind to the old prescribed
+morality, the constant effort to realize mere
+personal ambitions&mdash;all of these are the reproaches
+that Gorky addresses to cultivated
+man, whose moral disintegration he proves has
+been produced by routine and prejudice.</p>
+
+<p>In contrast to them, the vagabonds are the instinctive
+enemies of all slavery, in any form
+whatsoever. The complete independence of
+their personality means everything to them.
+And no material conditions, no matter how prosperous,
+will induce them to make the least compromise
+on this point. One of these "restless"
+types, Konovalov, tells how, after he had bound
+himself to the wife of a rich merchant, he could
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[Pg 162]</a></span>
+have lived in the greatest comfort, but he abandoned
+everything, the easy life, and even the
+woman, whom he loved well enough, in order to
+go out and look for the unknown. This is a
+common adventure on the part of Gorky's
+heroes.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>What is the cause of this restlessness?</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you see," explains Konovalov, "I became
+weary. It was such weariness, I must tell
+you, little brother, that at moments I simply
+could not live. It seemed to me as if I were the
+only man on the whole earth, and, with the exception
+of myself, there was no living thing anywhere.
+And in those moments, everything was
+repugnant to me, everything in the world; I
+became a burden to myself, and if everybody
+were dead, I wouldn't even sigh! It must have
+been a disease with me, and the reason why I
+took to drink, for, before this time, I never
+drank."</p>
+
+<p>For the same reasons, in "Anguish," a workingman
+leaves his mistress and his employer, the
+miller. Where does this anguish come from?
+Perhaps it is the simple result of a psychological
+process which, Konovalov admits, is nothing
+other than a disease. It is very possible that, in
+impulsive acts, a psychiatrist would see something
+analogous to alcoholism, or the symptoms
+of some other anomaly.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[Pg 163]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Turgenev had already analyzed a similar case
+in "The Madman." When Michael Poltev is
+asked what evil spirit led him to drink and
+to risk his life, he always refers to his anguish.</p>
+
+<p>"'Why this anguish?' asks his uncle.</p>
+
+<p>"'Why?... When the brain is free, one
+begins to think of poverty, injustice, Russia....
+And that's the end! anguish hastens on....
+One is ready to send a bullet through one's
+head! There's nothing left to do but get
+drunk!...'</p>
+
+<p>"'And why do you associate Russia with all
+of that? Why, you are nothing but a sluggard!'</p>
+
+<p>"'But I can do nothing, dear uncle!...
+Teach me what I ought to do, to what task I
+ought to consecrate my life. I will do it
+gladly!...'"</p>
+
+<p>Gorky's characters give the same explanation
+of their "ennui," and almost in identical terms.
+This disgust comes in great part from not
+knowing how to adapt oneself to life, nor how
+to become a "useful" man.</p>
+
+<p>"Take me, for instance," says Konovalov,
+"what am I? A vagabond ... a drunkard,
+a crack-brained sort of man. There is no reason
+for my life. Why do I live on earth, and to
+whom am I useful? I have no home, no wife,
+no children, and I don't feel as if I wanted any.
+I live and am bored.... What about? No
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[Pg 164]</a></span>
+one knows. I have no life within myself, do
+you understand? How shall I express it?
+There's a spark, or force lacking in my
+soul...."</p>
+
+<p>Another character, the shoemaker Orlov, in
+"Orlov and His Wife," especially reflects this
+pessimistic disposition. In the same way as
+Konovalov, he is born with "restlessness in his
+heart."</p>
+
+<p>He is a shoemaker; and why?</p>
+
+<p>"As if there weren't enough of them already!
+What pleasure is there in this trade for me? I
+sit in a cellar and sew. Then I shall die. They
+say that the cholera is coming.... And after
+that? Gregory Orlov lived, made shoes&mdash;and
+died of the cholera. What does that signify?
+And why was it necessary that I should live,
+make shoes and die, tell me?"</p>
+
+<p>These creatures are under the impression that
+they are superfluous; therefore their pessimistic
+conclusions. All of them <a class="corr" name="TC_3" id="TC_3" title="pasionately">passionately</a> want to be
+able to express the meaning of life in general,
+their life in particular, but the task is too much
+for them.</p>
+
+<p>Gorky's heroes consider themselves "useless
+beings," but they never humiliate themselves.
+Their restlessness of spirit does not permit them
+to resign themselves to the reigning banality or
+to take part in it without protesting. At the
+same time, some of them are gifted with sufficient
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[Pg 165]</a></span>
+personality to possess an unshaken faith
+in themselves, in their strength, which keeps
+them from letting the responsibility of their torments
+fall back upon society.</p>
+
+<p>Promtov, the hero of "The Strange Companion,"
+makes these restless seekers the descendants
+of the Wandering Jew: "Their
+peculiarity," he ironically says, "is, that
+whether rich or poor, they cannot find a suitable
+place for themselves on earth, and establish
+themselves in it. The greatest of them are
+satisfied with nothing: money, women, nor
+men."</p>
+
+<p>What, then, do these "greatest" want?</p>
+
+<p>Their desires evidently take a multitude of
+forms, and have the most diverse shades; but
+the greatest number of them are impatient for
+extraordinary happenings, eager for exploits.
+Some of them declare that they would be willing
+to throw themselves on a hundred knives if
+humanity could be relieved by their doing so.
+But simple daily activity, even if it is useful,
+does not satisfy them.</p>
+
+<p>The shoemaker Orlov leaves his cellar, as he
+calls it, and accepts a position in the hospital
+where they are taking care of cholera patients.
+His devotion makes him an "indispensable
+man;" he is reborn, and, according to his own
+words, he is "ripe for life." It seems as if his
+end were going to be attained. But not so.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[Pg 166]</a></span>
+Restlessness seizes him again. Orlov questions
+the value of his work. He saves sick people
+from the cholera. Is he doing good? The
+greatest care is taken of these people, but how
+many people are there outside of the hospitals,
+one hundred times as many as there are inside,
+who are just as unfortunate, but, in spite of
+that fact, are not helped by any one?</p>
+
+<p>"While you live," he declares, "no one will
+refuse to give you a drink of water. And if
+you are near death, not only will they not allow
+you to die, but they will go to some expense to
+stop you. They organize hospitals.... They
+give you wine at 'six and a half rubles a bottle.'
+The sick man gets well, the doctors are
+happy, and Orlov would like to share their joy;
+but he cannot, for he knows that, on leaving the
+threshold of the hospital, a life 'worse than the
+convulsions of the cholera' awaits the convalescent...."
+And again he is seized by the desire
+to drink, and to be a vagabond, and by a
+wish to experience new sensations.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>These, then, are the vagabonds whom we can
+class in the category of the "restless." After
+these, come those whom the author terms the
+"ex-men," and whom he studies, under this title,
+in one of his longest stories. The ex-men are
+closely related to the "restless;" however, they
+differ from them in that they push their opinions
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[Pg 167]</a></span>
+to an extreme, for they are, more than the others,
+miserable and at bay against society.</p>
+
+<p>"What difference would it make if it all
+went to the devil," one of them philosophizes&mdash;"I
+should like to see the earth go to pieces suddenly,
+provided that I should perish the last,
+after having seen the others die.... I'm an
+ex-man, am I not? I am a pariah, then, estranged
+from all bonds and duties.... I can
+spit on everything!"</p>
+
+<p>Thomas Gordeyev's father develops another
+thesis; a rich and rational bourgeois, he tries
+to inculcate in his son from his infancy&mdash;a
+son who later augments the ranks of the
+"restless"&mdash;the most perfect spirit of egotism.</p>
+
+<p>"You must pity people," he says, "but do
+it with discernment. First, look at a man, see
+what good you can get out of him, and see
+what he is good for. If you think he is a
+strong man, capable of work, help him. But
+if you think him weak and little suited for
+work, abandon him without pity. Remember
+this: two boards have fallen into the mud, one
+of them is worm-eaten, the other is sound.
+What are you going to do? Pay no attention
+to the worm-eaten plank, but take out the sound
+one and dry it in the sun. It may be of service
+to you or to some one else...."</p>
+
+<p>The reader will note the absolute egotism in
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[Pg 168]</a></span>
+all of Gorky's types. The "restless" are interested
+only in their own misery, and they
+think that all men are like them; nor do they
+try to stop or bridle their passions.</p>
+
+<p>Strong passions are one of the most precious
+privileges of mankind. This truth is well shown
+in the story: "Once More About the Devil."<a name="FNanchor_7" id="FNanchor_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a>
+Here, the men have become shabby and insignificant
+since there has been propagated among
+them, with a new strength, the gospel of individual
+perfection. The demon stifles, in the
+heart of Ivan Ivanovich Ivanov, all the passions
+that can agitate a human soul,&mdash;ambition,
+pity, evil, and anger; this operation makes
+Ivan an absolutely perfect being. On his face
+there appears that beatitude which words cannot
+express. The devil has crushed all "substance"
+out of him, and he is completely
+"empty."</p>
+
+<p>One understands that Gorky's heroes cannot
+find what would be good for them, nor feel the
+least satisfaction in doing their fellow men a
+good service. They only dream of action;
+their sole desire is to affirm their <a class="corr" name="TC_4" id="TC_4" title="individualty">individuality</a>
+by "manifesting" themselves, little matter
+how. Old Iserguille is persuaded that "in life,
+there is room for mighty deeds" and, if a man
+likes them, he will find occasion to do them.
+Konovalov is most enthusiastic over Zhermak,<a name="FNanchor_8" id="FNanchor_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a>
+to whom he feels himself akin.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[Pg 169]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I'd like to reduce the whole earth to dust,"
+dreams Orlov, "or get up a crowd of comrades
+and kill off all the Jews ... all, to the very
+last one! Or, in general, do something that
+would place me high above all men, so that I
+could spit on them from up there, and cry to
+them: 'Dogs! Why do you live? You're all
+hypocritical rascals and nothing more....'"</p>
+
+<p>These people demand a boundless liberty, but
+how obtain it? All of them dream of a certain
+organization which will let them feel relieved
+of all their duties, of all the thousands of petty
+things that make life hard, of all the small details,
+conventions, and obligations which hold
+such an important place in our society. But
+the time for heroic deeds has passed away, and
+the "restless" fight in vain against the millions
+of men who are determined to keep their habits
+and advantages.</p>
+
+<p>Thus they are obliged to shake the dust off
+their feet and to leave the ranks in which they
+are suffocating. No matter what they do or
+what they try to do, their motto is, "each one
+for himself."</p>
+
+<p>"Come," says a vagabond poetically to
+Thomas Gordeyev, "come with me on the open
+road, into the fields and steppes, across the
+plains, over the mountains, come out and look
+at the world in all its freedom. The thick
+forests begin to murmur; their sweet voice
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[Pg 170]</a></span>
+praises divine wisdom; God's birds sing its
+glory and the grass of the steppe burns with
+the incense of the Holy Virgin.</p>
+
+<p>"The soul is filled with an ardent yet calm
+joy, you desire nothing, you envy no one....
+And it is then that it seems as if on the
+whole earth there is no one but God and
+you...."</p>
+
+<p>The material inconveniences of such an existence
+hardly affect Gorky's characters. Promtov,
+one of the prophets of individualism, says,
+in speaking of himself:</p>
+
+<p>"I have been 'on the road' for ten years,
+and I have not complained of my fate to God.
+I don't want to tell you anything of this period,
+because it is too tedious.... In general, it is
+the joyous life of a bird. Sometimes, grain is
+lacking, but one must not be too exacting and
+one must remember that kings themselves do not
+have pleasures only. In a life like ours, there
+are no duties&mdash;that is the first pleasure&mdash;and
+there are no laws, except those of nature&mdash;that
+is the second. Without a doubt, the gentlemen
+of the police force bother one at times ...
+but you find fleas even in the best hotels. As
+a set-off, one can go to the right, or to the
+left, or straight ahead, wherever your heart bids
+you go, and if you don't want to go anywhere,
+after having provided yourself with bread from
+the hut of some peasant, who will never refuse
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[Pg 171]</a></span>
+it, you can lie down until you care to resume
+your travels...."</p>
+
+<p>This is the final point at which all of the
+"restless" arrive, believing that there they will
+find what they have always lacked. Even the
+author himself shares their views up to a certain
+point:</p>
+
+<p>"You have to be born in civilized society,"
+he says, speaking of himself, "in order to have
+the patience to live there all your life without
+having the desire to flee from this circle, where
+so many restrictions hinder you, restrictions
+sanctioned by the habit of little poisoned lies,
+this sickly center of self-love, in one word, all
+this vanity of vanities which chills the feelings
+and perverts the mind, and which is called in
+general, without any good reason and very
+falsely, civilization.</p>
+
+<p>"I was born and brought up outside of it,
+and I am glad of that fact. Because of it, I
+have never been able to absorb culture in large
+doses, without feeling, at the end of a certain
+time, the terrible need of stepping out of this
+frame.... It does one good to go into the
+dens of the cities, where everything is dirty,
+but simple and sincere; or even to rove in the
+fields or on the highroads; one sees curious
+things there. It refreshes the mind; and all
+you need in order to do it is a pair of sturdy
+legs...."
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[Pg 172]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>What then is the teaching that we get out of
+Gorky's works? For, faithful to Russian tradition,
+he does not practise art for art's sake.
+His "barefoot brigade" and his "restless"
+men are generally considered as representative
+of his own ideals. The principle of "Do what
+seems to you to be good"&mdash;a principle which
+is expressed by a wandering and free life&mdash;ought
+to be justified, one thinks. Critics have
+risen up against this ideal, trying to prove how
+incompatible the kind of existence that he conceives
+is with a solid political organization, and
+how far from reality the men are whom he represents.</p>
+
+<p>Doubtless, in real life, people are not as
+original and not as heroic as Gorky represents
+them to be. And he himself agrees that their
+inventive faculties are very highly developed.
+He shows this in putting the following words
+into the mouth of Promtov:</p>
+
+<p>"I have very probably exaggerated, but
+that's not of much importance. For, if I have
+exaggerated what happened, my method of exposition
+has shown the true state of my soul.
+Perhaps, I have served you with an imaginary
+roast, but the sauce is made of the purest
+truth."</p>
+
+<p>The end that he is after, Gorky has shown us
+in his story, "The Lecturer," which contains
+his theories on literature. In the person of the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[Pg 173]</a></span>
+lecturer, he addresses himself to the men who
+represent the majority of the Russian cultivated
+classes. He begins by analyzing himself carefully
+and discovers in himself many good feelings
+and honest desires, but he feels that he
+lacks clear and harmonious thought, a thing
+which keeps all the manifestations of life in
+equilibrium. Numerous doubts torment him,
+and his mind has been so moved with them, his
+heart so wounded, that, for a long time, he has
+lived "empty inside."</p>
+
+<p>"What have I to say to others?" he asks
+himself. "That which was told them long ago,
+that which has always been told them, none of
+which makes any one any better. But have I
+the right to teach these ideas and convictions,
+if I, who was brought up according to them,
+act so often in opposition to them?"</p>
+
+<p>With his usual sincerity, it is not to be wondered
+at that he answered this question in the
+negative, and, to cite the words of one of his
+characters, that he "refused to live in the chains
+which had already been forged for free thought,
+and to class himself under the label of an
+ism."</p>
+
+<p>He has not thought it profitable to hide his
+doubts and has not feared to declare openly
+that none of the existing philosophies suit him,
+and that he is trying to follow his own path.
+All of his work is but the absolute image of his
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[Pg 174]</a></span>
+own uncertainties, of his passionate researches,
+and of his constant "restlessness."</p>
+
+<p>At times people have believed that he was a
+disciple of Nietzsche. And, in truth, he has
+come under his influence, like so many other
+Russian authors. But he has gone on mostly
+by himself, aided by his acute sensibility, which
+has not, as yet, allowed him to adopt any one
+system to the exclusion of all others, or to
+formulate a system for his personal use.</p>
+
+<p>"I know one thing," he says, "it is not happiness
+that we should hope for. What should
+we do with it? The meaning of life does not lie
+in the search for happiness, and the satisfaction
+of the material appetites will never suffice to
+make a man fully contented with himself. It
+is in beauty that we must look for the meaning
+of life, and in the energy of the will! Every
+moment of our lives ought to be devoted to
+some better end...."</p>
+
+<p>However, he has very neatly set forth what
+he considers the task of the author. According
+to him, the man of to-day has lost courage; he
+interests himself too little in life, his desire to
+live with dignity has grown weaker, "an odor
+of putrefaction surrounds him, cowardice and
+slavery corrupt his heart, laziness binds his
+hands and his mind." But, at the same time,
+life grows in breadth and depth, and, from day
+to day, men are learning to question. And it
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[Pg 175]</a></span>
+is the writer who ought to answer their questions;
+but he should not content himself with
+straightening out the balance sheet of social
+deterioration, and in giving photographs of
+daily life. The writer must also awaken in the
+hearts of men a desire for liberty, and speak
+energetically, in order to infuse in man an ardent
+desire to create other forms of life....
+"It seems to me," says Gorky, "that we desire
+new dreams, gracious inventions, unforeseen
+things, because the life which we have created
+is poor, dreary, and tedious. The reality which
+formerly we wanted so ardently, has frozen us
+and broken us down.... What is there to
+do? Let us try: perhaps invention and imagination
+will aid man in raising himself so that
+he may again glance for a moment at the place
+which he has lost on earth."</p>
+
+<p>All of Gorky's characters curse life, but
+without ceasing to love it, because they "have
+the taste for life." Their complaints are only
+a means by which the author hopes to raise up
+around him "that revengeful shame and the
+taste for life" of which he so often speaks.
+Here is the artful Mayakine, who, indignant at
+the debasement of the younger generation, is
+ready to take the most cruel means in order
+"to infuse fire into the veins" of his contemporaries.
+Varenka Olessova, the heroine of a
+story, incessantly repeats that people would be
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[Pg 176]</a></span>
+more interesting if they were more animated,
+if they laughed, played, sang more, if they were
+more audacious, stronger, and even more coarse
+and vulgar. Gorky admires also the beautiful
+type, vigorous, with a rudimentary mentality,
+which meets with his approval simply because
+he sees in it a nature which is complete, untouched,
+and filled with a love of life.</p>
+
+<p>Gorky suffers miseries inherent in the mere
+fact of existence, but he has found no remedy;
+he looks for consolations in the cult of beauty,
+in the strength of free individuality, in the flight
+towards a superior ideal. But he does not know
+where to find this superior ideal, which vivifies
+everything. This is perhaps the reason why
+people have thought they saw in his work the
+Nietzschean influence, which praises an insistence
+on individuality in defiance of current conventions,
+and gives us just as vague a solution
+as Gorky does.</p>
+
+<p>But this enthusiasm for an ideal, vague as
+it is, this passionate appeal for energy in the
+struggle, has awakened powerful echoes in the
+hearts of the Russians, especially the younger
+of them. Gorky suddenly became their favorite
+author, and it is to this warm reception that he
+owes a great part of his renown. He has carried
+the young along with him, and they have
+put their ideals in the place which he had left
+empty.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[Pg 177]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>If we now pass on to the first novels and
+dramas of Gorky, we shall be struck by the
+fact that, in spite of the talent shown in them,
+they are very inferior to his short stories. His
+former mastery is not found, except in his later
+novels, which we shall take occasion to mention
+presently.</p>
+
+<p>"Thomas Gordeyev" contains some very
+fine passages, but is not very successful as a
+whole. Thomas's father is a merchant on the
+banks of the Volga; he is an energetic man who
+carries out all his ideas. Whatever he is engaged
+on, whether business affairs, or a debauch,
+or repentance thereof, he gives himself entirely
+to the impression of the moment. Like other
+men of his class, moreover, he lives a life which
+is a singular mixture of refinement and savagery.
+He spends his time in drinking and working, as
+much for himself as for his only son, Thomas,
+whose mother died in giving birth to him. The
+child grows up under the care of his aunt and
+shows a serious disposition toward study.
+Gradually, he feels the motives that make men
+act, and he questions his father about them.</p>
+
+<p>Before dying, the latter says to his son:
+"Don't count on men, don't count on great
+events." In spite of the wealth which he inherits
+Thomas is not happy; he has no friends;
+his colleagues, the merchants, and especially his
+father's old friend, Mayakine, are repulsive to
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[Pg 178]</a></span>
+him on account of their cupidity and their unscrupulousness.
+Thomas does not love money
+and does not understand its power, two things
+that people cannot forgive him for. Besides,
+he does not know how to make use of the forces
+that are burning within him. After having
+vainly sought for moral relief in debauchery,
+he ends by proposing to strike a bargain with
+Mayakine so that he can be freed from responsibility
+and go out and look for happiness. He
+will give Mayakine his personal fortune if the
+latter will look after his business affairs. But
+the old rou&eacute;, who hopes to get possession of
+the fortune in a surer way, refuses, and their
+conversation turns into a quarrel.</p>
+
+<p>As he does not work, Thomas indulges in
+many extravagances in company with a journalist
+of very advanced ideas. Finally, one day
+when he is at a f&ecirc;te at which are present all
+the wealthy members of the merchant class, the
+young man, disgusted with their vices, rises to
+apostrophize them in the most bitter terms.
+They throw themselves on him, and he is arrested
+as a madman and put into an asylum.
+He comes out, only to abandon himself to drink.</p>
+
+<p>In "The Three," Gorky tells us the life
+story of Ilya Lounyev, a poor creature, born
+in poverty, whose life is full of deceptions, misfortunes,
+even crimes. Several times, Ilya has
+tried to lead a decent life; but it is his sincerity
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[Pg 179]</a></span>
+that makes him lose his position with the merchant
+for whom he works. He has believed in
+beauty and in the purity of love, and he is deceived
+by the woman he loves. Gradually all
+the baseness of the world becomes clear to him.
+In a moment of jealousy he kills his mistress's
+lover, an old miser. Several months later he
+publicly confesses his crime, and, in order to
+escape from human justice, he commits suicide.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In his first two dramas, "The Smug Citizen,"
+and "A Night's Refuge," as in his short
+stories, Gorky shows us his usual characters.</p>
+
+<p>The Bessemenovs, comfortable, petty bourgeois,
+have given their children an education.
+Their daughter, Tatyana, becomes a school-teacher,
+but her profession does not please her.
+Peter, their son, has been expelled from the
+university, in spite of his indifference toward
+"new" ideas. The children are continually
+harassed by their father, who bemoans the fact
+that he has given them an education. Besides,
+another sadness troubles him: Nil, his adopted
+son, whom he has had taught the trade of a
+mechanician,&mdash;an alert and industrious fellow,&mdash;wants
+to marry Polya, a girl without a fortune.
+The father is beside himself, for, if Nil
+marries, he will never be in a condition to pay
+back the money that has been spent on him.
+But Nil protests: he is young, and, some day,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[Pg 180]</a></span>
+he will repay his debt. He has not noticed that
+Tatyana is in love with him; and the young
+girl has not strength enough to live through
+the sorrow of seeing herself abandoned forever.
+She tries to commit suicide, but does not succeed.
+While Tatyana is bemoaning her fate,
+Peter has fallen in love with a young woman
+quite different from any of the members of his
+family. Helen understands how sad Peter's
+position is among these ignorant people, and
+she decides to marry him, for pity as much as
+for love. The father is no more satisfied with
+this match than he was with Nil's, and with
+death in his soul he is present at the dismemberment
+of his family. While Helen takes Peter,
+Nil goes off with Polya. The mother, a humble
+and kind woman, does not understand the cause
+of all this dissension and, while consoling the
+weeping Tatyana, she asks her husband: "Why
+are our children punishing us so? Why do
+they make us suffer?" This play is not dramatically
+effective and has never had a great
+success on the stage.</p>
+
+<p>On the other hand, Gorky's second attempt,
+"A Night's Refuge," has been enormously successful.
+Here, the author takes us into the
+world of the barefoot brigade. Vasska Pepel,
+Vassilissa's lover, the proprietor of the night
+refuge in which he sleeps, loves the sister
+of his mistress, Natasha by name, a timid and
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[Pg 181]</a></span>
+dreamy young girl, who blooms like a lily in
+this mire. The old vagabond, Luke, advises the
+young girl to run off with Vasska, who wants to
+begin a new life. But Vassilissa, jealous and
+evil as she is, has noticed the coldness which her
+lover shows towards her. She avenges herself
+by striking her younger sister whenever she can.
+Her plan was, with the aid of Vasska, to kill
+her husband, Kostylev, and then to live openly
+with her lover. But when she sees Vasska ready
+to leave with Natasha, she starts a terrible scene,
+which ends in Vasska's killing Kostylev without
+meaning to. Vassilissa and her lover are arrested
+and Natasha disappears.</p>
+
+<p>Although the characters of this play are vagabonds,
+they differ from most of Gorky's creations,
+whose fiery and enthusiastic souls usually
+discover a real beauty in the life they have
+chosen. Alcoholism, prostitution, and misery
+have shut off these people who live in the cellar.
+They have fallen so low, that conscience is a
+useless luxury for them. It belongs to the rich
+only. One of them, who is asked if he has a
+conscience, replies with sincere astonishment:
+"What? Conscience?" And when the question
+is asked again, he answers, "What good
+is conscience? I'm not a rich man." The
+life of these people is worse than a nightmare:
+to-morrow they will be cold, hungry, and drunk,
+just as they were yesterday. Sometimes, perhaps,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[Pg 182]</a></span>
+they feel like struggling against their evil
+lot, but no one stretches forth a helping hand to
+them. They do not dare think of the future,
+and they would like to forget the past. One of
+them expresses his fear of life thus:</p>
+
+<p>"At times, I'm afraid, brother; can you
+understand that?... I tremble.... For, what
+is there after this?" And this fear smothers all
+the energy in them. They are poor and scantily
+clothed, not only in the material sense of the
+word, but also in the moral sense. Money would
+not be necessary to save them, but a word of
+sympathy, of love, a word that would give them
+the courage really to live.</p>
+
+<p>And it is here that old Luke appears. He
+treats the men as if they were children, and
+gains their confidence. In his words there is
+manifested a real experience of things and
+people. As he says, "They moulded me a lot,"
+and that is why he became "tender." He knows
+just the right word for every one. He assures
+the dying woman that: "Eternal rest means
+happiness. Die, and you will have rest, you
+will have no cares, and no one to fear. Silence
+will calm you! All you have to do is remain
+lying down! Death pacifies and is tender. You
+will appear before God, and He will say to you:
+'Take her to Paradise so that she may rest.
+I know that her life has been hard; she is tired,
+give her peace.'" And the sick woman, who
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[Pg 183]</a></span>
+has dragged out her existence so long, is consoled.</p>
+
+<p>To the drunkard, a former actor who has
+fallen, Luke says: "Stop drinking, pull yourself
+together and be patient. You will be cured,
+and you will begin a new existence...." And
+he succeeds in awakening a hope of a better life
+in the soul of the poor comedian, while he himself,
+perhaps, hardly believes in the possible regeneration
+of his prot&eacute;g&eacute;.</p>
+
+<p>After Luke's departure, the temporary
+dreams of these miserable people vanish. One
+evening, when they are all gathered around a
+bottle of brandy, they strike up a song. A
+friend, a baron by birth, rushes into the cellar
+and announces that the actor has hung himself,
+and that his corpse is hanging in the court. A
+deathlike silence follows these words. All look
+at each other in fright. "Ah, the fool!"
+finally murmurs a vagabond, "he spoiled our
+song...." The hope in a better life that
+Luke had awakened in the actor made him kill
+himself, when he saw that he had not enough
+strength to realize this hope.</p>
+
+<p>This drama is the quintessence of all that
+Gorky has, up to this time, written on the
+"ex-man," whom he has thoroughly "explored."
+And the figure of old Luke is one of
+his most original and lifelike creations.</p>
+
+<p>His third important play, which, however,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[Pg 184]</a></span>
+has never enjoyed the popularity of "A Night's
+Refuge," is called: "The Children of the Sun."
+The "children of the sun" are the elect of
+heaven, richly endowed with talent and knowledge.
+They live in a world of noble dreams, of
+elevated thoughts, enveloped though they are in
+the greyness of life. There pass before them
+long processions of tired and oppressed people.
+The latter, also, have been generated by the
+strong sun; but the light has gone out for
+them, and they travel on life's highway without
+joy or faith, among those who are proud of
+their beauty or learning. The "children of the
+sun" are the aristocrats of the soul. They
+have but one end: to make life beautiful, good,
+and agreeable for all. They continually think
+of making it easier, of soothing suffering, and
+of preparing a better future. Their mission is
+a large one. They are not idle, but are men who
+have the most elevated ends in view.</p>
+
+<p>Between "the children of the sun" and "the
+children of the earth" there is a deep abyss.
+They do not understand each other. The "children
+of the sun" cannot admit the miseries and
+ugliness of daily life. They have compassion
+for the people who work below them. The
+"children of the earth" feel the superiority of
+the "children of the sun," but their narrow-mindedness,
+continually absorbed by the necessity
+of finding shelter and food, cannot rise to
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[Pg 185]</a></span>
+the preoccupations of so elevated an order.
+However, life brings these two worlds together
+in a common work; but their mere meeting on
+the ground of practical interests produces a
+collision.</p>
+
+<p>A third category constitutes the intermediary
+link. This is made up of the university people,
+the representatives of the liberal professions.
+As "intellectuals," they cannot equal the "children
+of the sun," but they can understand them.
+They conceive the grandeur of their moral activity.
+At the same time, these men are close to
+the people. They are often obliged to mingle
+in the life of the people, and more than the
+"children of the sun," they are capable of enlarging
+their minds and ennobling their duties.
+But, while they know and understand the duties
+of the people completely, they are not yet strong
+enough to help them. This, then, is the general
+meaning of the play.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Although this play is cleverly constructed,
+with a last act which is pathetic and moving in
+its intensity, and produces a profound impression,
+on the whole, unfortunately, it has the
+general harshness of problem plays. Under its
+lyric vestments, its solid and massive character
+appears too often. Gorky, a born observer,
+inheritor of the realistic traditions of his country,
+could not help turning aside, one day, from
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[Pg 186]</a></span>
+this ideological art, visibly influenced by Tolstoy's
+dramas. The direct part that the romanticist
+has played in the political events of his
+country sufficiently proves that he has taken a
+different road from that taken by the apostle
+of Yasnaya Polyana. With maturity, he felt
+the need of hastening the d&eacute;nouement of the
+crisis in Russia, in actively participating in its
+emancipation. From that time on, he chose his
+heroes from a less singular environment. Instead
+of the philosophic vagabonds, the neurasthenic
+"restless" ones, and the ex-men, he chose
+the plebeian of the city and country, who is
+gradually awakening from a sleep of ignorance
+and slavery. A remarkable story, called "In
+Prison," all atremble with new sensations, inaugurates
+this new style. A victim himself of
+the intolerance of "over-men," Gorky has incarnated
+his own revolts and hopes in the soul of
+his hero, Misha, a brother of the revolutionary
+students who do not hesitate to sacrifice their
+life or liberty for a principle or ideal.</p>
+
+<p>Written at the same time, the story called
+"The Soldiers" gives proof of an equally careful
+incorporation of the claims of the oppressed
+in a literary work.</p>
+
+<p>The school-mistress, Vera, has conceived the
+daring project of teaching the soldiers who are
+quartered in the village. She gets some of them
+together at the edge of the neighboring woods
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[Pg 187]</a></span>
+and there she tries to show them the ignominy
+of the r&ocirc;les they play in times of uprisings.
+Angered by this unexpected talk, the soldiers
+threaten the young girl. But her coolness and
+sincerity finally make them listen to her with a
+respect mingled with admiration.</p>
+
+<p>A third story, called "Slaves," in a masterful
+way retraces the catastrophes of the now historical
+journey of January 9, 1905, at the end
+of which, a crowd of 200,000 men, led by the
+famous pope Gapon, went to the Tsar's palace
+to present their demands to him, and were received
+with cannon shots.</p>
+
+<p>These stories were followed by three works
+of great merit: "Mother," "A Confession,"
+and "The Spy."</p>
+
+<p>The novel "Mother" takes us into the midst
+of revolutionary life. The heroes of this book
+belong, for the most part, to that workingman
+and agricultural proletariat whose r&ocirc;le has
+lately been of such great importance in the Russian
+political tempests. With marvelous psychological
+analysis, Gorky shows how some of these
+simple creatures understand the new truth, and
+how it gradually penetrates their ardent souls.</p>
+
+<p>Pavel Vlassov, a young, intelligent workingman,
+is thirsty for knowledge, and is the
+apostle of the new ideal. He throws himself
+heart and soul into the dangerous struggle he
+has undertaken against ignorance and oppression.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[Pg 188]</a></span>
+The Little Russian, Andrey, is all feeling
+and thought, and the peasant Rybine is inflamed
+by action. Sashenka is a young girl
+who sacrifices herself entirely to the Idea, and
+the coal-man Ignatius is driven by an obscure
+force to help in a cause which he does not understand.
+Finest of them all is Pelaguaya
+Vlassov, the principal character of the book,
+and Pavel's mother.</p>
+
+<p>Old and grey, Pelaguaya has passed her
+whole life in misery. She has never known anything
+but how to suffer in silence and endure
+without complaint; she has never dreamed that
+life could be different. One day her father had
+said to her:</p>
+
+<p>"It's useless to make faces! There is a fool
+who wants to marry you,&mdash;take him. All girls
+marry, all women have children; children are,
+for all parents, a sorrow. And are you, yes or
+no, a human being?"</p>
+
+<p>She then marries the workingman Michael
+Vlassov, who gets drunk every day, beats her
+cruelly and kicks her, and even on his death-bed,
+says: "Go to the devil.... Bitch! I'll die
+better alone."</p>
+
+<p>He dies, and his son Pavel begins to bring forbidden
+books into the house. Friends come and
+talk; a small group is formed. Pelaguaya
+listens to what is said, but understands nothing.
+Gradually, however, there begins to filter into
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[Pg 189]</a></span>
+her old breast, like a stream of joy, an understanding
+of something big, of something in
+which she can take part. She discovers that
+she too is a free creature, and, obscurely, there
+is formed in her mind the notion that every
+human being has a right to live. Then she
+speaks: "The earth is tired of carrying so
+much injustice and sadness, it trembles softly
+at the hope of seeing the new sun which is
+rising in the bosom of mankind." So the obscure
+and miserable woman gradually rises to
+the dignity of "The Mother of the Prophet."
+And when Pavel accepts, like the martyrdom
+of the cross, his banishment to Siberia, with
+a joyous heart she sacrifices her son to the
+Idea.</p>
+
+<p>Her soul opens wide to the new truth that is
+lighting it. With the most touching abnegation,
+she tries to carry on the work of the absent
+one. But the police are watching. One
+day, when she is about to take the train to a
+neighboring town to spread the "good word"
+there, she is recognized and apprehended. Seeing
+that she is lost, the Mother, whose personality
+at this moment grows absolutely symbolic,
+cries out to the crowd:</p>
+
+<p>"'Listen to me! They condemned my son
+and his friends because they were bringing the
+truth to everybody! We are dying from work,
+we are tormented by hunger and by cold, we
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[Pg 190]</a></span>
+are always in the mire, always in the wrong!
+Our life is a night, a black night!'</p>
+
+<p>"'Hurrah for the old woman!' cries some
+one in the crowd.</p>
+
+<p>"A policeman struck her in the chest; she
+tottered, and fell on the bench. But she still
+cried:</p>
+
+<p>"'All of you! get all your forces together
+under a single leader.'</p>
+
+<p>"The big red hand of the policeman struck
+her in the throat, and the nape of her neck hit
+against the wall.</p>
+
+<p>"'Shut up, you hag!' cried the officer in a
+sharp voice.</p>
+
+<p>"The Mother's eyes grew larger and shone
+brightly. Her jaw trembled.</p>
+
+<p>"'They won't kill a resurrected soul!'</p>
+
+<p>"'Bitch!'</p>
+
+<p>"With a short swing the policeman struck
+her full in the face.</p>
+
+<p>"Something red and black momentarily
+blinded the Mother; blood filled her mouth.</p>
+
+<p>"A voice from the crowd brought her to
+herself:</p>
+
+<p>"'You haven't the right to strike her!'</p>
+
+<p>"But the officers pushed her, and hit her on
+the head.</p>
+
+<p>"'... It's not blood that will drown what's
+right.'...</p>
+
+<p>"Dulled and weakened, the Mother tottered.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[Pg 191]</a></span>
+But she saw many eyes about her, glowing with
+a bold fire, eyes that she knew well and that
+were dear to her.</p>
+
+<p>"'... They will never get at the truth,
+even under oceans of blood!'</p>
+
+<p>"The policeman seized her heavily by the
+throat.</p>
+
+<p>"There was a rattling in her throat:</p>
+
+<p>"... 'The unfortunates!'</p>
+
+<p>"Some one in the crowd answered her, with
+a deep sigh."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"A Confession" is the story of a restless
+soul who untiringly searches for the God of
+truth and goodness. Found as a child in a
+village of central Russia, Matvey was first
+taken by a sacristan, and, after his death, by
+Titov, the inspector of the domain. In order
+to debase Matvey, whose superiority irritates
+him, Titov asks him to participate in his extortions.
+Having become the son-in-law of his
+adopted father, Matvey, on account of his love
+for his wife, accepts the shameful life. But the
+God in whom Matvey has placed his distracted
+confidence, seems to want to chastise him cruelly.
+After having lost, one after the other, his wife
+and child, he goes away at a venture. He
+enters a monastery where, among the dissolute
+monks, whose vices are most repugnant, his
+soul gradually shakes off the Christian dogma.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[Pg 192]</a></span>
+On one of his pilgrimages, he gets to Damascus.
+Among the workingmen, where chance has taken
+him, he feels his heart opening to the truth,
+which he follows up with the determination of
+a real Gorkyan hero. The life of the people
+appears to him in its sublime simplicity. And
+it is in the midst of a dazzling apotheosis&mdash;which
+reminds one of the most grandiose pages
+of Zola's "Lourdes"&mdash;that he finally confesses
+the God of his ideal: it is the people.</p>
+
+<p>"People! you are my God, creator of all
+the gods that you have formed from the beauty
+of your soul, in your troubled and laborious
+search!</p>
+
+<p>"Let there be no other gods on the earth but
+yourself, for you are the only God, the creator
+of miracles!"</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"The Spy" is a study of the Russian police.
+The novel treats of the terrible Okhrana, whose
+mysterious affairs have become the laughing-stock
+of all the foreign papers.</p>
+
+<p>The principal character, about whom circle
+the police spies and secret agents, is a poor
+orphan, weak and timid, called Evsey Klimkov,
+whom his uncle, the forger Piotr, has taken into
+his house and brought up with his son, the
+strong and brutal James. Beaten by his
+schoolmates and by his cousin, the child lives
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[Pg 193]</a></span>
+in a perpetual trance. Life seems formidable
+to him, like a jungle in which men are the pitiless
+beasts. Everywhere, brute force or hypocrisy
+triumph; everywhere, the weak are oppressed,
+downtrodden, conquered. And in his
+feverish imagination, daily excited by facts
+which his terror distorts, Evsey delights in conceiving
+another existence, all made of love and
+goodness, an existence that he unceasingly opposes
+against the hard realities of daily life,
+with the stubborn fervor of a mystic.</p>
+
+<p>Having entered the service of the old bookseller
+Raspopov, the young man does his duty
+with the faithfulness of a beast of burden. His
+home no longer pleases him at all; there, things
+and people are still hostile to him; but his uncle
+Piotr seems enchanted with his new position.
+Evsey spends his days in arranging and classifying
+the books which his master has bought.
+A young woman, Ra&iuml;ssa Petrovna, keeps house
+for the book-dealer, and as every one knows,
+they live like man and wife. In this queer environment,
+the faculties of the young man become
+sharpened, and serve him well. It does
+not take long for him to find out what they are
+hiding from him. A few words addressed by
+Raspopov to a certain Dorimedonte Loukhine
+reveal to Evsey the part that is being played
+by his patron. Raspopov, who is an agent of
+the secret police, gives Dorimedonte&mdash;who, by
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[Pg 194]</a></span>
+the way, is deceiving him with Ra&iuml;ssa&mdash;the
+names of the buyers of the forbidden books in
+which he trades. And here it is that the tragedy
+suddenly breaks forth.</p>
+
+<p>Ra&iuml;ssa, tired of being tormented by Raspopov,
+who accuses her of poisoning him,
+strangles the old man in a moment of cold anger,
+under the very eyes of Evsey. Thanks
+to Dorimedonte, this crime goes unpunished.
+Evsey, having become the lodger of the two
+lovers, now enters the Okhrana, at the advice
+of his new master. After a while, Ra&iuml;ssa,
+haunted by remorse, commits suicide, and Dorimedonte
+is killed by some revolutionists.</p>
+
+<p>All the interest of the book, however, is centered
+in the picture of the police institutions.
+From the chief Philip Philipovich to the agent
+Solovyev, Gorky presents, with consummate art,
+the mass of corrupt and greedy agents who
+wearily accomplish their tasks.</p>
+
+<p>Among them, young Evsey leads a miserable
+and ridiculous existence. Bruised by an invincible
+power, he sees himself compelled to arrest
+an old man who has confided his revolutionary
+ideas to him; then a young girl with
+whom he is in love; finally, his own cousin, a
+revolutionary suspect.</p>
+
+<p>Gradually his eyes are opened. He realizes
+that he cannot extricate himself from the position
+in which he has placed himself. Tired of
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[Pg 195]</a></span>
+leading a life which his conscience disapproves
+of, he thinks of killing his superior, who has
+driven him to do so many infamous deeds. He
+will thus get justice. His project miscarries;
+maddened, he throws himself under a passing
+train.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>These three remarkable works, riddled by the
+Russian censor, so that the complete version
+has appeared only abroad, have recently been
+followed by two important stories: "Among
+the People" and "Matvey Kozhemyakine."</p>
+
+<p>With his accustomed power, Gorky shows us,
+in the first of these stories, the spread of socialism
+among the agricultural proletariat. He
+depicts village life with its pettiness and ignominy.
+The village is for the most part a backward
+place, hostile to everything that makes a
+breach in tradition. The hatching of socialism
+goes on slowly. From day to day, new obstacles,
+helped on by the ignorance of the
+peasants, hinder those who are trying to carry
+out their belief. Even the village guard,
+Semyon, pursues them with his hatred.</p>
+
+<p>But Igor Petrovich, the propagator of these
+new ideas, finds, in a few old friends and in a
+village woman who becomes his mistress, some
+precious helpers. Thanks to them, he gradually
+gets up a little circle of firm believers who
+gather in a cave in the woods. Every evening,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[Pg 196]</a></span>
+they read, discuss, and dream of a better organization,
+out there in the cave. All would
+have gone well, if some of them had not betrayed
+the leader to the police. While being
+led to the city prison, the leader spoke to the
+soldiers who were escorting him:</p>
+
+<p>"The soldiers trembled as they clicked their
+bayonets; they silently listened to the legend
+of the generous earth which loves those who
+work it. Again, their red faces were covered
+with drops of melted snow; the drops ran down
+their cheeks like bitter tears of humiliation;
+they breathed heavily, they snuffled, and I felt
+that they kept walking a little faster, as if
+they wanted this very day to arrive in that
+fairy land.</p>
+
+<p>"We are no longer prisoners and soldiers;
+we are simply seven Russians. I do not forget
+the prison, but when I remember all that I
+lived through that summer and before that,
+my heart fills with joy, and I feel like crying
+out:</p>
+
+<p>"Rejoice, beloved Russian people! Your
+resurrection is close at hand!"</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"Matvey Kozhemyakine" very brilliantly
+returns to Gorky's early manner. In this book
+no symbolic character interprets the bold
+thoughts of the author. It is simply a novel
+of Russian provincial life. Its simplicity does
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[Pg 197]</a></span>
+not exclude vigor, and it reminds us at times
+of Balzac.</p>
+
+<p>Young Matvey is the son of an old workingman
+who has become rich, thanks to his energy
+and dishonesty. He has grown up in a large
+house, adjoining a rope-yard, with his father
+and several servants. His mother, whom he
+never knew, left home shortly after his birth,
+and entered a convent in order to escape the
+torments of life. Later, Matvey's father marries
+a young girl, in order to provide a mother
+for his son, whom he loves dearly. But his new
+mother is not long in finding out the dreary
+life which she has to lead with the old man.
+In order to escape from the tedium of it, she
+listens to the interesting experiences of the wandering
+life of the porter Sazanov, and gives her
+unfaithful love in exchange.</p>
+
+<p>Unexpected circumstances disclose this shameful
+adultery to Matvey. Instead of revealing
+it to his father, he generously guards the secret.
+He even goes so far as to protect her from the
+fury of a workingman, named Savka, whom
+Sazanov's success has rendered bold. Through
+gratitude, and later through love, in the absence
+of Kozhemyakine, she becomes the mistress
+of her step-son. On his return, the father,
+finding out about this "liaison," spares his son,
+but beats his wife to death, and himself, mad
+with fury, falls, struck with apoplexy.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[Pg 198]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>All the newspapers in the world have attacked
+Gorky's way of living. As he is forced to
+remain away from his beloved country, the great
+writer has made his home in the little island of
+Capri, the air of which is propitious to his failing
+health. Moreover, its impressive scenery
+inspires his restless genius.</p>
+
+<p>Drunk with liberty, taken up with beauty,
+always ready to help a man who is in political
+and social difficulties, Gorky, from the depths
+of his peaceful retreat, wanders out over the
+world of ideas in search of truth, as formerly
+he used to wander over the earth in search of
+bread.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[Pg 199]</a></span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="VI" id="VI"></a>VI<br />
+LEONID ANDREYEV</h2>
+
+
+<p>Leonid Andreyev was born of a humble
+bourgeoise family in Orel, in 1871. "It
+was there that I began my studies," he says.
+"I was not a good pupil; in the seventh form
+I was last in my class for a whole year, and I
+had especially poor reports as to my deportment.
+The most agreeable part of my schooling,
+which I still remember with pleasure, was
+the intervals between the lessons, the 'recesses,'
+and the times, rare as they were, when the instructor
+sent me from the class-room for inattention
+or lack of respect. In the long deserted
+halls a sonorous silence reigned which vibrated
+at the solitary noise of my steps; on all sides
+the closed doors, shutting in rooms full of
+pupils; a sunbeam&mdash;a free beam&mdash;played
+with the dust which had been raised during
+recess and which had not yet had time to settle;
+all of it was mysterious, interesting, full of a
+particular and secret meaning."</p>
+
+<p>Andreyev's father, who was a geometrician,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[Pg 200]</a></span>
+died while he was still at school, and the family
+was without resources. The young man did
+not hesitate, however, in setting out for St.&nbsp;Petersburg,
+where he entered the university,
+hoping to gain a livelihood by giving lessons.
+But it was hard to secure what he wanted. "I
+knew what terrible misery was," Andreyev tells
+us; "during my first years in St.&nbsp;Petersburg
+I was hungry more than once, and sometimes
+I did not eat for two days."</p>
+
+<p>His first literary productions date from this
+sombre epoch. Andreyev gives us remarkably
+graphic details of this misery. One day, he
+gave a daily paper a story about the tribulations
+of an <a class="corr" name="TC_5" id="TC_5" title="every-hungry">ever-hungry</a> student: his own life!</p>
+
+<p>"I wept like a child in writing these pages,"
+he confesses. "I had put down all of my sufferings.
+I was still affected by my great sadness
+when I took the manuscript to the editor.
+I was told to come back in a few weeks to find
+out whether it had been accepted. I returned
+with a light heart, keeping down my anguish
+in expectation of the decision. It came to me
+in the form of a loud burst of laughter from
+the editor, who declared that my work was absolutely
+worthless...."</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, he energetically pursued his
+studies, which he completed at the University
+of Moscow. "There," he tells us, "life was,
+from a material standpoint, less unbearable;
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[Pg 201]</a></span>
+my friends and the aid society came to my
+assistance; but I recall my life at the University
+of St.&nbsp;Petersburg with genuine pleasure;
+the various classes of students are there more
+differentiated and an individual can more easily
+find a sympathetic surrounding among such
+distinct groups."</p>
+
+<p>Some time after that, Andreyev, disgusted
+with life, attempted suicide. "In January,
+1894," he writes, "I tried to shoot myself, but
+without any appreciable result. I was punished
+by religious penance, imposed upon me by authority,
+and a sickness of the heart which, although
+not dangerous, was persistent. During
+this time I made one or two equally unsuccessful
+literary attempts, and I gave myself up
+with success to painting, which I have loved
+since childhood; I then painted portraits to
+order for from 5 to 10 rubles....</p>
+
+<p>"In 1897, I received my counsellor's degree
+and I took up that profession in Moscow. For
+want of time I did not succeed in getting any
+sort of a 'clientele'; in all, I pleaded but one
+civil case, which, however, I lost completely,
+and several gratuitous criminal cases. However,
+I was actively working in reporting these
+cases for an important paper."</p>
+
+<p>Finally, two strangely impressionistic stories:
+"Silence," and "He Was...," published in
+an important Petersburg review, brought the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[Pg 202]</a></span>
+author into prominence. From that time, he
+devoted himself entirely to literature.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Andreyev is considered, to-day, as one of the
+most brilliant representatives of the new constellation
+of Russian writers, in which he takes
+a place immediately next to Tchekoff, whom he
+resembles in the melancholy tone of his work.
+In him, as in Tchekoff, the number of people
+who suffer from life, either crushed or mutilated
+by it, by far exceed the number of happy
+ones; moreover, the best of his stories are short
+and sketchy like those of Tchekoff. Andreyev
+is then, so to speak, his spiritual son. But he
+is a sickly son, who carries the melancholy element
+to its farthest limit. The grey tones of
+Tchekoff have, in Andreyev, become black; his
+rather sad humor has been transformed into
+tragic irony; his subtle impressionability into
+morbid sensibility. The two writers have had
+the same visions of the anomalies and the horrors
+of existence; but, where Tchekoff has only a
+disenchanted smile, Andreyev has stopped, dismayed;
+the sensation of horror and suffering
+which springs from his stories has become an
+obsession with him; it does not penetrate merely
+the souls of his heroes, but, as in Poe, it penetrates
+even the descriptions of nature.</p>
+
+<p>Thus, the "near and terrible" disk of the
+moon hovers over the earth like the "gigantic
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[Pg 203]</a></span>
+menace of an approaching but unknown evil";
+the river congeals in "mute terror," and silence
+is particularly menacing. Night always comes
+"black and bad," and fills human hearts with
+shadows. When it falls, the very branches of
+the trees "contract, filled with terror." Under
+the influence of the disturbing sounds of the
+tocsin, the high linden-trees "suddenly begin to
+talk, only to become quiet again immediately
+and lapse into a sullen silence." The tocsin itself
+is animated. "Its distinct tones spread
+with rapid intensity. Like a herald of evil who
+has not the time to look behind him, and whose
+eyes are large with fright, the tocsin desperately
+calls men to the fatal mire."<a name="FNanchor_9" id="FNanchor_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a></p>
+
+<p>Most of Andreyev's characters, like those of
+Dostoyevsky, are abnormal, madmen and neurasthenics
+in whom are distinguishable marked
+traces of degeneration and psychic perversion.
+They are beings who have been fatally wounded
+in their life-struggle, whose minds now are completely
+or partially powerless. Too weak to
+fight against the cruel exigencies of reality,
+they turn their thoughts upon themselves and
+naturally arrive at the most desolate conclusions,
+and commit the most senseless acts.
+Some, a prey to the mania of pride, despairing
+because of their weakness and their "nothingness,"
+look&mdash;as does Serge Petrovich&mdash;for
+relief in suicide. Others, who have resigned
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[Pg 204]</a></span>
+themselves to their sad lives, become passive
+observers, become transformed into living
+corpses whose sole desire is peace; such a one
+is the hero of "At the Window." Others still
+instinctively choke in themselves the best tendencies
+of their characters and are passionately
+fond of futile and senseless amusements, by
+means of which they enjoy themselves like children,
+until a catastrophe makes them "come
+back to themselves." This is the idea of the
+original story called "The Grand Slam." In
+"The Lie" Andreyev depicts the pathological
+process in the soul of a man who, crushed by the
+falsehood of his own solitary existence, becomes
+insane at the idea that truth is inaccessible to
+human reason and that the reign of the Lie is
+invincible. The hero of "The Thought"<a name="FNanchor_10" id="FNanchor_10"></a><a href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a>
+reveres but one thing in the world&mdash;his own
+thought. Wrapped up in this one idea, he admires
+the force and finesse of it, while his reason,
+detached from reality and having only
+him for an end, begins to weaken, becomes
+gradually perverted to the point where this
+man, harassed by a terrible doubt, begins to ask
+himself whether he is insane. In the long and
+pathetic story, "The Life of a Priest," we are
+shown the disturbance of the religious feelings
+of a country priest who, although he has an
+ardent and strong soul, is crushed by his moral
+isolation among the ignorant people of a miserable
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[Pg 205]</a></span>
+village. It is again this moral isolation
+that is analyzed in "Silence," in which story
+it is the cause of a domestic tragedy. The
+same cause provokes a rupture between a father
+and a son in "The Obscure Distance," and
+brings with it in some way the death of the
+neurasthenic student.</p>
+
+<p>In general, the stories of Andreyev, after
+passing through various catastrophes, lead the
+reader back to this theme,&mdash;the moral isolation
+of a human being, who feels that the world
+has become deserted, and life a game of
+shadows. The abyss which separates Andreyev's
+heroes from other men makes them
+weak, numb, and miserable. It seems, in fact,
+that there is no greater misfortune than for a
+man to feel himself alone in the midst of his
+fellow-creatures.</p>
+
+<p>Finally, in "The Gulf," a somewhat imaginary
+thesis is developed, based on the terrible
+vitality which certain vile instincts keep even
+in the purest and most innocent minds, while
+the story "He Was ..." shows us the inside
+of a clinic, in which there are two dying men
+whose illusions of life persist till the supreme
+moment.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>If we carefully study a few of Andreyev's
+characters we can more easily understand his
+feelings and his style. Here is, for instance,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[Pg 206]</a></span>
+Serge Petrovich, a student. Although he is
+not very intelligent, he is above the average.
+His mind is preoccupied with all sorts of questions;
+he reads Nietzsche, he ponders over
+many things, but he does not know how to think
+for himself. The fact that there are people
+who can find a way to express themselves appears
+to him as an inaccessible ideal; while
+mediocre minds have no attraction for him at
+all. It is from this feeling that all his sufferings
+come. So "a horse, carrying a heavy
+burden, breathes hard, falls to the ground, but
+is forced to rise and proceed by stinging lashes
+from a whip."</p>
+
+<p>These lashes are the vision of the superman,
+of the one who rightfully possesses strength,
+happiness, and liberty. At times a thick mist
+envelops the thoughts of Serge Petrovich, but
+the light of the superman dispels this, and he
+sees his road before him as if it had been drawn
+or told him by another.</p>
+
+<p>Before his eyes there is a being called Serge
+Petrovich for whom all that makes existence
+happy or bitter, deep and human, remains a
+closed book. Neither religion nor morality,
+neither science nor art, exists for him. Instead
+of a real and ardent faith, he feels in himself
+a motley array of feelings. His habitual
+veneration of religious rites mingles with mean
+superstitions. He is not courageous enough to
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[Pg 207]</a></span>
+deny God, not strong enough to believe in Him.
+He does not love his fellow-men, and cannot
+feel the intense happiness of devoting himself
+to his fellow-creatures and even dying for them.
+But neither does he experience that hate for
+others which gives a man a terrible joy in his
+struggle with his fellow-men. Not being capable
+of elevating himself high enough or falling
+low enough to reign over the lives of men, he
+lives or rather vegetates with a keen feeling of
+his mediocrity, which makes him despair. And
+the pitiless words of Zarathustra ring in his
+ears: "If your life is not successful, if a venomous
+worm is gnawing at your heart, know that
+death will succeed." And Serge Petrovich,
+desperate, commits suicide.</p>
+
+<p>The hero of "At the Window" is quite different.
+This man has succeeded in building
+for himself a sort of fortress, "in which he retires,
+sheltered from life." Like Serge Petrovich,
+although not as often, he is tormented by
+restless thoughts, and, from time to time, he
+is obliged to defend his "fortress." But usually
+he is contented with watching life, that is
+to say, that part which he can see from his window.
+Nothing troubles the tranquillity of his
+mind, not even the desire to live like other men.
+One day, he speaks of his theories to a simple,
+uneducated young girl whom he thinks of
+marrying. She is astonished and stupefied by
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[Pg 208]</a></span>
+them. She perceives that he leads an insipid
+and morose life. Andrey Nikolayevich does not
+take into account or understand the stupefaction
+of the young girl.</p>
+
+<p>"This then is your life?" she asks, incredulously.</p>
+
+<p>"This is it. What more could you want?"</p>
+
+<p>"But it must be terribly monotonous to live
+in that way, apart from the world."</p>
+
+<p>"What good does one find in mankind?
+Nothing but tedium. When I am alone, I am
+my own master, but among men you never know
+what attitude to take to please them. They
+drag you into drunkenness, into gambling;
+then they denounce you to your superiors. I,
+however, love calmness and frankness. Some of
+them accept bribes and allow themselves to become
+corrupt; I do not like that.... I adore
+tranquillity."</p>
+
+<p>Moreover, he does not marry the young girl.
+He gives her up because he is afraid of the incumbrances
+that housekeeping will bring.</p>
+
+<p>In "The Grand Slam" four provincial "intellectuals"
+are locked up in the same fortress,
+and, by playing cards, they escape the terrible
+problems of a life which is inimical to them.
+Their existence has been passed among these
+cards, which, by a mysterious phenomenon,
+have become real living creatures to them. One
+of the players has dreamed all through his life
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[Pg 209]</a></span>
+of getting a grand slam, when, one evening,
+he sees he has the necessary cards in his hand.
+He has but to take one more card, the ace of
+spades, and his dream will be realized. But at
+the very moment when he is stretching forth
+his hand to take it, he falls down dead. His
+partners are terrified. One of them, a timorous
+and exact old man, named Jacob Ivanovich, is
+particularly struck. A thought comes to him;
+he quickly rises, after making sure that it was
+the ace of spades that the dead man was going
+to take, and cries:</p>
+
+<p>"But he will never know that he was going
+to get the ace of spades and a grand slam!
+Never.... Never...."</p>
+
+<p>"Then it appeared to Jacob Ivanovich that,
+up to this moment, he had never understood
+what death was. Now he understood, and what
+he saw was senseless, horrible, and irreparable!...
+The dead man would never know!"</p>
+
+<p>The poignant irony of this story is not unusual
+with Andreyev.</p>
+
+<p>It is again found in the short and symbolic
+story "The Laugh." A student, profiting by
+the fact that it is carnival time, disguises himself
+as a Chinaman and goes to the house of the
+girl he loves. The mute, immobile, and stupidly
+calm mask, and the whole "get-up" are
+so funny, that the unfortunate man rouses irresistible
+laughter wherever he goes. The young
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[Pg 210]</a></span>
+girl cannot help herself, and, while listening
+to his very touching and sincere declaration,
+which, at any other time, would have brought
+tears to her eyes, she bursts out laughing and
+cannot again become serious, although she realizes
+that a living and unhappy being is hidden
+under this impassive and foolish Chinaman's
+mask.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In "The Lie" we see a man who, by isolating
+himself from life, has lost the feeling of
+reality, and all capacity of discerning the true
+from the false. He suffers terribly from the
+feeling that something unknown is happening
+around him. This man, who would be ready to
+sacrifice everything, even his life, in order to
+know truth, guesses the lie that comes between
+him and the person who is dearest to him. He
+falls into a despair that soon turns to fury.
+In order to recover his calm, he begs the girl
+he loves, whom he suspects of having deceived
+him, to reveal the whole truth to him. But he
+cannot believe her protestations of innocence.
+One word bursts from his being, breaks forth
+from the depths of his soul: "Lies! Lies! Lies
+everywhere!"</p>
+
+<p>"In looking at her beautiful pure forehead,"
+he writes, "I dreamed that truth was there, on
+the other side of that thin barrier, and I felt
+a senseless desire to break that barrier and at
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[Pg 211]</a></span>
+least to see the truth. Lower down, beneath
+her white breast, I heard the beating of her
+heart, and I had a mad desire to open her
+breast so that I could read, at least once, what
+there was at the bottom of her heart."</p>
+
+<p>He ends by killing that which he loved, and
+thinks that he is satisfied: he believes he has
+killed the lie.</p>
+
+<p>In "The Thought" we see the gradual development
+of insanity during the period when
+it is doubtful, when the will is almost entirely
+annihilated and replaced by a fixed idea, and
+when conscience is not entirely abolished. Dr.
+Kerzhenzev kills his friend, obeying a mental
+suggestion, which now forbids him to do it, now
+urges him on. Then, like the "half-insane"
+or those sick people who feign madness in order
+more easily to attain their end, this man suggests
+to himself that he is in reality insane.
+This idea gets a hold on him after the murder
+and fills his soul with mortal terror, the exposure
+of which forms the most supremely
+pathetic part of the whole story. All this
+drama of a foundering intelligence, complicated
+by bizarre contradictions, is developed with a
+penetrating power of analysis.</p>
+
+<p>Andreyev tells us that on the day of judgment
+the alienists are divided as to the insanity
+of Kerzhenzev. The story ends at this place.
+But the principal interest of the story does not
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[Pg 212]</a></span>
+lie in this or that solution of the problem, which
+is not mysterious, for the doctor is doubtlessly
+abnormal, and it is only as to the degree of
+insanity that there can be any question. The
+main interest lies in another direction, in the
+subtle analysis of this special mental condition,
+which is done with consummate art.</p>
+
+<p>This story had the honor of occupying an
+entire meeting of the psychiatrists attached to
+the Academy of Medicine of St.&nbsp;Petersburg.
+According to the report of Dr.&nbsp;Ivanov, the
+assembly was almost unanimous in declaring the
+murderer insane. Another psychiatrist, who
+thought he saw proofs of an abnormal mentality
+in all the stories of Andreyev, pronounced
+the same verdict against Dr.&nbsp;Kerzhenzev, in a
+meeting of doctors.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"All of priest Vassily Fiveyisky's life was
+weighed down by a cruel and enigmatic fatality,"&mdash;it
+is thus that the story, "The Life of
+a Pope," opens. "As if struck by an unknown
+malediction, he had from his youth been made
+to carry a heavy burden of sorrows, sickness
+and misfortunes; he was solitary among men
+as a planet is among planets; a peculiar and
+malevolent atmosphere surrounded him. Son of
+an obscure, patient, and submissive village
+priest, he also was patient and submissive, and
+he was a long time in recognizing the particular
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[Pg 213]</a></span>
+rancour of destiny. He fell rapidly and arose
+slowly. Twig by twig he restored his nest.
+Having become a priest, the husband of a good
+woman, the father of a son and a daughter, he
+thought that all was going well with him, that
+all was solidly established, and that he would
+remain thus forever. And he blessed God."</p>
+
+<p>But fate was always on the watch for him.
+It had showed him happiness only to take it
+away again. After seven years of prosperity,
+his little son is drowned one summer's day in
+the river. Death and nameless misfortunes
+again invade the home of Vassily. One does not
+live there any more, one prowls around gropingly
+in a mournful stupor. From morning
+till evening, his wife comes and goes, silent and
+indifferent to everything, as if she were looking
+for some one or something.</p>
+
+<p>In losing his son, poor Vassily has also lost
+his wife, his helpmate and friend, for the unfortunate
+woman takes to drink. The faith of
+the priest holds in this terrible trial. But
+his misery increases immeasurably. The vice
+of his wife, his own sick weakness, excite the
+meanness of the people. Insults have to be borne
+in silence, tears hidden. At home, the priest's
+wife has no rest. She has the idea that she can
+have another son who will take the place of
+the dead one and be a balm to her broken heart.
+In her alcoholic desire, a prey to savage fury,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[Pg 214]</a></span>
+she demands that her husband gratify her desire.</p>
+
+<p>"Give him to me, Vassily! Give him back to
+me, I tell you...."</p>
+
+<p>At last her desire is realized: a son is born
+to her; but the child, conceived in madness, is
+born half-witted. The mother takes to drink
+again, and the despair of Vassily increases.
+One day the unfortunate woman hangs herself.
+The pope comes in, however, in time to save
+her; but now another noose has tightened itself
+about the priest's heart. One question oppresses
+him:</p>
+
+<p>"Why these sufferings? If God exists, and
+if God is love, how is such misery possible?"</p>
+
+<p>Vassily's faith trembles. He decides to leave
+his cassock, to fly, to put his idiot son out to
+board and to start life over again. This resolution
+relieves him. His wife breathes easier.
+It seems to him that she also can begin a new
+life. But fate does not loosen its reins.</p>
+
+<p>One day, on coming back from the harvest, he
+finds his house burned. His wife, in a drunken
+stupor, had probably set fire to it. She is
+dying of her burns. Vassily can only sigh.
+This new misfortune does not put an end to the
+priest, but rather inspires him. His old faith
+comes back, he sees in this supreme test a predestination.
+He kneels down and cries:</p>
+
+<p>"I believe! I believe! I believe!"
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[Pg 215]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>From that time on he devotes himself entirely
+to prayer and macerations. He lives in perpetual
+ecstasy. The people around him understand
+nothing of this change and are astounded.
+Every one of them is waiting for something
+unusual. And their waiting is not in vain.
+One day, when he is delivering the funeral oration
+of a workingman, who has been suddenly
+killed, Vassily abruptly interrupts the ceremony,
+approaches the corpse, which has begun
+to decay, and addresses it thus three times:</p>
+
+<p>"I tell you: arise!"</p>
+
+<p>But the dead man does not move. Then the
+priest looks at this inert and deformed corpse.
+He notices the fetid odor that arises from it,
+the odor of the slow but sure decomposition,
+and he has a sort of sudden revelation. The
+scepticism which, for a long time, has been
+brooding in his heart suddenly is transformed
+into absolute negation, and addressing himself
+to Him in whom he had believed, Vassily cries
+out:</p>
+
+<p>"Thou wishest to deceive me? Then why
+did I believe? Why hast Thou kept me in
+servitude, in captivity, all of my life? No free
+thought! No feeling! No hope! All with
+Thee! All for Thee! Thee alone! Well, appear!
+I am waiting! I am waiting!... Ah!
+Thou dost not want to? Very well...."</p>
+
+<p>He does not finish. In a burst of savage
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[Pg 216]</a></span>
+madness he rushes forth from the now empty
+church. He rushes straight ahead and finally
+falls in the middle of the road. Death has put
+an end to his miseries.</p>
+
+<p>"Silence" also shows us a priest, stubborn
+in his prejudices. This man, Father Ignatius
+by name, is a sort of rude and authoritative
+Hercules. All tremble before his stern air, except
+his daughter, who has decided to continue
+her studies in St.&nbsp;Petersburg, against the will
+of her father. Coming back to her home after
+a long absence, she wanders about, sad and
+silent. For days at a time she wanders about,
+pale and melancholy, speaking little, seeking
+solitude. She hides what oppresses her; she
+keeps her secret from all. One night, she
+throws herself under a train, taking her secret
+with her.</p>
+
+<p>Her grief-stricken mother gets a paralytic
+stroke which transforms her into a sort of living
+corpse. The father, crushed by these two catastrophes,
+which have destroyed all the joy of his
+life, becomes the prey of a singular mental
+state: his conscience revolts against the severe
+maxims and the pitiless prejudices that he has
+always defended. Tender love, which he has
+hitherto concealed under his pride, now softens
+him; he needs affection, and a vague feeling
+suggests to him that he himself is to blame for
+all of these misfortunes. His past life, his
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[Pg 217]</a></span>
+daughter, and his wife appear to him as so
+many enigmas which raise anguishing questions
+in his heart. He calls out, but no one answers.
+A death-like silence has invaded the presbytery,
+and this silence is especially dreadful near the
+paralyzed wife, who is dying without speaking.
+Even her eyes do not betray a single thought.
+Gradually, a terrible desire to know why his
+daughter committed suicide seizes him. At twilight,
+softly, in his bare feet, he goes up to the
+room of his dead daughter and speaks to her.
+He entreats her to tell him the truth, to confess
+to him why she was always so sad, why she
+has killed herself. Only the silence answers
+him. Then he rushes to the cemetery, where his
+daughter's tomb irresistibly attracts him; again
+he implores, begs, threatens. For a moment he
+thinks that a vague answer arises from the
+earth; he places his ear on the rough turf.</p>
+
+<p>"Vera, tell me!" he repeats in a loud and
+steady voice.</p>
+
+<p>"And now Father Ignatius feels with terror
+that something sepulchrally cold is penetrating
+his ear and congealing his brain; it is Vera,
+who is continually answering him with the same
+prolonged silence. This silence becomes more
+and more sinister and restless, and when Father
+Ignatius arises with an effort, his face is as
+livid as death."</p>
+
+<p>Crushed by the same blind destiny which
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[Pg 218]</a></span>
+annihilated the powerful personality of Father
+Ignatius, the piteous and tearful hero of "The
+Marseillaise" moves us even more than does the
+old priest. The poor fellow cannot grasp the
+reason for the ferocity of stupid fate, which
+unrelentingly preys upon him. Arrested by
+mistake as a revolutionist and condemned to
+deportation, he becomes an object of derision
+to his comrades. However, gradually, he finds
+the strength to share the severe privations of
+his companions who have sacrificed themselves
+to their ideal of justice and liberty. And, on
+his death-bed, he is elated by all that he has
+endured; he dreams of liberty, which, up to this
+time, had been indifferent to him, and asks
+them to sing the Marseillaise over his grave.</p>
+
+<p>"He died, and we sang the Marseillaise. Our
+young and powerful voices thundered forth this
+majestic song of liberty, accompanied by the
+noise of the ocean which carried on the crests
+of its waves towards 'dear France,' pale terror
+and blood-red hope.</p>
+
+<p>"It became our standard forever, the picture
+of this nonentity with the hare's body and the
+man's heart.</p>
+
+<p>"On your knees to the hero, friends and
+comrades!</p>
+
+<p>"We sang. The guns, with their creaking
+locks, were pointed menacingly at us; the steel
+points of the bayonets were pointed at our
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[Pg 219]</a></span>
+hearts. The song resounded louder and louder,
+with increasing joy. Held in the friendly hands
+of the 'strugglers,' the black coffin slowly sank
+into the earth.</p>
+
+<p>"We sang the Marseillaise!"</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>The two main characters of "The Gulf," a
+student and a school-girl, are walking and discussing
+rather deep things, such as immortality
+and the beauty of pure and noble love. They
+feel some sadness in speaking about these things,
+but love appears more and more luminous to
+them. It rises before their eyes, as large as
+the world, bursting forth like the sun and marvelously
+beautiful, and they know that there is
+nothing so powerful as love.</p>
+
+<p>"You could die for the woman you loved?"
+asked Zinochka.</p>
+
+<p>"Of course," replies Nemovetsky unhesitatingly,
+in a frank and sincere voice, "and
+you?"</p>
+
+<p>"I too!" She remains pensive a moment.
+"To die for the one you love, that is a great
+happiness! Would that that were to be my
+destiny!"</p>
+
+<p>Gradually night falls. Nemovetsky and his
+companion lose their way in the woods; they
+finally arrive in a clearing, where three filthy-looking
+men are seated about an empty bottle.
+These intoxicated men, whose wicked eyes light
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[Pg 220]</a></span>
+up with a brutal envy of enjoyment and love
+of destruction, try to quarrel with Nemovetsky,
+and one of them ends by striking him full in the
+face with his fist. Zinochka runs away. His
+heart full of terror, Nemovetsky can hear the
+shrieks of his friend, whom the vagabonds have
+caught. Then a feeling of emptiness comes
+over him, and he loses consciousness. Two of
+the men throw him into a ravine.</p>
+
+<p>An hour later, Nemovetsky regains consciousness;
+he gets up with great pain, for he is badly
+wounded. He remembers what has happened.
+Fright and despair seize him. He begins to run
+and call for help with all his strength, at the
+same time looking among all the bushes, when
+at his feet, he sees a dim, white form. It is
+his companion, who lies there motionless. He
+falls down on his knees and touches her. His
+hand encounters a nude body, damp and cold,
+but still living. It seems to grow warm at his
+touch. He pictures to himself with abominable
+clearness what the men have done. A feeling of
+strange strength circulates in his members. On
+his knees in front of the young girl, in the
+obscurity of the forest, he tries to bring her
+back to life, calling her sweet names, caressing
+her hair, rubbing her cold hands.</p>
+
+<p>"With infinite precautions, but also with
+deep tenderness, he tries to cover her with the
+shreds of her torn dress, and the double sensation
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[Pg 221]</a></span>
+of the cloth and the nude body are as keen
+as a sword and as inconceivable as madness.
+And now he cries for help, now he presses the
+sweet and supple body to his breast. His unconscious
+abandonment unchains the savageness
+of his passion. He whispers in a low voice, 'I
+love you, I love you.' And throwing himself
+violently upon her lips, he feels his teeth entering
+her flesh.</p>
+
+<p>"Then, in the sadness and impetuousness of
+the kiss, the last bit of his mind gives way. It
+seems to him that the lips of the young girl
+tremble. For an instant, a terrible terror fills
+his soul and he sees a horrible gulf yawning at
+his feet.... And he hurls himself into the
+mad throes of his insane passion."</p>
+
+<p>The account of the collegian, which forms
+the plot of the story "In the Fog," is even
+more daring in its realism. It actually oppresses
+the reader, not so much by certain details
+that provoke disgust, as by the analysis
+of the sufferings of an unfortunate young man,
+whose mind is pure, but who has let himself be
+dragged into excesses which are followed by a
+sickness of ill name. Severely reprimanded by
+his father, the poor young fellow, overcome
+with sorrow, the victim of an instinct which he
+could not conquer, ends his days in a most horrible
+way: one evening, he leaves home and goes
+out into the streets in an adventuresome spirit.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[Pg 222]</a></span>
+A half-intoxicated prostitute touches him in
+passing; he follows her. As they go along, a
+conversation starts up, and the young man, although
+she is repugnant to him, goes home with
+her. Once in her room, a violent quarrel starts
+up and he kills her, and then commits suicide.</p>
+
+<p>These two stories, especially "The Gulf,"
+caused many lively discussions on the part of
+the public, and then in the newspapers. Mr.
+Bourenine, the well-known critic of the "Novoye
+Vremya," says that he received from several correspondents
+a series of letters which blamed
+Andreyev vehemently and requested that this
+"skunk" of literature be called to order according
+to his deserts. These protestations
+were re&euml;nforced by an ardent letter from
+Countess Tolstoy, the wife of the great author,
+who reproached Andreyev for having so complacently
+painted such sombre pictures, with
+such low and violent scenes, all of which tended
+to pervert youth. The writers were not the
+only ones to take offence. Two important Russian
+newspapers organized a sort of inquiry,
+and they published many of the answers received
+from the young people of both sexes, but
+these were all favorable to Andreyev.</p>
+
+<p>In truth, all these judgments are too passionate.
+It is true that "most of the critics
+have understood Andreyev only in a superficial
+manner," as Tolstoy rightfully asserted. The
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[Pg 223]</a></span>
+double impression, for instance, produced by
+"The Gulf," is the result of a simple misunderstanding.
+Those who think that the adventure
+of young Nemovetsky is a slice of life and
+characterizes certain psychological states, have,
+without a doubt, the right to judge this story
+as an indiscretion, and to reproach the author
+with a deviation from morality; but Andreyev
+has not taken his hero from reality; he has not
+tried to give us a picture of manners, but has
+expressed an idea, born in his brain under the
+influence of the philosophy of Nietzsche. It illustrates
+the terrible power and the brutality of
+a dormant instinct lurking in the purest minds.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Besides, "The Gulf" and "In the Fog" are
+compositions which are exceptional in the work
+of Andreyev. The idea that he mostly presents
+is not the power of bestial instincts, but rather
+the indestructible vitality of human feelings and
+aspirations towards a better existence, which
+sometimes comes to light among the most miserable
+and depraved people, and even among those
+who are in the most abject material condition.</p>
+
+<p>In the destiny of these beings, there are, however,
+rays of hope. The slightest incident serves
+to transform them; suddenly their hearts begin
+to beat happily, tears of tenderness moisten
+their eyes, they vaguely feel the existence of
+something luminous and good. A profound
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[Pg 224]</a></span>
+sensibility, an ardent love of life bursts forth
+in their souls. This sensibility, this attachment
+to existence, form the theme of four touching
+stories: "He Was," "Petka in the Country,"
+"The Cellar," and "The Angel."</p>
+
+<p>The action of "He Was" takes place in a
+hospital, where a deacon, a foolishly debonair
+man, who is attached to his stunted existence,
+and a pessimistic merchant, thoroughly satiated,
+are at the point of death. The deacon has an
+incurable sickness, and his days are numbered.
+But he does not know it, and speaks with enthusiasm
+of the pilgrimage he is going to make
+after he is cured, and of the apple-tree in his
+garden, which he expects will bear a great deal
+of fruit. The fourth Friday of Lent he is taken
+into the amphitheatre. He comes back, very
+much moved and making the sign of the cross.</p>
+
+<p>"Ah! my brothers," he says, "I am all upset.
+The doctor made me sit down in a chair
+and said to the students: 'Here you see a sick
+man.' Ah! how painful it was to hear him add:
+'He was a deacon!'"</p>
+
+<p>"The unfortunate man stopped, and continued
+in a choking voice: '"He was a deacon,"
+the doctor told them. He told them the story
+of my whole life, he even spoke about my wife.
+It was terrible! One would have said that I was
+dead already, and that he was talking over my
+coffin.'
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[Pg 225]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"And as the deacon is thus speaking, all
+of the others see clearly that he is going to
+die. They see it as clearly as if death itself
+was standing there, at the foot of the
+bed...."</p>
+
+<p>The merchant is a very different sort of man:
+he does not believe in God; he has had enough
+of life and is not afraid of death. All of his
+strength he has spent unnecessarily, without
+any appreciable result, without joy. When he
+was young he had stolen meat and fruit from
+his master. Caught in the act, he had been
+beaten, and he detested those who had struck
+him. Later on, having become rich, he crushed
+the poor with his fortune and scorned those who,
+on falling into his hands, answered his hate with
+scorn. Finally, old age and sickness had come;
+people now began to steal from him, and he, in
+turn, beat those whom he caught terribly. And
+thus his life had been spent; it had been nothing
+but a series of transgressions and hatreds,
+where the flames of desire, in dying out, had left
+nothing but cold ashes in his soul. He refuses
+to believe that any one can love this existence,
+and he disdainfully looks at the sallow face of
+the deacon, and mutters: "Fool!" Then, he
+looks at the third man in the room, a young
+student who is asleep. This student never fails
+to embrace his fianc&eacute;e, a pretty young girl,
+whenever she comes to see him. As he looks the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[Pg 226]</a></span>
+merchant, more bitterly than before, repeats:
+"Fool!"</p>
+
+<p>But death approaches; and this man who
+thinks himself superior and who scorns the deacon
+because he dreams of light and the sun, now
+feels disturbed in his turn. In making up the
+balance-sheet of this existence which, up to this
+time, he believed he hated, he remembers a
+stream of warm light which, during the day,
+used to come in through the window and gild the
+ceiling; and he remembers how the sun used to
+shine on the banks of the Volga, near his home.
+With a terrible sob, beating his hands on his
+breast, he falls back on his bed, right against
+the deacon, whom he hears silently weeping.</p>
+
+<p>"And thus they wept together. They wept
+for the sun which they were never to see again,
+for the apple-tree with fruit which they were not
+going to eat, for the shadow that was to envelop
+them, for dear life and cruel death!"</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Petka&mdash;the hero of "Petka in the Country"&mdash;is,
+at ten years of age, a barber's apprentice.
+He does not yet smoke as does his
+thirteen year old friend Nicolka, whom he wants
+to equal in everything. Petka's principal occupation,
+in the rare moments when the shop is
+empty, is to look out of the window at the
+poorly dressed men and women who are sitting
+on the benches of the boulevard. In the meantime,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[Pg 227]</a></span>
+Nicolka goes through the streets of ill
+fame, and comes back and tells Petka all his
+experiences. The precocious knowledge of
+Nicolka astonishes the child, whose one ambition
+is to be like his friend one of these days. While
+waiting, he dreams of a vague country, but he
+cannot guess its location nor its character. And
+no one comes to take him there. From morning
+till evening he always hears the same jerky cry:
+"Some water, boy!"</p>
+
+<p>But one morning his mother, the cook Nadezhda,
+tells the barber that her master and mistress
+have told her to take Petka to the country
+for a few days. Then begins for him an enchanted
+existence. He goes in bathing four
+times a day, fishes, goes on long walks, climbs
+trees, rolls in the grass. When, at the end of a
+week, the barber claims his apprentice, the child
+does not understand: he has completely forgotten
+the city and the dirty barber-shop; and the
+return is very sad. Again is heard the jerky
+cry: "Some water, boy!" followed by a menacing
+murmur of "Come! Come!" if the child
+spills any of the water, or has not understood
+the orders.</p>
+
+<p>"And, during the night, in the place where
+Petka and Nicolka sleep side by side, a weak
+little voice speaks of the country, of things that
+do not exist, of things that no one has ever
+heard of or seen!..."
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[Pg 228]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"The Cellar" is inhabited by absolutely
+fallen people. A baby has just been born
+there. With down-bent necks, their faces unconsciously
+lighted up by strangely happy
+smiles, a prostitute and a miserable drunkard
+look at the child. This little life, "weak as a
+fire in the steppe," calls to them vaguely, and
+it seems to promise them something beautiful,
+clear, and immortal. Among the inhabitants of
+this cellar, the most unfortunate of all, is a man
+named Kizhnakov; he is pale, sickly, worn by
+work, almost devoured by suffering and alcohol;
+death already lies in wait for him. The most
+terrible thing for this man is the necessity of
+having to begin to live again each day. He
+would like to lie down all day and think of suicide
+under the heap of rags that serve him as
+a covering. He would like best to have some
+one come up back of him, and shoot him. He
+fears his own voice and his own thoughts. And
+it is on him that the baby produces the deepest
+impression. Since the birth of the child Kizhnakov
+does not sleep any more; he tries to protect
+himself from the cold, and weeps softly,
+without sadness and without convulsions, like
+those who have pure and innocent hearts, like
+children.</p>
+
+<p>"'Why do I weep?' he asks himself.</p>
+
+<p>"Not finding a suitable answer, he replies:
+'It is thus....'
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[Pg 229]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"And the meaning of his words is so deep
+that a new flood of tears come to the eyes of the
+man whose life is so sad and solitary."</p>
+
+<p>We find the same theme again in "The
+Angel." A child who also lives in a cellar comes
+back from a Christmas-tree; he brings with him
+a toy, and a pretty little wax angel, which he
+shows to his father. The latter has seen better
+days, but in the last few years he has been sick
+with consumption, and now he is awaiting death,
+silent and continually exasperated by the sight
+of social injustice. However, the delight of
+the child infects the father, and both of them
+have a feeling "of something that joins all
+hearts into one, and does away with the abyss
+which separates man from man, and makes him
+so solitary, unfortunate, and weak." The poor
+dying man seems to hear a voice from this better
+world, where he once lived and from which he
+had been sent forever.</p>
+
+<p>But these are only the dreams of a dying man,
+the last rays of light of the life which is being
+extinguished. The ray, penetrating this sick
+soul, is like the weak sunlight which passes
+through the dirty windows of a dark hovel.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In his two stories, "The Stranger" and
+"The Obscure Future," Andreyev shows us two
+men of entirely different character, animated
+by generous feelings and a firm will. One of
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[Pg 230]</a></span>
+them, a young student, being disgusted with the
+miseries of Russian life and having decided to
+expatriate himself, suddenly changes his mind,
+as a result of the patriotism of one of his
+friends, a Servian, named Raiko. He makes
+it his duty never to leave his country, although
+life there is so terrible and hopeless. There is,
+in this new feeling, an immense joy and a terrible
+sadness. The other, the hero of the second
+story, having one day expressed to his father
+the hatred he has for the bourgeois life that
+he is leading, leaves his family, who love him,
+in order to penetrate the "obscure future."</p>
+
+<p>Evidently, these are people who are fitted to
+struggle. However, these strugglers, so infrequent
+in the work of Andreyev, have, in spite
+of all, something sickly and savage in them;
+instead of real fighting courage, they possess
+only extreme audaciousness, mystical rapture,
+or nervous exaltation. The "obscure future"
+toward which their eyes are turned is not lighted
+up by the rays of faith and hope.</p>
+
+<p>The question is whether Andreyev himself
+believes in the triumph of the elements of life
+over the elements of death, the horror of which
+he excels in portraying for us. It is in the following
+manner that he expresses himself in one
+of his essays entitled, "Impressions of the
+Theatre": "In denying everything, one arrives
+immediately at symbols. In refuting life,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[Pg 231]</a></span>
+one is but an involuntary apologist. I never
+believe so much in life as when I am reading the
+father of pessimism, Schopenhauer! As a result,
+life is powerful and victorious!... It is
+truth that always triumphs, and not falsehood;
+it is truth which is at the basis of life, and justifies
+it. All that persists is useful; the noxious
+element must disappear sooner or later, will inevitably
+disappear."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>What, then, constitutes the essence of Andreyev's
+talent is an extreme impressionability,
+a daring in descriptions of the negative sides of
+reality, melancholy moods and the torments of
+existence. As he usually portrays general suffering
+and sickness rather than definite types,
+his heroes are mostly incarnations and symbols.
+The very titles of some of his stories indicate
+the abstract character of his work. Such are:
+"Silence," "The Thought," and "The Lie."
+In this respect he has carried on the work of
+Poe, whose influence on him is incontestable.
+These two writers have in common a refined and
+morbid sensibility, a predilection for the horrible
+and a passion for the study of the same kind
+of subjects,&mdash;solitude, silence, death. But the
+powerful fantasy of the American author,
+which does not come in touch with reality, wanders
+freely through the whole world and
+through all the centuries of history. His
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[Pg 232]</a></span>
+heroes take refuge in half-crumbled castles, they
+look at the reader from the top of craggy rocks,
+whither their love of solitude has led them; even
+death itself is not a repulsive skeleton, but
+rather a majestic form, full of grandiose mystery.
+Andreyev, on the other hand, but rarely
+breaks the bounds which unite him to reality.
+His heroes are living people, who act, and whose
+banal life ends with a banal death. This realism
+and this passionate love of truth make the
+strength and the beauty of all his work.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>A certain harmony between the imaginative
+and the real element is characteristic of the best
+of Andreyev's productions, especially his last
+stories: "The Red Laugh," "The Governor,"
+"The Shadows," and "The Seven Who Were
+Hanged."</p>
+
+<p>"The Red Laugh" is the symbol, the incarnation,
+of the bloody and implacable cynicism
+of war. The psychologist of the mysterious
+has, in these pages, recorded the terrifying aspects
+of the Manchurian campaign, which one
+could not have foreseen in all of its horror. He
+has shown in a lasting manner the poor human
+creature torn from his home, debased to the
+r&ocirc;le of a piece of mechanism. Not knowing
+where he is being led to, he goes, making murderous
+gestures, the meaning of which he does
+not know, without even having the illusory consolation
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[Pg 233]</a></span>
+of possible personal bravery, being
+killed by the shots of an invisible enemy, or,
+what is worse, being killed by the shots of his
+own comrades&mdash;and all of this, automatically,
+stupidly. The feeling of terror, the somewhat
+mystical intuition of events which, at times,
+seem to be paradoxes in the other works of
+Andreyev, are perfectly adapted to this terribly
+real representation of the effects of
+war.</p>
+
+<p>The inner drama which Andreyev analyzes in
+"The Governor" makes a bold contrast with
+the violent pages of "The Red Laugh," the
+savage powers of which attain the final limits of
+horror.</p>
+
+<p>The governor has during his whole life been
+a loyal and strict servant of the Tsar. On the
+day of an uprising he mercilessly beat the
+enemies of his master; he blindly accomplished
+what he thought was his duty. But, since that
+bloody day, a new and unceasing voice speaks
+in his conscience. The irreparable act has forever
+isolated him from his fellow-creatures, and
+even from his friends who congratulate him
+upon his fine conduct. A stranger to all that is
+happening around him, he is left alone to fight
+with his conscience, which soon crushes him with
+all the weight of remorse. He knows that he
+has been condemned by a revolutionary tribunal.
+A young girl who is a stranger to him writes
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[Pg 234]</a></span>
+him a compassionate letter: "You are going
+to be killed," she says, "and that will be justice;
+but I have great pity for you." This
+discerning and youthful sympathy penetrates
+his heart, which finally opens&mdash;alas, too late,&mdash;to
+justice and pity.</p>
+
+<p>This marks the beginning of a terrible
+agony. The governor makes no effort to escape
+from the fatal judgment. Always alone, he
+contemplates his terrible distress and awaits the
+coming of the judiciary. He feels that he has
+incurred universal blame, and at times he comes
+to wish for death, which surprises him suddenly
+as he is turning the corner of a street:</p>
+
+<p>"The whole thing was short and simple, like
+a scene from a moving-picture play. At a
+cross-ways, close by a muddy spot, a hesitating
+voice called to the governor:</p>
+
+<p>"'Your honor!'</p>
+
+<p>"'What?'</p>
+
+<p>"He stopped and turned his head: two men
+who had come from behind a wall were crossing
+the street, and were shuffling along in the mud
+towards him. One of them had in his left hand
+a piece of folded paper; his other hand was
+in his pocket.</p>
+
+<p>"And immediately, the governor knew that
+death had come; and they knew that the governor
+knew.</p>
+
+<p>"While keeping the paper in his left hand
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[Pg 235]</a></span>
+the unknown man took a revolver out of his
+pocket with difficulty.</p>
+
+<p>"The governor glanced about him; he saw
+a dirty and deserted square, with bits of grass
+growing in the mud, and a wall. But what did
+it matter, it was too late! He gave a short but
+deep sigh, and stood erect again, fearless, but
+without defiance.... He fell, with three shots
+in his body."</p>
+
+<p>This drama of conscience is set forth with
+admirable sureness of analysis, and the author
+has been able to represent with impressive intensity
+the mysterious fatality which demands
+the death of the guilty one.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>It is this same fatality, under whose hand all
+men are equal, which makes the hero of "The
+Shadows," a young terrorist who has taken
+refuge in a house of ill-fame, obey the strange
+desire of his bed-companion.</p>
+
+<p>"Stay with me!" cries the young girl, in
+whom is incarnated his destiny, at the moment
+that he is going to leave the establishment in
+order to escape from the spies who are following
+him. "You are an honest man! And I've
+been waiting five years to meet an honest man....
+Stay with me, because you belong to me."</p>
+
+<p>After a terrible internal combat the man
+yields to this unknown will which is oppressing
+him. A traitor to his party, he decides to become
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[Pg 236]</a></span>
+the companion of this painted girl, with
+whom he then gets drunk.</p>
+
+<p>"As long as I am in the shadows," he murmurs
+with the sombre resignation of an Andreyev
+hero, "I might as well remain there."</p>
+
+<p>At dawn, the police come to arrest him. And
+while his friend tries desperately to resist the
+agents of the force, he contemplates the brutal
+scene with an ironic smile.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"The Seven Who Were Hanged," written in
+1908, right after the executions at Kherson
+and Warsaw, shows us pictures of terror and
+fright aptly described by the genius of Andreyev.
+This work has prodigious color and
+strength, and one experiences deep emotions on
+reading it. Five terrorists, captured at the
+very moment when they are going to assassinate
+a minister, and two criminals, are condemned
+to be hanged on the same day. The
+writer shows them to us tortured by the most
+horrible anguish, that which immediately precedes
+death. The word "madness" appears on
+every page: mystical madness of hallucination
+that hears music and voices, such is that of the
+young revolutionary Moussya; then there is
+the brutal madness of her comrades Kashirine
+and Golovine, who are ready to scream with
+terror; the madness of the victims, the frenzy
+of the executioners.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[Pg 237]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>The night before the execution the prisoners
+are visited by their relatives. The farewell
+which Serge Golovine takes of his family is
+rightly considered one of the most poignant
+and most cleverly constructed scenes that Andreyev
+has ever written.</p>
+
+<p>Followed by his mother, who totters along,
+Serge's father, a retired colonel, enters the
+room where visitors are received. Serge does
+not know that the colonel spent the whole night
+in preparing for this meeting. He has told
+his wife what to do: embrace her son, keep
+from crying, and say nothing. But the unhappy
+mother in the presence of her son cannot
+control her emotions; her eyes are strained
+and she breathes faster and faster.</p>
+
+<p>"Don't torture him!" commands the colonel.</p>
+
+<p>Several stupid and insignificant words are
+exchanged in order to hide the terrible suffering
+that they all are going through. The visit
+ends: the parents must bid their son good-bye
+forever. The mother gives her son a short kiss,
+then she shakes her head and murmurs, trembling:</p>
+
+<p>"'No, it is not that! It is not that!'</p>
+
+<p>"'Good-bye, Serge,' says his father.</p>
+
+<p>"They shake hands, and give each other a
+brief but hearty kiss.</p>
+
+<p>"'You...' begins Serge.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[Pg 238]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"'What's that?' asks his father in a jerky
+voice.</p>
+
+<p>"'No, not like that. No, no! What was
+I going to say?' repeats his mother, shaking
+her head.</p>
+
+<p>"She was again seated, trembling.</p>
+
+<p>"'You...' continues Serge.</p>
+
+<p>"Suddenly, his face took on a pitiful expression,
+and he made a grimace like a child. The
+tears then came to his eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"'Father, you are a strong man!'</p>
+
+<p>"'What are you saying? What are you
+saying?' the colonel cries, frightened.</p>
+
+<p>"Then, as if he had been struck, the colonel's
+head sank down upon his son's shoulder. And
+they kissed each other, again and again, the
+one with white hair and the other with the
+prisoner's 'capote.'</p>
+
+<p>"'And I?' a hoarse voice brusquely asked.</p>
+
+<p>"They looked: the mother was standing,
+her head thrown back, and she was watching
+them with anger, almost hate.</p>
+
+<p>"'What is the matter, dear?' cried the
+colonel.</p>
+
+<p>"'And I?' she repeated. 'You two kiss
+each other, and I? You are men, aren't you?
+And I?'</p>
+
+<p>"'Mother!'</p>
+
+<p>"And Serge threw himself into his mother's
+arms....
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[Pg 239]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"The last words of the colonel were:</p>
+
+<p>"'I consecrate you to death, my boy! Die
+with courage, like a soldier!'"</p>
+
+<p>These few lines retrace one of the thousands
+of daily dramas which compose modern Russian
+history. The work of Andreyev brings to
+us a sad vibrant echo of the sobs which ring
+out in Russian dungeons. And this faithful
+portrayal of events, events so frequent that
+they no longer move us from our indifference,
+when we find the echo of them in the press, will
+raise in the conscience of Andreyev's readers a
+cry of horror and pity.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>It is principally in the dramas which he has
+written in the last few years<a name="FNanchor_11" id="FNanchor_11"></a><a href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> that Andreyev
+has developed with most force and clearness his
+favorite themes: the fear of living and dying,
+the madness of believing in free-will, and the
+nonsense of life, the weakness and vanity of
+which he depicts for us.</p>
+
+<p>The first of these works to appear was "The
+Life of Man," which is a tragic illustration of
+this pessimism.</p>
+
+<p>When the curtain rises, "some one in grey,"
+holding a torch, informs the audience that Man
+is about to be born. From this time on, his life,
+lighted like a lamp, will burn until death extinguishes
+it. And Man will live, docile and
+obedient to the orders that come to him from
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[Pg 240]</a></span>
+On-High, through the intermediary of this
+"some one," whom he does not know. Each
+act of the play represents a period in the life
+of Man. In the first act, Man has acquired
+riches and glory, and is found feasting with his
+friends in his sumptuous home. The guests
+are enchanted with their host, whom they envy.
+But happiness is a fugitive shadow; it soon
+betrays the man, who becomes poor, loses his
+son, falls into the most abject misery, and dies
+in a filthy and infected cellar, surrounded by
+vile beggars, while the torch, held by "some
+one in grey," begins to grow weaker, and then
+dies out. And the man, conscious of his powerlessness
+to conquer fate, and conscious of his
+weakness in face of the mysterious "some one
+in grey," confounds in the same malediction
+God, Satan, Fatality, and Life, who have united
+to annihilate him.</p>
+
+<p>The themes of the "King of Famine" and
+"Black Masks" offer a certain analogy to the
+theme of "The Life of Man."</p>
+
+<p>From the top of a belfry the "King of
+Famine," in company with "Time" and
+"Death," incites a workingmen's revolt. He
+inspires them with an absolute certainty of victory,
+although he can see that the revolt will
+be quelled and the rebels crushed. Events do
+not delay, in fact, to verify the prophecy of
+the monarch. Locked up, the leaders of the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[Pg 241]</a></span>
+revolt are condemned to death. The scene of
+judgment in the last act is one of the finest in
+the play. On one side are seated the sad and
+dull judges; on the other, the elegant public,
+which, with a feeling of fear and disgust, gazes
+at the unfortunates whom the King of Famine
+has robbed of almost all human semblance.
+And in this play, also, Death reaps a bountiful
+harvest.</p>
+
+<p>"Black Masks" is the study of a pathological
+case which Andreyev has dramatized
+after the fashion of de Maupassant's "The
+Horla."</p>
+
+<p>The Duke Lorenzo, young, noble, and the
+owner of a magnificent palace, is getting ready
+to receive his guests, to whom he is giving, on
+this evening, a masked ball. The masks arrive:
+they are all black, and all look alike. They all
+crowd around Lorenzo, whom this funereal sort
+of masquerade bothers extremely. He cannot
+find his wife among the guests. In fact, he
+does not recognize any of them until, to cap
+the climax, he meets his double, fights with him
+and dies, without being able to discern who is
+the real Lorenzo.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>At times, Andreyev tries to find the justification
+of life, and looks for it in mysticism. He
+then expounds a doctrine, according to which,
+truth is individual and perhaps conceived by
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[Pg 242]</a></span>
+each man, thanks to direct intuition. Such is
+the mystical truth which the author tries to
+affirm in "Anathema."</p>
+
+<p>The play opens with a scene between Anathema,
+the incarnation of Satan, and "He who
+guards the gates," behind which is the mystery
+of eternity. Anathema entreats the Guardian
+to give him access. But it is in vain that
+Anathema flatters and insults him; finally,
+Anathema declares that he will choose from
+among mankind a poor Jew, named David
+Leiser, will enrich him and, in order to prove
+the absolute nonsense of life, will make this man
+a living protestation against the work of Him
+who knows all. Disguised as the lawyer Nullius,
+Anathema comes down to earth and gives millions
+to David. The latter, the best of men,
+distributes his riches among the poor. But the
+beggars become more and more numerous, and
+soon David finds that he is as poor as he was
+before the visit of Anathema.</p>
+
+<p>In the meantime, the crowd of paupers, always
+increasing, ask more money from David;
+they demand miracles from this man, whose
+goodness has made him a saint, a superman, in
+their eyes. They bring him corpses and ask
+him to resuscitate them. David flees; the
+crowd follows and stones him to death. But,
+through his love for his fellow-men, David has
+acquired immortality, as "He who guards the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[Pg 243]</a></span>
+gates" tells Anathema, when, in the last act, the
+evil archangel, beaten, returns to lie on the
+threshold of the inconceivable mysterious.</p>
+
+<p>This admirable play, born of a philosophical
+conception which relates it to Goethe's
+"Faust," has been received with particular
+interest. Andreyev, in writing it, has come
+very near to solving the question of the meaning
+of life, and its justification. And, to the
+person who ponders a while over this work, it
+will appear that it is not Anathema who entreats
+"Him who guards the gates" to reveal
+the mystery, but it is Andreyev himself, who,
+carried away by the force of his genius, has
+thrown himself, as if at an invincible wall,
+against this pitiless guardian, the guardian of
+the solution of the enigma of life.</p>
+
+<p>While "Anathema" is an abstract character,
+whose form resembles more an algebraic
+formula than a living process of human relations,
+another of Andreyev's plays, "The Love
+of the Student," written a short time before
+"Anathema," gives us a little picture of customs,
+alert and painted with the touch of a
+master.</p>
+
+<p>Gloukortzev, a young student, falls in love
+with a young girl whom her mother forces to
+become a prostitute. Gloukortzev, young and
+inexperienced, has not the slightest suspicion,
+till the young girl herself reveals to him the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[Pg 244]</a></span>
+horrible truth. And, perhaps for the first time
+in his life, the gulf of necessity, toward which
+fate drives men, opens before him. He sees
+with horror that he cannot come to the rescue
+of the girl he loves, because he is poor himself.
+He cannot even buy her some food, when she
+tells him that she has eaten nothing since the
+night before. Placed before the absolute bare
+reality of life, Gloukortzev does not know what
+to do, and his comrades, good and upright fellows
+like himself, have not the means to help
+him.</p>
+
+<p>Several very successful scenes, in which the
+author blends the tragic with the comic, deserve,
+in this brief analysis, special attention.
+In the first act, there is a students' picnic at
+which Olga and Gloukortzev, still full of happiness,
+are present. The spectator is drawn by
+personal sympathy to the student Onoufry, a
+good fellow, always drunk, who makes fun of
+others and himself. We see him again in the
+second act, when Gloukortzev finds out about
+Olga's life. The poignant scene between the
+poor girl and her lover is heightened and softened
+by the arrival of the students, to whom
+Gloukortzev tells his sorrow. The last two acts
+take place in Olga's home. The mother brings
+her daughter a rich "client." And, in the
+next room, Gloukortzev suffers terribly, because
+he knows that his beloved is still leading an infamous
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[Pg 245]</a></span>
+life. In the same room, in the fourth
+act, we are present at an orgy, during which
+the student quarrels with an officer who has
+come to spend the night with Olga. But Onoufry,
+interfering in time, prevents an affray the
+issue of which would probably have been fatal.
+When the curtain falls, Gloukortzev, intoxicated,
+is weeping; at his side is Olga, also
+weeping, while Onoufry and the officer are singing:
+"The days of our lives are as short as
+the life of a wave."</p>
+
+<p>This drama, as well as most of Andreyev's
+plays, has been produced with great success
+in Russia and also in Europe.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[Pg 246]</a></span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="VII" id="VII"></a>VII<br />
+DMITRY MEREZHKOVSKY</h2>
+
+
+<p>Unlike Gorky, Andreyev, and Tchekoff,
+Merezhkovsky was brought up in the midst of
+comfort and elegance; he received a correct
+and careful education; fate was solicitous for
+him, in that it allowed him to develop that
+spirit of objective observation and calm meditation
+which permits a man to look down on the
+spectacle of life, and indulge in philosophical
+speculations very often divorced from reality.</p>
+
+<p>The son of an official of the imperial court,
+Merezhkovsky was born in St.&nbsp;Petersburg in
+1865. In this city he received his entire education,
+and here he gained the degree of bachelor
+of letters in 1886.</p>
+
+<p>He began his literary career with some poems
+which won for him a certain renown. In 1888,
+he published his first collection, and then a second
+in 1892, "The Symbols." At the same
+time, he published several translations from
+Greek and Latin authors.</p>
+
+<p>As he was a friend of the unfortunate Nadson,
+and a pupil of the humanitarian Pleshcheyev,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[Pg 247]</a></span>
+Merezhkovsky wrote at first under the influence
+of the liberal ideas of his early masters.
+His verses, always harmonious, and a little
+affected, soon belied this tendency and very
+frankly revealed his preferences. In the first
+collection of his poems, vibrant with generous
+ideas, he proclaimed that he wanted, above all,
+"the joy of life," and that a poet should not
+have any other cult than that of beauty.</p>
+
+<p>The poem called "Vera" was his first real
+success. The extreme simplicity of the plot&mdash;the
+unfortunate love of a young professor and
+of a young weakly girl who dies of consumption
+in the very flower of youth&mdash;and the
+very faithful reproduction of the intellectual
+life of Russia in 1880, give to this work the
+importance of a document in some ways almost
+historic.</p>
+
+<p>This poem is like a last tribute paid by the
+author to the humanitarian and realistic tendencies
+of Russian literature. Afterward,
+yielding to the inclinations of his nature and
+his taste for classical antiquity, Merezhkovsky
+insensibly changed. While acquiring, both in
+prose and in verse, an incontestable mastery,
+he could now look only for a cold and haughty
+beauty which was sufficient unto itself. The
+beginning was hard, but then all came easier.
+After critical articles on the trend of modern
+literature, he published "The Reprobate," a
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[Pg 248]</a></span>
+bold dithyrambic on ancient Greek philosophy.
+The poetry that followed was clearly Epicurean
+and in complete contradiction to the altruistic
+tendencies of the neo-Christian period, which
+found an arch enemy in Nietzsche, whose philosophy
+evidently influenced Merezhkovsky.
+However, this evolution did not have a very
+favorable effect on his poetry; it bordered on
+an art the clarity of which approached dryness,
+while at the same time its lack of tenderness
+reduced its symbolism to an artificial lyricism
+or to lifeless allegories.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Merezhkovsky works with untiring constancy
+to glorify antiquity. He has made excellent
+translations of Sophocles, Euripides, and of
+"Daphne and Chloe," that idyl of Longus that
+charmed both Goethe and Catherine II. He
+chooses the characters of his new poems from
+Greek and Latin mythology, and from themes
+inspired by an ardent love of paganism. He
+has written three prose works of considerable
+value: "The Death of the Gods," "The Resurrection
+of the Gods,"<a name="FNanchor_12" id="FNanchor_12"></a><a href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> and "Peter and
+Alexis." The general idea of all of these is
+the struggle between Greek polytheism and
+Christianity, between Christ and Antichrist, to
+use the author's expression, or, as Dostoyevsky
+used to say, between the "man-God" and the
+"God-man."
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[Pg 249]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>This struggle touches upon the gravest
+problem that can occupy the human mind, and
+continually puts before us this perplexing question:
+"Should the purpose of life be only the
+search for happiness and beauty, or must we
+admit, as a law of nature, the dogma of suffering
+and death?" The former of these conceptions
+found its supreme formula in Greek
+paganism. The ultimate expansion of the latter
+leads us, on the one hand, to faith,&mdash;to the
+religion of sacrifice, and, on the other hand,
+into the domain of philosophy,&mdash;to the destruction
+of the desire to live, as conceived by
+Schopenhauer. It is this struggle between the
+two principles of Hellenic philosophy and Christian
+faith that Merezhkovsky has tried to show
+us by fixing, in his novels, the historic moments
+when this struggle reached its greatest intensity;
+and by making appear in these periods
+the characters who, according to him, are most
+typical and representative. For this reason he
+has chosen to give his readers pictures of the
+three epochs which he considers as culminating:
+first, the last attempt made to restore the worship
+of the gods a short time after the Emperor
+Constantine had brought about their ruin; secondly,
+the Renaissance, which, in spite of triumphant
+Christianity, shows us a glorious renewal
+of the arts and sciences of antiquity;
+finally, the beginning of the 18th century, the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[Pg 250]</a></span>
+reign of Peter the Great, who tried to make a
+place for the gods of antiquity in Russia, where
+they were regarded with horror by the orthodox
+clergy.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>In his novel, "The Death of the Gods,"
+Merezhkovsky has painted the first of these
+epochs, the different phases of which revolve
+about the principal hero, the emperor Julian
+the Apostate. In "The Resurrection of the
+Gods" he develops, in sumptuous frescoes, the
+age of the Renaissance, personified by Leonardo
+da Vinci, who best typifies the character
+and tendencies of that time. In "Peter and
+Alexis," he retraces Russian life in the beginning
+of the 18th century, when it was dominated
+by the extraordinary character of Peter
+the Great.</p>
+
+<p>Julian the Apostate was one of the last idolaters
+of expiring paganism. But he could do
+nothing against the infatuation of the masses
+who were embracing the new religion, and it was
+in vain that he employed both so much kindness
+and so much violence in order to suppress Christianity.
+The reign of the gods was irrevocably
+ended. His soul filled with rage when he saw
+that he was powerless to change the course of
+events. He ended by undertaking a foolhardy
+expedition into Persia, thinking that that was
+the only way in which to defeat Christ, triumph
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[Pg 251]</a></span>
+over the "cursed" religion, and bring back
+victoriously the altars of the dead gods. But
+the Olympians on whom he had counted were of
+no service to him. According to the Christian
+legend, it was then, at the moment of death, that
+he cried out: "Galilean, thou hast conquered!"
+They say that he added: "Let the Galileans
+conquer, for the victory will be ours, ... later.
+The gods will come back ... we shall all be
+gods."</p>
+
+<p>This scene is one of the finest in the book.
+Surrounded by some faithful friends, Julian
+speaks, with his last breath, the words which
+one of these friends, the historian Ammianus
+Marcellinus, has recorded.</p>
+
+<p>"His voice was low but clear. His whole
+presence breathed forth intellectual triumph,
+and from his eyes there still gleamed invincible
+will. Ammianus's hand trembled as he wrote.
+But he knew that he was writing on the tables
+of history, and transmitting to future generations
+the words of a great emperor:</p>
+
+<p>"'Listen, friends; my hour is come, perhaps
+too soon. But you see that I, like an
+honest debtor, rejoice in giving back my life
+to Nature, and feel in my soul neither pain nor
+fear; nothing but cheerfulness, and a presentiment
+of eternal repose.... I have done my
+duty, and have nothing to repent. From the
+days when, like a hunted animal, I awaited
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[Pg 252]</a></span>
+death in the palace of Marcellum, in Cappadocia,
+up to the time when I assumed the purple
+of the Roman C&aelig;sars, I have tried to keep my
+soul spotless. If I have failed to do all that I
+desired, do not forget that our earthly deeds
+are in the hands of Fate. And now I thank the
+Eternal Ruler for having allowed me to die,
+not after a long sickness nor at the hands of
+an executioner, but on the battlefield, in full
+youth, with work ahead of me still to be done....
+And, my dear friends, tell both my friends
+and my enemies, how the Hellenes, endowed with
+divine wisdom, can die....'"</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Revenge for the dying emperor was long in
+coming. But now, after eleven centuries, the
+prophecy of Julian is accomplished: heroic antiquity,
+everlastingly young, arises from the
+grave. On all sides the gods are resurrected.
+Their marble effigies, so long buried, reappear.
+Both the powerful and the humble receive them
+with enthusiasm and rejoice at seeing them. It
+is an irresistible outburst which carries with it
+all classes of the Italian people. Like a wind-blown
+flame, Greek genius inspires a new life
+in the world. But, while a sweeter and more
+humane moral feeling tries to liberalize the
+church, the sombre voice of Savonarola, hardened
+by the terrible corruption of manners,
+mounts ever more menacingly:
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[Pg 253]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Italy! oh, Rome! I am going to deliver
+you up into the hands of a people who will
+efface you from among the nations. I see them,
+the enemies who descend like hungry tigers....
+Florence, what have you done? Do you
+want me to tell you? Your iniquity has heaped
+up the measure; prepare for a terrible plague!
+Oh, Lord, thou art witness that I tried to keep
+off this crumbling ruin from my brothers; but
+I can do no more, my strength is failing me. Do
+not sleep, oh, Lord! Dost Thou not see that
+we are becoming a shame to the world? How
+many times we have called to Thee! How many
+tears we have shed! Where is Thy providence?
+Where is Thy goodness? Where is Thy fidelity?
+Stretch forth Thy helping hand to us!"</p>
+
+<p>And thus the antagonism between the "God-man"
+and the "man-God" of Hellenic paganism
+expresses itself more strongly than ever before.</p>
+
+<p>The picture of the Renaissance that Merezhkovsky
+paints for us is very full, very rich, at
+times even a little overburdened with episodes
+and people. One constantly rubs shoulders
+with Leonardo da Vinci, the duchess Beatrice
+of Este, regent of Milan, the favorite Lucrecia
+Crivelli, the mysterious Gioconda, Charles VIII,
+Louis XII and Francis I, kings of France, and
+also with C&aelig;sar Borgia; we find here the
+preaching of Savonarola, the death of the pope
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[Pg 254]</a></span>
+Alexander VI (Borgia), Marshal Trivulce, the
+triumphal entry of the French into Milan, the
+diplomacy of Niccolo <a class="corr" name="TC_6" id="TC_6" title="and "> </a>Machiavelli. In
+fact, as has been said above, there are too many
+events and characters.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Two centuries go by and now we come to the
+third novel, "Peter and Alexis." The scene is
+in Russia, and the hero is Peter the Great, whom
+Merezhkovsky represents as a worshipper of
+things Olympian. He gives a magnificent description
+of the orgies held by the emperor in
+honor of Bacchus and Venus, especially the
+latter, whose statue he expressly ordered from
+Rome and installed in the Summer Garden at
+St.&nbsp;Petersburg.</p>
+
+<p>In a veritable fairyland of avenues, of yoke-elms
+and flower-beds in geometric designs, of
+enormous baskets filled with the choicest flowers,
+of straight canals, of ponds, of islets, of magnificent
+fountains, such a fairyland as Watteau
+would have dreamed of, there is a Venetian
+f&ecirc;te with all sorts of fire-works and illuminations;
+small crafts, adorned with flags, are filled
+with men in golden garments, girded with
+swords, and wearing three-cornered hats and
+buckled shoes; and the women are dressed in
+velvet and covered with jewels.</p>
+
+<p>The Tsar himself opens the case, and helps in
+placing the goddess on her pedestal. Again,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[Pg 255]</a></span>
+as two hundred years before in Florence, the
+resurrected goddess, Aphrodite, emerges from
+the grave. The cords stretch, the pulleys creak;
+she rises higher and higher. Peter is almost
+of the same superhuman height as the statue.
+And his face, close to that of Aphrodite, remains
+noble: the man is worthy of the goddess....</p>
+
+<p>"The Immortal One&mdash;Aphrodite&mdash;was
+still the same that she was on the hillside in
+Florence; she had progressed further and
+further, from age to age, from people to people,
+halting nowhere, till in her victorious march she
+had reached the very ends of the earth, the
+Hyperborean Scythia, beyond which there is
+naught but darkness and death...."</p>
+
+<p>But what miseries this magnificent fa&ccedil;ade
+conceals! Not far off, on an island in the river,
+one can see people who are watching the f&ecirc;te
+and who think that they are present at one of
+the spectacles forerunning doomsday. Among
+the crowd are seen the "raskolnik" Cornelius,
+old Vitalya of the "runners," deserters, the
+merchant Ivanov, the clerk Dokounine ...
+and several others. In the few remarks that
+they exchange, we can see that, for them, Peter
+the Great is the Antichrist, "the beast announced
+by the Gospel."</p>
+
+<p>Such is the tie that binds Peter the Great,
+Julian, and Leonardo together. But this tie is
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[Pg 256]</a></span>
+weakened by the fact that Peter, an essentially
+practical and utilitarian genius, was not the
+man to become inspired with Hellenic poetry,
+and if the author introduces the Tsar into the
+society of Julian the Apostate and of Leonardo
+da Vinci, it is because Peter the Great was one
+of those indefatigable strugglers, who, to attain
+their ends, put themselves above the obligations
+of ordinary morality, one of those supermen,
+who hesitate at nothing in satisfying the instincts
+of their egoisms, of their dominating
+wills. In fact, the heroes of Merezhkovsky's
+novels all belong in the category of the Nietzschean
+type of superman, which explains their
+philosophical relationship and the sort of trilogy
+which these three novels form. Thus,
+Julian the Apostate, who tried in vain during
+his life to make history repeat itself, by transplanting
+pagan traditions into a plot which had
+become unfit to receive them, and who died in
+the effort to preserve a faith&mdash;does not this
+man, then, incarnate that implacable pursuit
+of the "integral personality" so extolled by
+Nietzsche? Leonardo da Vinci, that great universal
+and keen mind, who gave himself over
+to all the impulses of his creative genius, not
+caring whether the impulses are worthy or
+harmful, appears as a luminous manifestation
+of that state of the soul "beyond good and
+bad" which characterizes the superman. And
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[Pg 257]</a></span>
+is not Peter the Great also a veritable superman;
+a man who, through his iron will, upset all the
+ancient institutions of aged Russia, and who
+did not even prevent the assassination of his
+son Alexis, inasmuch as he thought that it was
+for the good of his country?</p>
+
+<p>At all events, the interest and value of "Peter
+and Alexis" does not rest in its philosophic
+ideas and in the Nietzschean obsession, but
+rather in the art with which Merezhkovsky
+faithfully depicts the psychology of his heroes.
+The successive phases of this terrible tragedy
+lead up to a striking climax, and set off, one
+against the other, temperaments so entirely opposed
+that the reciprocal tenderness of the
+father and son is transformed finally into suspicion
+and hate, and the father resolves to sacrifice
+the life of his son to what appears to him
+to be the right of the State. The novel, although
+a little overburdened with details, is an
+excellent analysis of the customs of the Russia
+of former times.</p>
+
+<p>The source of the struggle between Peter
+and Alexis was known. Peter represented the
+West and the new ideas, while Alexis represented
+the Russia of old, rebellious to innovations
+which she considered dangerous. The author
+thus symbolizes the eternal conflict between the
+past and the future. He has analyzed with
+consummate art the characters of his two heroes.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[Pg 258]</a></span>
+Peter is a man full of contrasts; he is, like
+many Russians, "a brute and a child," by turns
+violent and gentle, knavish and simple, cruel
+and kind, practical and mystical, proud and
+modest. Possessed of a prodigious activity, he
+conceives tremendous projects which he immediately
+wants to put into execution, inspecting
+everything, verifying everything, finding
+no care beneath his dignity, talking to the
+workingmen as if he were one of them, not
+making long speeches, and fiercely, with cries
+of rage, fighting dishonest contractors and
+tradesmen.</p>
+
+<p>Set over against this irascible father, endowed
+with herculean strength, the Tsarevich
+Alexis, thin, pale, and delicate, makes a sad
+figure. Most historians, following the example
+of Voltaire, have represented this prince as a
+narrow-minded person, a victim of the bigoted
+and intolerant education of the clergy.
+Merezhkovsky, a more discreet psychologist,
+does not rely on these superficial data, but
+shades the portrait admirably. He makes
+Alexis an intelligent man, not like his father,
+but a man with a comprehensive, subtle spirit.
+He probably was crushed by the powerful individuality
+of his father. As he is closely in
+touch with the people, and knows their aspirations,
+Alexis judges the work of his father with
+delicate insight: "My father hopes," he says,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[Pg 259]</a></span>
+"to do everything in a great hurry. One, two,
+three, and the affair is settled. He does not
+realize that things done hastily do not
+last...."</p>
+
+<p>While Peter is aware of his unpopularity,
+his son is loved by the townspeople, the peasants,
+and the clergy. They say that, "Alexis
+is a man who seeks God and who does not want
+to upset everything: he is the hope of the
+nation."</p>
+
+<p>What the author has best shown in this novel
+is the degree to which the high society of this
+time was, under its exterior gorgeousness, barbarous
+and vulgar. A German girl, maid-of-honor
+to the wife of Alexis, defines it in the
+following way: "Brandy, blood, coarseness. It
+is hard to say which is most prominent,&mdash;perhaps
+it is coarseness." The boyards<a name="FNanchor_13" id="FNanchor_13"></a><a href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> she describes
+as: "Impudent savages, baptized bears,
+who only make themselves more ridiculous when
+they try to ape the Europeans."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>As is evident, these three works of Merezhkovsky
+belong to the "genre" of the historical
+and philosophical novel which demands, besides
+the power to call up past ages, a careful education
+and the gift of clear-sightedness. And the
+novelist completely fulfills these requirements.
+He knows his subject, he studies all the necessary
+documents with the greatest care and follows
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[Pg 260]</a></span>
+every story to its source; finally, before
+taking up his pen, he visits the countries and
+the cities in which the stories take place. Thus,
+in order better to understand Leonardo da
+Vinci, in order to live his life, the author of
+"The Resurrection of the Gods" traversed
+Italy and France from one end to the other, in
+the same way that he had traveled all over
+Greece so that he could give us a more life-like
+Julian. With the same care, he spent a long
+time reading Russian historical documents in
+order to present the reader with a better picture
+of the customs of the time of Peter the Great.
+The result is a series of historical pictures, almost
+perfect in their accuracy. If Merezhkovsky
+had no other merit than this faithful
+portrayal of the past, his novels even then
+would be read with interest and pleasure.</p>
+
+<p>Some critics have remarked that the most
+glaring defect in his books lies in their construction.
+His novels often disregard the laws
+relating to this sort of literature, which demand
+the clever grouping of the characters and events
+around a principal hero. It is true that this
+unity and the sense of proportion absolutely
+necessary for any sort of harmony are not to
+be found in his works. The details predominate
+to the detriment of important facts; the people
+of secondary importance are sometimes drawn
+better than the heroes themselves, whose adventures
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[Pg 261]</a></span>
+are entirely unconnected. There is a
+series of jumps from one situation to another,
+with gaps and interruptions of considerable
+length, which break the chain of events. It is
+for this reason that, instead of seeing a historical
+fresco, we see a whole gallery of sketches,
+executed with subtle artistry, but insufficiently
+connected with the main action of the drama.</p>
+
+<p>These observations apply especially to the
+first attempt of the young author: "The Death
+of the Gods"; "The Resurrection of the
+Gods" and "Peter and Alexis" are more skilfully
+composed. They indicate a stronger
+tendency towards unity; one feels that an infinitely
+firmer and more experienced brush has
+been used; the colors are richer and they do
+not suffer from that monotony of effect and
+of color so noticeable in "The Death of the
+Gods," where the author too often uses the same
+devices. As to the characters of Leonardo da
+Vinci and Peter the Great, they are very carefully
+worked out, and the events in the lives
+of the Italian master and the Russian Tsar are
+narrated with magnificent psychological analysis,
+which forces the reader to sympathize with
+the heroes even more than he would naturally.</p>
+
+<p>Merezhkovsky has also been accused of being
+over-educated. The innumerable documents
+presented do not bear closely enough upon the
+action, the result being that many of his pages
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[Pg 262]</a></span>
+read like mere annals. They interest the reader
+but do not move him. This is one reason why
+some critics, essentially different in spirit from
+Merezhkovsky, have believed themselves right
+in denying that he has any talent. But this
+accusation falls of itself in the face of the
+power of the inspiration which pervades his
+work, and the dramatic sense which he displays
+in setting forth the events and personages. It
+is impossible, for instance, to read without the
+deepest emotion the story of the last days of
+Leonardo da Vinci, where the author establishes
+the tragic contrast between the outward signs
+of glory, the superficial honors with which this
+genius is overwhelmed, and the moral solitude
+which afflicts him to the very end, which comes
+when he is among people who are strangers to
+his soul. All the childhood recollections of this
+same Da Vinci are full of charm. There is a
+veritable master spirit shown in the chapters
+in which the author portrays for us the enigmatic
+and seductive Mona Lisa. Finally, he
+has given us a relief of rare energy in the terrible
+struggle between Peter and Alexis, between
+the man of iron whom nothing can affect
+and his son, kind and timid, who, while having
+a mortal fear of his father, still loves him. As
+to certain pages, like those which describe the
+strange inner life of the Tsarina Marfa Matveyevna,
+"living by the light of candles, in an
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[Pg 263]</a></span>
+old house savouring of the oil of night-lamps,
+the dust and the putrification of centuries,"
+these pages are a veritable tour de force if only
+because of the plasticity and richness of the
+author's vocabulary.</p>
+
+<p>Finally, what tragic horror there is in the
+supreme struggle where the emperor, the assassin
+of his son, sees his isolation and feels his
+weakness, "like a large deer gnawed at by flies
+and lice until the blood runs!"</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Besides his novels Merezhkovsky has published
+several essays, on Pushkin, Maykov,
+Korolenko, Calderon, the French neo-romanticists,
+Ibsen and others.... The most important
+of all are: "The Causes of the Decadence
+of Modern Russian Literature" and
+"Tolstoy and Dostoyevsky." He reveals here
+a fine and penetrating power of observation,
+which, however, is often obscured because of
+his obsession by Nietzschean ideas. Moreover,
+he does not hide his antipathy to the people
+whose literary tastes and ideas differ from his.
+From this characteristic comes strange exaggerations
+and a somewhat limited appreciation
+of men and events. An example of this, for
+instance, is the impression that he gives in his
+study of the causes of the decadence of modern
+Russian literature, the subject of which imposes
+upon the author the double task of looking
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[Pg 264]</a></span>
+up the causes of this decadence and also
+proving that it exists. He has not succeeded.
+In fact, it appears that this idea of decadence
+exists only in the minds of the author and of a
+small circle of writers who have the same ideas
+about the mission of literature. Merezhkovsky
+is absolutely right in all that he says about the
+fact that Russian writers live solitary, deprived
+of that precious excitation which is felt when
+one is in contact with original and different
+temperaments; but if you add to this, as he
+has done, the statement that Russia does not
+possess a literature worthy of the name, you
+go too far. Without being a great scholar, it
+is easy to perceive that our contemporary Russian
+authors are legitimate sons of Turgenev,
+Dostoyevsky and Tolstoy, and grandsons of
+Gogol, who himself is closely related to Pushkin.
+A democratic and humanitarian realism&mdash;widely
+separated from the Nietzscheism of
+Merezhkovsky&mdash;strongly characterizes the
+Russian lineage.</p>
+
+<p>In his book on Tolstoy and Dostoyevsky he
+spends a long time in differentiating between
+the artistic intuition of these two great masters,
+who are, according to him, the most profound
+expression of the popular and higher element
+of Russian culture.</p>
+
+<p>What strikes him first in Tolstoy is the insistence
+with which he describes "animal man."
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[Pg 265]</a></span>
+In a kind of "leitmotiv" Merezhkovsky has
+shown us the Tolstoyan characters individualized
+by very particular corporal signs.
+"Tolstoy," he says, "has, to the very highest
+degree, the gift of clairvoyance of the flesh;
+even when dead, the flesh has a tongue." He
+is the subtle painter of all sensations and he is
+a master in this domain. But his art diminishes
+singularly, and even disappears when he tries
+to analyze the soul within the flesh. Dostoyevsky,
+on the other hand, triumphs in his dialogue;
+one sees his characters because one
+shares all their sadness, their passions, their
+intelligence, and their sensibility. Dostoyevsky
+is the painter of the depths of the human soul,
+which he portrays with almost supernatural
+acuteness. And, as Tolstoy is "the seer of the
+flesh," so is Dostoyevsky "the seer of the soul."</p>
+
+<p>Having established this difference in principle,
+Merezhkovsky, by constant deduction,
+concludes, in consonance with his favorite idea,
+that Tolstoy personifies "the pagan spirit" at
+its height, while Dostoyevsky represents "the
+Christian spirit." There is a great deal of fine
+drawn reasoning in all of this, some very original
+ideas, but a great many paradoxes. Even
+the very personality of Tolstoy, the analysis
+of which occupies a large part of the book, is
+belittled in the hands of Merezhkovsky. Instead
+of a noble character, one sees a very vain
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[Pg 266]</a></span>
+person, preoccupied only with himself. It is in
+this simple way that Merezhkovsky explains the
+moral evolution which led Tolstoy to make those
+long and sad studies of a kind of life compatible
+with the true good of humanity, and forced him
+to them by "the anguish of the black mystery
+of death" which, having got possession of the
+author of "Anna <a class="corr" name="TC_7" id="TC_7" title="Karenin">Karenina</a>" in his sixtieth year,
+in the midst of a life of prosperity, made him
+hate his fortune and his comfort, which formerly
+had been so dear to him. In the refusal of
+Tolstoy to "bow to the great authorities of
+the literary world, such as &AElig;schylus, Dante,
+and Shakespeare," a refusal which is only the
+logical consequence of his ideas on the principle
+and purpose of art, Merezhkovsky can
+only see a lack of general culture. Finally,
+the sort of life he led toward the end of his
+days came only "from the desire to know and
+taste the pleasure of simplicity in all its subtleties."
+"The admirable Epicurus," says Merezhkovsky,
+"that joyous sage, who, in the very
+center of Athens, cultivated with his own hands
+a tiny garden, and taught men not to believe
+in any human or divine chimeras, but to be contented
+with the simple happiness that can be
+given by a single sunbeam, a flower, a sup of
+water from an earthen cup, or the summer
+time, would recognize in Tolstoy his faithful
+disciple, the only one, perhaps, who survives in
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[Pg 267]</a></span>
+this barbaric silence, where American comfort,
+a mixture of effeminacy and indigence, has
+made one forget the real purpose of life...."</p>
+
+<p>In writing these lines, Merezhkovsky must
+have forgotten that Tolstoy, in proclaiming his
+ideas on religion and humanity, prepared himself,
+not for Epicurean pleasures, but for seclusion
+in one of the terrible dungeons of a
+Russian monastery (now in disuse) under the
+persecutions of a temporal and secular authority,
+and it was not his fault that, by a sort of
+miracle, he escaped this fate.</p>
+
+<p>Dostoyevsky's life is the exact opposite of
+Tolstoy's. The story of Dostoyevsky's terrible
+existence is probably known. Born in an alms-house,
+he never ceased to suffer, and to love....
+It is hard to think of two people more
+absolutely different than Tolstoy and Dostoyevsky.
+But Merezhkovsky loves violent contrasts;
+in the sharp difference between these
+two writers, he sees the permanent union of
+two controlling ideas of the Russian Renaissance
+and the imminence of a final sympathy,
+symbolic of a concluding harmony.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>We have, by turns, studied Merezhkovsky
+as a poet, a novelist, and a critic. The greatest
+merit of his literary personality rests in
+the perfect art with which he calls up the past.</p>
+
+<p>But Merezhkovsky is not only an artist. As
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[Pg 268]</a></span>
+we have noted, his novels have, as their end,
+one of the greatest contradictions of human
+life,&mdash;the synthesis of the voluptuous representations
+of the religion of classical antiquity
+and the moral principles of Christianity. It
+is, therefore, natural to ask whether he has in
+any way approached his goal and just where
+he sees the salvation of humanity, the present
+situation of which seems to him desperate. The
+answer to this question can be found in his book,
+"Ham Triumphant."<a name="FNanchor_14" id="FNanchor_14"></a><a href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> Our study of Merezhkovsky's
+literary character would be incomplete
+if the ideas of this book were not set
+forth.</p>
+
+<p>According to Merezhkovsky, the present evil
+in the world consists entirely in the moral void
+which results from the disappearance of the
+Christian ideal from the soul. The loss of this
+ideal was inevitable, and even productive of
+good, because it had been so mutilated and deformed
+by the Church, that Christian religion
+became a symbol of the reaction, and its God
+synonymous with executioner. Humanity will
+rid itself of Christianity. But nothing will
+replace it, unless it be the philosophy of positivism,
+a sort of material religion of the appetites
+and the senses, which gives no answer to
+our anguish and our mystical instincts. This
+philosophy presided at the formation of a
+miserable society, an egotistical and mediocre
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[Pg 269]</a></span>
+bourgeoisie, who have no spiritual tendencies,
+and are incapable of sacrificing themselves to
+any ideal other than that of money.</p>
+
+<p>John Stuart Mill said that the bourgeoisie
+would transform Europe into a
+China; the Russian publicist Hertzen, frightened
+by the victories of socialism, in 1848,
+foresaw the end of European civilization,
+drowned in a wave of blood. Merezhkovsky affirms
+that the Chinese and the Japanese, being
+the most complete and the most persevering
+representatives of this "terrestrial" religion,
+will without fail conquer Europe, where positivism
+still bears some traces of Christian romanticism.
+"The Chinese," he says, "are perfect
+positivists, while the Europeans are not yet
+perfect Chinese, and, in this respect, the Americans
+are perfect Europeans." Where is one
+to look for safety against this heavy load on
+the understanding and this future humiliation?
+In socialism, one says. But socialism, if it
+is not yet bourgeois, is almost so. "The
+starved proletariat and the rejected bourgeois
+have different economic opinions," says
+Merezhkovsky, "but their ideal is the same,
+the pursuit of happiness." As it is but a step
+from the prudence of the bourgeois to the
+exasperated state of the starved proletariat,
+this pursuit can lead to nothing else but international
+atrocities of militarism and chauvinism.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[Pg 270]</a></span>
+Progress having become the sole ambition
+of the cultivated barbarians, satiety became
+their religion, and the only hope of escaping
+from this barbarism was to adopt the
+religion of love, founded by Jesus. Jesus said
+to those who were treated with violence, and
+who, in turn, had used violence in trying to free
+themselves: "Truth (love) will set you free."
+These words, which identify truth with love,
+contain in themselves the profoundest social
+and personal morality. They inspired the first
+martyrs of Christianity; but in time they were
+forgotten by the Church. Succumbing to the
+"diabolical seduction of power," religion itself
+became a power, an autocracy; people submitted
+to this power, and thus the Byzantine
+and Russian orthodoxy came into existence. In
+this manner, the morals of the government, antichristian
+in essence, became the doctrine of
+Christianity; and the particular morals of the
+latter became transformed into a mysterious
+gospel of life, relegating its aspirations to an
+existence beyond the tomb. Now there is nothing
+for Christianity to do but return to its first
+sources and develop the principles of universal
+religion found there. One should no longer be
+concerned with heavenly and personal advantage,
+but with earthly affairs and social conditions;
+instead of being conquered by the government
+one should conquer it, permeate it with
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[Pg 271]</a></span>
+one's spirit, and thus realize the prophecy in
+the Apocalypse of the millennium of the saints
+on earth, and destroy the forms of the power of
+the government, the laws, and the empire.
+Such a renewal of Christianity demands an energetic
+struggle, self-forgetfulness, and martyrs.
+But where is one to find the necessary
+forces? Merezhkovsky does not see them in the
+States of western Europe, because the "intellectuals"
+there are antichristians and are
+congealed in their bourgeois positivism.
+"Above these Christian states, above these old
+Gothic stores," says Merezhkovsky, "rises,
+here and there, a Protestant wooden cross, half
+rotted; or a Catholic one of iron, all rusted,
+and no one pays any attention to them." What
+purity and nobility remains can manifest itself
+only in certain scattered individuals, in such
+great hermits as Nietzsche, Ibsen, Flaubert,
+Goethe in his old age; they are like deep artesian
+wells which prove that, beneath the arid
+earth there is still some flowing water. There
+is nothing of this sort in Russia. Although
+backward from the point of view of progress
+and politics, this country produced the "intellectuals"
+who form something unique in our
+present civilization: in essence, they are anti-bourgeois.
+"The positivism which the Russian
+'intellectuals' have adopted by way of
+imitation is rejected by their feelings, their
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[Pg 272]</a></span>
+conscience, and their will; it is an artificial
+monument that is set up in their minds only."</p>
+
+<p>Merezhkovsky, then, has reason for thinking
+that the social renovation of Christianity will
+be accomplished in Russia. And as this work
+is the especial concern of the clergy, Merezhkovsky,
+who several years ago was present at
+a meeting where the Russian priests affirmed
+their desire to free themselves from the yoke
+of their religious and secular chiefs, proposed
+to accomplish this great mission. "It is indispensable,"
+he says, "for the Russian Church
+to untie the knots that bind it to the decayed
+forms of the autocracy, to unite itself to the
+'intellectuals' and to take an active part in the
+struggle for the great political and social deliverance
+of Russia. The Church should not
+think of its own liberty at present, but of martyrdom."</p>
+
+<p>We will not criticize these, perhaps illusory,
+ideas and previsions of Merezhkovsky. Russian
+life has become an enigma; who knows to
+what moral crisis the social conscience may be
+led by the present political crisis? Merezhkovsky's
+Olympian &aelig;sthetics have made him a foreigner
+in Russian literature. Yet as soon as
+the tempest burst forth, certain familiar traits
+showed themselves, traits common to the best
+Russian writers and to the general spirit of
+Russian literature. In his absolute, and even
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[Pg 273]</a></span>
+exaggerated, distaste for "bourgeoisisme," and
+his desire for an ideal, he is a legitimate son of
+this literature. The nature of his ideas is in
+harmony with those we have already found in
+Tolstoy, with his gospel of Christian anarchism,
+in Dostoyevsky, with his ideas about the "omni-humanity"
+of the Russian spirit, in Vladimir
+Solovyev, with his idea of universal theocracy,
+and, finally, in Chadayev, one of the most remarkable
+thinkers of the first half of the last
+century, who, although now almost forgotten,
+was the real source of all these ideas.</p>
+
+<p>Thus in the conception of socialized Christianity
+Merezhkovsky seeks the end of the great
+antithesis between the "God-man" and the
+"man-God," between Christ and Bacchus, an
+antithesis which makes the generality of men
+often conduct themselves after the manner of
+that German petty kingdom, of which Heine
+speaks, where the people, while venerating
+Christ, do not forget to honor Bacchus by
+abundant libations. Merezhkovsky's idea
+ought to appear in the form of a synthetic
+fusion of the joyous religion of Greece and
+the religion of love, as taught by Jesus.<a name="FNanchor_15" id="FNanchor_15"></a><a href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a></p>
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[Pg 274]</a></span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="VIII" id="VIII"></a>VIII<br />
+ALEXANDER KUPRIN</h2>
+
+
+<p>The work of Kuprin contrasts strongly with
+the writings of his predecessors and of his
+contemporaries. It would be useless to try to
+connect him with Dostoyevsky, Tolstoy, or
+Gorky. This does not mean that he came under
+foreign influence. As a matter of fact his
+work clearly shows the imprint of Slavic genius
+and receives its richness from qualities which
+have always appeared in Slavic literature,&mdash;sincerity
+and accuracy of observation, a passionate
+love for all manifestations of modern
+life, lyrical fullness, and power of suggestion.
+But Alexander Kuprin does not depict adepts
+of the "religion of pity," nor the psychology
+of the abnormal, the "pathological case," so
+curious and rare, and so dear to the author of
+"Crime and Punishment."<a name="FNanchor_16" id="FNanchor_16"></a><a href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a> He does not reincarnate
+the sad genius of Korolenko. He is
+equally separated from Tolstoy and Gorky.
+He is himself. That is to say, he is an exquisite
+story-teller, profound and touching,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[Pg 275]</a></span>
+who imposes neither thesis nor moral upon his
+reader, but paints life as it appears to him,&mdash;not
+seen through the medium of a temperament,&mdash;but
+in all sincerity, without too much ardor
+or too much indifference.</p>
+
+<p>This author was born in 1870. After having
+attended the Cadet School and the Military
+School at Moscow, he entered military service
+as an active lieutenant in 1890, but resigned
+seven years later in order to devote his time to
+literature. Before this, he had published several
+stories.</p>
+
+<p>In spite of the undeniable talent which is
+found in his earlier writings, the public hesitated
+to praise him. Certain lucky circumstances,
+however, favored the beginning of his
+work. One of his relatives, at the start, offered
+him a position on a magazine which she
+was then editing. This was a wonderful opportunity
+for him, for usually at his age the
+more gifted writers are still groping around
+for light. But merit alone seldom suffices to
+form the basis of literary fame. Scandal is
+often necessary to consecrate, as one might say,
+a growing reputation. Kuprin, without seeking
+to start a scandal, did so, in spite of himself,
+when he published "The Duel," a study of
+military life, in which he showed the most absolute
+impartiality.</p>
+
+<p>To his great surprise, the public accepted
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[Pg 276]</a></span>
+this book as a new indictment of the army. It
+was because the Manchurian campaign was so
+recent. Every portrayal of military life
+passed as a violent satire on the corrupt and
+disgraced army. Kuprin in vain tried to
+change this unexpected judgment. As he was
+an ardent partisan of the theory of "art for
+art's sake," he could not allow a purpose to be
+attributed to his work. He had only faithfully
+portrayed what he had witnessed in the course
+of his brief career. But in order to strengthen
+his defence, he alleged reasons which could not
+be understood in an altruistic country. Besides,
+several of his stories, such as, "The
+Wedding," full of the dissolute life led by the
+officers in their garrisons, "The Inquest,"
+where the author shows the violences to which
+the Russian soldiers are subjected, "The
+Night's Lodging," and "The Ensign of
+the Army," which stigmatize certain lace-bedecked
+"Lovelaces," only help to nullify his
+best arguments. In short, his fame spread
+rapidly and the young writer had to accept the
+renown that became his.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>From that time on Kuprin's road was
+mapped out. According to the dictates of his
+fancy he depicts thousands of the ever-changing,
+different aspects of life. He is equally
+impelled to write about petty tradesmen, actors,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[Pg 277]</a></span>
+acrobats, and sinners in the Crimea. To the
+accomplishment of his task, he brings an over-minute
+and cruel observation. With the genius
+that is his he dwells on certain important, carefully
+selected traits of people who live intensely.</p>
+
+<p>In "The Disciple," we see a young sharper
+on a boat on the Volga. He has the tired eyes
+of a precocious old man, stubby fingers, and
+the hands of a murderer alert to strike the
+fatal blow. He has just fleeced a party of
+travelers, and he discovers, in a savory conversation
+with an old cheat, who has found him
+out, that his soul is being consumed with insatiable
+desires. And as the old sharper admires
+the "savoir-faire" of his young friend,
+the latter observes, not without scorn, that they
+belong to two very different categories of
+sharpers. "Among you old fellows," he sneers,
+"there was romanticism. You loved beautiful
+women, champagne, music and the song of the
+tziganes.... We, however, we others are
+tired of everything. Fear and debauch are
+equally unknown to us...."</p>
+
+<p>After the sharper we have the spy in "Captain
+Rybnikov." He passes for a Siberian, and
+says that he has been wounded in the Russo-Japanese
+war. He goes out into society a
+great deal, and is most commonly seen in the
+military offices and in the best "salons" of St.&nbsp;Petersburg.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[Pg 278]</a></span>
+One night, when he is asleep at a
+courtesan's house, he mutters the war-cry of
+Japan: "Banzai! Banzai!" The courtesan denounces
+him to a policeman who happens to be
+there, and the pseudo-captain, who is no other
+than a colonel in the Japanese army, is arrested.</p>
+
+<p>Before leaving the military world, let us
+analyze "The Delirium." Captain Markov
+has been ordered by the government to suppress
+the revolution in certain provinces. Disgusted
+with the duty of daily executioner, the
+officer frets himself into a high fever. A non-commissioned
+officer enters to ask him to decide
+the fate of three men who have been arrested
+the previous night, one of whom is an old man
+with a peaceful and strangely beautiful face.
+The sergeant knows that they ought to be shot,
+but these executions are so repulsive to him,
+that he is anxious to have the sentence of death
+confirmed by his chief, who seems to him to have
+the sole responsibility.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't want you ever again to ask me
+such a question," cries Markov, who has guessed
+the intention of his subordinate. "You know
+what you ought to do." And he dismisses him.
+But the soldier remains motionless.</p>
+
+<p>"What else do you want?" asks the captain.</p>
+
+<p>"The men," answers the stubborn soldier,
+"are anxious to know what to do with the ...
+old ... man...."
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[Pg 279]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Get out of here!" the officer roars, exasperated.
+"Do you understand?"</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, captain. But as to-day is December
+31, allow me to offer you my best wishes
+for a happy New Year."</p>
+
+<p>"Thank you, my friend," replies Markov in
+a voice which has suddenly become soft.</p>
+
+<p>During the night the captain begins to rave.
+The old man whom he has just condemned to
+death appears and speaks to him. He says
+that his name is Cain, and confesses the murder
+of his brother. Cursed by God, he wanders
+disconsolately through the centuries, followed
+by the groaning of his victim.</p>
+
+<p>Just before dawn the sergeant awakens
+Markov.</p>
+
+<p>"What about those three men?" asks the
+captain eagerly.</p>
+
+<p>"Shot, captain!"</p>
+
+<p>"And the old man? The old man?...
+what have you done with him?"</p>
+
+<p>"We shot him along with the others, captain."</p>
+
+<p>The next day Captain Markov asks for his
+discharge, having decided to leave the army for
+good.</p>
+
+<p>This story, which is one of the most powerful
+in Russian literature, would have been enough
+to bring the young writer renown, even if he
+had never written anything else. But his work,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[Pg 280]</a></span>
+which is already imposing in amount, abounds
+in pages of great merit, and especially in well-constructed,
+brief, tragic stories.</p>
+
+<p>Under this class should be mentioned
+"Humble People," a short story, the scene of
+which is laid in the extreme north. It is the
+story of a close friendship between a nurse in
+a dispensary and a school-teacher.</p>
+
+<p>Snowed in by a terrible winter&mdash;a winter of
+seven months&mdash;these two friends find in their
+daily meetings the only pleasure that can make
+their enforced solitude easier for them. However,
+in spite of their mutual friendship, they
+often find their lot hard to endure. And they
+continually quarrel, only to become reconciled
+almost immediately. But now an unexpected
+event comes to break the monotony of their
+existence. They are invited to a dance, given
+by the priest of the neighboring village, and
+there they fall in love with two charming young
+girls, who, they are happy to find, are not indifferent
+to them. Once at home, they bestow
+lavish praises on their new friends. With the
+touching devotion of simple and starved hearts
+they speak about them as if the young girls already
+were theirs.</p>
+
+<p>"Mine has eyes of velvet," says the one.</p>
+
+<p>"And mine has hair of pure gold," replies
+the other.</p>
+
+<p>Gradually, however, their recollections grow
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[Pg 281]</a></span>
+weaker, and fade, just as flowers do. Their
+sad life would have begun again if the spring
+had not come, and with it brought deliverance.
+The two friends, full of new sprightliness, get
+up a fishing party one day. A foolish accident
+makes them both fall into the river, and they
+are drowned.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>"The End of a Story," which we are about
+to analyze, deserves, as does "Humble People,"
+a special place in the work of Kuprin. It is a
+little masterpiece of graceful emotion.</p>
+
+<p>Kotik, a child of seven, and the son of a
+celebrated painter, teases his father to tell
+him a story. The father racks his memory.
+He has told so many that his fount is almost
+dry.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly an idea comes to him. Is not his
+own life a tender, melancholy, and charming
+story? It is not a long time, twelve years at
+the most, since he was a poor, obscure painter,
+neglected by his masters and tormented by the
+miseries of his life. Discouraged, he used continually
+to curse the hour in which he chose to
+devote himself to art. One day, a young girl,
+believing in his talent, gave him her hand and
+comforted him with her tenderness and angelic
+goodness. And love had triumphed.</p>
+
+<p>To-day his name is celebrated among the
+most famous, and his paintings adorn the galleries
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[Pg 282]</a></span>
+of kings and emperors. The plot of the
+story is ready.</p>
+
+<p>"Listen," says the father to his son. "There
+was once upon a time a king who, feeling that
+he was going to die, gathered his many children
+about him and said to them: 'I will leave
+my kingdom to that one of you who can enter
+a marble palace situated in a very dense forest,
+and there light his torch from the sacred fire
+which always burns there. The forest is full
+of wild beasts and venomous serpents. The
+palace is guarded by three lions: Envy, Poverty,
+and Doubt.'</p>
+
+<p>"The young people set out on the road.
+But, while the older ones search outside of the
+forest for a road that is not beset with dangers,
+the youngest courageously starts on the regular
+path. He there is exposed to many dangers
+and temptations. Already, his strength failing,
+he feels that he is almost on the point of
+succumbing, when a fairy appears and stretches
+forth her hand to him. The young man blesses
+this providential aid. The fairy brings back
+his courage and leads him to the palace."</p>
+
+<p>Near them on the terrace, concealed by some
+plants, there sat a young and beautiful woman
+who was eagerly listening to the story. She
+was Kotik's mother, the fairy of the story, and
+the favorite pupil of the painter. Some of her
+paintings had already made a sensation.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[Pg 283]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>The story ended, the father led the child to
+his room and with the help of his nurse undressed
+him and put him to bed.</p>
+
+<p>"He had started back towards the terrace,
+when suddenly two arms embraced his
+neck, while two sweet lips pressed against
+his.</p>
+
+<p>"The story was finished."</p>
+
+<p>With these words the story really ends.</p>
+
+<p>Kuprin shows the same grace and the same
+delicate emotion in his recent story, "The Garnet
+Necklace," a tale which is analogous to the
+legend of the troubadour Geoffrey Rudel, which
+has been made into a play by Rostand in his
+"Princesse Lointaine."</p>
+
+<p>Geltov, a Russian petty official, loves the
+beautiful Princess She&iuml;ne with a desperate love.
+After long hesitation he decides to send her a
+garnet necklace, with a tender and respectful
+note enclosed. Alas! his gift is returned to
+him and the husband of the princess angrily
+threatens the na&iuml;ve lover. The latter has not
+the strength to face the situation, and commits
+suicide. But before dying he writes to the
+princess:&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>"I saw you for the first time eight years ago
+in a theatre, and since that time I have loved
+you with boundless passion. It is not my fault,
+Princess, that God has sent this great happiness
+to me.... My life for the last eight years
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[Pg 284]</a></span>
+has been bound up in one thought,&mdash;you. Believe
+what I say, believe me because I am going
+to die.... I am neither a sick man nor an
+enthusiast.... I consider my love for you
+as the greatest happiness that God could have
+given me.... This happiness I have enjoyed
+for eight years. May God give you happiness,
+and may nothing henceforth trouble
+you...."</p>
+
+<p>This na&iuml;ve and touching letter moves the
+princess. At the grave of her unhappy lover,
+she recalls the words of an old friend of her
+father's: "Perhaps he was an abnormal man or
+a maniac.... Perhaps,&mdash;who knows?&mdash;your
+life was illumined by a love of which
+women often dream, a kind of love that one
+does not see nowadays."</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>One can judge by these summaries how little
+Kuprin "pads" his stories. Most of them are
+reduced to a commonplace anecdote, which the
+author is careful not to ornament in the least.
+He respects truth to such a degree that he
+offers it to his readers in its disconcerting bareness.
+He would think that he was failing in
+his duty as an observer if he disguised it by
+any literary mechanism.</p>
+
+<p>His work, stripped of all general ideas and
+of all subjective aspects, is of a rather curious
+impersonality. Nothing ever betrays his intimate
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[Pg 285]</a></span>
+thoughts or feelings. And it is in this
+respect that he differs so much from most of
+the writers of to-day, who give themselves up
+completely to their attractive heroes and vituperate
+their odious people. Kuprin's objective
+tendencies are best shown in his story called
+"Peaceful Life."</p>
+
+<p>A retired official, Nassedkine, who has been
+enriched by the gratuities which he has exacted
+from those who have had to do business with
+him, has made it his duty to play censor in his
+little town. He makes use of a very discreet
+and edifying method: to all of the citizens
+whose honor is in danger, he sends one or more
+anonymous letters telling them of the "extent
+of their misfortune."</p>
+
+<p>Nassedkine has just finished writing two
+laconic notes, one of which is to a young
+woman whom he tells to visit one of her friends
+on a certain day, when, he assures her, her husband
+is always to be found there. At this moment
+the church bells ring, and Nassedkine, who
+is religious, goes to vespers. On entering, he
+notices a fashionable lady, all dressed in black,
+in a dark corner of the church. Nassedkine,
+more than any one else, knows the heart-rending
+story of this woman. She had recently, against
+her will, married an excessively rich wood merchant
+who was almost forty years older than
+she. One day, when she thought that her husband
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[Pg 286]</a></span>
+had gone off on business, he returned unexpectedly
+and found her in the arms of one
+of his employees. He had been warned that
+same morning, by an anonymous letter, that
+his wife was deceiving him.</p>
+
+<p>"Beside himself with rage, the merchant
+threw his employee out of the house, and then
+satiated his brutal jealousy on his wife. He
+struck her with his big, hobnailed boots; then
+he called his coachman and valet, made her undress
+completely, and had each of them in turn
+lash her beautiful body until, covered with
+blood, she fainted away.</p>
+
+<p>"And as the priest at the altar was reciting:
+'Lord, I offer Thee the tears of a woman who
+has sinned,' Nassedkine repeated this phrase
+with satisfaction. Then he left the church in
+order to post the two letters he had just written."</p>
+
+<p>This characteristic dryness does not come, as
+one is liable to think, from ill-disguised insensibility.
+Kuprin's soul, on the contrary, is of
+such exquisitely fine texture that all human
+emotions vibrate there. The few times when he
+has expressed himself are enough to convince
+the reader. He has often pitied women with a
+discreet, fraternal compassion. He has also
+devoted many pages to the sufferings of animals,
+be it the story of circus horses hurt by
+the rolling of the ship, or the story of a kitten
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[Pg 287]</a></span>
+mutilated by wolves. Only a few words are
+needed to make us tender and to bring tears to
+our eyes. And it is with the eyes of a poet or
+a child that he has viewed nature.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>No one ever studies a Russian author without
+finally asking himself what the author's influence
+was on the political manifestations of
+society. The answer here is not hard to find:
+Kuprin, observer, artist, and painter of life,
+has had no influence. If we except one story,
+"The Toast," in which he shows his deep affection
+for the oppressed classes, nothing in
+his work betrays even slightly his opinions on
+this subject. Always, the thought of Kuprin
+deserts the social struggle to fly into more vast
+and serene surroundings than the theatre of
+wars and revolutions. And he is doubtless
+ready to exalt above this terrible struggle, the
+one thing that he judges eternal, the love of
+woman.</p>
+
+<p>"There have been kingdoms and kings," he
+says in his beautiful novel, "Sulamite," "and
+the only trace that is left of them is the wind
+in the desert. There have been long and pitiless
+wars, at the end of which the names of the
+leaders sparkled like stars: time has effaced all
+memory of them.</p>
+
+<p>"But the love of a poor girl of the vineyards
+and a great king<a name="FNanchor_17" id="FNanchor_17"></a><a href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a> will never be effaced and
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[Pg 288]</a></span>
+will always live in the minds of men, because
+love is divinely beautiful, because every woman
+who loves is a queen, because love is stronger
+than death."</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[Pg 289]</a></span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="IX" id="IX"></a>IX<br />
+WRITERS IN VOGUE</h2>
+
+
+<p>As we have already noted in the first chapter
+of this book, Russian literature from 1830 to
+1905 is distinctly different from European
+literature: it is, above all, a literature of action
+and social propagandas which puts the popular
+cause in the place of prominence.</p>
+
+<p>This cause has been abandoned by several
+writers during the last few years. From 1905
+to 1910, an evolution, accelerated by the most
+audacious hopes and the most lively beliefs, has
+transformed the story and the novel, and has
+brought to the front certain authors who, up
+to this time, had scarcely been known. It seems
+as if suddenly the ancient tradition of Russian
+literature had been broken. Contrary to the
+rule of their predecessors, whose thoughts were
+on justice and liberty, and whose works breathe
+forth a wholesome quality, a large number of
+the present writers have been gradually attracted
+by metaphysical questions, which fill
+their works with a veritable chaos of morbid
+conceptions and disenchantment. Some express
+with acuteness man's unconquerable fear of life
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[Pg 290]</a></span>
+or death; others treat of the divine or satanic
+principles in man; still others study, with a
+sickly passion, the problems of the flesh in all
+of its manifestations.<a name="FNanchor_18" id="FNanchor_18"></a><a href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a></p>
+
+<p>Among the latter, Michael Artzybashev is a
+writer of great breadth, whose erotic tendencies
+have spoiled some of his best traits. His novel,
+"Sanine," which recently caused so much talk,
+pretends to paint the youth of to-day in Russia.
+If we believed the author, we should conclude
+that the above-mentioned youth consisted
+of hysterical people in whom chastity was the
+least of virtues.</p>
+
+<p>The heroes of his novel are two representatives
+of the revolutionary youth, Sanine and
+Yuri Svagorich. Both of them have deserted
+"the cause," Sanine, through lassitude, and
+Yuri, who has met nothing but a despairing
+indifference among those whom he wanted to
+save from "the oppression of the shadows,"
+through scorn. Yuri, "a man of the past," is
+an "intellectual" entirely impregnated with
+generous altruism, haunted by social and political
+preoccupations. But he is also a "failure"
+who falls from one deception into another, because
+he is thoroughly powerless to combat life.</p>
+
+<p>On the other hand, his friend, Vladimir
+Sanine, "the man of the future," is, without
+a doubt, capable of living. None is freer than
+he from all social and political preoccupations,
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[Pg 291]</a></span>
+and none is more than he resolved to obey only
+his lucid egotism, or the suggestions of his instincts.</p>
+
+<p>These two young fellows meet, one summer,
+in the country. Yuri lives with his father, a
+retired colonel; Sanine, with his mother.
+Sanine's sister, Lida, is in love with the officer
+Zaroudine, who abandons her later when she is
+with child. Lida wants to commit suicide, but
+Sanine stops her and proposes that she marry
+Dr. Novikov, who has been in love with her for
+a long time. Parallel to the history of Lida,
+the life story of Karsavina is presented. Yuri
+falls in love with this young and pretty school-teacher.
+But, although she returns Yuri's love,
+the young girl, in a moment of passion, gives
+herself to Sanine, whom she does not love. Disgusted
+with life, feeling himself weak, neurasthenic,
+and sick, Yuri, only twenty-six years of
+age, commits suicide. Karsavina, terribly affected
+by this act of despair, leaves Sanine.
+And the latter, after Yuri's funeral, disappears
+from the city....</p>
+
+<p>All the characters in the book, from Sanine
+to Karsavina, are continually preyed upon by
+carnal desires. Long passages of funereal
+scenes alternate with pictures of the transports
+of love and the descriptions of masculine and
+feminine bodies. "Your body proclaims the
+truth, your reason lies." This is the "leitmotiv"
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[Pg 292]</a></span>
+of all the theories that the characters
+in the book preach.</p>
+
+<p>Let us hasten to add to the praise of the
+Russian public, that the enormous success of
+"Sanine" was not justified by the extreme
+licentiousness of the book, but by the eloquence
+with which the author claims the right of free
+love for man and woman.</p>
+
+<p>Although its success was less than that of
+"Sanine," Artzybashev's second novel, "Morning
+Shadows," is more interesting and is more
+realistic than his first.</p>
+
+<p>Tired of their sometimes happy, sometimes
+monotonous existence, two young people from
+the provinces, Lisa and Dora, go to St.&nbsp;Petersburg
+to take some courses there and to join
+the <a class="corr" name="TC_8" id="TC_8" title="revolutinary">revolutionary</a> movement. They have read
+Nietzsche, and want to "live dangerously." In
+order to realize this project, Lisa has not hesitated
+to break off her engagement with the
+charming and na&iuml;ve Lieutenant Savinov. However,
+their existence in the capital is nothing
+but a long and bitter deception: Dora's literary
+ambitions disappointed! the love of Lisa, who
+has given herself to the student Korenyev, disappointed!
+In a fit of despair Lisa kills herself,
+and her friend, who has not had the courage
+to follow her example, falls victim to a
+terrorist outrage which the author describes
+with rare power.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[Pg 293]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>In his recent novel, "Before Expiration,"&mdash;which
+recalls "Sanine" to our minds again,&mdash;Artzybashev
+has found some ingenious variations
+on the old theme, "love and death." The
+story of the love affairs of the painter Mikhailov,
+a cynical and brutal Lovelace who abandons
+his mistresses when they are with child,
+is intermingled incessantly with gloomy episodes,
+such as the agonies of an old man or of
+a child. It is a book for "blas&eacute;" people, a
+book which a reader with moral health will
+not read without a certain feeling of uneasiness.</p>
+
+<p>We are also indebted to Artzybashev for a
+series of highly colored stories. "Sub-Lieutenant
+Golobov," "Blood," "The Workingman
+Shevshrev," and "The Millions" are some of
+the most remarkable.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Like Artzybashev, but with less talent, Anatol
+Kamensky has written little stories happily
+enough conceived. Thus, "Laida"&mdash;the
+story of a worldly woman so taken up with
+liberty that she exhibits herself nude before
+her husband's guests. Another story called
+"Four," tells of four women taken from the
+most diverse social classes, ranging from a
+young school-girl to the wife of a clergyman,
+who give themselves to an officer at the end of
+a trip of twenty-four hours. Then there is also
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[Pg 294]</a></span>
+the story of a woman who proposes to an unknown
+man that he should play a game of cards
+with her companions, she being the prize. This
+story is called "The Game." Finally, there is
+the story of a young man whose agreeable profession
+consists in living among others gratuitously
+and in seducing women under the eyes of
+their husbands.</p>
+
+<p>These stories are sadly spoiled by a crude
+philosophy and by "anarchistic" protestations
+against present values.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Certain authors wander into far-away countries
+for their subjects: to Sodom and Lesbos.
+The best known is Michael Kouzmine. This
+writer, who happily began with stories of the
+Orient in the Middle Ages, has now acquired a
+rather sad renown for himself with his story
+called "The Wings," which appeared at the end
+of 1906. The scandalous success which this
+book won, encouraged the author to go on in
+the same manner. In poor verse, and especially
+in the story, "The Castle of Cards," Kouzmine
+has exalted the sin of Sodom as being the most
+supreme form of &aelig;sthetic emotions.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Closely related to these writers, although
+surpassing them all in original talent, Feodor
+Sologoub is the most intellectual and subtle of
+the Russian modernists. His principal work
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">[Pg 295]</a></span>
+consists in depicting the small provincial towns.
+His heroes are little bourgeois petty officials,
+school-teachers, and country proprietors.</p>
+
+<p>This chanter of birth and death, disgusted
+by the banality of existence, has given us, under
+the title, "The Little Demon," a pathetic
+picture of human baseness and sordidness, which
+cannot be read without emotion.</p>
+
+<p>The atmosphere of an arbitrary regime engenders
+almost always "demonomania." The
+insecurity of life, and the consecutive injustices
+in the cavils of the police administration, develop
+in society a reciprocal fear and distrust. From
+feeling themselves in danger of being denounced
+and menaced in their liberty, men rapidly become
+the prey of terror. And the terrible life,
+sooner or later, awakens demoniacal terror
+among the weak. But people of this sort are
+legion in Russia, and Peredonov, the hero of
+"The Little Demon," represents this class
+so graphically that to-day Russian historians
+and authors designate the era from 1880 to
+1905 by the name "peredonovchina." The following
+is a brief outline of the story:</p>
+
+<p>Peredonov is a school-teacher in a provincial
+town. His fondest dream is to be nominated
+primary inspector. He lives with his mistress,
+the old dressmaker, Varvara by name. One of
+his mistress's clients, a virtuous and philanthropic
+princess, makes him understand, one
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">[Pg 296]</a></span>
+day, that she will have him nominated if he marries
+Varvara. Peredonov does not love his mistress;
+he simply lives with her from habit and
+because she bears, without complaining too
+much, his coarseness, his cavilling, and his bad
+humor. However, he will marry her if the
+princess can get him the position he desires.
+But will the princess keep her word? It is
+some time since she has let herself be heard
+from. What is to be done?</p>
+
+<p>"Marry," says his friend Routilov to him,
+when he is told the condition of things. "I
+have three sisters," he continues. "Choose
+the one you like best and marry her immediately.
+Thus Varvara will know nothing and
+cannot throw any obstacles in the way."</p>
+
+<p>"Done!" cries Peredonov, who has known
+the three sisters for a long time. He chooses
+the youngest, Valerie.</p>
+
+<p>"Go and tell her about it. I will wait for
+you in the hall and then we'll go to the priest's
+together."</p>
+
+<p>Alone, Peredonov again muses: "Doubtless,
+Valerie is pretty and I shall be happy to have
+her as my wife. But she is young, pretentious;
+she will demand lots of new clothes, she will
+want to go out a lot, in fact, so much that I'll
+not be able to lay anything aside. Moreover,
+she'll not look after the kitchen, I'll have poor
+food, and the cook will rob us." Anguish seizes
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">[Pg 297]</a></span>
+him. He knocks at the window, calls his friend,
+and says:</p>
+
+<p>"I've changed my mind."</p>
+
+<p>"Ah!" exclaimed the other, horrified.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I have reflected, and I have decided
+that I prefer the second, Lyoudmila."</p>
+
+<p>Lyoudmila consents, for, besides his personal
+fortune, Peredonov occupies an enviable position,
+and the sisters are poor. She hurriedly
+gets dressed; in a quarter of an hour she will
+be ready to accompany him to the priest's.</p>
+
+<p>However, Peredonov reflects: "Lyoudmila is
+pretty and plump; she doubtless has a perfect
+body, but she is always jolly, she loves to laugh.
+She will laugh incessantly and will make her
+husband seem ridiculous." Full of fear, he
+knocks at the window: "I have reflected," he
+cries. "I prefer the oldest, Darya."</p>
+
+<p>"What an awful man!" cries his friend.
+"Hurry up, Darya, or he'll leave all of us in
+the lurch."</p>
+
+<p>Again Peredonov reflects: "Darya is nice,
+not young any more, and economical; she knows
+life. But ... she is decisive in her resolutions,
+and she has an energetic character. She
+is not the kind who would listen to my observations.
+She could make life hard for me, and
+use me ill. Frankly, do I have to marry any of
+the three sisters? What will the princess say
+when she hears of my marriage? And my position
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">[Pg 298]</a></span>
+as inspector? How stupid it is to stand
+waiting in this court! Without a doubt, Routilov
+ensnared me. I've got to get out of this
+at any cost!"</p>
+
+<p>He spits on all sides to conjure up the spirits,
+then knocks at the window, and tells the amazed
+family:</p>
+
+<p>"I am going away.... I have thought it
+over. I don't want to get married."</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile, his position in school becomes
+intolerable; complaints are registered against
+him; he is reproached with having ill-treated
+and even with having beaten the poor children,
+and with treating the noble and rich children
+with too much respect. His ridiculous and evil
+passions cause him to be detested by all.
+Luckily, he will soon be nominated inspector,
+and then he will say good-bye to all this riff-raff.
+In the meantime, Varvara writes a letter,
+filled with the most alluring promises, to which
+she signs the princess's name, and has it mailed
+from St.&nbsp;Petersburg. Peredonov is at the
+height of joy; but, being a prudent man, he
+does not want to marry before he has received
+the nomination. He waits and waits for it, and,
+meanwhile, he is not even sure of his position
+in the school. He discovers enemies everywhere,
+and believes there are always spies at his heels.
+In order to cajole the administration, he begins
+to frequent the church, and to pay visits to the
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">[Pg 299]</a></span>
+city authorities. He assures the chief of police
+of his respect, and, in order to give a glaring
+proof of his devotion to the established institutions,
+he lodges information against a school-mistress
+of the locality. But still the nomination
+does not come, and he lives in a continual
+trance. The evil in him increases. He torments
+beasts and human beings. He whips his pupils,
+throws nettles at his cat, and maltreats his cook.
+He believes himself more and more in the
+power of the demon, and terrible visions follow
+him:</p>
+
+<p>"He saw running before him, a little, grey,
+noisy beast. It sneered, its head trembled, and
+it ran quickly around Peredonov. When he
+wanted to seize it, it escaped under the cupboard,
+only to reappear a moment later...."</p>
+
+<p>This strange book, written with rare perfection,
+had a great success. To several readers
+who thought that they recognized the author
+himself in the person of Peredonov (Sologoub
+had had the same position as his hero for several
+years) the author replied in the preface of a
+recent edition, by these malicious lines:</p>
+
+<p>"Men like to be loved. They adore noble
+and elevated descriptions and portrayals. They
+even search among the scum for a 'divine
+spark.' They also are surprised and offended
+when any one offers them a veracious and sombre
+picture. And most of them then do not fail to
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">[Pg 300]</a></span>
+declare: 'The author has described himself in
+his work.' But no, my dear friends and
+readers, it is you, and only you, whom I have
+painted in my book, 'The Little Demon.'"</p>
+
+<p>In "The Charms of Navii" Sologoub happily
+blends fantasy and reality. Revolutionary
+meetings alternate with improbable hypnotic
+seances, and terrible cort&egrave;ges of corpses contrast
+violently with scenes of platonic and
+ethereal love.</p>
+
+<p>The plot of the story, "The Old Home," is
+not less distressing than the preceding one. A
+young revolutionary, condemned to death by
+court-martial, has been executed, but for his
+dear ones this death has never been a reality.
+His mother and sister, and even the old servant,
+have not the strength to admit his disappearance.
+They wait and wait for his return until
+their own death carries them off.</p>
+
+<p>Another story, "The Crowd," shows us a
+"fair" at which pewter goblets are being given
+away. These so excite the greediness of the
+crowd that a fray results, in which three children
+are seriously wounded. While dying, the
+unfortunates have terrible visions of life and
+humanity. "It seemed to them that ferocious
+demons were chuckling and sneering silently
+behind human faces. And this masquerade
+lasted so long that the poor little tots thought
+that it would never end...."
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">[Pg 301]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Sologoub is, above all, a chanter of death.
+Almost all of his works unveil a murder, suicide,
+or madness. Moreover, the author, who shows
+only the injustices, evils, and infamy of life,
+and who affirms that the only happiness that he
+foresees for man is the possibility of "creating
+for himself a chimera" by turning away from
+reality, finds the clearest colors and the sweetest
+expressions in speaking of death.</p>
+
+<p>"There is not a surer and more tender friend
+on earth than death," says one of his heroes.
+"And if men fear the name of death, it is because
+they do not know that it is the real life,
+eternal and invariable. Life deceives very often,
+death never. It is sweet to think of death, as
+it is to think of a dear friend, distant and yet
+always close at hand.... One forgets all in
+the arms of the consoling angel, the angel of
+death."</p>
+
+<p>The ever supremely correct and beautiful
+language of Sologoub shows the power of a
+master, and it is most regrettable that an artist
+of his merit should confine himself to so morbid
+an art.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>These then are the principal authors&mdash;some
+of whom have enjoyed an immense popularity&mdash;who
+treat the "cursed questions:" the rights
+of the flesh, the problem of death, and other
+equally "cursed" problems.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">[Pg 302]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>The other writers are principally occupied
+with social questions, and, without rigorously
+following in the steps of their predecessors, remain,
+however, most of the time, realists.</p>
+
+<p>Among these, Sergyev-Tzensky occupies a
+prominent place. The stories of this writer
+show us beings who seem strangers to what is
+going on around them. This peculiarity comes
+from the fact that Tzensky does not understand
+the physical facts in the same way that the naturalists
+do. For him, they are the manifestations
+of the will of a supernatural entity, incomprehensible,
+inconceivable, and, at the same time,
+clearly hostile to man.</p>
+
+<p>His story, "The Sadness of the Fields," testifies
+to this singular conception. A farmer and
+his wife, good and peaceful people, have for
+many years wished for a child. Up to this
+time, the six children which the mother has
+given birth to have died in their infancy. They
+are anxiously awaiting the seventh. Will this
+one live? Will not the sadness of the fields,
+which puts its imprint on everything, kill it as
+it has killed the others? Alas! the child is not
+viable, and the mother dies in child-birth. They
+are buried, and "the fields and the surrounding
+country forever keep their powerful and mysterious
+melancholy."</p>
+
+<p>"The Fluctuation" is one of the most curious
+and beautiful of all of Tzensky's stories.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">[Pg 303]</a></span>
+Anton Antonovich, a rich and enterprising merchant,
+of a very violent and unruly character,
+lives like a wolf in his domains, alone with his
+family, without seeing any of his neighbors.
+The peasants detest him. As his partners and
+helpers, he always engages nonentities, without
+power of initiative, who blindly follow his
+orders. Intellectual and energetic men cannot
+get along with him. Men, beasts, and nature
+in its entirety, are considered by this man as
+having been especially created for his service.
+The one end of his life is wealth and power.
+The only beings he loves are his wife and his
+three sons; but even they have to bow down
+to his will.</p>
+
+<p>One day, he buys some straw and insures it
+against fire. Sometime later, it burns. They
+accuse him of having been the incendiary.
+Ridiculous accusation! He is a millionaire and
+the straw barely cost a few hundred rubles.
+The old man makes fun of the whole affair; he
+insults the judge, his own lawyer, and even the
+jury. He feels the impending misfortune, but
+his inborn violence carries him away from prudence.
+He is condemned to hard labor and he
+succumbs to a sickness that he has been feeling
+coming on for a long time. He had made a
+pillager's nest for himself, and he died like a
+pillager, abandoned even by those who were
+dear to him.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">[Pg 304]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>In Tzensky's short stories, "I Shall Soon
+Die," "Diphtheria," "Tedium," and "The
+Masks," there is something mysterious, fatal,
+and terrible that constantly surrounds his
+people. As to his longer works, "The Swamp
+in the Forest," and "Lieutenant Babayev,"
+they plunge the reader into the mad chaos of
+the often abnormal emotions felt by the characters.
+These characters imagine the divine
+side of human nature; they consider it as
+having existed before in the essence of things,
+but the reality does not harmonize with their
+dream. The authentication of this discord
+torments Tzensky's heroes and their souls protest
+passionately, but in vain, against these
+outrages.</p>
+
+<p>Sergyev-Tzensky's style, graphic and pure,
+often strange, has found imitators among the
+younger writers. Thus, Mouyzhel, who describes
+village life, is visibly influenced by his
+writings. <a class="corr" name="TC_9" id="TC_9" title="Acording">According</a> to him, the soul goes
+through life without understanding it, without
+being able to ascribe any meaning to it. And
+he is so sincere, that his works obtain the frankest
+sort of success.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>While Mouyzhel studies peasant life, Simon
+Youshkevich, to the exclusion of all else, makes
+a study of the poor Russian Jews. Some of
+his stories have produced an overwhelming impression.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">[Pg 305]</a></span>
+They show us beings, heaped up,
+pell-mell in the ghettos of the cities of western
+and southern Russia, dirty and unwholesome
+ghettos, where consumption and all kinds
+of terrible sickness reign. These stories, often
+tragic, always sad, have given Youshkevich the
+name of "chanter of human suffering."</p>
+
+<p>In his earlier works&mdash;the best of which are
+"The Jews," "Tavern-Keeper Heimann,"
+"The Innocents," "The Prologue" and "The
+Assassin"&mdash;he devoted himself to portraying,
+not isolated persons, but the immense Russian
+Jewish proletariat, with its sad past, its bloody
+present, and its exalted faith in the future.
+Youshkevich has created this sphere; he considers
+the poor people of the cities not as a
+social class, but as a symbolic representation of
+an entire organization. If his work is at times
+infected with romanticism and some exaggeration
+the reader will gladly forget these imperfections
+when he recognizes the fact that they
+are necessary to enable this author to express
+the truth. What makes this writer unique, is
+that he cannot be confounded with any one else.
+He has never influenced any of his readers and,
+in turn, has never imitated any one. He made
+himself what he is.</p>
+
+<p>His last literary productions&mdash;with the exception
+of his very touching drama, "Misere"&mdash;have
+been inferior to his former work. But
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">[Pg 306]</a></span>
+the abundance of the materials furnished by
+Jewish life would still give this author opportunity
+to give us more of the magnificently
+colored pictures that he gave us in his initial
+productions.</p>
+
+<p>Close to Youshkevich should be placed the
+two young writers, Sholom Ash and Izemann.
+Sholom Ash has principally depicted the Jewish
+world and its psychology. "The God of Vengeance"
+is a touching picture of the life of
+young Jewish girls who have been obliged to
+prostitute themselves for a living. "Sabbatai-Zevi,"<a name="FNanchor_19" id="FNanchor_19"></a><a href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a>
+a philosophical poem, treats of the
+powerful personality of that Jewish prophet and
+of the surroundings in which he passed his
+life.</p>
+
+<p>Izemann, who has written quite a few tales
+and stories, is a very uneven author. His best
+work is "The Thorn Bush," a drama of the
+life of the Russian-Jewish revolutionists.
+Manousse, the son of a poor tinsmith, has
+been arrested, and then hanged for having taken
+part in a terrorist uprising. His sister, Dara,
+engaged to the son of a wealthy manufacturer,
+has, in her turn, been killed at a barricade. She
+is carried back to her home, and there, revolver
+in hand, the mother receives the soldiers. She
+falls mortally wounded at the side of her
+fourteen year old son. Thus, the entire
+family perishes. The last act of this sombre
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">[Pg 307]</a></span>
+drama makes a tremendous impression on the
+stage.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>After having been a country doctor for several
+years, Eugene Chirikov abandoned his practice
+in order to devote himself to literature.
+His drama, "The Jews," has aroused great interest
+and has been played with great success
+both in Russia and abroad. It is one of the
+most significant works of this writer. The story
+concerns itself with the children of a poor Jewish
+watchmaker, who are infatuated with ideas
+of progress. Their infatuation is such, that
+the daughter becomes engaged to a Gentile.
+A delirious mob invades the houses of the Jews.
+The store of the poor watchmaker is not spared,
+and the fianc&eacute;e of the Gentile is ravished and
+then murdered. The rapid action of the play
+makes it a dramatic "slice of life."</p>
+
+<p>The other plays and stories of this author
+give us pictures both of the petty "bourgeois"
+and of the "intellectuals." Thus, "The
+Strangers" tells the story of a group of "intellectuals"
+who have strayed into a small market
+town in the provinces where all are hostile
+to them. Then there is "The Invalids," which
+gives the story of the life of an old man who,
+after having been exiled to Siberia for several
+years on account of "advanced" ideas, returns
+to Russia as confident as ever, ready to consecrate
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[Pg 308]</a></span>
+the rest of his life to the people. Finally,
+"At the Bottom of the Court," "The Mysteries
+of the Forest" and "Marya Ivanovna" are
+dramas from bourgeois life, while "The
+Sorceress" is a play, taken from a national
+epic.</p>
+
+<p>Not less well known than Chirikov, is Ossip
+Dymov. He forsook the "Imperial Institute
+of Foresters" in order to devote himself to
+literature. He has written numerous stories,
+among which "Vlass" is the most captivating.
+It is the childhood of Vlass told by himself. An
+observing little person, the child notices everything
+and everybody around him. His father
+had killed himself before the child was old
+enough to talk, and his mother, a very intelligent
+and stern woman, alone had to care for
+four children. Vlass has an older brother, Yuri,
+a sister, Olya, and a younger brother, Vladimir,
+a kind and inoffensive creature. Life runs
+along smoothly in the little country town. The
+days pass, one like the other, and the most insignificant
+event takes on grave importance in
+this monotonous life. One night, Vlass's young
+teacher is arrested and sent to Siberia. A year
+later, a friend of the family, who has been in
+exile a long time, comes back secretly and passes
+several days at the house. Later on, it is "the
+beautiful, good aunt" who comes unexpectedly;
+but she soon departs, leaving a mass of confused
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">[Pg 309]</a></span>
+and restless thoughts in the child's mind. Vlass
+ends his story with a most pathetic account.
+Far away from the little town, in one of the
+prisons of St.&nbsp;Petersburg, they are going to
+hang Yuri. The entire family has broken down
+since they have heard the news, and they sit up
+the night before the execution, trying, in
+thought, to alleviate the torment of their cherished
+one.</p>
+
+<p>In his other stories, the author paints nature
+in an original and entirely personal manner.
+According to a Russian critic, the works of
+Dymov breathe forth "the fresh breeze and the
+quickening aroma of the forests."</p>
+
+<p>Dymov has also written some very well-liked
+plays, of which "Niyu" is the most original.
+Niyu, a young woman, abandons her husband
+and child in order to follow a poet, whose beautiful
+language and touching poetry have won
+her admiration and brought her under his spell.
+She hopes that her lover will create a new world,
+a higher and nobler world than the every-day
+one, because he is a poet, that is to say, one of
+the elect. The abandoned husband and the uncared-for
+child desperately call out for their
+wife and mother. In vain! However, the days
+that she passes with the poet are filled with disenchantment,
+disillusion, and bitterness. Despairing,
+she writes a letter to her old parents
+who live in a distant town, and then commits
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">[Pg 310]</a></span>
+suicide. And hardly is Niyu buried, when the
+poet, although sadly affected by the premature
+loss of his companion, again begins to charm
+and entrance by his beautiful words other
+women, whose lives he ruins.</p>
+
+<p>"Niyu" has had a tremendous success, because
+it brings a really new formula into
+the theatrical world. Very little action, very
+few "situations;" no artificial procedure: life;
+dialogue imitated from reality; an atmosphere
+of despair and tedium in which three
+beings cruelly struggle; sincere evolution, very
+much pessimism, and happiness and love, constitute
+the traits that characterize this very
+human piece of writing.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Mention should also be made of Sayitzev, certain
+of whose stories are comparable to the
+aquarelles of a landscape painter. One of his
+best works is "Agrafena," a touching picture
+of the life of a peasant woman. During her
+lifetime, she was a domestic in the cities, and
+when finally, bent under years of labor, she
+comes back to her native village and her
+daughter, whom she has secretly brought up at
+great pains, it is only to find that she has committed
+suicide, having been abandoned by her
+lover.</p>
+
+<p>Among others, should be mentioned Gussev-Orenburgsky,
+who has written some very interesting
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">[Pg 311]</a></span>
+stories about the Russian clergy; Skitaletz,
+whose "Rural Tribunal" has had a great
+success, and has been translated into several
+languages; Seraphimovich and Teleshov, who,
+like Chirikov, depict the life of the "intellectuals,"
+and Olizhey, the psychologist of revolutionary
+spheres, known particularly by his
+"The Day of Judgment," which tells of an
+officer, a member of a council of war, who is
+forced to condemn his future brother-in-law to
+death. This story leaves an indescribable impression
+of terror and horror.</p>
+
+<p>Let us finally mention Count Alexis Tolstoy,
+the homonym of the great Russian thinker, to
+whom the critics predict a brilliant future. His
+first work appeared in 1909. He generally depicts
+landed proprietors. His recent stories,
+"The Asking in Marriage," and "Beyond the
+Volga," show signs of great strength and power
+of observation.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb" />
+
+<p>Among the women, there are three who show
+real talent. In fact, Mme. Hippius-Merezhkovskaya
+is regarded as one of the founders of
+Russian modernism. We are indebted to her
+for some rather daring verses and some very
+good stories. The most recent of these, "The
+Creature," is the curious history of a love-sick
+prostitute; "The Devil's Doll" is an episode in
+the life of the Russian "intellectuals." Endowed
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">[Pg 312]</a></span>
+with a caustic spirit, she excels all others
+in literary criticism.</p>
+
+<p>Then comes Mme. Verbitzkaya, who has declared
+herself a champion of women, who, she
+thinks, should throw off the often tyrannical
+yoke of their husbands. Her novels, "Vavochka,"
+and "The Story of a Life," have
+given her just renown. In "The Spirit of the
+Time" she has tried, not without some success,
+to paint the immense picture of the revolution
+of 1905. Her recent novel, "The Keys
+of Happiness," has had an enormous success.</p>
+
+<p>Finally, mention should be made of Mme.
+Shepkina-Koupernik, who has written some
+verses and charming stories, full of caressing
+tenderness and delicate psychology. Her
+stories, in which she shows us two old Italian
+masters, are very interesting. Thus, "Eternity
+in a Moment" is delicious. In a painter's
+studio, a young model by chance meets her old
+lover, who has also been reduced to posing in
+studios. Happy at heart, the woman rushes
+toward him, but he pushes her away: he is too
+miserable, he has fallen too low to dare to love
+her again. Repulsed by him, she stands as if
+petrified, with death in her soul, and her face
+changed by terrible despair. At this moment
+the master enters; he looks at the young
+woman and utters a cry of joy; finally he has
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">[Pg 313]</a></span>
+found what he wants for his picture: human
+traits ravaged by suffering and despair!</p>
+
+<p>Russia is also indebted to this author for
+impeccable translations of Rostand's "Princesse
+Lointaine" and "Chantecler."</p>
+
+
+<p class="theend">THE END</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chapbreak" />
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">[Pg 314]</a><br />
+<a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">[Pg 315]</a></span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="NOTES" id="NOTES"></a>NOTES</h2>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_1" id="Footnote_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> Tolstoy.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_2" id="Footnote_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></a> This spelling has been adopted here, rather
+than Chekhov, since it is more familiar to the
+public. In all other cases, the <i>ch</i> and <i>v</i> have
+been retained.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_3" id="Footnote_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3"><span class="label">[3]</span></a> In many European papers there is always
+to be found a part called the "feuilleton,"
+which usually consists of a serial story, continued
+from day to day.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_4" id="Footnote_4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_4"><span class="label">[4]</span></a> For some reason, unknown to the translator,
+the author has made no mention of Tchekoff's
+famous play, "The Sea-Gull." This drama,
+which, when first produced, was a flat failure,
+scored a tremendous success a short while afterwards.
+It is especially interesting in that the
+author has made one of the characters, Trigorin,
+largely autobiographical. To-day "The Sea-Gull"
+is one of the most popular productions
+on the Russian stage.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_5" id="Footnote_5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_5"><span class="label">[5]</span></a> On the continent of Europe, a university
+degree between that of bachelor and of doctor.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_6" id="Footnote_6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_6"><span class="label">[6]</span></a> In Russian, Gorky means bitterness.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">[Pg 316]</a></span></p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_7" id="Footnote_7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_7"><span class="label">[7]</span></a> This was preceded by a story called "The
+Devil."</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_8" id="Footnote_8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_8"><span class="label">[8]</span></a> A celebrated brigand in the time of Ivan
+the Terrible who, in order to be pardoned, conquered
+Siberia in the name of the Tsar.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_9" id="Footnote_9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_9"><span class="label">[9]</span></a> This passage is a sort of a variation on
+the theme that Poe has developed in a masterful
+way in his poem, "The Bells."</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_10" id="Footnote_10"></a><a href="#FNanchor_10"><span class="label">[10]</span></a> In the English translation this book is
+called "A Dilemma."</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_11" id="Footnote_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11"><span class="label">[11]</span></a> Mention should be made of some of Andreyev's
+other dramas: "To the Stars," "Anfissa,"
+"Gaudeamus," and "Sava," plays of
+uneven value, but with a strength of observation
+and analysis which is not inferior to that
+shown in some of his best stories.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_12" id="Footnote_12"></a><a href="#FNanchor_12"><span class="label">[12]</span></a> Also called "The Romance of Leonardo
+da Vinci, the Forerunner."</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_13" id="Footnote_13"></a><a href="#FNanchor_13"><span class="label">[13]</span></a> Russian noblemen.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_14" id="Footnote_14"></a><a href="#FNanchor_14"><span class="label">[14]</span></a> In Russia, the name of the biblical Ham
+has become synonymous with servility and
+moral baseness. Merezhkovsky employs this
+scornful term to designate those people who are
+strangers to the higher tendencies of the mind
+and are entirely taken up with material interests.
+His "Ham Triumphant" is the Antichrist,
+whose reign, as predicted by the Apocalypse,
+will begin with the final victory of the
+bourgeoisie. In one chapter of this book,
+Merezhkovsky proves that the writers of western
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_317" id="Page_317">[Pg 317]</a></span>
+Europe and Russia (Byron and Lermontov)
+err in crowning this Antichrist with
+an aureole of proud revolutionary majesty, for,
+since he is the enemy of all that is divine in
+man, he can only be a character of shabby
+mediocrity and human banality, that is to say,
+a veritable "Ham."</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_15" id="Footnote_15"></a><a href="#FNanchor_15"><span class="label">[15]</span></a> Merezhkovsky has also written a long historical
+drama, called "The Death of Paul I."
+He traces there, with his accustomed animation,
+the figure of the weak and criminal Tsar, now
+heaping favors upon those who surround him,
+now persecuting them with the most terrible
+cruelty. The savage scene of the assassination
+of this tyrant is of remarkable beauty.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_16" id="Footnote_16"></a><a href="#FNanchor_16"><span class="label">[16]</span></a> Dostoyevsky.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_17" id="Footnote_17"></a><a href="#FNanchor_17"><span class="label">[17]</span></a> Refers to Solomon.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_18" id="Footnote_18"></a><a href="#FNanchor_18"><span class="label">[18]</span></a> Happily, this literary crisis seems to have
+been ephemeral. Since the beginning of 1910,
+according to a Russian critic, "the salubrity
+of the atmosphere" has been accomplished.
+The "cursed questions" are less prominent in
+recent works, and it seems that the crisis which
+desolated Russian literature for several years
+has come to an end, and that the writers are
+going back to the old traditions of Russian literature.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_19" id="Footnote_19"></a><a href="#FNanchor_19"><span class="label">[19]</span></a> A famous impostor of the 17th century:
+1626-1676.</p></div>
+
+
+<div class="trnote">
+<h2><a name="trcorrections" id="trcorrections"></a>Transcriber's corrections</h2>
+<ul>
+<li><a href="#TC_1">p. 134</a>: man is astonished[astonishd] at the number of maladies</li>
+<li><a href="#TC_2">p. 145</a>: Gorky and Konovalov[Konavolov] had for the moment an</li>
+<li><a href="#TC_3">p. 164</a>: conclusions. All of them passionately[pasionately] want to be</li>
+<li><a href="#TC_4">p. 168</a>: their sole desire is to affirm their individuality[individualty]</li>
+<li><a href="#TC_5">p. 200</a>: of an ever-hungry[every-hungry] student: his own life!</li>
+<li><a href="#TC_6">p. 254</a>: diplomacy of Niccolo [and] Machiavelli. In</li>
+<li><a href="#TC_7">p. 265</a>: author of "Anna Karenina[Karenin]" in his sixtieth year,</li>
+<li><a href="#TC_8">p. 292</a>: the revolutionary[revolutinary] movement. They have read</li>
+<li><a href="#TC_9">p. 304</a>: writings. According[Acording] to him, the soul goes</li>
+</ul>
+</div>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<pre>
+
+
+
+
+
+End of Project Gutenberg's Contemporary Russian Novelists, by Serge Persky
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CONTEMPORARY RUSSIAN NOVELISTS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 31503-h.htm or 31503-h.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/1/5/0/31503/
+
+Produced by Juliet Sutherland and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+
+</pre>
+
+</body>
+</html>
diff --git a/31503-h/images/cover.jpg b/31503-h/images/cover.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..9d7725c
--- /dev/null
+++ b/31503-h/images/cover.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/31503.txt b/31503.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..4e9f02f
--- /dev/null
+++ b/31503.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,7983 @@
+Project Gutenberg's Contemporary Russian Novelists, by Serge Persky
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: Contemporary Russian Novelists
+
+Author: Serge Persky
+
+Translator: Frederick Eisemann
+
+Release Date: March 4, 2010 [EBook #31503]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CONTEMPORARY RUSSIAN NOVELISTS ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Juliet Sutherland and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+ CONTEMPORARY
+ RUSSIAN NOVELISTS
+
+
+ Translated from the French of Serge Persky
+ By FREDERICK EISEMANN
+
+
+ JOHN W. LUCE AND COMPANY
+ BOSTON 1913
+
+
+ _Copyright, 1912_
+ BY C. DELAGRAVE
+
+ _Copyright, 1913_
+ BY L. E. BASSETT
+
+
+ To
+ THE MEMORY OF
+ F. N. S.
+
+ BY
+ THE TRANSLATOR
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE
+
+
+The principal aim of this book is to give the reader a good general
+knowledge of Russian literature as it is to-day. The author, Serge
+Persky, has subordinated purely critical material, because he wants
+his readers to form their own judgments and criticize for
+themselves. The element of literary criticism is not, however, by
+any means entirely lacking.
+
+In the original text, there is a thorough and exhaustive treatment
+of the "great prophet" of Russian literature--Tolstoy--but the
+translator has deemed it wise to omit this essay, because so much
+has recently been written about this great man.
+
+As the title of the book is "Contemporary Russian Novelists," the
+essay on Anton Tchekoff, who is no longer living, does not rightly
+belong here, but Tchekoff is such an important figure in modern
+Russian literature and has attracted so little attention from
+English writers that it seems advisable to retain the essay that
+treats of his work.
+
+Finally, let me express my sincerest thanks to Dr. G. H. Maynadier
+of Harvard for his kind advice; to Miss Edna Wetzler for her
+unfailing and valuable help, and to Miss Carrie Harper, who has gone
+over this work with painstaking care.
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS
+
+
+ CHAPTER PAGE
+
+ I. A Brief Survey of Russian Literature 1
+
+ II. Anton Tchekoff 40
+
+ III. Vladimir Korolenko 76
+
+ IV. Vikenty Veressayev 108
+
+ V. Maxim Gorky 142
+
+ VI. Leonid Andreyev 199
+
+ VII. Dmitry Merezhkovsky 246
+
+ VIII. Alexander Kuprin 274
+
+ IX. Writers in Vogue 289
+
+
+
+
+CONTEMPORARY RUSSIAN NOVELISTS
+
+
+
+
+I
+
+A BRIEF SURVEY OF RUSSIAN LITERATURE
+
+
+In order to get a clear idea of modern Russian literature, a
+knowledge of its past is indispensable. This knowledge will help us
+in understanding that which distinguishes it from other European
+literatures, not only from the viewpoint of the art which it
+expresses, but also as the historical and sociological mirror of the
+nation's life in the course of centuries.
+
+The dominant trait of this literature is found in its very origins.
+Unlike the literatures of other European countries, which followed,
+in a more or less regular way, the development of life and
+civilization during historic times, Russian literature passed
+through none of these stages. Instead of being a product of the
+past, it is a protestation against it; instead of retracing the old
+successive stages, it appears, intermittently, like a light
+suddenly struck in the darkness. Its whole history is a long
+continual struggle against this darkness, which has gradually melted
+away beneath these rays of light, but has never entirely ceased to
+veil the general trend of Russian thought.
+
+As a result of the unfortunate circumstances which characterize her
+history, Russia was for a long time deprived of any relations with
+civilized Europe. The necessity of concentrating all her strength on
+fighting the Mongolians laid the corner-stone of a sort of
+semi-Asiatic political autocracy. Besides, the influence of the
+Byzantine clergy made the nation hostile to the ideas and science of
+the Occident, which were represented as heresies incompatible with
+the orthodox faith. However, when she finally threw off the
+Mongolian yoke, and when she found herself face to face with Europe,
+Russia was led to enter into diplomatic relations with the various
+Western powers. She then realized that European art and science were
+indispensable to her, if only to strengthen her in warfare against
+these States. For this reason a number of European ideas began to
+come into Russia during the reigns of the last Muscovite sovereigns.
+But they assumed a somewhat sacerdotal character in passing through
+the filter of Polish society, and took on, so to speak, a dogmatic
+air. In general, European influence was not accepted in Russia
+except with extreme repugnance and restless circumspection, until
+the accession of Peter I. This great monarch, blessed with unusual
+intelligence and a will of iron, decided to use all his autocratic
+power in impressing, to use the words of Pushkin, "a new direction
+upon the Russian vessel;"--Europe instead of Asia.
+
+Peter the Great had to contend against the partisans of ancient
+tradition, the "obscurists" and the adversaries of profane science;
+and this inevitable struggle determined the first character of
+Russian literature, where the satiric element, which in essence is
+an attack on the enemies of reform, predominates. In organizing
+grotesque processions, clownish masquerades, in which the
+long-skirted clothes and the streaming beards of the honorable
+champions of times gone by were ridiculed, Peter himself appeared as
+a pitiless destroyer of the ancient costumes and superannuated
+ideas.
+
+The example set by the practical irony of this man was followed,
+soon after the death of the Tsar, by Kantemir, the first Russian
+author who wrote satirical verses. These verses were very much
+appreciated in his time. In them, he mocks with considerable fervor
+the ignorant contemners of science, who taste happiness only in the
+gratification of their material appetites.
+
+At the same time that the Russian authors pursued the enemies of
+learning with sarcasm, they heaped up eulogies, which bordered on
+idolatry, on Peter I, and, after him, on his successors. In these
+praises, which were excessively hyperbolical, there was always some
+sincerity. Peter had, in fact, in his reign, paved the way for
+European civilization, and it seemed merely to be waiting for the
+sovereigns, Peter's successors, to go on with the work started by
+their illustrious ancestor. The most powerful leaders, and the first
+representatives of the new literature, strode ahead, then, hand in
+hand, but their paths before long diverged. Peter the Great wanted
+to use European science for practical purposes only: it was only to
+help the State, to make capable generals, to win wars, to help
+savants find means to develop the national wealth by industry and
+commerce; he--Peter--had no time to think of other things. But
+science throws her light into the most hidden corners, and when it
+brings social and political iniquities to light, then the government
+hastens to persecute that which, up to this time, it has encouraged.
+
+The protective, and later hostile, tendencies of the government in
+regard to authors manifested themselves with a special violence
+during the reign of Catherine II. This erudite woman, an admirer of
+Voltaire and of the French "encyclopedistes," was personally
+interested in writing. She wrote several plays in which she
+ridiculed the coarse manners and the ignorance of the society of her
+time. Under the influence of this new impulse, which had come from
+one in such a high station in life, a legion of satirical journals
+flooded the country. The talented and spiritual von Vizin wrote
+comedies, the most famous of which exposes the ignorance and cruelty
+of country gentlemen; in another, he shows the ridiculousness of
+people who take only the brilliant outside shell from European
+civilization. Shortly, Radishchev's "Voyage from Moscow to
+St. Petersburg" appeared. Here the author, with the fury of
+passionate resentment, and with sad bitterness, exposes the
+miserable condition of the people under the yoke of the high and
+mighty. It was then that the empress, Catherine the Great, so gentle
+to the world at large and so authoritative at home, perceiving that
+satire no longer spared the guardian principles necessary for the
+security of the State, any more than they did popular superstitions,
+manifested a strong displeasure against it. Consequently, the
+satirical journals disappeared as quickly as they had appeared. Von
+Vizin, who, in his pleasing "Questions to Catherine" had touched on
+various subjects connected with court etiquette, and on the miseries
+of political life, had to content himself with silence. Radishchev
+was arrested, thrown into a fortress, and then sent to Siberia.
+They went so far as to accuse Derzhavin, the greatest poet of this
+time, the celebrated "chanter of Catherine," in his old age, of
+Jacobinism for having translated into verse one of the psalms of
+David; besides this, the energetic apostle of learning, Novikov, a
+journalist, a writer, and the founder of a remarkable society which
+devoted itself to the publication and circulation of useful books,
+was accused of having had relations with foreign secret societies.
+He was confined in the fortress at Schluesselburg after all his
+belongings had been confiscated. The critic and the satirist had had
+their wings clipped. But it was no longer possible to check this
+tendency, for, by force of circumstances, it had been planted in the
+very soul of every Russian who compared the conditions of life in
+his country with what European civilization had done for the
+neighboring countries.
+
+Excluded from journalism, this satiric tendency took refuge in
+literature, where the novel and the story trace the incidents of
+daily life. Since the writers could not touch the evil at its
+source, they showed its consequences for social life. They
+represented with eloquence the empty and deplorable banality of the
+existence forced upon most of them. By expressing in various ways
+general aspirations towards something better, they let literature
+continue its teaching, even in times particularly hostile to
+freedom of thought, like the reign of Nicholas I, the most typical
+and decided adversary of the freedom of the pen that Europe has ever
+seen. Literature was, then, considered as an inevitable evil, but
+one from which the world wanted to free itself; and every man of
+letters seemed to be under suspicion. During this reign, not only
+criticisms of the government, but also praises of it, were
+considered offensive and out of place. Thus, the chief of the secret
+police, when he found that a writer of that time, Bulgarine, whose
+name was synonymous with accuser and like evils, had taken the
+liberty to praise the government for some insignificant improvements
+made on a certain street, told him with severity: "You are not asked
+to praise the government, you must only praise men of letters."
+
+Nothing went to print without the authorization of the general
+censor, an authorization that had to be confirmed by the various
+parts of the complex machine, and, finally, by a superior committee
+which censored the censors. The latter were themselves so terrorized
+that they scented subversive ideas even in cook-books, in technical
+musical terms, and in punctuation marks. It would seem that under
+such conditions no kind of literature, and certainly no satire,
+could exist. Nevertheless, it was at this period that Gogol produced
+his best works. The two most important are, his comedy "The
+Revizor," where he stigmatizes the abuses of administration, and
+"Dead Souls," that classic work which de Voguee judges worthy of
+being given a place in universal literature, between "Don Quixote"
+and "Gil Blas," and which, in a series of immortal types,
+flagellates the moral emptiness and the mediocrity of life in high
+Russian society at that time.
+
+At the same time, Griboyedov's famous comedy, "Intelligence Comes to
+Grief," which the censorship forbade to be produced or even
+published, was being circulated in manuscript form. This comedy, a
+veritable masterpiece, has for its hero a man named Chatsky, who was
+condemned as a madman by the aristocratic society of Moscow on
+account of his independent spirit and patriotic sentiments. It is
+true that in all of these works the authors hardly attack important
+personages or the essential bases of political organization. The
+functionaries and proprietors of Gogol's works are "petites gens,"
+and the civic pathos of Chatsky aims at certain individuals and not
+at the national institutions. But these attacks, cleverly veiling
+the general conditions of Russian life, led the intelligent reader
+to meditate on certain questions, and it also permitted satire to
+live through the most painful periods. Later, with the coming of the
+reforms of Alexander II, satire manifested itself more openly in
+the works of Saltykov, who was not afraid to use all his talent in
+scourging, with his biting sarcasm, violence and arbitrariness.
+
+Another salient trait of Russian literature is its tendency toward
+realism, the germ of which can be seen even in the most
+old-fashioned works, when, following the precepts of the West, they
+were taken up first with pseudo-classicism, and then with the
+romantic spirit which followed.
+
+Pseudo-classicism had but few worthy representatives in Russia, if
+we omit the poet Derzhavin, whom Pushkin accused of having a poor
+knowledge of his mother tongue, and whose monotonous work shows
+signs of genius only here and there.
+
+As to romanticism! Here we find excellent translations of the German
+poets by Zhukovsky, and the poems of Lermontov and Pushkin, all
+impregnated with the spirit of Byron. But these two movements came
+quickly to an end. Soon realism, under the influence of Dickens and
+Balzac, installed itself as master of this literature, and, in spite
+of the repeated efforts of the symbolist schools, nothing has yet
+been able to wipe it out. Thus, the triumph of realism was not, as
+in the case of earlier tendencies, the simple result of the spirit
+of imitation which urges authors to choose models that are in
+vogue, but it was a response to a powerful instinct. The truth of
+this statement is very evident in view of the fact that realism
+appeared in Russian literature at a time when it was still a novelty
+in Europe. The need of representing naked reality, without any
+decorations, is, so to speak, innate in the Russian author, who
+cannot, for any length of time, be led away from this practice. This
+is the very reason why the Byronian influence, at the time of
+Pushkin and Lermontov, lasted such a short time. After having
+written several poems inspired by the English poet, Pushkin soon
+disdained this model, which was the sole object of European
+imitation. "Byron's characters," he says, "are not real people, but
+rather incarnations of the various moods of the poet," and he ends
+by saying that Byron is "great but monotonous." We find the same
+thing in Lermontov, who was fond of Byron, not only in a transient
+mood of snobbery, but because the very strong and sombre character
+of his imagination naturally led him to choose this kind of intense
+poetry. He was exerting himself to regard reality seriously and to
+reproduce it with exactitude, at the very time when he was killed in
+a duel at the youthful age of twenty-seven.
+
+Pushkin's best work, his novel in verse, "Evgeny Onyegin," although
+it came so early, was constructed according to realistic
+principles; and although we still distinguish romantic tints, it is
+a striking picture of Russian society at the beginning of the 19th
+century. We find the same tendency in Lermontov's prose novel, "A
+Hero of Our Times," in which the hero, Pechorin, has many traits in
+common with Evgeny Onyegin. This book immediately made a deep
+impression. It was really nothing more than a step taken in a new
+direction by its author. But it was a step that promised much. An
+absurd fatality destroyed this promise, and hindered the poet,
+according to the expression of an excellent critic of that time,
+from "rummaging with his eagle eye, among the recesses of the
+world."
+
+The works of writers of secondary rank, contemporaneous with the
+above mentioned, also reveal a realistic tendency. Then appeared, to
+declare it with a master's power, that genius of a realist, of whom
+we have already made mention, Gogol. There was general enthusiasm;
+Gogol absorbed almost the entire attention of the public and men of
+letters. The great critic and publicist Byelinsky, in particular,
+took it upon himself to elaborate in his works the theories of
+realism; he formulated the program about 1850 under the name of the
+"naturalistic school." Thus the germs of the past had expanded
+triumphantly in the work of Gogol, and the way was now clear for
+Turgenev, Dostoyevsky, Tolstoy, Goncharov, Ostrovsky, and Pisemsky,
+who, while enlarging the range and perfecting the methods of the
+naturalistic school, conquered for their native literature the place
+which it has definitely assumed in the world.
+
+Although we may infer that Russian realism has its roots in a
+special spiritual predilection, we must not nevertheless forget the
+historical conditions which prepared the way for it and made its
+logical development easy. Russian literature, called on to struggle
+against tremendous obstacles, could hardly have gone astray in the
+domain of a nebulous idealism.
+
+The third distinctive trait of this literature is found in its
+democratic spirit. Most of the heroes are not titled personages;
+they are peasants, bourgeois, petty officials, students, and,
+finally, "intellectuals." This democratic taste is explained by the
+very constitution of Russian society.
+
+The spirit of the literature of a nation is usually a reflection of
+the social class which possesses the preponderant influence from a
+political or economic standpoint or which is marked by the strength
+of its numbers. The preponderance of the upper middle class in
+England has impressed on all the literature of that country the seal
+of morality belonging to that class; while in France, where
+aristocracy predominated, one still feels the influence of the
+aristocratic traditions which are so brilliantly manifested in the
+pseudo-classic period of its literature. But many reasons have
+hindered the aristocracy and the bourgeoisie from developing in
+Russia. The Russian bourgeois was, for a long time, nothing but a
+peasant who had grown rich, while the noble was distinguished more
+by the number of his serfs and his authority than by his moral
+superiority. Deprived of independence, these two classes blended and
+still blend with the immense number of peasants who surround them on
+all sides and submerge them irresistibly, however they may wish to
+free themselves.
+
+Very naturally, the first Russian authors came from the class of
+proprietors, rural lords, who were the most intelligent, not to say
+the only intelligent people. In general, the life of the lord was
+barely distinguishable from that of the peasant. As he was usually
+reared in the country, he passed his childhood among the village
+children; the people most dear to his heart, often more dear to him
+than his father or mother, were his nurse and the other
+servants,--simple people, who took care of him and gave him the
+pleasures of his youthful existence. Before he entered the local
+government school, he had been impregnated with goodness and popular
+poetry, drawn from stories, legends, and tales to which he had been
+an ardent listener. We find the great Pushkin dedicating his most
+pathetic verses to his old nurse, and we often see him inspired by
+the most humble people. In this way, to the theoretic democracy
+imported from Europe is united, in the case of the Russian author, a
+treasure of ardent personal recollections; democracy is not for him
+an abstract love of the people, but a real affection, a tenderness
+made up of lasting reminiscences which he feels deeply.
+
+This then was the mental state of the most intelligent part of this
+Russian nobility, which showed itself a pioneer of the ideas of
+progress in literature and life. There were even singular political
+manifestations produced. Rostopchin said: "In France the shoemakers
+want to become noble; while here, the nobles would like to turn
+shoemakers." But, in spite of all, the greater part of this caste,
+with its essential conservative instincts, was nothing more than an
+inert mass, without initiative, and incapable even of defending its
+own interests except by the aid of the government.
+
+Rostopchin did not suspect the profound truth of his capricious
+saying.
+
+This truth burst forth in all its strength about 1870, the time of
+the great reforms undertaken by Alexander II, when the interests of
+the people were, for the first time, the order of the day. It was
+at this period that a great deal of studying was being done with
+great enthusiasm and that a general infatuation for folklore and for
+a "union with the masses" was being shown. The desire to become
+"simplified," that is to say to have all people live the same kind
+of life, the appearance of a type, celebrated under the sarcastic
+name of "noble penitent" (meaning the titled man who is ashamed of
+his privileged position as if it were a humiliating and infamous
+thing), the politico-socialistic ideology of the first Slavophiles,
+still half conservative, but wholly democratic; all these things
+were the results of the manifestations which astonished Rostopchin
+and made the more intelligent class of Russians fraternize more with
+the masses. In our day, this tendency has been eloquently
+illustrated by the greatest Russian artist and thinker, Tolstoy, who
+was the very incarnation of the ideas named above, and who always
+appears to us as a highly cultured peasant. The hero of
+"Resurrection" sums up in a few words this sympathy for the people:
+"This is it, the big world, the true world!" he says, on seeing the
+crowd of peasants and workingmen packed into a third-class
+compartment.
+
+In the last half of the 19th century, Russian literature took a
+further step in the way of democracy. It passed from the hands of
+the nobility into the hands of the middle class, as the conditions
+under which it existed brought it closer to the people and made it
+therefore more accessible to their aspirations. It is no longer the
+great humanitarians of the privileged class who paint the miserable
+conditions among which people vegetate; it is the people themselves
+who are beginning to speak of their miseries and of their hopes for
+a better life. The result is a deep penetration of the popular mind,
+in conjunction with an acute, and sometimes sickly, nervousness,
+which is shown in the works of the great Uspensky, and, more
+recently still, in Tchekoff, Andreyev, and many others.
+
+None of these writers belong to the aristocracy, and two of
+them--Tchekoff and Gorky--have come up from the masses: the former
+was the son of a serf, and the latter the son of a workingman. Let
+me add that, among the women of letters, the one who is most
+distinguished by her talent in describing scenes from popular
+life--Mme. Dmitrieva--is the daughter of a peasant woman.
+
+Thus, as we have shown, the Russian writers alone, under the cover
+of imaginative works which became expressive symbols, could
+undertake a truly efficacious struggle against tyranny and
+arbitrariness. They found themselves in that way placed in a
+peculiar social position with corresponding duties. Men expected
+from them, naturally, a new gospel and also a plan of conduct
+necessary in order to escape from the circle of oppression. The best
+of the Russian writers have undertaken a difficult and perilous
+task; they have become the guides, and, so to speak, the "masters"
+of life. This tendency constitutes a new trait in Russian
+literature, one of its most characteristic; not that other
+literatures have neglected it, but no other literature in the world
+has proclaimed this mission with such a degree of energy and with
+such a spirit of sacrifice. Never, in any other country, have
+novelists or poets felt with such intensity the burden on their
+souls. At this point Gogol, first of all, became the victim of this
+state of things.
+
+The enthusiasm stirred up by his works and by the immense hopes that
+he had evoked suddenly elevated him to such a height in the minds of
+his contemporaries that he felt real anguish. Artist he was, and now
+he forced himself to become a moralist; he rushed into philosophical
+speculations which led him on to a nebulous mysticism, from which
+his talent suffered severely. When he realized what had happened,
+despair seized him, his ideas troubled him, and he died in terrible
+intellectual distress.
+
+We see also the great admirer of Gogol--Dostoyevsky--under different
+pretexts making known in almost all his novels and especially in
+his magazine articles, "Recollections of an Author," his opinions on
+the reforms about to be realized. He studies the problems of
+civilization which concern humanity in general, and particularly
+insists upon the mission of the Russian people, who are destined, he
+believes, to end all the conflicts of the world by virtue of a
+system based upon Christian love and pity.
+
+Turgenev, himself, although above all an artist, does not remain
+aloof from this educational work. In his "Annals of a Sportsman," he
+attacks bondage. And when it was abolished, and when in the very
+heart of Russian society, among the younger generation, the
+revolutionists appeared, Turgenev attempted to paint these "new
+men." Thus in his novel, "Fathers and Sons," he sketches in bold
+strokes the character of the nihilist Bazarov. This celebrated type
+cannot, however, be considered a true representative of the
+mentality of the "new men," for it gave only a few aspects of their
+character, which, besides, did not have Turgenev's sympathy.
+
+They are valued in an entirely different way by Chernyshevsky in his
+novel, "What Is To Be Done?" where the author, one of the most
+powerful representatives of the great movement toward freedom from
+1860 to 1870, carefully studied the bases of the new morals and the
+means to be used in struggling against the prejudices of the old
+society. Finally let us mention Tolstoy, whose entire literary
+activity was a constant search for truth, till the day when his mind
+found an answer to his doubts in the religion of love and harmony
+which he preached from then on.
+
+The earnestness which sees an apostle in a writer has not ceased to
+grow and has almost blinded the public.
+
+For example, Gorky needed only to write some stories in which he
+places before us beings belonging to the most miserable classes of
+society, to be suddenly, and perhaps against his own will, elevated
+to the role of prophet of a new gospel, of annunciator from whom
+they were waiting for the Word, although one could also find the
+Word in the anti-socialistic circles which he depicts. Another
+contemporaneous author, Tchekoff, once wrote a story about the
+precarious position of the workingman in the city; he showed how
+this man, after he had become old and had gone back to his native
+village, suffered even more misery than before instead of getting
+the rest he had hoped for. Immediately an ardent controversy took
+place between the two factions of the youth of that time, the
+Populists and the Marxists. The former, defending the rural
+population, accused the author of having exaggerated and of having
+only superficially considered the question, while the others
+triumphed, confident in the activity of the people of the city.
+
+The literary critic, however, in carefully studying the works of
+these authors, tried to get at the real meaning,--the idea between
+the lines. Gorky's philosophy has often been discussed; a great many
+men of letters have tried to unravel what there was of pessimism, of
+indifference or of mystic idealism in the soul of Tchekoff. This
+everlasting habit, not to say this mania, of analyzing the mind or
+soul of an author in order to get at his conception, his personal
+doctrine of life, often leads to partial and erroneous conclusions,
+especially when, as in most cases, the critic has only a very vague
+idea of the main current of thought which formed the genesis of the
+work.
+
+The hopes and emotions which are aroused by every original
+expression in literature, show more than ever what hopes are based
+upon its role, the mission which has devolved on it to serve life,
+by formulating the facts of the ideal to be realized.
+
+But what is this ideal? What are these ideal aspirations? Of what
+elements are they made up? What is the state of mind of the great
+majority of Russian "intellectuals" in the midst of the enmity which
+compromises and menaces them?
+
+Thanks to the window pierced by Peter the Great in the thick
+Muscovite wall, the Russian "intellectuals" have begun to have a
+general idea of European civilization. They have admired the beauty
+of this culture, and the greatness of European political and social
+institutions, guarantees of the dignity of human beings; they have
+endured mental suffering because they have found that in Russia such
+independence would be impossible, and, consequently, they have had a
+feeling of extreme bitterness, which has forced them either to deny
+or calumniate the moral forces of their country, or to formulate
+very strange theories about this situation. Thus at the end of the
+first twenty-five years of the century, Chadayev, one of the most
+original and brilliant thinkers of Russia, developed the following
+thesis in his "Philosophical Letters":--the fatal course of history
+having opposed the union of the Russian people with Catholicism,
+through which European civilization developed, Russia found herself
+reduced forever to the existence of an inert mass, deprived of all
+interior energy, as can be shown adequately by her history, her
+customs, and even the aspect of her national type with its
+ill-defined traits and apathetic expression.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In the course of the terrible struggle which he waged against the
+censorship and against influential persons evilly disposed toward
+him, Pushkin cried out: "It was the idea of the devil himself that
+made me be born in Russia!" And in one of his letters, he says,
+"Naturally, I despise my country from east to west, but,
+nevertheless, I hate to hear a stranger speak of it with scorn."
+Lermontov, exiled to the Caucasus, ironically takes leave of his
+country, which he calls, "a squalid country of slaves and masters."
+And he salutes the Caucasian mountains as the immense screen which
+may hide him from the eyes of the Russian pachas. The Slavophiles
+themselves, the patriots who in their way idealized both Russian
+orthodoxy and autocracy, and who were wrongly considered the
+champions of the existing order of things, showed themselves no less
+hostile. One of their most celebrated representatives, Khomyakov,
+sees in Russia "a land stigmatized" by serfdom, where all is
+injustice, lies, morbid laziness and turpitude.
+
+Dostoyevsky, who shared some of the illusions of the Slavophiles,
+speaks of Europe as "a land of sacred miracles." Nevertheless,
+yielding to his desire to heighten the prestige of his country, he
+adds: "The Russian is not partially European, but essentially so, in
+the very largest sense of the word, because he watches, with an
+impartial love, the progress achieved by the various peoples of
+Europe, while each one of _them_ appreciates, above all, the
+progress of his own country, and often does not want to let the
+others share it."
+
+In spite of the seductive powers which European civilization
+exercised upon Russia, the Russians perceived its weak sides, which
+they studied by the light of the ideal which they promised
+themselves to attain in some indefinite future, a future which they
+nevertheless hoped was near at hand.
+
+To them, enthusiastic observers that they were, these defects became
+more apparent than to the Europeans themselves; as their critical
+sense was not deadened by the wear of constant use, they saw in a
+clear light the inconveniences of certain institutions, they
+perceived the sad consequences of the excessive triumph of
+individualism in its struggle for life, the enfranchisement of the
+proletariat, the satisfaction of the few at the cost of the many. At
+times the bases of this civilization seemed fragile to the Russians;
+they had a feeling that it was not finished; they also aspired more
+and more to the harmonious equilibrium of society which appealed to
+their ideal.
+
+In a word, that which has always been called socialism, has had an
+irresistible attraction for the more intelligent Russians; all of
+Russian literature is permeated with it, and it has developed all
+the more easily because it found a favorable basis in Russia's
+natural democracy.
+
+During the period when this literature was most persecuted--that is
+to say in the second half of the 19th century--its most influential
+representatives were ardent socialists. Among them should be
+mentioned the critic Byelinsky, the "Petracheviens,"--adepts in the
+doctrine of Fourier,--and that powerful agitator of ideas, Hertzen,
+who founded the Russian free press in London. Among Western writers,
+there were two well liked in Russia: George Sand and Charles
+Dickens. The former was a socialist, the latter was a democrat.
+Their influence was very great in Russia; their works were read with
+ardor, and gave rise to thoughts which escaped the severities of the
+censor, but betrayed themselves in private conversation, as well as
+in certain literary circles.
+
+All the celebrated writers of Europe who professed liberal
+tendencies met with a greater sympathy among the Russians of that
+time than in their own country. Dickens, received with great
+enthusiasm in Russia, was not appreciated by the English public. His
+excellent translator, Vedensky, tried hard to persuade him to come
+to Russia to live, where his talents would be valued at their true
+worth. We can then readily understand how Dostoyevsky, in his
+"Memoirs of an Author," had the right to say that the European
+socialistic-democrats had two countries, first their own, then
+Russia.
+
+The Russian writers who gave themselves up so passionately to this
+influence,--still so new even in Europe,--not able to support their
+political ideal, with a press, as it were, gagged by the censor,
+engaged in the struggle along the line of customs. They attacked the
+prejudices which clog the relations among men, and rose up against
+family despotism and the inferior position of women from a civil and
+economic point of view. But, between 1860 and 1870, when the
+enfranchisement of the serfs reduced the power of the censor, all
+that had been confined in the souls of the Russians burst forth.
+Chernishevsky wrote economic articles on capital and on the
+agricultural community; he studied the system of John Stuart Mill,
+from which he deduced his socialistic conclusions, and his
+reputation grew immediately at home and abroad. He became a leader
+of thought among the new generation.
+
+At the same time, the young critic Dobrolyubov, author of an
+analytical study of Russian customs, "The Kingdom of Shadows,"
+called the "intellectuals" to a struggle for the rights of the
+oppressed people, and was ready himself to "drain the bitter cup
+intended for those who have been sacrificed." Also at this time
+there appeared the poet Nekrasov and the satirist Saltykov. The
+former, a profound pessimist, described in his best verses the
+bitter fate of the lower classes; the latter with his sarcasm
+scathed bureaucratic arbitrariness, while from abroad was heard the
+free ringing of "The Bell,"--a paper founded by Hertzen,--which
+seemed to be announcing that freedom was coming. Two articles by the
+poet Mikhailov on the situation of women started a vast movement.
+The women soon filled the lecture-halls of the university, and the
+class-rooms, and organized a veritable campaign to defend their
+rights in the name of the principle of liberty. All the partisans of
+democracy or socialism applauded them. The agitation became general;
+it seemed as if they wanted to make up for lost time by this
+tremendous activity; everywhere Sunday schools were started and
+public libraries opened; workingmen's associations were formed on
+socialistic principles, and the ardent younger generation spoke to
+the ignorant masses and asked them to join them in the coming
+struggle.
+
+This epoch has been called "the moral springtime" of Russia, and in
+truth it was a spring with all of its real splendors and illusions.
+A sudden wave of life surged from one end of the empire to the
+other. Up above, the government was making reforms prudently, as if
+afraid of going too far; down below, a great transformation was
+taking place. It was at this time that certain bold projects were
+contemplated at which the government took fright. The "springtime"
+proved ephemeral. A triumphant reaction nipped in the bud this
+movement towards emancipation, with all its hopes. In 1877, after
+the Russo-Turkish war, it seemed as if the movement were going to
+start again. Less vast and less diverse, but more definite, it
+immediately put all of its strength into the popular propaganda and
+showed its activity by the assassination of the emperor and by
+several other crimes. It was a terrible struggle, till finally the
+leaders again succumbed under the mighty blows of their adversaries.
+The years that followed this defeat (1880-1905) were most
+inauspicious in Russian life. A profound apathy deadened society,
+and an atmosphere of anguish and disillusion--which have left
+visible traces in Russian literature--weighed it down.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In short, it may be said that Russian thought has always been led
+away by the theories of certain European parties who are most
+opposed to political and social organization of the state.
+
+The vigor, the clearness, and the force of negation with which this
+characteristic manifests itself in the ideas and customs of the
+Russian radical-socialists have often distorted, in the eyes of
+other countries, opinions or doctrines which it is important to
+present in their true light.
+
+Thus, Bazarov, that nihilistic creation of Turgenev, appeared to the
+English, French, and German public as a mystical hero not viable in
+human society, while Pisarev, one of the sanest of Russian critics,
+considers him as a model of the really free man. As to Turgenev
+himself, he saw that the coming of this type would make concrete a
+rising force worthy of holding attention and also of commanding some
+respect.
+
+In practical life, this negative force has found its most extreme
+expression in what has already been pointed out, that is, in the
+revolutionary anarchism of Bakunin and in Tolstoy's recent theories
+of pacific anarchism, which are founded on the gospel. But, while
+very significant as great illustrations of certain sides of Russian
+mentality, neither the one nor the other of these anarchistic
+doctrines, so opposed in their substance, can be considered as an
+expression of the modern Russian socialistic movement. Having found
+a basis in the workingman movement of their country, the Russian
+socialistic theoreticians have become more practical, and their
+activity turns back to the realm of European socialism, which is to
+be found in the doctrines of Karl Marx.
+
+There was a time in Europe when they christened with the name
+"nihilism" this active negation of civilization and of bourgeois
+customs, so characteristic of the Russian "intellectuals." Taken in
+its literal sense, this word is inexact, since those to whom it was
+applied were inspired by a very high ideal. In a loose use of the
+word, nihilism has, on the contrary, a real significance, especially
+if one connects it with most of the Russian "intellectuals." The
+liberal tendencies which were brewing in the realistic literature of
+the period from 1840 to 1850, and which manifested themselves
+suddenly with particular strength during the tumultuous decade
+between 1860 and 1870, made the substance of the new theories and
+the base of Russian mentality. These theories were very bold in
+their negation, and it is for this reason that they have been called
+"nihilistic."
+
+If this intellectual "elite" should some day triumph in Russia, will
+it be true to its moral idea of justice and liberty? It probably
+will. We may then see the following phenomenon take place: the
+realization of the most advanced program of modern civilization in
+one of the most backward countries of Europe.
+
+However paradoxical such a prevision may seem at first, it has a
+fundamental element of truth. Two obstacles bar the way to
+civilization and the normal development of new ideas, which are the
+foundation of progress. First of all, there is the naive and boorish
+ignorance of the common people; then the resistance which every
+established society instinctively offers to ideas of reformation. Of
+these two conservative forces, Russia knows but one, pure and simple
+ignorance, while the second, which can have art and science as
+powerful allies, is completely lacking. But ignorance cannot last
+forever. It diminishes more and more; that is why the most advanced
+ideas of European civilization naturally go hand in hand with
+learning in Russia, and occupy all places which knowledge wins from
+ignorance. Since the Russian has had a taste of science he has
+become the champion of social and democratic ideas; the latter
+develop even with elementary instruction, as can easily be seen by
+observing the movements made among the workmen of the city, and also
+among the more advanced elements of the peasant population.
+
+These particulars had already attracted the attention of the
+brilliant peace advocate and profound thinker, Hertzen, who,
+distressed by the bloody reprisals of bourgeoise Europe, following
+the Revolution of 1848, fixed his attention on Russia, from which he
+expected great things,--among others, a new civilization freed from
+the prejudices and customs which held it back in other countries.
+
+Hertzen represented Russia as an immense plain where people were
+getting rid of old thatched cottages, and at the same time
+collecting the necessary materials for new habitations. He saw a
+world in which no one lived as yet, but where life as it should be
+was being prepared for. And this idea, which may seem exaggerated,
+has a good deal of sense in it. Does not every backward nation,
+which hastens to take her place in the circle of the more advanced
+peoples of Europe, resemble a vessel into which a new wine is to be
+poured?
+
+ * * * * *
+
+If modern Russian literature has not deviated from its fundamental
+principles, realism, democracy, and socialism, on the other hand, a
+radical change has taken place in society which has necessarily had
+an influence on it. The populace is not the sombre, inert, and
+ignorant multitude that it has been heretofore. Learning is
+penetrating more and more; and as an advance-guard, it has the
+workingmen of the city and the people of the suburbs. A feeling of
+dignity, of human personality, and a love of liberty is awakening in
+the masses who have joined in the struggle which the "intellectuals"
+are conducting against the passive forces of autocracy.
+
+That is why the literature of this time--always excepting the period
+from 1905 to 1910--is preeminently a literature of fiercer and more
+active combat than ever before. As in times gone by, the heroes of
+this literature are common people. The writers choose them from
+among the students, schoolmasters, and school-mistresses of the
+village schools, who with complete disregard of self carry on the
+great work of popular education in the very heart of the country,
+without caring about the arbitrary power which menaces them, or the
+moral and material conditions of their lives. They also choose them
+from among the doctors of the districts who are worn out in
+despairing efforts to struggle against the terrible epidemics, and
+who are also trying to improve hygienic conditions among the
+peasants. In fine, among the heroes are included all who sacrifice
+their personal interests for the general good.
+
+The results of this terrible struggle against brute force are shown
+in the excessive nervousness of the combatants, who have become
+delirious with their aspirations towards liberty. Hatred of actual
+reality and distrust of those who have resigned themselves to it
+have made them accept sympathetically the most extreme and
+uncompromising measures, and one often thinks one sees a certain
+generosity among the people who are at war with society,--often, it
+is true, for egotistical reasons, far removed from the great ideal
+of reforms profitable to the masses. Such are the celebrated
+barefoot brigade, the eternal vagabonds, the "lumpen-proletariat" of
+Gorky's early works.
+
+Another favorite subject of the Russian authors is the antagonism
+which makes parents and children quarrel. But the children who were
+radicals of the former generation have now became fathers, and are
+often reproached by their sons for the practical impossibility of
+the ideal for which they vainly expended their strength, and, as a
+result of which, they are worn out and useless. Veressayev and
+Chirikov have written most on this point.
+
+However, in spite of repeated attacks, the resistance has grown in
+intensity and the general uneasiness has spread without any one's
+being able as yet to see any lasting or positive result. The
+pessimism of various writers faithfully reflects this crisis.
+Andreyev, for instance, possesses an extraordinary intuition of the
+element of tragic mysteriousness which envelops the slightest
+circumstances of daily life. Tchekoff, the prominent author who died
+a few years ago, has left us remarkably realistic sketches, where he
+obviously shows mental discouragement as a result of the struggle.
+Another contemporary writer, Korolenko, whose poetic talent recalls
+Turgenev to our minds, is distinguished, on the contrary, by the
+attempts he has made to set free the spark of life which exists in
+human beings who have broken down morally. All these writers have
+such a direct and powerful influence on contemporary youth that we
+are going to study them separately in this book, not excepting
+Tchekoff, whose influence is still enormous.
+
+Since the death of the prophet of Yasnaya-Polyana,[1] Russian
+literature cannot boast of any writers who compare with Turgenev,
+Dostoyevsky, Goncharov, or the dramatist Ostrovsky. The cause is to
+be traced rather to circumstances than to the authors themselves.
+For social life to furnish material suitable for the artist's
+description, it must first of all have types which show a certain
+consistency, a more or less determined attitude. But it is futile to
+look for either stability or precision in Russian life since Russia
+has been going through continual crises. It would be just as
+difficult for literature to record rapid changes of ideas, as for an
+artist to copy a model that cannot pose for him. Besides, most
+contemporary writers are struggling hard for the means of
+subsistence.
+
+ [1] Tolstoy.
+
+Sometimes their effort to get food has so sapped their strength that
+they have not had enough time to finish their studies, nor enough
+tranquillity of soul to apply their talents to an impartial view of
+life and to incorporating in their work the documents which they
+have collected. Even in the writing of the best Russian authors of
+to-day one often feels that there is something unfinished, or hasty,
+as if their thoughts had not matured.
+
+I do not think that it will be superfluous to add that all Russian
+literature for the past century has been able to express only a very
+small part of what it had to say. The Russian writer continually
+suffers from the constraint which forces him to check the flight of
+his inspiration in order to escape from the foolish and often stupid
+sternness of the pitiless censor. The poet Nekrasov shows us in one
+of his poems an old soldier who has become a printer, and who speaks
+in the following manner of Pushkin:
+
+"He was a good man, tipped very generously, but he never ceased to
+rage against the censor. When he saw his manuscripts marked with red
+crosses, he became furious. One day, in order to console him, I
+said:
+
+"'Bah! why torment yourself?'
+
+"'Why,' he cried, 'but it is blood that is flowing,--blood,--my
+blood!'"
+
+A great deal of blood was thus shed. And in order to accentuate the
+action of the censor the police dealt cruel blows to the authors.
+One day Pushkin was called to the head of the department. They
+believed that they had recognized in one of his satires a certain
+gentleman, named N. G., who demanded that Pushkin be severely
+punished. Unnerved by the cross-examination to which he was put, the
+poet cried:
+
+"But it isn't N. G. whom I have drawn!"
+
+"Who is it, then?"
+
+"It is you, yourself," replied the poet.
+
+"That is madness, sir," the high dignitary cried out with wrath.
+"You say that wood belonging to the state was stolen. And at the
+time when these thefts were committed I was away."
+
+"Then you do not recognize yourself in my satire?"
+
+"No, a thousand times no!"
+
+"And N. G. recognizes himself?"
+
+"Not exactly, but as he is in the service of the government...."
+
+"Well, is he its spokesman and champion? And why is it precisely he
+who asks to have me arrested?"
+
+"All right," replied the dignitary, suddenly becoming milder, "I
+shall inform His Majesty of our conversation."
+
+The affair ended without further complications. It should be noted
+that the Tsar himself protected Pushkin, for Pushkin had got into
+touch with him in order to influence him more successfully.
+Nevertheless, this acquaintance was only a new source of suffering
+to the poet. In the case of certain less known writers the
+malevolence of the higher authorities often took on a tragic turn.
+For a single poem in which the poet Polezhayev described a students'
+debauch, the author was reduced by Nicholas I to the rank of a
+common soldier. Sokolovsky, another writer of this time, not being
+able to get a footing in literature, abandoned the pen, and like
+many others, sought to forget his disappointment in drink. For
+several years Hertzen was transferred from one place of exile to
+another until he came to England. And how terrible was the fate of
+the talented poet of Little Russia, Shevchenko, who was exiled for
+many years to a corner of European Russia and forbidden to do any
+writing or even painting, a thing that he loved above all! And
+finally, who does not know the sad comedy of Dostoyevsky, who was
+made to go through all the preparations for his execution, but was
+finally sent to that prison which he has so wonderfully described in
+his recollections of "The Dead House"?
+
+The Damocles' sword of defiant authority was suspended over the head
+of every Russian writer. The vocation of literature was filled with
+danger and brought about actual tragedies in some families. Thus,
+Pushkin's father, fearing that the fury of the authorities would
+extend to him, began to hate all literature, and had serious
+quarrels with his son. Griboyedov's mother threw herself at her
+son's feet and begged him not to write any more but rather to enter
+the service of the State. In Griboyedov we have a sad example of a
+great talent virtually buried alive by the censor. His comedy,
+"Intelligence Comes to Grief," is a masterful work, sparkling with
+satiric warmth, the equal of which it would be hard to find
+anywhere. This first work, rich in promise, was never published nor
+produced. Discouraged, the author renounced literature, and on the
+advice of his mother, accepted a position as ambassador to Persia,
+where he was killed in a riot.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Not only does the censorship mutilate literary works, but it often
+suffocates the inspiration of the author. The Russian press has
+lately published a very interesting article on Nekrasov, explaining
+the frequent interruptions of his activity by a momentary paralysis
+of his inspiration. Often, he writes, the ideas and poetic forms
+which come to his mind are so strong that he need only take up his
+pen and write them down. But the thought that what he might write
+would be condemned by the censor, stops him. It was, then, a long
+struggle between the ideas which he wanted to express and the
+obstacles which hindered him. And when finally Nekrasov had
+smothered his inspiration, he was broken down and crushed by fatigue
+and disgust, and for a long time he stopped writing. His friends
+advised him to jot down his ideas in spite of all, in the hope that
+they would be recognized by future generations when happier days
+should dawn on literature. He was not successful, because in order
+to create his genius needed to feel a close bond between him and his
+readers. Thus the censor carried his brutal hand into the very
+laboratory of thought.
+
+Happily, since the movement toward reform between 1860 and 1870, the
+Russian censor has become more lenient and now no one says what was
+once said to the writer Bulgarin: "Your business is to describe
+public activities, popular holidays, the theatre. Do not look for
+other topics." The number of subjects open to the press has
+increased. But the desire to live a free life has developed in
+literature and in society alike, and as resistance to it has also
+strengthened, the pressure has remained relatively the same. The
+censor and the police continue to stifle the natural richness and
+the power of the Russian mind. To-day, as before, Russian literature
+is made up of just that small fraction of the whole which has
+escaped government inquisition.
+
+However, in spite of all the unheard-of constraints which weigh upon
+her, Russia has already given us such great authors, that we need
+not hesitate to say that on the day when she regains liberty of
+speech and of pen, her literature will take its place among the
+first in the world.
+
+
+
+
+II
+
+ANTON TCHEKOFF[2]
+
+ [2] This spelling has been adopted here, rather than Chekhov,
+ since it is more familiar to the public. In all other cases, the
+ _ch_ and _v_ have been retained.
+
+
+"There is a saying that man needs only six feet of ground, but that
+is for a corpse and not for a living man. It is not six feet of
+ground that man requires, not even an entire estate, but the whole
+terrestrial globe, nature in its fullness, so that all his faculties
+can expand freely."
+
+This is the proud profession of faith that Anton Tchekoff made on
+entering the literary world. He was born January 17, 1860, at
+Taganrog, where his father, a freed serf, lived. After attending
+school in his native town, he took up the study of medicine at
+Moscow. Once a doctor, rather than practise, he devoted most of his
+time to literature. His career as an author does not offer us any
+extraordinary situations. He owed his success, and later on his
+glory, to severe and prolonged work. His literary talent manifested
+itself while he was still a student. He began his career with
+humorous short stories which were published in various newspapers.
+They brought him enough for the bare necessities of life.
+
+These stories have been collected in two volumes. They are very
+short, almost miniatures. For the most part they are elegant
+trifles, worked out with painstaking care. One feels that the author
+had no definite goal in sight; he wrote them simply to amuse and
+entertain his readers. One would search in vain for any sort of
+philosophy. On the contrary, one finds there a rather significant
+spirit, a gaiety, care-free, loquacious and, at times, ironical.
+Unimportant people tell pleasant things about themselves or others.
+All these men are a trifle debauched, talky, futile, and their
+companions are flighty, intriguing little women who chatter
+incessantly. Everything begins and ends with a laugh. This recalls
+some of the early works of Gogol, but, we repeat, one finds no moral
+element in this laughter, and these tiny comedies are in reality no
+more than simple vaudeville sketches. Once in a while we find a sad
+note; less frequently, we find the sadness accentuated in order to
+present a terrible drama. Such, then, are the contents of the first
+two volumes which came from the pen of Tchekoff.
+
+However, this melancholy little note, met from time to time,
+gradually grew in intensity in the third volume, until later on it
+lost all trace of the old carelessness, and developed, on the
+contrary, into a profound sadness. Tchekoff unconsciously gave up
+the "genre" of pleasant anecdote in order to concentrate all his
+attention on facts. This practice made him sad. Russia was, at this
+time, going through a period of prostration as a result of the last
+Russo-Turkish war. This war, which, at the cost of enormous
+sacrifices, ended in the liberation of the Bulgarian people,
+awakened among the Russians a hope of obtaining their own liberty,
+and provoked among the younger generation the most energetic efforts
+to obtain this liberty, no matter what the cost might be. Alas, this
+hope was frustrated! All efforts were in vain, a reaction followed,
+and the year 1880 brought the reaction to its height. From then on
+apathy followed in the steps of the great enthusiasm. All illusion
+fled. A kind of disenchantment filled all minds. Those who had hoped
+with such ardor, and had counted on their own strength, felt weak
+and powerless. Some confined themselves to moaning incessantly. A
+grey twilight enveloped Russian life and filled it with melancholy.
+These are the dreary aspects that Tchekoff describes, and none has
+excelled him in portraying the events of this hopeless reaction. His
+stories and dramas give us a long procession of people who succumb
+to the monotony, to the platitudes, to the desolation, of
+existence.
+
+It is in the following manner that one of his characters expresses
+his ideas on the subject of this moral crisis:
+
+"I was then not more than twenty-six years of age; nevertheless I
+was conscious not only that life was senseless, but that it was
+without any visible goal; that all was illusion and dupery; that, in
+its consequences and even in its very essence, the life of the
+exiled on the island of Sakhaline was very much the same as the life
+that was led at Nice; that the difference between the brain of Kant
+and the brain of a fly was very small; finally, that no one in this
+world was either right or wrong."
+
+This idea of the nothingness of life, with its extremes, monstrous
+and profitless, is often found in the work of Tchekoff. His story
+"The Kiss" is but a variation of this theme,--the absurdity of life.
+Lieutenant Riabovich, under the influence of a chance kiss, a kiss
+that was not meant for him, dreams of love for an entire summer; he
+waits impatiently for the return of the pretty stranger; but alas,
+his lovely dream cannot be realized, for the simple and cruel reason
+that no one is waiting for _him_, no one is interested in him. One
+day, on the banks of a stream, the young officer gives himself up to
+his reflections:
+
+"The water flows off; one knows not where nor why; it flowed in
+exactly the same way last May; from the stream it flows into the
+river, and then into the sea; then it evaporates, turns into rain,
+and perhaps the very same water again flows by before my eyes.... To
+what good? Why?" And all life appears to Riabovich an absurd
+mystification and seems thoroughly senseless.
+
+The hero of "The Bet" absolutely scorns humanity, with its petty and
+its great deeds, its little and its great ideas, because he feels
+that after all everything must disappear, be annihilated, and the
+earth itself will turn into a mass of ice.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Tchekoff has given us innumerable rough sketches typical of people
+belonging to the most diverse social classes. He seems to take his
+readers by the hand and to lead them wherever he can show them
+characteristic scenes of modern Russian society,--be it in the
+country, in the factory, in princely dwellings, at the post-office,
+or on the highway. He barely takes the time absolutely necessary to
+depict in a few, appropriate words a state of mind or the secret of
+a gesture. One would say that he hastens to express the totality of
+life with the variety of his detached manifestations of it. That is
+why his stories are short; often mere allusions stand in place of
+actual development. And whatever domains or corners of Russian life
+the reader, under the guiding hand of this perspicacious cicerone,
+may visit, he will almost always go away with one predominating
+impression: the lamentable isolation of Russia.
+
+"The Windswept Grain" shows the reader a religious establishment,
+where a young Jew, recently converted, has taken refuge. Here is a
+young man, very impressionable and eager to learn, who has fled from
+his home and his family, whose prejudices offended him. His family
+tries every means to bring him back and to punish his apostasy.
+
+In order to employ his energies effectively, the young proselyte,
+who has embraced the new religion only that he may follow progress,
+tries to get a position as a school-teacher. But the apostleship of
+learning cannot satisfy his versatile mind: he continues to flit
+from one thing to another, like a gypsophilia, driven by the wind
+across the entire stretch of the steppes of southern Russia.
+
+Then Tchekoff takes us to a postal station to show us another type
+of the "Windswept Grain." This man, like the young convert, is a
+dreamer, who puts heart and soul into any new idea that comes along.
+He also has spent his life in searching for an activity
+corresponding to his ideal. At present, being a widower, he is
+obliged to support both himself and his daughter, who, while loving
+him devotedly, never ceases to reproach him for the many
+inconveniences of their uncertain existence. In the evening, a young
+widow from a neighboring province gets off at the place where he and
+his daughter are living. When she sees the young girl pouting, she
+consoles her by caressing her with the tact peculiar to women. Then,
+at tea time, she starts talking to the father. The idealist tells of
+his life, and reveals to the young woman the plans that he has made.
+The true sympathy with which she listens, and the respectful and
+tender feeling that he has for her, inevitably makes the reader
+think that fate has not brought these two people together in vain,
+and that their lives will be united. This impression persists when
+on the next day we find the young woman entering her carriage
+assisted by her companion of the evening before. We wait for the
+word that will unite this couple. But neither of them pronounces the
+all-important phrase. The carriage leaves; the man remains for a
+long time motionless as a statue, watching with a mingled feeling of
+joy and suffering the distant road and his disappearing happiness,
+which, but a moment ago, he seemed to hold in his hand.
+
+After those who insist on always realizing their temporary ideals,
+let us take up characters of a new type, those whom destiny has
+irredeemably conquered, and who have finally resigned themselves to
+their fate.
+
+An example of this type is Sofia Lvovna in "Volodia the Great and
+Volodia the Small." Married to a rich colonel, she has no other end
+in life. The days pass, tiresome, monotonous, filled only with
+visits and driving; the nights are interminable and sad near this
+husband whom she does not love, and whom she married out of spite
+and for money. Love for a comrade of her youth, Volodia by name,
+fills her heart. But this young man, who has recently finished his
+studies, is just as commonplace and just as debauched as her husband
+and the society which surrounds her. Sofia Lvovna is not yet
+resigned to her fate. She speaks of her aspirations to her childhood
+friend, who, after getting from her what he desires, leaves her at
+the end of a week. And Sofia Lvovna becomes frightened at the
+thought that for the young girls and women of her station there is
+no other alternative than to go on riding in carriages, or to enter
+a convent and gain salvation.
+
+"The Attack" gives us an example of the terrible feeling of terror
+that suddenly enters the proud soul of a young man at his first
+contact with certain realities.
+
+The student Vassiliev, a young man of excessively nervous
+temperament, has visited a house of ill-fame, and since then, he
+cannot rid himself of his painful impressions. Sombre thoughts
+beset his mind: "Women, living women!" he repeats, his head between
+his hands. "If I broke this lamp you would say that it was too bad;
+but down there it is not lamps that they break, it is the existence
+of human creatures! Living women!..."
+
+He dreams of several ways of saving these unfortunates, and he
+decides childishly to stand on a street-corner, and say to each
+passer-by:
+
+"Where are you going? and why? Fear God."
+
+But this desire soon gives place to a general state of anguish and
+hatred of himself. The evil seems too great for him, and its
+vastness crushes him. In the meantime, the people about him do not
+suffer; they are indifferent or incredulous. The student feels that
+he is losing his mind. They confine him. Later on, when, cured, he
+leaves the alienist, "he blushes at his anxiety."... The general
+indifference has broken down his aspirations, smothered his vague
+dream.
+
+In "Peter the Bishop," we see a man, good and simple, the son of
+peasants. This man, thanks to his intelligence, has raised himself
+to the rank of bishop. During all his life he has suffocated in this
+high ecclesiastical position, the pompous tinsel of which troubles
+him to such an extent that the cordial and sincere relationship
+existing between him and his old mother, who is so full of respect
+for her son, is broken off. After his death he is quickly forgotten.
+The old mother, now childless, when she walks in the fields with the
+women of the village, still speaks of her children, of her
+grandchildren, and of her son, the bishop. But she speaks timidly of
+him, as if she feared that they would not believe her. And, in
+truth, no one puts any faith in what she says.
+
+It is among the people and the working classes that man is most
+completely rid of all traces of an artificial and untruthful
+exterior; the struggle against misery does not leave much room for
+other preoccupations; life is merciless, it crushes unrelentingly
+man's dreams of happiness, and often does not leave any one to share
+the burden of sorrows or even its simple cares. The short and very
+touching story of "The Coachman" gives us an excellent example of
+this loneliness. Yona, a poor coachman, has lost his son; he feels
+that he has not the strength to live through this sorrow alone; he
+feels the absolute need of speaking to some one. But he tries in
+vain to confide his sorrows to one or the other of his patrons. No
+one listens to him. Therefore, once his day's work is over, alone in
+the stable, he pours out his heart to his horse: "Yes, my little
+mare, he is dead, my beloved child.... Let us suppose that you had a
+colt, and that this colt should suddenly die, wouldn't that cause
+you sorrow?" The mare looks at him with shining eyes, and snuffles
+the hand of her master, who ends by telling her the entire story of
+the sickness and death of his son.
+
+In "The Dreams," a miserable vagabond, whom two constables are
+taking to the neighboring city, dreams aloud of the pleasant life he
+expects to lead in Siberia, whither he hopes to be deported. His
+gaolers listen to him not without a certain interest. They also
+begin to dream ... they dream of a free country, from which they are
+separated by an enormous stretch of land, a country that they can
+hardly conceive. One of them brusquely interrupts the dreams of the
+vagabond: "That's all right, brother, you'll never get to that
+enchanted land. How are you going to get there? You are going to
+travel 300 versts and then you'll give your soul up to God. You are
+already almost gone." And then, in the imagination of the vagabond,
+other scenes present themselves: the slowness of justice, the
+temporary jails, the prison, the forced marches and the weary halts,
+the hard winters, sickness, the death of comrades.... "A shudder
+passes through his whole body, his head trembles and his body
+contracts like a worm which has been trodden upon...."
+
+Let us now look at those numerous stories of Tchekoff which treat of
+peasant life: "The Peasants," "The Murder," "In the Ravine," and
+others.
+
+"The Peasants" is one of the most important of the stories which
+treat of the country, and was recently conspicuous for bringing up
+the question, violently discussed by the Marxists and the Populists,
+of the life of the people in the city and in the country.
+
+Nicholas Chigueldyev, a waiter in a Moscow hotel, falls sick and has
+to leave his work. All his savings go into the hands of the doctor
+and the druggist. As he does not seem to improve, he decides to
+return to his native village, where his family is still living. If
+the air of the country does not cure him, he will at least die at
+home. He had left the village at an early age, and had never gone
+back to visit. He goes home with his wife and his little daughter.
+There he finds his mother, his father, and his two brothers and
+their wives in the most abject misery. The whole family is entombed
+in a dark and filthy "isba" full of flies. Nicholas and his wife
+immediately see that it would have been better for them to have
+remained in Moscow. But it is too late. They haven't enough money to
+return; they must remain. A horrible life begins for the sick man
+and his family. There are endless quarrels, blows, abuses. They
+reproach one another for eating and even for living. They are angry
+at Nicholas and his wife for having come. The latter is soon tired
+of this existence. In the city Nicholas had broken himself of
+country manners. He wants to go back to Moscow. But where find the
+money for the trip?... His sickness becomes more acute. An old
+tailor, a former nurse, who has been called in, promises to cure
+him; he bleeds him several times and Nicholas dies. The widow and
+her little daughter spend the winter in the village. The young
+woman, who had watched during those long days of suffering, is now
+broken down. When spring comes, the mother and daughter go to the
+church, and, after praying at the grave of their dead, they go
+begging on the highway.
+
+In "The Murder" Tchekoff studies certain manifestations in the
+spiritual life of the peasants. Matvey Terekof belongs to a peasant
+family the members of which are all known for their piety; in the
+village they are called "the singing boys." Very orthodox, they hold
+themselves aloof and give themselves over to mysticism.
+
+Instead of playing with his little comrades, Matvey is constantly
+poring over the Gospel. His piety increases, he prays night and
+day, hardly eats anything, and experiences "a singular joy at
+feeling himself grow weaker through the fasting." One day he notices
+that the priest of the village is less pious than he. He enters a
+convent in the hopes of finding there true Christians. But even
+there his disillusionment comes soon. Finally, he decides to found a
+church of his own. He hires a little room which he transforms into a
+chapel. He finds disciples and soon gains a reputation as a
+thaumaturgical saint.
+
+A sect, of which he is to be the head, is in process of formation,
+when, one day, he finds that he is on the wrong track. He thinks he
+has committed a mortal sin. Pride has taken possession of him; it is
+the Devil and not God who now directs his moves. Conscious of his
+error, he returns to orthodoxy, and, in the hopes of expiating his
+wrong-doing, he humiliates himself everywhere and on every occasion.
+
+But his cousin Jacob, having become infected with his earlier ideas,
+practises them with the fanatic ardor of a neophyte. With his sister
+and several other religious people, he locks himself into his house
+to pray; he sings vespers and matins. In the meanwhile Matvey
+decides that he must read Jacob a sermon.
+
+"Be reasonable," he tells him repeatedly, "repent, cousin. You will
+lose, because you are the prey of the demon. Repent."
+
+Instead of repenting, Jacob and his sister vow an implacable hatred
+against Matvey; so extreme is their feeling, that one day, at the
+end of an altercation, Jacob, blinded by rage, kills his cousin.
+
+He is judged and condemned. He is sent to the island of Sakhaline.
+There, he languishes, suffers, and despairs. But, little by little,
+his mind grows peaceful, and he has consoling visions. In prison he
+is surrounded by pariahs and criminals, and the sight of all this
+human suffering turns him again towards God, towards the religion of
+Love, the religion of pity for mankind. And now he wants to return
+to the country to tell of the miracle that has taken place in him,
+and to save souls from ill and ignorance.
+
+In "The Ravine" evil and injustice triumph at times with revolting
+cynicism. Evil is in everything and everywhere: "in the great
+manufacturers who drive along the streets of the village, crushing
+men and beasts; in the bailiff and the recorder, who are such bad
+characters that their very faces betray their knavery;" and finally,
+in the central figure of the story, Axinia, the wife of Stepan, the
+youngest son of Tzibukine, a usurer and monopolist.
+
+The unhealthy ravine hides a village inhabited by factory workers.
+The best house belongs to Gregory Tzibukine, who traffics in
+everything: brandy, wheat, cattle, lumber, and usury, on the side.
+His eldest son, Anissme, is employed at the police station and
+seldom comes home; the second son, Stepan, is deaf and sickly; he
+helps his father both well and badly, and his wife, the pretty and
+coquettish Axinia, runs all day between the cellar and the shop. The
+father Tzibukine is also friendly to her and respects this young
+woman, for she is a very good worker and is most intelligent.
+Tzibukine, a widower, has married Varvara, an affable and pious soul
+who gives alms,--a strange thing in this family who cheat everybody.
+Anissme often sends home beautiful letters and presents. One day, he
+comes unexpectedly; he has an unquiet, and, at the same time,
+flippant air. His parents have decided to get him married, and,
+although he is a drunkard, ugly and vulgar, they have found him a
+pretty wife. The girl is Lipa, daughter of a poor widow, a laborer
+like her mother. Anissme whistles and looks at the ceiling, and
+shows no signs of pleasure at his coming marriage. He leaves the
+house in a strange manner, and appears again three days before the
+wedding, bringing to his parents, as gifts, some newly coined money.
+The wedding day has come. The clergy and the well-to-do of the
+neighborhood are present at the dinner, which is sumptuously served.
+Lipa seems petrified with fear, for she barely knows her husband.
+The festivities last a long time; at intervals the voices of women
+can be heard outside hurling curses at the usurer. Then Anissme,
+red, drunk, and sweating, is shoved into the room where Lipa has
+already disrobed. Five days later, Anissme comes to his mother and
+bids her good-bye. He confides in her that some one has given him
+advice, and that he has decided either to become rich or to perish.
+Now that her husband has departed, Lipa again becomes gay.
+
+Meanwhile, they have arrested a reaper accused of having circulated
+a bad piece of money which he says he received from Anissme the
+night of the wedding. Tzibukine goes home, examines the money that
+his son has given him, and decides that it is all counterfeit. He
+orders Axinia to throw every bit of it into the well. But, instead
+of obeying, she pays it out as wages to the workmen. A week passes;
+they find out that Anissme has been thrown into prison as a
+counterfeiter. Tzibukine despairs; he feels his strength
+diminishing. Varvara continues to pray and to watch, while Stepan
+and Axinia continue to ply their trade as before. When, later on,
+Anissme is sentenced to ten years at hard labor in Siberia, Varvara
+suggests to her husband that he should leave one of his houses to
+the child which has just been born to Lipa, so that no one will
+speak badly of him after his death. But, at this suggestion, Axinia
+flies into such a fury, that, in her homicidal rage, she throws a
+kettle of boiling water over the child, who dies later at the
+hospital. Finally, she drives the young woman out of the house. Lipa
+returns to her mother. Soon Axinia reigns as absolute mistress of
+the house. Tzibukine becomes distracted; he does not take care of
+his money any more, because he cannot tell the good from the bad.
+Rumor has it that his daughter-in-law is letting him die of hunger.
+Varvara still goes on with her good work. Anissme is forgotten. The
+old man, starving, and driven from home, lodges a complaint against
+the young woman. Coming back to the village, the old man, tottering
+along the street, meets Lipa and her mother, who are now doing tile
+work.
+
+"Both bow deeply to him, and he looks at them with tears in his
+eyes. Lipa offers him a piece of oatmeal cake, and the two women go
+on their way, crossing themselves several times...."
+
+The virtuous Varvara is an extremely characteristic type, with a
+subtle psychology, carefully worked out; her honesty and goodness
+form an indispensable contrast to the ambient horrors.
+
+The author himself explains the role of Varvara and her action in
+this system of evil. "Her alms seem to be something strange, joyous
+and free, like the red flowers and the lights that glow before the
+saintly images." On holidays, and on jubilees, which last three
+days, when coarse and rotten meat is sold to the peasants who come
+to pawn their scythes and hats, or their wives' shawls; when the
+workingmen lie in the gutter under the influence of bad brandy, then
+"one feels a bit relieved at the thought that down there, in that
+house, there is a good and quiet woman, always ready to help
+unfortunates."
+
+Lipa and her mother are good and timid souls who suffer in silence,
+and give to the poor the little that they possess:
+
+"It seemed to them that some one up on high, further up than the
+azure, there among the stars, saw what was going on in their
+village, and watched. Big as the evil is, in spite of it, the night
+is beautiful and calm; justice is and will be calm and beautiful on
+God's earth also; the universe awaits the moment when it can melt
+into this justice, as the light of the moon melts into the night."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+These, then, are Tchekoff's favorite themes, on which he has traced
+numerous variations, always breathing forth a profound melancholy.
+
+"The life of our industrial classes," he says, "is dark, and drags
+itself along in sort of a twilight; as to the life of our common
+people, workingmen and peasants, it is a black night, made up of
+ignorance, poverty, and all sorts of prejudices."
+
+But from this ocean of ignorance, of barbarity, of misery which
+makes up the life of a peasant, Tchekoff has taken out the things of
+most importance, things that always happen in the most solemn
+moments of their existence.
+
+"All," he says, in describing a religious procession in the country,
+"the old man, his wife and the others, all stretch forth their hands
+to the ikon of the holy Virgin, regard her ardently, and say through
+their tears: 'Protectress! Virgin protectress!' And all seem to have
+understood that the space between Heaven and Earth is not empty;
+that the rich and the mighty have not swallowed up everything; that
+there is protection against all wrongs, slavery, misery, the fatal
+brandy...."
+
+Besides, in a story entitled "My Life," Poloznev, speaking of the
+peasants, expresses himself in the following manner:
+
+"They were, for the most part, nervous and irritable people,
+ignorant, and improvident, who could think of nothing but the grey
+earth and black bread; a people who were crafty, but were stupid
+about it, like the birds, who, when they want to hide themselves,
+only hide their heads. They would not do the mowing for you for
+twenty rubles, but they would do it for six liters of brandy,
+notwithstanding the fact that with twenty rubles they can buy eight
+times as much. What vice and foolishness! Nevertheless, one feels
+that the life of the peasant has a great deal of depth. It makes no
+difference that he, behind his plough, resembles an awkward beast,
+or that he gets intoxicated. In spite of all, when you look at him
+closely, you feel that he possesses the essential thing, the
+sentiment of justice."
+
+This love of justice Tchekoff has had occasion to observe even among
+convicts. "The convict," he says, in his book on the prison of
+Sakhaline, of which he made a profound study during his stay on the
+island, "the prisoner, completely corrupted and unjust as he himself
+is, loves justice more than any one else does, and if he does not
+find it in his superiors, he becomes angry, and grows baser and more
+distrustful from year to year."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In the last works of Tchekoff the pessimistic tendency grows greater
+and greater. It seems as if the writer had gone through a sort of
+moral crisis, brought on by the conflict of his old despair and his
+new hopes. At this time, Russian society itself began to shake off
+its apathy, and this awakening, sweeping like a vivifying wave into
+the soul of the sad artist, opened for him, at the same time,
+perspectives of new ideas.
+
+This second aspect of Tchekoff's talent is perceptible in the story
+called "The Student." A seminarist, Velikopolsky by name, tells the
+gardener Vassilissa and her daughter Lukeria about St. Peter's
+denial of Christ. As a result of the impression which this story
+makes on her Vassilissa suddenly breaks into tears; she weeps a long
+time and hides her face as if she were ashamed of crying. Lukeria,
+who has been watching the student fixedly, blushes and her face
+takes on the tender and sad expression which is characteristic of
+those whose life is made up of deep suffering. After taking leave of
+them, the student thinks that Vassilissa's tears and the emotion of
+her daughter come from sorrows connected with the things he has just
+told them.
+
+"If the old woman wept, it was not because he knew how to tell the
+story in a touching manner, but because Peter was near to her, and
+because she was interested, heart and soul, in what was going on in
+the mind of the apostle...."
+
+Joy suddenly fills his heart, and he stops a moment to take a long
+breath. "The past," he muses, "is bound to the present by an
+uninterrupted chain of events." "And it seems to him that he has
+just seen the two ends of this chain: he has touched one, and the
+other has vibrated...."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In an ironical manner and by using very personal material, Tchekoff
+paints more than anything else, life in its passive or negative
+manifestations. Nevertheless, it is not satire, at least not in its
+general trend, for in his work we find too much human tenderness for
+satire. He does not laugh at his characters, and does not nail them
+to the pillory in an outburst of indignation. In his writing, the
+fundamental idea is fused with the form; his talent is calm,
+thoughtful, observing; but it seems, at times, that this calmness,
+this seeming indifference, is only a mask. A critic, speaking of
+Tchekoff, has said: "He is a tender crayon." It would be hard to
+find a more suitable expression. The delicacy of tone, the softness
+of touch in the outlines, the polish of some of the details, the
+capricious incompleteness of others are, in fact, the mark of his
+talent.
+
+Tchekoff was such a voluminous author that it would require a
+veritable effort to remember the throng of characters which exists
+in his books; and it is more than difficult not to confuse their
+individual doings and achievements. This abundance is connected with
+a peculiarity in the author's talent. He does not exhaust his
+subject; the psychology of his characters is emphasized by two or
+three expressive traits only, and this epitome is enough to make the
+theme of a story, the simplicity and naturalness of which demand,
+nevertheless, a high degree of art. The author is not interested in
+outlining the details, but the picture that he has sparingly
+conjured up stands out lifelike; he is always in a hurry to observe
+and to tell. Therefore the brevity and quantity of his stories. His
+stories seldom exceed ten pages in length, while some do not exceed
+four. They constitute a series of sketches, of miniatures of rare
+value, among which can be found some real gems. One cannot say as
+much for his longer works, where certain parts are exaggerated, as
+in "The Valet de Chambre," "Ward No. 6," "The Steppe," and "The
+Duel."
+
+The characters of the latter novel are especially weak and bad.
+There is but one exception, the zoologist von Koren, a man of
+determination, who believes that the suppression of useless people
+and degenerates would be a meritorious piece of work. This idea is
+suggested to him by the sight of a functionary called Layevsky, an
+insignificant and lazy person, who has taken the wife of one of his
+friends and fled with her to the Caucasus.
+
+"The Valet de Chambre" is an equally unsatisfactory story. The
+principal character is a young man who is supposed to be a
+revolutionist. He enters the service of a Petersburg dandy in hopes
+of meeting there a minister whom he wants to kill. The employer of
+the pseudo-lackey, who is not aware of any of his projects, is a
+masterful presentation of a type which we know as the sybaritical
+citizen; the character of the valet is so fantastical that the
+account of his adventures belongs absolutely to the "genre" of the
+newspaper novel.[3]
+
+ [3] In many European papers there is always to be found a part
+ called the "feuilleton," which usually consists of a serial story,
+ continued from day to day.
+
+"Ward No. 6" is one of the most powerful, if not the most powerful
+story that Tchekoff has written. It is an analysis of moral
+degeneration, leading progressively to insanity, in a doctor who is
+seized by the pervasive banality of the village in which he
+practises. Tchekoff, like many other Russian writers, has shown
+himself a master in the study of certain psychological anomalies.
+Certain conversations between the doctor, who himself is going mad,
+and a patient who has long since lost his reason, interesting as
+they are from a philosophical standpoint, leave the world of reality
+and run free according to the imagination of the author, who takes
+advantage of this to formulate some of his favorite theories.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Tchekoff has also tried himself out on the drama, and he has there
+established himself in a peculiar manner. His plays, like his other
+literary productions, belong to two distinct periods.
+
+There are some amusing little trifles that do not amount to much.
+Among these are: "The Bear," "The Asking in Marriage," and others.
+Then come the more serious plays, where one feels for a moment the
+influence of Ibsen. We find here again the same heroes, each of whom
+talks about his own particular case, and acts only in starts. These
+are specimens of "failures" belonging to the most tiresome
+provincial society.
+
+In "Ivanov," the author studies the mentality of a "failure."
+Dominated by a sickly self-love, he has known nothing but losses. He
+continually complains of his real and his imaginary sufferings.
+After squandering all his fortune, he marries a young girl, whom he
+wants to have act as his nurse. This empty life ends in suicide.
+
+In "Uncle Vanya," we have Vanya, a man full of goodness, modesty,
+and self-abnegation contrasted with the celebrated professor
+Serebriakof, an egoist, unfeeling, scornful, and ungrateful. The
+latter, who has recently remarried, comes back to the estate which
+Uncle Vanya, the brother of his first wife, has managed for him. For
+several years Vanya has been working incessantly; he has saved in
+every possible way so that he can send as much money as possible to
+his brother-in-law, this professor, fondled and pampered by the
+whole family, who see in him their glorification. But Serebriakof
+soon gets tired of the country; besides, he thinks that the
+doctor--a friend of the family who is taking care of him--does not
+understand his sickness, and he begins to mistrust him. He wants to
+go away, to travel, in order to recover his health, and, in order to
+make money, he proposes to sell the estate, which legally belongs to
+Sonya, the daughter of his first wife.
+
+Up to this time Uncle Vanya and the other members of the family as
+well, had sacrificed themselves entirely to this celebrated man. But
+at this proposition Vanya realizes that their idol is nothing but an
+abominable egoist, and he begins to despise his brother-in-law. What
+is more, he secretly loves the young and beautiful wife of the
+professor, while she suffers from the everlasting complaints and
+caprices of her husband. However, a general reconciliation takes
+place. The professor and his wife leave for the city, and all goes
+on as before; Uncle Vanya and the family will sacrifice themselves
+for the glory of Serebriakof, to whom all the revenues of the estate
+are sent.
+
+The "Three Sisters," that is to say the sisters of Prozorov, live
+with their brother in a vulgar, tiresome town,--a town lacking in
+men of superior minds, a town where one person is like the next.
+
+The great desire of the three sisters is to go to Moscow, but their
+apathy keeps them in the country, and they continue to vegetate
+while philosophizing about everything that they see. However, at the
+arrival of a regiment, they become animated, and have sentimental
+intrigues with the officers till the very day of their departure.
+
+"They are going to leave; we shall be alone; the monotonous life is
+going to begin again," cries one of the sisters.
+
+"We must work; work alone consoles," says the second.
+
+And the youngest exclaims, embracing her two sisters, while the
+military band plays the farewell march:
+
+"Ah, my dear sisters, your life is not yet completed. We are going
+to live. The music is so gay! Just a little bit more, and I feel
+that we shall know why we live, why we suffer...."
+
+This certainly is the dominant note of Tchekoff's philosophy: the
+impotency of living mitigated by a vague hope of progress.
+
+The last, and perhaps the most important play of Tchekoff, is "The
+Cherry Garden."[4] Human beings, locked up in themselves, morally
+bounded, impotent and isolated, wander about in the old seignioral
+estate of the Cherry Garden. The house is several centuries old. In
+former times a happy life was led there; feasts were given, and
+generals and princes were the hosts. The Cherry Garden gave tone to
+the neighborhood, but many years have passed!... Now other houses
+have taken its place: the estate is mortgaged, the interest is not
+paid, and the only guests now are the postman or a railway official
+who lives close by. The occupants of the house do not think of doing
+anything about this state of things. For them the past is gone. All
+that is left is a dislike for work, carelessness, improvidence, and
+ignorance of the necessities of the present. Like all that dies,
+they evoke a certain pity, a certain fatality hangs over them. The
+inhabitants of the Cherry Garden set forth their ideas about one
+another; but in reality none of them see anything but themselves, in
+their small and very limited moral world, and they analyze with
+difficulty the embryos of thought that are left to them. Thus, they
+cannot grasp in full the evil that is falling on the old home, and
+they remain impassive when some one proposes to alleviate this evil
+by energetic means. People speak to them of the downfall to which
+they are doomed; a means of safety is proposed, but they turn a deaf
+ear and continue in their narrow and fruitless dream. Finally, when
+the estate is sold, they look upon this event as a fatal and
+unexpected blow. They say good-bye to the cradle of their family,
+weeping silently, and depart.
+
+ [4] For some reason, unknown to the translator, the author has
+ made no mention of Tchekoff's famous play, "The Sea-Gull." This
+ drama, which, when first produced, was a flat failure, scored a
+ tremendous success a short while afterwards. It is especially
+ interesting in that the author has made one of the characters,
+ Trigorin, largely autobiographical. To-day "The Sea-Gull" is one
+ of the most popular productions on the Russian stage.
+
+They are now thrown out into the world. The old existence has gone,
+as well as the seignioral estate. The Cherry Garden is to be torn
+down; the blinds are all lowered, and in the half-darkened rooms,
+the old servant, who is nearly a century old, wanders about among
+the disordered furniture.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Tchekoff is a true product of Russian literature, an autochthon
+plant, nourished by his natal sap. His humor is completely Russian;
+we hear Tolstoyan notes in his democracy; the "failures" of his
+stories are distantly related to the "superficial characters" of
+Turgenev; finally, the theory of the redemption of the past by
+suffering which he puts in the heart of the hero of the "Cherry
+Garden" makes us think of Dostoyevsky. The qualities which call to
+mind all these great names in Russian literature are found in the
+works of Tchekoff along with characteristics which show a very
+original talent. If one wishes to look for foreign influence, one
+can relate Tchekoff to de Maupassant and Ibsen, of whom he reminds
+one in snatches, although still in a very vague way. And that is
+indeed fortunate, for, in general, Scandinavian symbolism hardly
+goes hand in hand with the Russian spirit, which likes to make
+_direct_ answers to "cursed questions," and whose ideal, elaborated
+since 1840 in the realm of strict realism, is so definite that it
+does not necessitate going back to the circumlocutions of metaphors
+and allegories.
+
+While Tchekoff lived his literary aspect was enigmatical. Some
+judged him to be indifferent, because they did not find in his
+writings that revolutionary spirit which is felt in almost all
+modern writers. Others thought of him as a pessimist who saw nothing
+good in Russian life, because he described principally resigned
+suffering or useless striving for a better life. Since the death of
+Tchekoff, which made it necessary for the critics to study his works
+as a whole, and especially since the publication of his
+correspondence, his character has come to the fore, as it really is:
+he is a writer, who, by the very nature of his talent, was
+irresistibly forced to study the inner life of man impartially, and
+who, consequently, remains the enemy of all religious or
+philosophical dogmas which may hinder the task of the observer.
+
+The division of men into good and bad, according to the point of
+view of this or that doctrine, angered him:
+
+"I fear," he says in one of his letters, "those who look for hidden
+meanings between the lines, and those who look upon me as a
+liberator or as a guardian. I am neither a liberal nor a
+conservative, neither a monk nor an indifferent person. I despise
+lies and violence everywhere and under any form.... I only want to
+be an artist, and that's all."
+
+One realized that this unfettered artist, with his hatred of lies
+and violence, although he belonged to no political party, could be
+nothing but a liberal in the noblest and greatest sense of the word.
+One also realized that he was not the pessimist that he was once
+believed to be, but a writer who suffered for his ideal and who
+awakened by his works a desire to emerge from the twilight of life
+that he depicted.
+
+To some he even appeared as an enchanted admirer of the future
+progress of humanity. Did he not often say, while admiring his own
+little garden: "Do you know that in three or four hundred years the
+entire earth will be a flourishing garden? How wonderful it will be
+to live then!" And did he not pronounce these proud words: "Man must
+be conscious of being superior to the lions, tigers, stars, in
+short, to all nature. We are already superior and great people, and,
+when we come to know all the strength of human genius, we shall be
+comparable to the gods."
+
+These great hopes did not prevent him from painting with a vigorous
+brush the nothingness of mankind, not only at a certain given moment
+and under certain circumstances, but always and everywhere. Is this
+a paradox? No. If he did not doubt progress, he would be most
+pessimistic, if I may so express myself. He would suffer from that
+earthly pessimism, in face of which reason is weak; the pessimism
+which manifests itself by a hopeless sadness in face of the
+stupidity of life and the idea of death.
+
+"I, my friend, am afraid of life, and do not understand it," says
+one of Tchekoff's heroes. "When, lying on the grass, I examine a
+lady-bird, it seems to me that its life is nothing but a texture of
+horrors, and I see myself in it.... Everything frightens me because
+I understand neither the motive nor the end of things. I understand
+neither persons nor things. If you understand I congratulate you.
+
+"When one looks at the blue sky for a long time, one's thoughts and
+one's soul unite mysteriously in a feeling of solitude.... For a
+moment one feels the loneliness of the dead, and the enigma of
+hopeless and terrible life."
+
+This universal hopelessness; this sadness, provoked by the
+platitudes of existence compared with the unrelenting lessons of
+death, of which Tchekoff speaks with such a nervous terror, can be
+found in almost all the works of the best known Russian writers. We
+find it in Byronian Lermontov, who sees nothing in life but "une
+plaisanterie;" in Dostoyevsky, who has written so many striking
+pages of realism on the bitterness of a life without religious
+faith; and in the realist Turgenev, we find the same kind of thing.
+Turgenev even reaches a stage of hopeless nihilism, and one of his
+heroes, Bazarov,--in "Fathers and Sons,"--reflecting one day on the
+lot of the peasant, considering it better than his, says sadly, "He,
+at least, will have his little hut, while all I can hope for is a
+bed of thorns." Finally, all the tortuous quests of the ideal toward
+which Tolstoy strove, were suggested to him, as he himself says, by
+his insatiable desire to find "the meaning of life, destroyed by
+death."
+
+It is sometimes maintained that this state of intellectual sadness
+is innate in the Russians; that their sanguinary and melancholy
+temperaments are a mixture of Don Quixote and Hamlet. Foreign
+critics have often traced this despair to the so-called mysticism
+peculiar to the Slavonic race.
+
+What is there mystical in them? The consciousness of the
+nothingness, of the emptiness of human life, can be found deep down
+in the souls of nearly all mankind. It shows itself, among most
+people, only on rare tragic occasions, when general or particular
+catastrophes take place; at other times it is smothered by the
+immediate cares of life, by passions that grip us, and, finally, by
+religion. But none of these influences had any effect on Tchekoff.
+He was too noble to be completely absorbed by the mean details of
+life; his organism was too delicate to become the prey of an
+overwhelming passion; and his character too positive to give itself
+over to religious dogmas. "I lost my childhood faith a long time
+ago," he once wrote, "and I regard all intelligent belief with
+perplexity.... In reality, the 'intellectuals' only play at
+religion, chiefly because they have nothing else to do." Tchekoff,
+in his sober manner, has seen and recognized the two great aspects
+of life: first, the world of social and historical progress with its
+promise of future comforts; secondly, an aspect that is closely
+related to the above, the obscure world of the unknown man who feels
+the cold breath of death upon him. He was an absolute positivist;
+his positivism did not make him self-assertive nor peremptory; on
+the contrary, it oppressed him.
+
+But why should this sad state of mind, which has been expressed by
+great men in all literatures, be so exceptionally prominent among
+the Russians, and particularly among the modern ones? The reason is,
+without a doubt, because the political and social organization of
+Russia has always been a prison for literature. Oppression had
+reached its height during Tchekoff's life. This period was the
+moment of suffocation before the storm. If Tchekoff were alive
+to-day, now that the tempest has burst forth, his sadness would be
+lessened, or it would at least have before it the screen which,
+according to Pascal, people wear before their eyes that they may not
+see the abyss, on the edge of which they pass their lives. Up to the
+present time, the Russians have lacked these screens.
+
+
+
+
+III
+
+VLADIMIR KOROLENKO
+
+
+"A long time ago, on a dark autumn evening, I was being rowed down a
+rather uninteresting Siberian stream. Suddenly, at a bend in the
+river, I saw a bright fire burning ahead of us at the foot of some
+black mountains. It did not seem far away.
+
+"'Thank Heaven,' I cried with joy, 'we have nearly reached our
+stopping-place!'
+
+"The boatsman turned, looked at the fire over his shoulder, and
+again grasped the oars with an apathetic gesture:
+
+"'That is still a long way off,' he murmured.
+
+"I did not believe him, for the fire seemed to stand out very clear
+against the infinite shadows. However, he was right; we were still
+far away.
+
+"Just so those fires, the conquerors of darkness, deceive us into
+thinking that they are near, while they only cast their distant,
+illusive rays into the night...."
+
+It is with this sober description in "Little Fires" that one of the
+last volumes of Korolenko's "Sketches and Stories" opens. This
+simple picture makes a warm and clear impression on one's very soul.
+It is itself a precious and welcome light.
+
+At times when life is sombre, and when shadows fill the heart, when,
+under the blows of despair and anguish, courage finally fails, the
+mere existence of some brave spirit suffices to give a new birth to
+hope and to rekindle the flame so that the distance is again lighted
+up, and we again put our shoulders to the wheel.
+
+Thus for more than thirty years in Russian literature Korolenko has
+played the part of one of these clear, alluring lights. He has not
+written a single book in which we do not find a fire that warms us
+with its caresses even from afar, not one in which we do not feel
+the vibration of a loving heart, which dreams of giving light and
+joy to all unfortunates, and is confident that if they have not yet
+had their equal share, they will surely have it some day.
+
+Korolenko was born in 1853 in Zhitomir, in Little Russia. On his
+father's side he is descended from an old Cossack family, and by his
+mother he is related to Polish nobility. This double origin, so to
+speak, is shown very clearly in his works, which are filled with the
+melancholy and dreamy poetry of the Little Russians, and also with
+the perennial hope so common among the Poles.
+
+His father was a judge and enjoyed a reputation for strict
+integrity. It was, in fact, often hard for him to ward off those who
+wanted to thank him for his services. One day he had to accept a
+gift. A merchant, whose case he had won, sent him a cart filled with
+various objects, among which was a beautiful large doll. The little
+daughter of the judge saw it, and at once took possession of it. The
+judge, when he found out what had happened, ordered the gifts to be
+returned immediately; but, because of the grief of the little girl,
+they had to give up all thoughts of returning the doll.
+
+The judge, who was a man of firm principles, maintained a severe
+discipline in his family. He made a special study of medicine and
+hygiene, and put his knowledge into practice by treating the sick of
+the neighborhood. His children, although always well dressed, had to
+go around barefoot. Their father was convinced that this was the
+best way to toughen them. Besides, they were compelled, every
+morning, summer and winter, to take a cold plunge bath. The children
+did not like this way of doing things. Early in the morning they
+used to run to the stable in their shirts, and there, cowering in a
+corner, trembling with cold, they would wait for their father to
+leave the house.
+
+Korolenko remembers well this Spartan-like education, which inured
+him to the severity of the seasons. Without this training he
+certainly would have perished in savage and freezing Siberia, where
+he lived in exile for several years.
+
+At the death of the father, the family with its six children was
+left without resources. The mother, a very good and kind woman,
+opened a boys' boarding-school, and Vladimir, then fifteen years of
+age, helped her as well as he could, and also earned money by giving
+lessons outside.
+
+In 1870, after having finished his studies in his native town,
+Korolenko entered the Technological Institute at St. Petersburg,
+where he spent two years in extreme poverty. He had to earn his
+living as well as he could, by giving lessons or doing copying. His
+mother could not help him at all, as she herself had to struggle
+against adversity. The following will show how sparingly he had to
+live in his youth: during his two years, he had a real substantial
+meal only about once in two months, and then in a restaurant run on
+philanthropic principles, where he paid only 30 copecks (about 30
+cents). His regular meals consisted of bread, tea, sausage and
+potatoes. But this was an epoch in which living was cheap: the wave
+of democracy was spreading, and the "intellectuals" were trying to
+get into closer touch with the people. The movement was so powerful
+that many of the younger generation who could have done other
+things took up this work; others, on principle, married humble
+peasants. In 1872 Korolenko left for Moscow, and there entered the
+Academy of Agriculture. He was expelled after two years and sent to
+Kronstadt for having taken part in student manifestations. Several
+years later, we find him again in St. Petersburg without a permanent
+position; he was employed as a reader in a publishing house, and was
+also attempting to do some writing. His first efforts took the form
+of a series of sketches, published under the title, "Episodes in the
+Life of a Seeker." He was at this time accused of being too much
+inspired by the scenes of sadness and injustice of which he had been
+a witness. In 1879 he was imprisoned and then deported to Viatka. He
+remained there a year. Thence he was sent to the miserable town of
+Kama, and a few months later to Tomsk, where he learned that they
+wanted to exile him to Siberia. In a letter, published by a
+newspaper, he eloquently protested against the persecutions of which
+he was the unhappy victim. His protestation was answered by his
+transfer to the frozen region of the province of Yakutsk in Eastern
+Siberia! He passed three years in the midst of the "taiga," the
+immense virgin forest which covers this country, in a village of
+nomads whose miserable huts, very low and smoky, were scattered
+along the shores of the Aldane. Here he wrote several stories, and
+the "Dream of Makar," which was published two years later, and
+greatly praised by the critics for its originality and its setting.
+The dreary country around Yakutsk and the life that is lived there
+made such a profound impression on the young man that even to-day he
+speaks of that time with real emotion.
+
+"My hut was at the extreme end of the town. During the short day one
+could see the small plain, the mountains which surrounded it, and
+the fires in the other huts, in which lived people who were either
+descended from Russian colonists or deported Tartars. But in the
+morning and evening a cold grey mist covered everything so thickly
+that one could not see a foot ahead.
+
+"My little hut was like a lost island in a boundless ocean. Not a
+sound about me.... The minutes, the hours passed, and insensibly the
+fatal moment approached when the 'cursed land' pierced me with the
+hostility of its freezing cold and its terrible shadows, when the
+high mountains covered with black forests rose menacingly before me,
+the endless steppes, all lying between me and my country and all
+that was dear to me.... Then came the terrible sadness ... which, in
+the depths of your heart, suddenly lifts up its sinister head, and
+in the terrible silence among the shadows murmurs these words: 'This
+is the end of you ... the very end ... you will remain in this tomb
+till you die....'
+
+"A low and caressing whine brought me out of my heavy stupor: it was
+my friend, Cerberus, my intelligent and faithful dog, who had been
+placed as a sentinel near the door. Chilled through and through, he
+was asking me what was the matter and why, in such terribly cold
+weather, I did not have a fire.
+
+"Whenever I felt that I was going to be beaten in my struggle with
+silence and the shadows, I turned to this wholesome expedient,--a
+large fire."
+
+In 1885, Korolenko, having returned from Siberia, went to
+Nizhny-Novgorod, and in a relatively short space of time wrote a
+series of stories which, two years later, were collected in book
+form. Afterward, he became the editor of the celebrated St.
+Petersburg review, the "Russkoe Bogatsvo,"--a position which he
+still holds.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In all of Korolenko's works we distinctly feel the living breath
+that inspires the artist, and the ardor of a fervent ideal. His god
+is man; his ideal, humanity; his "leitmotiv," the poetry of human
+suffering. This intimate connection with all that is human is to
+be found in his psychological analysis as well as in his
+descriptions of natural phenomena. Both God and nature are in turn
+spiritualized and humanized. Korolenko looks at life from a human
+standpoint; the world which he describes is made up wholly of men
+and exists for them only. He has a very clear philosophy, and a
+conscience aware of the duties it has to perform. If he has not
+opened up hitherto unknown paths, nor made new roads, he has
+himself nevertheless passed through terrible experiences; he has
+been a prey to profound sorrows and doubts, and in spite of all, he
+has kept his love for the people intact, and deeply pities their
+ignorance and abasement. His work constantly recalls to our minds
+the theory that the cultivated classes are in debt to the people
+for the education which they have received at the people's expense.
+This is the great moral principle which governs the conscience of
+the Russian "intellectuals." It is in this sense then, that
+Korolenko may be said to continue the literature of 1870, and to be
+the successor of Zlatovratsky and Uspensky. But he has reincarnated
+this past in new forms, which naturally result from the activity of
+his far-sighted, powerful intelligence. We do not find in his work
+either the nervousness, often sickly, which pervades the works of
+Uspensky, or the optimism of Zlatovratsky, which often excessively
+idealizes the life of the Russian peasant, who is the principal
+hero of all his works. Korolenko, because he puts a high value on
+human personality, perfectly appreciates the terrible struggle that
+man has to make in order to secure his rights. A desire for justice
+on the one hand, and a defence of man's dignity on the other, form
+the very essence of the talent of this author, and it is with these
+feelings that he observes the people on whom injustice weighs most
+heavily and who have merely remnants of human dignity left in their
+make-up,--for in general, these people are not those whom fate has
+overcome. Most of them lead a hard and gloomy life beset with
+misfortunes. Many of them are vagabonds, escaped convicts,
+drunkards, murderers, who are bowed down with misery, and have no
+wish except to escape the mortal dangers of the Siberian forests
+and marshes. On opening any of Korolenko's books we find ourselves,
+to use his own words, in "bad company." He does not flatter his
+heroes, he does not make gentlemen of them; they are not even men,
+but rather human rubbish.
+
+"Because I knew a lot about the world," he writes, "I knew that
+there were people who had lost every vestige of humanity. I knew
+that they were corroded with vice and sunk deep in debauchery, in
+which they lived contented. But when the recollection of these
+beings surged through my mind, enveloped in the mists of the past, I
+saw nothing but a terrible tragedy, and felt only an inexpressible
+sorrow...."
+
+This author does not give any judgment on life; he does not condemn
+it and does not nourish a preconceived spite against it, but his sad
+heart overflows with pity, and, if he approaches this life, it is
+with the balm of love, in order to try to dress its terrible wounds.
+
+For Korolenko, the sufferings of existence atone for its injustice;
+he does not perceive the iniquities that surround him except through
+the prism of sorrow.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+From the very beginning of his literary career, in his first book,
+"Episodes in the Life of a Seeker," Korolenko shows himself to be a
+seeker after truth. With him, the understanding of life, so ardently
+sought after, is never summed up in a single solution. He dreams of
+it constantly; at times, he seems to have found it, but he loses
+track of it again and starts all over.
+
+This groping about resulted in a moral crisis in which he looked
+forward to death with joy. Beset with the thought of suicide, he
+often prowled around railroad platforms and looked at the
+car-wheels.
+
+"I went there and came back again," he writes, "depressed by my
+realization of the stupidity of life. The snow was falling all
+around me, and shaping itself into a frozen carpet, the telegraph
+poles shivered as if they were cold through and through, and on the
+other side of the road, on a slope, shone the sad little light of
+the watchman's tower. There, in the darkness, lived a whole family.
+Through the shadows the little red fire seemed to be as desolate as
+the family. The children were scrofulous and suffered; the mother
+was thin and sickly. To procreate and to bury! Such was the life of
+the father, probably the most unfortunate of all, because the
+household depended wholly upon him, and he saw no gleam of hope
+anywhere. He bore this condition of things, because, in his
+simplicity, he believed in a superior will, and thought that his
+misery was inevitable. The resignation of this man, the terrible
+bareness of his obscure existence, oppressed me. If I could bear the
+sight of it, it was only because I hoped; I thought that we should
+soon find the road which makes life happier, more agreeable to every
+one. How, where, in what manner? What a mystery! But the future
+beauty of life was in the search for it."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The observations that Korolenko was able to make were many and
+diverse. By going all over Russia he gathered inexhaustible riches,
+in the form of anecdotes and actual experiences. This can be easily
+realized when we consider the sumptuous variety of his descriptions.
+Where do we not go, and whom do we not meet in his books? First, we
+are in a peaceful little town of the southwest, then in the thick
+woods of Poliyessye, in the snow-covered and frozen Siberian
+forests, or in the valleys of Sakhaline, inhabited by half-breed
+Russians and escaped convicts, not to mention the innumerable
+sectarians who fill the Siberian prisons. And Korolenko never
+repeats. Not even a detail occurs more than once. Each of his works
+is a little world in itself. The author, moreover, unlike other
+writers, is never satisfied with pale sketches; each character is
+shown in full relief, each picture is absolutely finished. This
+wholeness, this finish which does not hurt the harmony of the
+proportions, is a precious quality, very rare in our time.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The "Sketches of a Siberian Tourist," published in 1896, in which
+bandits of various odd types tell thrilling tales of nocturnal
+attacks and other adventures, is a kind of artistic novel. The
+postillion is the most original character in the book. Huge of
+stature, audacious and clever, he exercises a mysterious influence
+over the brigands, whom he inspires with a superstitious terror.
+Most of them, thinking him invulnerable, do not dare attack the
+travelers whom he is driving.
+
+That same year another work of Korolenko's appeared, called: "In Bad
+Company,"--a sort of autobiography which added to his renown. The
+story, poetically simple, is laid in a provincial town. The hero is
+a little, seven-year-old boy called Volodya. He is the son of the
+local judge. The mother has been dead for a long time, and the
+father, in his sorrow, more or less loses track of his children, who
+roam about unwatched.
+
+The little town has its historic legends; it boasts of the ruins of
+a castle, which in times gone by was inhabited by rich Polish
+counts, whose descendants, having become poor, have long since left
+their manorial home. The castle has served as a refuge for a nomadic
+population. Expelled by the count's agent, this little band has
+taken up its abode in a dilapidated chapel in the crypts of a
+cemetery.
+
+The chief of this barefoot brigade is called Tibertius Droba. He has
+two children: Vanek, a large, dark-haired lad, whom one sees
+wandering about the village with a sullen look on his face, and
+Maroussya, a small and thin child, who is gradually fading away in
+the darkness of her cellar-like home.
+
+While strolling about one day, Volodya, impelled by his childish
+curiosity, decides, with two of his friends, to explore the chapel.
+He meets there Tibertius' children and they strike up a friendship.
+The description of the ruins and of the superstitious fear of the
+children gives an opportunity for some exquisite pages. If the
+little vagabonds are hungry, poor Volodya, who himself is without
+love or caresses, suffers still more, but every time that he brings
+the children some apples or cakes he feels that he is less unhappy,
+because these offerings are accepted with such an outpouring of
+gratitude. Gradually, the little lad gets to know all the
+inhabitants, and becomes especially intimate with Maroussya, whose
+eyes have an expression of precocious desolation.
+
+"Her smile," says Korolenko, "reminded me of my mother during the
+last few months of her life; so much so, that I almost used to weep
+when I watched this little girl."
+
+One day, Volodya brings her some apples, flowers, and a doll that
+his little sister has given him.
+
+"Why is she always so sad?" he asks Maroussya's brother.
+
+"It is on account of the grey stone," he replies.
+
+"Yes, the grey stone," repeated Maroussya, like a feeble echo.
+
+"What grey stone?"
+
+"The grey stone that has sucked the life out of her," explained
+Vanek, gazing at the sky. "Tibertius says so, and Tibertius knows
+everything."
+
+"I was very much puzzled, but the force with which Tibertius'
+omniscience was affirmed impressed me. I looked at the little girl,
+who was still playing with the flowers, but almost without moving.
+There were dark rings under her eyes and her face was pale. I did
+not exactly understand the meaning of Tibertius' words, but I felt
+dimly that they veiled some terrible reality. The grey stone was, in
+fact, sucking out the life of this frail child. But how could grey
+stones do it? How could this hard and formless thing worm itself
+into Maroussya's very soul, and make the ruddy glow disappear from
+her cheeks and the brilliancy from her eyes? These mysteries puzzled
+me more than the phantoms of the castle."
+
+Volodya's father is not aware that he is spending part of his days
+in the cemetery, and knows nothing of his son's new friends. But one
+day the secret is discovered, and a family storm follows. The judge
+demands a full confession. Volodya heroically remains silent.
+Finally, Tibertius himself pleads the child's cause so eloquently
+that Volodya is not scolded and the father allows him to go and say
+good-bye to his little friend, who has meanwhile died of privation.
+The day after the little girl's funeral the whole band disappears
+without leaving a trace behind them. "Later on," says Korolenko,
+"when we were about to leave our home, it was on the grave of our
+poor little friend that my sister and I, both of us full of life,
+faith, and hope, interchanged our vows of universal compassion...."
+
+Another short story, called "The Murmuring Forest," which was
+published in the same year, made as much of a success as "Bad
+Company."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+But it is in "The Blind Musician" that Korolenko attains perfection.
+This masterly psychological study does not present a very
+complicated plot. From the very start the reader is captivated by a
+powerful poetic quality, free from all artifice, fresh, spontaneous,
+and breathing forth such moral purity, such tender pity, that one
+literally feels regenerated.
+
+Here is a brief outline of this exquisite story. One very dark
+night, a child of rich parents is born in the southwest of Russia.
+Peter--the child--is blind. His whole life is to be but a groping in
+the shadows toward the light. The mother adores the poor child and
+suffers more than he. But she has not enough moral strength to bring
+him up, and give him the necessary comfort and energy. His father,
+a countryman, thinks only of his business. Happily, there is on the
+mother's side an uncle called Maxim, one of the famous "thousand" of
+Garibaldi, who has a noble and generous disposition. It is he who
+brings up the child, with a tenderness just touched by severity.
+Peter's young mind is constantly enriched with new pictures. Thanks
+to the extreme acuteness of his hearing, he catches the very
+slightest sounds of nature. When barely five years of age the boy
+shows his love for music; he spends hours, motionless, listening to
+the playing of one of the servants who has made for himself a kind
+of flute. Soon Peter begins to study music, and especially the
+violin. His rapid progress astonishes his teachers. However, in
+spite of his love for music and the comfort that it gives him, the
+blind boy suffers from his infirmity. To distract his mind from his
+own suffering, his uncle takes him one day to a place where there
+are some blind beggars. Peter listens to their plaintive melody:
+"Alms, alms for a poor blind man ... for the love of Christ"; and as
+if he had heard the voice of some phantom, the child returns home,
+frightened, confused. From that day, he is transformed. Until then,
+he had thought only of himself, he had become grey with his own
+sorrow. Afterward, he suffers for others; his personal sorrow
+diminishes, and his life becomes an expression of the sorrows of
+his fellows in misery, an ardent and passionate prayer for others
+who also are deprived of sight.
+
+For several years he has been friends with a young girl of his
+neighborhood. They marry, and Evelyn, his wife, brings some
+happiness to the poor blind man. But soon there comes a time of
+indescribable anguish. Evelyn gives birth to a boy, and Peter is
+tortured by a presentiment of impending evil. Will the son be blind
+like his father? The few moments when the doctors are testing the
+infant's sight pass like so many centuries. Finally the physician
+says: "The pupil is contracting, the child is not blind." Peter,
+seated by the window, pale and motionless, rises quickly at these
+words. In a moment fear has disappeared and hope is transformed into
+certainty and fills the blind man's heart with joy. "The child is
+not blind." One might say that these few words of the doctor had
+burned a path in his brain.
+
+"His whole frame vibrated like a taut cord which had been snapped. A
+flash went through him, like lightning in a sunless sky, conjuring
+up in him strange phantasms. Whether they were sounds or sights he
+could not determine. But if they were sounds they were sounds which
+he could see. They sparkled like the vault of the sky, shone like
+the sun, waved like the rustling, whispering grass of the steppes.
+These were the sensations of a moment. What followed he was unable
+to recall. But he stubbornly affirmed that in this moment he had
+_seen_. What had he seen? How had he seen? Had he really seen? This
+always remained a mystery. People said that it was impossible. He,
+however, affirmed that in that moment he had seen the earth, his
+wife, his mother, his son, and Uncle Maxim.... He was standing up,
+and his face was so illumined and so strange that every one around
+him was silent.... Later on, there remained nothing but the
+remembrance of a sort of joyous satisfaction, and the absolute
+conviction that, at that moment, he had seen...."
+
+A year later, at Kiev, at a concert for charity, Peter made his
+debut. An enormous crowd gathered to hear the blind musician. From
+the very first the audience was captivated. Moved to its depths, the
+crowd became frantic. And Uncle Maxim heard something familiar in
+the playing of his nephew.
+
+He saw a large, crowded street, and a clear, gay wave of scolding
+and jesting humanity. Then, gradually, this picture faded into the
+background. A groaning was heard. It detached itself from the clamor
+of the crowd and passed through the hall in a sweet but powerful
+note, which sobbed and moved one's heart. Maxim knew it well, this
+sad melody: "Alms, alms for the poor blind man ... for the love of
+Christ."
+
+"He understands suffering," murmured the uncle. "He has had his
+share, and that is why he can change it into music for this happy
+audience."
+
+"And the head of the old warrior sank on his breast. His work was
+done. He had made a good man. He had not lived in vain. He had but
+to look at the crowd to be convinced of that."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Korolenko belongs to the school of Turgenev. In all of his works he
+remains true to the principles which his master summed up in a
+letter: "One must penetrate the surroundings, and take life in all
+its manifestations; decipher the laws by which it is governed; get
+at the very essence of life, while remaining always within the
+boundaries of truth; and finally, one must not be contented with a
+superficial study."
+
+Korolenko lives up to all of these principles. Without tiring, he
+watches life in all of its phases. He uses a large canvas for his
+studies of inanimate nature, as well as of individuals in particular
+and the masses in general. That is why his work gives us such an
+exact reproduction of life.
+
+Like Turgenev, he describes nature admirably. His descriptions are
+not irrelevant ornaments, but they constitute an organic and
+integral part of the picture. In both Turgenev and Korolenko the
+surrounding country reflects the feelings and emotions of the
+heroes, and takes on a purely lyric character. One might almost say
+that these country scenes breathe, speak a human language, and
+whisper mysterious legends.
+
+Korolenko has given us several splendid landscapes. In some of these
+nature seems to be in a serene mood, like a good mother whose
+harmonious strength attracts man and shows him the need of reposing
+on her bosom. In others, nature is like a strong, free element which
+incites man to lead an independent life. Thus, in the beautiful
+prose poem, "The Moment," in which the action passes in Spain, it is
+the ocean beating against the prison walls that arouses Diatz from
+his torpor and makes him attempt to escape.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+But, in spite of the importance of the background in Korolenko's
+work, it is really in the conscience of his characters that the
+essential drama takes place. More than anything else, it is
+psychology that beguiles the artist; it is only through psychology
+that Korolenko depicts men and their mentalities. He studies the
+strong and the weak, the simple and the complex; exaltation,
+triumph, revolt, and downfall all interest him equally.
+
+A simple analysis of his story, "Makar's Dream," will show his
+psychological genius to greater advantage than could any critical
+essay.
+
+In the very heart of the dense woods of the "taiga," Makar, a poor
+little peasant, who has become half savage by association with the
+Yakutsk people, dreams of a better future.
+
+Makar does not dream, however, when he is normal; he hasn't time to,
+for he has to chop wood, plough, sow, and grind grain. He only
+dreams when he is drunk. As soon as he is under the influence of
+liquor, he weeps and says that he is going to leave everything and
+go to the "sacred mountain" to gain salvation for his soul. What is
+the name of this mountain? Where is it? He does not know exactly; he
+only knows that it is very far away. On Christmas eve, Makar extorts
+a ruble from two political refugees, and, instead of bringing them
+some wood for the money, he quickly buys some tobacco and brandy.
+After drinking and smoking a great deal, Makar goes to sleep and has
+a dream. He dreams that the frost has got the better of him in the
+woods, that he has died there, and that the priest Ivan, who has
+also been dead a long time, takes him to the great Tayon--the god of
+the woods--to be judged for his former deeds. Even there his
+natural knavery does not forsake him; he tries to fool Tayon. But
+the latter has everything that Makar has ever done, both good and
+bad, written down, and becoming angry, he says: "I see that you are
+a liar, a sluggard, and a drunkard."
+
+He orders Makar to be transformed into a post-horse, to be used by
+the police commissioner. And Makar, this Makar who never in his
+lifetime was known to say more than ten words at a time, suddenly
+finds that he has the faculty of speech. He begins by saying that he
+does not want to be a horse, not because he is afraid of work but
+because this decision is unfair. If one works geldings, one feeds
+them with oats; but people have imposed upon him and tortured him
+all his life and have never fed him, no, not even with oats.
+
+"Who imposed upon you and tortured you?" asks old Tayon, moved by
+compassion.
+
+"Everybody! The men who demanded taxes, the heat and the cold, rain
+and dryness, the pitiless earth, and the forest."
+
+The beam of the balance wavers; the wooden dish, filled with sins,
+rises, while the golden one sinks.
+
+Makar continues: "You have everything written down, have you? Well,
+look and see whether Makar has ever had any kindness shown to him.
+He is here before his judges, dirty, his hair disordered, and his
+clothes in rags. He is ashamed. However, he realizes that he was
+born just like the others, with clear eyes in which both heaven and
+earth were reflected, and with a heart ready to open and receive all
+the beauty of the world."
+
+Makar thus passes in review his miserable life. Old Tayon is moved.
+
+"Makar, you are no longer on earth, and you shall receive justice."
+
+Makar begins to weep, and Tayon weeps too.... And the young gods and
+the angels, they also shed tears.
+
+Again the balance moves. But this time it is in the opposite
+direction.
+
+Makar has received justice from the hands of Tayon.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Korolenko does not try to reconcile us to reality, but to mankind.
+In all of the catastrophes in his books, in the most sombre
+descriptions, he comforts us with a consolation, an ideal, a "little
+fire" that burns in the distance and attracts us. But to get to that
+fire we have to fight against evil. And it is perhaps in answer to
+Tolstoy's doctrine of passive resistance that Korolenko wrote that
+beautiful story called, "The Legend of Florus," the subject of which
+was probably taken from "The War of the Jews," by Flavius Josephus.
+
+This work takes us back to the time when Judaea was bowed down under
+Roman rule. The Jews bear their lot without a murmur, and this
+resignation encourages Florus, the governor of Judaea, to oppress
+them more.
+
+Soon there are two parties formed: the "pacifics" want to rid
+themselves of Roman cruelty by humble submission, while the others
+advise opposing this cruelty to the utmost. The chief of the latter
+party is Menahem, the son of a famous warrior who has inherited from
+his father his generous passions and his hatred of oppression.
+Menahem's words inspire respect even in his enemies. But he does not
+succeed in making peace among his people. In vain he cries to them,
+as his father before him had cried: "It is disgraceful to bow down
+to sovereigns, especially since these sovereigns are men; no human
+being should bow down to any one excepting God, who created men that
+they might be free." With great trouble he finally succeeds in
+rousing a part of the people to rebellion. Then he leaves the city
+with his followers, resolved to defend his country. Menahem has no
+illusions as to the outcome; he knows that he will be conquered by
+the Romans. Nevertheless he is fearless, for his whole being is
+filled with a single thought,--the idea of justice, which imposes
+upon men certain obligations which they must not scorn.
+
+During his stay in Siberia Korolenko had a very good chance to
+observe the deported convicts. Most of them are thieves, forgers,
+and murderers. The others, urged on by a heroic desire to live their
+own true lives, have been sent to this "cursed land" because of
+"political offences."
+
+Korolenko is not resigned to the sadness of life, he is not an enemy
+to manly calls to active struggle, but he neither wants to, nor can
+he, break the ties that bind him to the real life of the present. He
+does not wish either to judge or to renounce this life. Nor does he
+try, by fighting, to perpetuate a conflict which is in itself
+eternal. If he struggles, it is rather in discontent than in
+despair. Not all is evil in his eyes, and reality is not always and
+entirely sad. His protestations hardly ever take the form of disdain
+or contempt; he does not rise to summits which are inaccessible to
+mankind. In fact, his ideal is close to earth; it is the ideal which
+comes from mankind, from tears and sufferings. If the thoughts and
+feelings of the author rise sometimes high above the earth, he never
+forgets the world and its interests. Korolenko loves humanity, and
+his ideals cannot separate themselves from it. He loves man and he
+believes that God lives in their souls.
+
+We find these theories in the sketch called "En Route." The
+vagabond, Panov, is one of a party of deported convicts. At one of
+the stops, an inspector arrives who remembers having seen Panov when
+a young man. The old man goes over the history of his life, which
+has been marked with constant success, with pleasure. He shows the
+vagabond his little son, and with cruel egotism boasts of his
+happiness. Standing before him, his back bent, and a sad light in
+his eyes, Panov listens to the story. He feels vaguely that he has
+not lived and that he lacks personality. There is nothing in store
+for him except the useless existence of prison life. The egotistical
+and debonair inspector, in his simplicity, does not understand the
+anguish of the homeless prisoner, and, by his amicable chatter,
+subjects him to horrible moral torture. It is too much for Panov.
+When the inspector leaves, Panov, gripping the edge of his hard cot
+in his convulsive hands, falls to the ground. He breathes heavily,
+his lips move, but he does not speak. "That night Panov got drunk."
+
+Two very different types appear in the novel called, "The Postillion
+of the Emperor." We have here the idealist Misheka and the sectarian
+Ostrovsky, a transported prisoner who is embittered by his hard lot,
+and by life in general.
+
+If Misheka protests against the complicated conditions of life to
+which he cannot entirely submit, it is rather by instinct than
+through reason. He is attracted by something invisible, something
+distant and strange, to the repugnant world which surrounds him. As
+a postillion of the State he has frequent communications with the
+distant world which glows vaguely on his mental horizon. Everything
+displeases him: both the savage country in which he has to live, and
+the world of stupid, degenerate, and miserable postillions whom he
+mercilessly criticizes. His random attempts to get away fail.
+Despairing, he becomes an accomplice in a crime so that he can leave
+this solitary place and go where his restless soul leads him.
+
+At the side of Misheka we have the tragic figure of Ostrovsky, who
+is the exasperated victim of the evil all around him.
+
+The author and the travelers, driven by Misheka, have seen the
+burning of Ostrovsky's house, which the latter burned himself so
+that no one could profit by it. This action strikes Misheka as
+wonderful.
+
+"He begins to tell the story of the fire. Several years before,
+Ostrovsky had been deported for having given up the orthodox faith.
+His young wife and child followed him. They had been given a plot of
+land in a broad and deep valley, between two walls of rock. The
+place seemed fertile. It was not hard to sell wheat to the miners
+and Ostrovsky worked diligently and steadily. But the inhabitants
+had kept something from him: although the wheat grew in the valley,
+it never ripened, because each year, without fail, in the month of
+July it was destroyed by the cold winds from the northeast."
+
+The first few years Ostrovsky attributed his failure to chance. He
+carefully cared for his crop in the hopes of a better season.
+
+Alas, his wife died of sorrow, and autumn brought him nothing but
+straw. Ostrovsky, without weeping, dug a grave in the frozen ground
+and buried his wife. Then he asked permission to go to the mines,
+and borrowed some money for the trip from his neighbors. The latter
+gladly loaned it to him, thinking thus to get rid of him and to get
+the profit of his house and goods. But Ostrovsky fooled them in
+their naive simplicity; he heaped up all of his possessions in his
+little cottage and then set fire to it. He no longer thought of
+justice; he was nothing but a despairing man.
+
+The patriarch of the village in which he had taken refuge tried to
+recall to him the faith for which he had been exiled:
+
+"Do you remember," answered Ostrovsky, "the first visit I paid you
+to ask for advice? Ah, so you have forgotten that and you speak of
+God.... You are nothing but a crafty dog! All of you are dogs! There
+is nothing here but woods and rocks, and you are all just as
+insensible as the very rocks that surround you.... And your cursed
+land, and your sky, and your stars...." "He wanted to say something
+more, but he did not dare blaspheme, and there was silence again in
+the little cottage...."
+
+This Ostrovsky is among the very best of Korolenko's heroes. The
+sight of this despairing and lonely man, who wanders about in the
+Siberian forests with his little daughter, calls louder for justice
+than all the speeches in the world.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Through the wealth of his talent and knowledge, Korolenko is of
+tremendous social value in three fields of work,--practical affairs,
+journalism, and art.
+
+Among the many services which he has rendered to humanity, let us
+first mention his brilliant defence of the half-savage Votiaks,
+accused of ritual murder in the famous Malmige case. Although he had
+just suffered great grief himself--he had lost two children--he
+traveled to a distant town in order to be at the trial. He took his
+seat on the bench of the defenders. He used all of his knowledge,
+and all the love in his heart to defend the unhappy Votiaks, whose
+acquittal he succeeded in securing.
+
+As a publicist, he has written some very valuable articles. Among
+them are observations on the famine year (he spent two months in one
+of the worst districts). In other articles he has analyzed a moral
+malady peculiar to our state of society:--honor. In the recent
+Russian duels he studied the perverse notions of honor and the moral
+changes produced by sickly egotism. He has studied the causes that
+bring about the complete loss of individuality. Finally, in 1910, he
+published under the title, "Present Customs (Notes of a Publicist
+under Sentence of Death)" a series of documents gathered here and
+there, which constitute an eloquent and passionate plea in favor of
+the abolitionist thesis.
+
+When the great Tolstoy read the preface of this work, he wrote to
+Korolenko, "I often sobbed and wept. Millions of copies of this work
+ought to be distributed; it ought to be read by every one who has a
+heart. No discourse, no novel or play, can produce the effect that
+your 'Notes' do."
+
+But above all, it is as the pure artist that Korolenko merits most
+attention. It is his talent that has already made him famous, and it
+is his talent that will make him immortal in Russian literature.
+
+Korolenko is at present one of the most popular writers among the
+educated classes. They have amply proved this to him, especially in
+1903 and 1908, when they celebrated his 50th birthday and the 30th
+anniversary of his literary activity. On the occasion of these
+celebrations, delegations from many cities and universities came to
+St. Petersburg to congratulate and to thank the author who, through
+so many trials, had never ceased to uphold the cause of truth and
+goodness, and to claim for each human being the right to work,
+happiness, and free thought.
+
+
+
+
+IV
+
+VIKENTY VERESSAYEV
+
+
+Veressayev is well known in France for his "Memoirs of a Physician,"
+a work that has been translated into almost every language. However,
+his reputation in Russia is not based on this book, which is
+considered his masterpiece, but rather on his stories and tales. Let
+us, however, first take a glance at the life of this author, a life
+so closely connected with the subjects of his works that it forms an
+indispensable commentary on them.
+
+Veressayev, whose real name is Vikenty Smidovich, was born in 1867,
+in Tula. His father was a Pole and his mother a Russian. His father,
+a very pious and strictly moral man, was a well known and well liked
+physician. In 1877, the boy entered the local school and received
+his degree there seven years later. In 1884, he left for the
+University of St. Petersburg, where he enrolled in the department of
+historical sciences. Four years later, when he was twenty-four and a
+half, he received his degree of licentiate of letters.[5] Most of
+his class-mates became school-teachers, but he preferred to pursue
+his studies. Medicine tempted him. He left for Zhouriev (formerly
+Dorpat, already famous for its department of medicine) and entered
+the university, where, at the end of six years, he received his
+doctor's degree.
+
+ [5] On the continent of Europe, a university degree between that
+ of bachelor and of doctor.
+
+Two years before, in 1892, a cholera epidemic had broken out in
+Russia. Young Smidovich, then a fourth-year student, asked to be
+sent immediately to a province in the East, where the epidemic was
+spreading like wildfire. He remained there several months, in fact
+until the plague had gone. As a doctor's assistant in an infirmary
+organized in one of the mining districts of the government of
+Ekaterinoslav, he witnessed a peasant revolt in which several
+doctors were killed and others cruelly burned by the exasperated and
+ignorant mob. Veressayev has traced these sad events with tremendous
+power in his story, "Astray."
+
+His doctor's degree in his pocket, he went to Tula, where he
+practised for several months, but soon the position of house-surgeon
+was offered to him in the Botkin Hospital in St. Petersburg. He
+remained there seven years, till 1901, when, by order of the
+Minister of the Interior, who has charge of all hospital
+appointments, he was forced to retire from office and was expelled
+from St. Petersburg and forbidden to reside in either of the two
+capitals, Moscow or St. Petersburg. The reason for this was, that
+the name Veressayev appeared on the petition of the "intellectuals"
+which had been given to the Minister of the Interior, protesting
+against the brutal attitude of the police during a student
+manifestation in the Kazan cathedral on March 4, 1901. This petition
+brought severe punishment to almost all the people whose names were
+signed to it. Veressayev went abroad; he visited Italy, France,
+Germany and Switzerland.
+
+Gifted with poetic inspiration, he had begun writing at an early
+age. He was not more than fourteen when he translated some poems of
+Koerner and Goethe into Russian verse. Later, when at college, he
+wrote some short prose tales, which were published in various
+papers. But it was in 1896, when the "Russkoe Bogatsvo," the large
+St. Petersburg review, had published his two important stories,
+"Astray" and "The Contagion," that renown came to him. It came so
+suddenly that it troubled him and was almost a blow to his modesty,
+which is one of the sympathetic traits of his personality.
+
+In fact, there came a time when the attention of the literary world,
+especially among the younger generation, became so wrapped up in his
+works that Gorky and Tchekoff sank to a second level. This
+enthusiasm was caused by the fact that Veressayev's works answered a
+general need. They brought into the world of literature a series of
+characters who summed up the rising fermentation of new ideas and
+seemed to be spokesmen, around whom the Russian revolutionary forces
+gathered,--forces which, up to this time, had been scattered. An era
+of struggle for liberty began.
+
+It is rather important, I think, for the proper understanding of
+this period to say a few words concerning its history.
+
+The struggle of the younger generation against the autocracy began
+about 1860, at the time of the freeing of the serfs, a period known
+in Russia as the "epoch of great reforms." These ameliorations,
+which extended into almost every domain of Russian life, left intact
+the autocracy, which, under pretence of protecting itself, fought
+successfully against all activity and thus brought about, among the
+younger generation, a general movement towards freedom and
+socialism. But the autocracy found its best help in the ignorance of
+the people. Urban commerce, little developed at that time,
+practically interested only the peasants--which means nine-tenths of
+the population of Russia. It was natural, then, that the peasants
+should become the principal object of the revolutionary propaganda,
+and that tremendous efforts should be made on all sides in order to
+awaken them from their dangerous sleep.
+
+The peasant uprisings in the history of Russia, especially the two
+revolts directed by Stepan Razin in the 17th century, and Pugachev
+in the 18th, proved the fact that the masses could unite in a
+general insurrection. This time, the "intellectuals" joined. As they
+advocated a sort of communism, periodic redivisions of land
+according to the growth of the population, and as they harped on the
+tradition that land was a gift of God which no one had a right to
+own, we can easily see that the agricultural proletariat would
+welcome with open arms the socialistic ideas.
+
+Although this popular movement did not affect many people, it was
+attacked with such pitiless cruelty, that the revolutionists decided
+to have recourse to the red terror in order to fight the white
+terror which was cutting down their ranks. The secret goal of this
+movement was to replace the autocratic regime with political
+institutions emanating from the will of the people. In order to
+accomplish its reforms more quickly, this party, which called itself
+the "Popular Will," incited several attempts at murder; Russia then
+witnessed dynamite outrages against imperial trains and palaces, and
+finally, the assassination of the Emperor Alexander II. For a moment
+the autocratic regime seemed to totter under these sudden and fierce
+blows, but it soon recovered. The white terror proved to be
+stronger than the red. Many executions and banishments helped to
+crush the partisans of the "Popular Will;" then, when the movement
+had been checked, the authorities began to repress even the
+slightest desire for independence on the part of the press, the
+universities, or any other institutions which could do good to the
+people. Dejection and disillusion dominated this period from 1880 to
+1900, which has been so faithfully portrayed in the works of
+Tchekoff.
+
+Nevertheless, in spite of the fact that their ideals had come to
+nought, those of the red terror had not disappeared, and hope
+remained in their breasts.
+
+Tchekoff was still living when new symptoms of fermentation appeared
+in Russia, and he could have alluded to this in his later works. But
+he did not have a fighting nature, and, in his solitude, he looked
+at conditions with melancholy scepticism. There was need of a man, a
+writer--like Gorky several years later--born right in the midst of
+this movement, who would be the very product of it, and for whom its
+ideas would be a reason for existence.
+
+Veressayev was this man and writer, and it is as much by his
+political opinions as by his literary talents that he gained such a
+wide-spread reputation. If his works are not always irreproachable
+from a literary standpoint, they are always accurate in describing
+exactly what the author himself has seen and lived through.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Veressayev, in three great stories, gives us the three phases of the
+movement between 1880 and 1900. These three stories, "Astray," "The
+Contagion" and "At the Turn," are of such extreme importance, that
+in the following pages there will be a detailed analysis of each of
+them.
+
+The two protagonists of the story, "Astray," are Dr. Chekanhov and
+his cousin Natasha. The former is at the end of his moral life, the
+latter is on the threshold, and both of them are "astray," because
+the one has not found the road on which to travel through life, and
+the other is just beginning to look for it. The entire existence of
+Chekanhov is dominated by the idea that it is _his duty to serve the
+people_, which was the basis of the activity of the "narodnikis."
+According to him, the "intellectuals," who represent a small and
+privileged fraction of the population, are the debtors of the people
+and ought to pay their debt by giving the people knowledge and
+comfort. This theory is burned into his very soul; it is the leading
+thought that directs all of his actions. At this epoch, few men
+showed such absolute devotion. From 1880 to 1890, after the cruel
+suppression of the movement of the "narodnikis," there was a stop in
+this revolutionary activity. Unaware of this pacification, Chekanhov
+makes great exertions; as a doctor, he combats disease and saves
+several people. But how exhaust the source of this evil, this
+misery, which is increased by a despotic social order? Chekanhov
+spends his energy in vain; where else shall he apply his strength?
+
+The famine of 1891! Dr. Chekanhov speaks only of his despair: "A
+terrible malady beats down on one after another of the inhabitants;
+it is an epidemic of typhoid caused by the privations which left us
+numb and weak." In 1892 an epidemic of cholera broke out. In spite
+of the prayers of his parents, the young man rushes off to the most
+infected district. One day, he penetrates into an infected hovel.
+The children are sprawling everywhere, the mother is foolish and
+stupid, and the father, weakened by prison labor, has come down with
+cholera. The wife forbids the doctor, whom she accuses of poisoning
+the sick, to approach her husband. Scorning the danger, in order to
+encourage the sick man, the doctor drinks out of the very cup which
+the invalid has used. Nothing counts with him as long as he can
+inspire confidence and save people from death.
+
+"What good is there in love between good and strong people," adds
+Chekanhov, after having noted down this cure in his "Journal,"
+"since it results only in miserable abortions? And why are the
+people held down to work which is so rough and unpleasant? What
+motive supports them in their painful labor? Is it the desire to
+preserve their infected hovels?"
+
+At the end of these reflections could not Chekanhov, absolutely in
+despair, have abandoned his task? No, he knew how to keep up his
+devotion. Sacrificing his life for others, Chekanhov begins to love
+life again. He says to himself: "Life is good ... but will it be for
+a long time?" We do not catch the answer.
+
+Furious voices are heard, and a savage and cruel mob calls him a
+poisoner and hurls itself upon him, beating and striking him.
+
+Exhausted by the blows and jeered at by those whom he had considered
+his brothers in need and for whom he had put himself in constant
+peril, he lies stretched out on his bed, suffering severely; but he
+nourishes no grudge against his tormentors; on the contrary, his
+apostle-like character is moved with pity at the thought of these
+uncultured and ignorant beings so unconscious of the evil that they
+are doing. And several days before his death he writes the following
+tragic words in his "Journal," almost terrifying in their
+simplicity:
+
+"They have beaten me! They have beaten me like a mad dog because I
+came to help them and because I used all my knowledge and strength,
+in one word, gave all that I had. I am not thinking now about how
+much I loved these people and how badly I feel at the way they have
+treated me. I simply did not succeed in gaining their confidence; I
+did succeed in making them believe in me for a while, but soon a
+mere trifle was enough to plunge them back among their dark shadows
+and to awaken in them an elemental, brutal instinct. And now I have
+to die. I am not afraid of death, but of a tarnished life full of
+empty remorse. Why have I struggled? In the name of what am I going
+to die? I am only a poor victim stripped of the strength of an ideal
+and cared for by no one.... It had to be so, for we were always
+strangers to them, beings belonging to another world; we scornfully
+avoid them, without trying to know them, and a terrible abyss
+separates us from them."
+
+It is interesting to note how Chekanhov is regarded by the new
+generation and especially by the woman he loves, his cousin Natasha.
+She believes in him, she expects a gospel of life from him; but
+Chekanhov cannot respond to her; he adheres to such vague
+expressions as: "work," "idea," "duty towards the people." He says
+to her: "You want an idea which will dominate you entirely and which
+will lead you to a definite goal; you want me to give you a
+standard and say: 'Fight and die for it.' I have read more than you,
+I have had more experience than you, but like you, _I Do Not Know_,
+and that is our torture." According to Chekanhov, all of his
+generation are in the same position: it is _Astray_, without a
+guiding star, it is perishing without realizing it.... Finally, in
+order to avoid the pressing questions of Natasha, who would like to
+work and sacrifice herself for the poor, he points out to her the
+salutary work of the village school-mistress. A few days later he
+dies, welcoming death with joy.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+While the people who were ending their existence and those who were
+beginning it were so carefully looking for a field of action, the
+uncultivated ground of Russian life was gradually being cleared by
+the slow evolution of an economic movement. Between 1895 and 1900,
+as a result of the natural development of national commerce, the
+number of city workingmen grew to vast proportions and they formed
+an important class, which, on account of its situation, was much
+more qualified than the peasants to interest itself in the ideas of
+socialism and liberty. So from the very midst of the people certain
+individuals appeared capable of adopting progressive ideas; Marxism
+awaited them, the theory which is the basis of European democratic
+socialism. This doctrine was nothing new in Russia. But formerly,
+the proletariat of the cities had been very little developed and the
+Marxian doctrines had been of theoretical interest only.
+
+"The Contagion" has for its heroine Natasha,--the Natasha that we
+have already met, but how transformed! She has at last found her
+bearings. If, in 1892, she was waiting for the right road to be
+shown to her, in 1896 she was enthusiastically following the new
+road opened by the doctrines of Marx.
+
+In Zharoshenko's famous picture, "The Student," Uspensky notes
+something new in this type of femininity. He calls it "the masculine
+trait"; it is the mark of thought. He sees there the harmonious
+fusion of a young girl and an adolescent boy, with an expression
+neither feminine nor masculine, but exceptionally human. And this
+transforms Zharoshenko's "Student" into a luminous personification,
+unknown up to this time, a type which synthesizes "le type humain."
+
+In the work of Veressayev this student is Natasha. Reflection has
+ripened her mind since her last talk with poor Chekanhov. She has
+become a regular "mannish woman," having seen and thought a great
+deal. She has traveled; she has lived in St. Petersburg and in the
+south of Russia. Full of courage and energy, she claims to be fully
+satisfied with her lot; she begs her companions to follow the road
+she has found, and when they refuse she becomes angry with them. In
+company with her comrade Dayev she vigorously attacks the
+convictions of the men of Kisselev, who see sufficient safety in the
+workingmen's associations; she rises up, in the name of Marxism,
+against the "narodnikis," whom she considers ingenuous idealists;
+she refuses to endorse the theories of the "intellectuals," who
+oppose the thought of any great work, since they believe that
+smaller deeds are more immediately realizable. When one of them, a
+doctor, Troitsky, ends his conversation with her with these words:
+"It is not necessary to wear one's brains out trying to solve
+difficult problems while there is so much immediate need and so few
+workers," she puts an end to the discussion. Shrugging her
+shoulders, in a trembling voice she answers: "How can you live and
+think as you do? New problems confront us, and you stand before them
+and do nothing, because you have lost confidence. I can't work any
+longer with you, because it would mean dedicating myself blindly to
+'spiritual death.'"
+
+Veressayev does not show us how she solves the problems of which she
+speaks. The adepts of this sort of social apostleship usually
+propagate their ideas among the workingmen, help them, and play a
+part in conspiracies. Natasha offers herself up. But the censorship
+has not allowed Veressayev to carry his subject on, and he has
+limited himself to showing us Natasha in company with her friends
+and disciples, giving herself up to oratorical tilts, discussing
+principles, and uttering long discourses full of passion, faith, and
+juvenile impatience,--discourses which unfortunately are mistaken in
+their reasoning.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In realizing from the socialist ideal the logical and inevitable
+consequence of capitalism, which continues according to a law
+independent of human will, the Marxian doctrine dissipates the
+doubts and consolidates the faith of those who adopt it. According
+to this faith, the socialists do not have to create socialism, they
+only have to cooeperate in the historical process which will
+inevitably make socialism grow. In thus recognizing the supremity of
+the law of history, socialism, utopian up to this time, becomes
+scientific and, under its new form, it is no longer subject to the
+influence of personal opinions, no matter how full of genius they
+may be. But this "scientific socialism," which, on account of the
+backwardness of political economy, could be only a step ahead, was
+taken by the younger generation of Russia as the "dernier mot" of
+the science. The result was, that several narrow and exclusive
+dogmas were grafted on this doctrine. Thus, the theory of "class
+struggle" transformed itself into the absolute negation of all
+community interests between the diverse social strata. The
+"materialistic"--or rather "economic"--point of view, according to
+which the products of spiritual activity in the history of humanity
+lose all independence, being only the consequences of economic
+organization, generated scorn for all idealism; and the proletariat
+character of the socialistic movement impelled society to divide
+into two hostile and irreconcilable parts, one of which is made up
+of the proletariats, the other of the elements opposed to socialism.
+To this last party the enormous mass of half-starved peasants joined
+itself. The peasants, according to the Marxian doctrine, cannot
+understand socialism until they have become proletariats themselves,
+instead of becoming miserable landed proprietors. And this
+"proletariazation" of about 100,000,000 peasants, the fervent
+Marxists consider a fatal and desirable event in the near future.
+
+These theories, carried to excess, were sure to excite a reaction.
+It manifested itself by a neo-idealistic movement, which found the
+principal cause of social progress in the tendency of humanity to
+attain supreme development and perfection. Then there were the
+"narodnikis" who considered the "proletariazation" of the Russian
+peasant impossible and inopportune. There were also the various
+groups of Socialists who applauded the criticism that Bernstein made
+on the Marxian orthodoxy. So several deviations were made from the
+original theory; there were grave dissensions and interminable and
+bitter controversies. All this occupies a large part of "At the
+Turn," one of Veressayev's novels, in which these events are traced
+with almost stenographic exactitude.
+
+The characters are, Tanya, a fanatic Marxist; her brother, Tokarev,
+whose soul is a field for spiritual battles; and Varenka, a village
+school-mistress. There are several eccentric characters around them,
+such as Serge, a young apostle of a somewhat Nietzschean egoism,
+Antsov and others. Tanya is none other than Natasha of "Astray,"
+with this great difference, however, that Tanya has found truth
+already formulated for her, and does not have to grope about for it.
+Nevertheless, the essential characteristics of the two girls are the
+same. They both have the same joyous self-denial, the same love of
+life, the same courage in face of difficulties, and also the same
+faith in a better future. Tanya has lived during the whole winter
+with her comrades in a region devastated by the famine, and she has
+spent there all that she possesses. At Toliminsk, where she arrives
+after a long walk, she speaks of her meagre living and tells amusing
+stories without suspecting her wonderful heroism.
+
+But this young girl, full of the joy of life and ready for any
+sacrifices, is pitiless towards her theoretical adversaries and has
+absolutely no compassion for them. The passage in "Crime and
+Punishment," in which Dostoyevsky depicts one of his heroes in the
+following manner: "He was young, he had abstract ideas, and was,
+consequently, cruel," perfectly fits Tanya. Veressayev tells the
+following incident: "One day, when she was at the station, some
+peasants rushed down from the platform. A railroad guard struck one
+of the peasants. The peasant put his head down and ran off....
+Tanya, knitting her brows, said: 'That's good for him! Oh, these
+peasants!' And her eyes lighted up with scorn and hate...."
+
+Just as Tanya brings Natasha to our mind, so does Varenka make us
+think of Dr. Chekanhov; the same feeling of duty governs them both.
+But, while Chekanhov wanted to devote himself to the social problem,
+without ever succeeding in doing so, because he did not exactly see
+the principles, Varenka was able to devote herself to her work
+without mental reservation. However, she refuses to, because she has
+not enough enthusiasm for this sort of research. Her understanding,
+which is deeper and broader than Tanya's, sees the error, the
+narrowness of her doctrine; she cannot admit it, and, fired by a
+desire to devote herself body and soul to some useful work, she
+chooses the laborious profession of a school-mistress in the
+village. But this humble and unpleasant career does not satisfy her.
+Little by little ennui and anguish drive her to suicide.
+
+Between Tokarev, Tanya's brother, and Varenka, the contrast is
+complete. While still a student, he had accepted, with all the ardor
+of youth, the idea of duty, and he desired to give himself up to the
+cause of justice and truth; but, having encountered many obstacles,
+he felt, when he had reached his thirtieth year, that the sacred
+fire was going out.
+
+He now dreamed only of his personal happiness, and of poor theories
+that justified this egoism. An assured material existence, comfort,
+a happy domestic life, work without risks, without sacrifices, but
+useful enough in appearance to satisfy the conscience, attracted him
+irresistibly. He then went to work to tear out his former ideas,
+which had taken a pretty firm root. Urged on by his conscience,
+which protested, he forced himself at times to resurrect his
+youthful enthusiasm; he thought a great deal about morals, about
+duty, and he read many books treating this subject; he says: "I
+feel that something extremely necessary has left me. My feelings
+about humanity have disappeared and nothing can replace them. I read
+a great deal now, and I am directing my thoughts towards ethics. I
+try to give morality a solid basis and I try to make clearer to
+myself the various categories of duty.... And I blush to pronounce
+the word, 'Duty.'"
+
+Nevertheless, Tokarev tries, at times, to justify his inclinations
+towards peaceable bourgeois prosperity to the struggling youth who
+surround his sister Tanya. These cruel young people, however, answer
+him only with sarcastic remarks, and caustic arguments, and do not
+hesitate to express their doubts as to the sincerity of his
+opinions. To his conscience, they are like a living reproach from
+the past. Once he also was intolerant towards others as these people
+are towards him to-day. And that is why he suffers under their
+condemnation of him. He defends himself weakly, and after one of his
+oratorical tilts, he falls into such spiritual depression, that he
+almost thinks of suicide.
+
+These, then, are the three main characters of Veressayev's novel. In
+the background we have the secondary characters. We have the proud
+proprietor and his wife, both of them liberals; we have the
+pedagogue Osmerkov, who does not like talented people because they
+bother everybody; and then there are the respectable inhabitants of
+Gniezdelovka, Serge's father and mother, who are entirely absorbed
+with their household and with cards.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"The Comrades" is a variation on this theme: old school friends, who
+formerly had been wrapped up in a great ideal, are now living a life
+of shabby prosperity, and they feel that they have deteriorated,
+although they do not dare to confess it to each other.
+
+And Veressayev profits by this to generalize on the causes of this
+fatal fall after the unselfish enthusiasms of youth. He sees them
+especially in a mysterious force: "The Invisible," already studied
+by Maeterlinck, Ibsen, Tchekoff, and especially by de Maupassant;
+and he sees them in the unhappy conditions of Russian history, which
+created a social and political organization favorable only to those
+who crawl along and not to those who plan.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Let us now analyze the stories in which Veressayev describes the
+life of the people.
+
+The story of "The Steppe" is as follows: One beautiful autumn
+evening two men meet on the steppe. One of them, the forger Nikita,
+is returning to his native land; he is wounded in the leg and it is
+hard for him to walk. He is looking for work. The other is a
+professional beggar.
+
+The beggar, who is never hungry because he has no scruples, offers
+Nikita something to eat. After resting a short while, the travelers
+continue on their way. In the first village that they come to, the
+pilgrim beggar makes a speech to the inhabitants and sells them
+certain "sacred properties" which he keeps in his bag. After
+pocketing gifts of money and various other things, the false pilgrim
+pursues his way, still accompanied by Nikita. On the road once more,
+he offers to share with his comrade the fruits of his "work," but
+the latter refuses.
+
+"What a fool!" cries the beggar, and bursts out laughing. But
+Nikita, indignant, gives him a heavy blow and leaves him for good.
+
+"For a Home" and "In Haste" gave Veressayev an opportunity to note
+one of the characteristic traits of the ambitious villagers: their
+strong desire to preserve their homes and to propagate the race.
+
+In the first of these stories, two old people, Athanasius and his
+wife, want to marry their daughter Dunka, but the "mir,"--the
+assembly of peasants,--egotistical and inflexible towards people who
+are growing weak, oppose them. "We have not enough land for our own
+children," is the answer of the "mir." Dunka remains unmarried, and
+dies at an early age. Her mother soon follows her. Old Athanasius
+lives alone in his freezing "isba," which is in a state of ruin,
+while the neighboring isbas, solid and austere, "spitefully watch
+him die."
+
+In the last story, we have a widower who is the father of five
+children, and is therefore looking everywhere for a woman with some
+bodily defect, because he knows that other women will not want to
+have anything to do with him.
+
+It is the same wish to preserve his home that makes a peasant go to
+the city to earn his living while he leaves his family in the
+country to take care of the house.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The peasant is, besides, entirely engrossed with the difficulties of
+existence. Necessity often urges him to desperate acts.... Some, who
+are almost starving, ingratiate themselves with the raftsmen. They
+force wages down by asking only 5 copecks (5 cents) a day.... If
+they are contented with this absurd pay, it is because they avoid
+seeing how their little children are suffering at home. "It's hard
+living at present; there is not enough space; ground is scarce and
+there are too many people." "Men haven't room enough," says a
+sad-looking man with prominent cheek-bones. "But," he goes on, "they
+tell me that sickness has struck our village, and that the men are
+losing blood! Is that true?" "Yes, it's true!" "So much the better!
+That will clean out the people; it will be easier to live then," he
+concludes, thoughtfully. (From "In the Cold Spell.")
+
+In almost all the work of Veressayev a voice proclaims that the
+Russian peasant is near his end; that he is not useful to any one.
+The poverty of the villages is painted in the most sombre colors.
+The people are unanimous in believing that the struggle for life has
+become terrible. "On what will you live?" one asks the other. "The
+earth does not nourish us. The holdings are small; in summer, one
+must cultivate, and in winter the cottages have to be closed while
+we look for work or charity. What is there to eat? Hay! Let us thank
+God that the cattle have enough of that. Oats? We have to give four
+hectoliters and two measures of our oats to the common granary....
+And taxes and clothes? coal-oil, matches, tea, sugar? Tell me, how
+can one live?"
+
+The unfortunates even go so far as to bless war and epidemics.
+"Everything went better then. Men lived peacefully in the fear of
+God, the Lord took care of every one. War, smallpox, famine came and
+cleaned out the populace; those that remained, after having got the
+coffins ready, lived easier. God pitied us. Now there is no more
+war; He leaves us to our own poor devices."
+
+Speeches like this abound in the works of Veressayev. A dull
+sadness, bordering on despair, breathes forth from the pages. It
+seems, at times, as if the Russian peasant could never awake from
+his torpor, because the author represents him as full of infinite
+egoism, without any spirit of solidarity, sacrificing everything for
+love of his sorry little house and his morsel of ground, which is
+insufficient to nourish him. But we must remember that the Marxian
+point of view, which the author takes, explains in part the horror
+of such pictures.
+
+According to Veressayev the poor peasants can better their position
+only by getting rid of their land, in order to become free
+proletarians. But if the peasant class is unfortunate, it is so, for
+the most part, because it is the most exploited and the most
+oppressed. It is not, then, the getting rid of their land that will
+bring the peasants salvation; on the contrary, they must fight for
+it against their oppressors. The peasants are beginning to
+understand the necessity of this struggle, and their late uprisings
+in several provinces have shown that they lack neither solidarity
+nor organization.
+
+In the story called, "The End of Andrey Ivanovich," which is about
+the working class of Russia, we see the transformation of a peasant
+into a "city man." In his new surroundings, it is true, the
+wine-shop plays an important role, but schools are organized there
+which inspire a taste for reading, and "thought" gradually awakens.
+
+Andrey has not yet rid himself of his rustic unsociability; however,
+he is beginning to become civilized, and is receiving city culture.
+He tries to free himself from his misery, from his degradation. He
+beats his wife when he is drunk, but, at the same time, he gets
+angry at a friend when he beats his mistress.... According to his
+own confession he reads many useless things, nevertheless he can
+become interested in a serious work. If he drinks to excess, it is
+to "drive away the thoughts" that torment him. He wants to analyze
+every question and find out what is at the bottom of it. He is the
+spiritual brother of Natasha, Chekanhov, and Tanya.
+
+The sequel to this story is "The Straight Road." This time we are
+transported into the world of factory workers, a world lamentable
+for its misery, despair, and crime. Andrey Ivanovich's wife,
+Alexandra Mikhailovna, being without resources after the death of
+her husband, with a little daughter in arms, enters a book-binding
+establishment, belonging to a man named Semidalov. But the foreman,
+a vicious and evil-minded man, reigns as despot. It is he who gives
+out the work. The young girls who listen to his advances are sure
+of being shown partiality; the others are badly treated. As
+Alexandra wants to live honestly, her work in the shop is made very
+hard. Her best friend, Tanya, who inadvertently spilled oil on some
+paper and could not pay for the damage, had to give herself to the
+foreman. Finally Tanya despairs and ends by drowning herself.
+Alexandra is saved, thanks to a "loveless" marriage with the
+locksmith, Lestmann. She accepts this union so that she will not
+have to starve and can remain "straight." Thus, the "straight road"
+which Alexandra wanted to follow has forced her finally to sell
+herself, to marry a man whom she does not love.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Each page of Veressayev's work exists merely to throw light on this
+or that social question, considered from a well defined point of
+view. The secret of his success rests mostly in the frank, sincere
+manner in which he has approached certain problems. At the same
+time, all of his work breathes forth a deep and tender love for
+those who suffer. In reality, there is not a single book by
+Veressayev which might not be a confession; all that he writes he
+has already experienced himself, and his work vibrates with a
+delicate and personal emotion. It is only necessary to read "The
+Memoirs of a Physician," which is almost an autobiography, in order
+to perceive the moral relationship that exists between Veressayev
+and the heroes of his stories.
+
+This book is the confession of a physician from the time of his
+early studies. The young man is astonished at the number of maladies
+that exist and by the unbelievable variety of keen suffering that
+nature inflicts upon the human species, man. Soon he is obliged to
+make a discovery that stuns him: that medicine is incapable of
+curing many evils. It only gropes about, trying thousands of
+remedies before it arrives at a sure result. The scruples and
+anxiety of the student increase, especially after an autopsy on a
+woman in the amphitheatre, when the professor announces that the
+woman has succumbed because the surgeon, who was operating, swooned,
+and ends by saying: "In such difficult operations the very best
+surgeons are not safe from accidents of this kind." After this, the
+professor shook hands with his colleague and every one left. At that
+time, doubt entered the mind of the young man. And so, within a
+period of ten years, he passes from extreme optimism to the same
+degree of pessimism.
+
+We follow him in the hospitals, where he is scandalized by the
+brutality of the teaching, which makes use of the unwilling bodies
+of sick people. "Not being able to pay for their treatment in
+money, they have to pay with their bodies." Finally, the student
+becomes a doctor himself. Full of faith and knowledge, he starts
+practice in a small market-town of central Russia. But his work soon
+cools him down; in the clinic he had studied mostly exceptional
+cases; now he is disconcerted by simple and every-day sicknesses.
+His ignorance leads to the following tragic case:
+
+One day, a poor and widowed washerwoman brings him her sick child,
+whom she does not want to take to the hospital because her two
+oldest children died there. The child is a weak boy of eight years
+who has caught scarlet-fever. At first, the inside of the throat
+begins to swell, and, to prevent an abscess, the doctor orders
+rubbings with a mercurial ointment. The next day, he finds the boy
+all aquiver and covered with pimples. "There is no mistake," he
+says, "the rubbing has spread the infection into the neighboring
+organs and a general poisoning of the blood has taken place. The
+little boy is lost.... All that day and night I wandered about the
+streets. I could think of nothing, and I felt crushed by the horror
+of the thing. Only at times this thought came into my mind: 'I have
+killed a human being!'" The child lived ten days more. The night
+before his death Veressayev comes to see him. The poor mother is
+sobbing in a corner of the miserable room. She pulls herself
+together, however, and taking three rubles out of her pocket, offers
+them to the trembling doctor, who refuses them. Then this woman
+falls down on her knees and thanks him for having pitied her son.
+"I'll leave everything, I'll give up everything," sobs the
+doctor.... "I have decided to leave for St. Petersburg to-morrow in
+order to study some more even if I die of hunger!"
+
+Once the resolution was made to pursue his studies in a more
+practical manner, he becomes the house-surgeon of a hospital. But
+even there a mass of problems disturb him. He sees how dangerous the
+simplest operations are; he is frightened by the unrestraint of the
+doctors, who try new methods on the sick, methods the effects of
+which are not known, methods that result in the patient's being
+inoculated with more sickness. Medicine cannot progress without
+direct experimentation, and experience is gained at the expense of
+the more unfortunate. Nevertheless, Veressayev does not argue
+against this way of working; he shows the facts, and leaves it to
+the reader to decide. On the other hand, he does not hide his fear
+of the common ignorance of all doctors. Every individual differs
+from his neighbor. How distinguish their idiosyncrasies? Once the
+scope of a sickness is known, what remedy shall be used? Some say
+this, others, that. How shall one choose? Veressayev has felt all of
+this; he has tried to harden himself against the unreasonable
+ingratitude of some, the scepticism of others; he realizes that
+patience, resignation, and heroism are needed in order to struggle
+against and support the mortifications in the career of a doctor.
+How much easier it would be not to consider medicine as infallible;
+to study it as an art rather than as a science. But people prefer to
+believe that doctors know everything. They do not want to see the
+reality, and this is the reason why sad, and at times tragic
+conflicts arise between patient and physician.
+
+Finally, what could the most perfect medical science and the
+cleverest doctor do against the enormous mass of sickness and
+suffering that are the inevitable result of the social evils, of
+which poverty is the most conspicuous? How can one tell a man that
+his trade is running him down and that he does not get enough
+nourishment? How can one order a man to eat better food, to get more
+sleep and more pure air? First, and most important, is the necessity
+of curing the social organism.
+
+It is easy to see why this book made many enemies for its author.
+There is too much frankness and conscientiousness in these studies
+not to anger those who have their greatest interest in concealing
+the truth! The upright man who sees primarily in medicine a means to
+relieve human suffering, cannot realize without sadness the many
+abuses hidden under the name of this science.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"In the War," recently published, is the story of Veressayev's
+campaign in Manchuria. In this work, the author has painted
+vividly the peregrinations of his moving hospital, and also the
+terrible sufferings of the Russian army. By the thousands, the
+starved children of the campaign, the Russian foot-soldiers,
+stoics and fatalists, sacrificing their lives for a strange and
+incomprehensible cause, pass before the eyes of the reader. And in
+the background, detaching themselves from the crowd, in their gold
+and silver embroidered uniforms, are "the heroes of the war, these
+vultures of the advance and rear-guard, who enrich themselves at
+the expense of the unfortunate soldiers." A number of these great
+chiefs, whose infamy was evident at the end of the war, since they
+had shown themselves incapable of dealing with the foreign enemy,
+had distinguished themselves by the ferocity they exhibited in
+quelling internal troubles. As to the military doctors, the
+greater number of them went into the campaign only for commercial
+gain. Among the nurses who accompanied them, aside from those who
+were real heroines of goodness and devotion, there were many who
+prostituted themselves shamefully.
+
+Corruption, carelessness, disorder, and cowardice are shown on every
+page of this story, as well as the terrible suffering endured by the
+wounded in the hospitals. The wounded were the real martyrs of this
+frightful campaign.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Veressayev, like all of his heroes and heroines, wants to help the
+people, and for this reason he gets in touch with the revolutionists
+who consecrate their work to political and social regeneration,
+under the various titles, "narodnikis," Marxists, Socialists,
+idealists and so on.... Which of these does he prefer? We do not
+know. We find the influence of Marx in his ideas, but we cannot
+affirm that he is an absolute Marxian. It seems as if Veressayev,
+troubled by the innumerable divergencies of opinion, asks himself
+secretly: "Will this war lead to the unity of opinion and program,
+so necessary for victory, or by its quarrels will it only retard the
+harmony so much sought after?"
+
+It is not discussion that will finally lead to unity, but rather
+life itself, with all its realities.
+
+It would be most interesting to read a sequel to the three famous
+novels of Veressayev--"Astray," "The Contagion," and "At the
+Turning"--in which he would give us the psychology of his former
+heroes under present conditions. To-day, the people are not
+"astray"; the field is big enough for every one to find the place
+that best suits his ideas, tastes, and temperament. Dr. Chekanhov,
+if he were living now, instead of being maltreated by the people,
+would certainly be their well beloved champion, and perhaps
+represent them in the Duma; the timid Tokarev, in spite of his
+aversion to the ideas of the revolutionists, could find a place in
+the liberal party of the Reforming Democrats, or at least among the
+Octobrists; the unfortunate Varenka would not be worn out by her
+work as school-mistress, for she would be supported by the peasants.
+The peasants themselves are not the miserable and resigned creatures
+of Veressayev's earlier stories. Certainly, liberty is not yet a
+legal thing in Russia, and the Duma is still an unstable
+institution, but the end of absolutism is near, for a great event
+has taken place in the empire of the Tsar, namely, this awakening of
+the feeling of human dignity, and the spirit of revolt among the
+lower strata of the Russian people, which in the past, by its
+unconsciousness, formed the granite pedestal of autocracy. The
+struggle is terrible, but confidence in final victory redoubles the
+energy of the strugglers. A certain Russian was right when he said:
+"Formerly, life was formidable, but now it is both formidable and
+gay."
+
+In reading the works of Veressayev, Tchekoff, and other painters of
+modern Russian society, it is easy to note that not one of them
+anticipated this sudden change of scenery on the Russian political
+stage, a change which, however, was being prepared in the souls of
+the peasants. But let us not reproach them! Russia will always
+remain an enigma.
+
+There is a very old story about the son of the peasant Ilya
+Murometz. After remaining lazily resting in his "isba" for thirty
+years, he suddenly arose, and began to walk with such fury that the
+earth trembled. How could these writers conceive the time when this
+lazy giant would make up his mind to walk? It is enough to have the
+assurance that now, no matter what happens, since he _has_ arisen,
+he will not lie down again.
+
+
+
+
+V
+
+MAXIM GORKY
+
+
+Maxim Gorky is the most original and, after Tolstoy, the most
+talented of modern Russian writers. He was born in 1868 or 1869--he
+does not know exactly when himself--in a dyer's back shop at Nizhny
+Novgorod. His mother, Barbara Kashirina, was the daughter of the
+aforementioned dyer; and his father, Maxim Pyeshkov, was an
+upholsterer. The child was christened Alexis. His real name, then,
+is Alexis Pyeshkov, and Maxim Gorky[6] is only his pseudonym. When
+he was four, he lost his father, and three years later, his mother.
+He was then taken by his grandfather, who had been a soldier under
+Nicholas I, a hard, authoritative, pitiless old man, before whom all
+trembled. And it was under his rude tutelage that the child first
+began to read. When he was nine, he was sent to work for a
+shoemaker, an evil sort of man who maltreated him.
+
+ [6] In Russian, Gorky means bitterness.
+
+"One day," Gorky tells us, "I was warming some water for him; the
+bowl fell, and I burned my hands badly. That evening I ran away, my
+grandfather having scolded me severely. I then became a painter's
+apprentice."
+
+He did not remain long in this position. From this time on, his
+unsatisfied soul was seized with the "wanderlust." First apprenticed
+to an engraver, and then as a gardener, he finally became a scullion
+on one of the boats that plies up and down the Volga. Here he felt
+more at ease.
+
+On board, in the person of the master-cook, named Smoury, he
+unexpectedly met a teacher. This cook, who had been a soldier, loved
+to read, and he gave the child all the books that he had in an old
+trunk. They consisted of the works of Gogol, Dumas' novels, the
+"Lives of the Saints," a manual of geography, and some popular
+novels. Surely, a queer collection!
+
+Smoury inspired his scullion, then sixteen years of age, "with an
+ardent curiosity for the printed word." A "furious" desire to learn
+seized the young fellow; he went to Kazan, a university city, in the
+hope of "learning gratuitously all sorts of beautiful things." Cruel
+deception! They explained to him that "this was not according to the
+established order." Discouraged, a few months later, he took a
+position with a baker. He who dreamed of the sun and the open air
+had to be imprisoned in a filthy and damp cellar. He remained there
+for two years, earning two dollars a month, board and lodging
+included; the food, however, was putrid, and his lodging consisted
+of an attic which he shared with five other men.
+
+"My life in that bakery," he has said, "left a bitter impression.
+Those two years were the hardest of my whole life." He has thus
+described his recollections in one of his stories:
+
+"We lived in a wooden box, under a low and heavy ceiling, all
+covered with cobwebs and permeated with fine soot. Night pressed us
+between the two walls, spattered with spots of mud and all mouldy.
+We got up at five in the morning and, stupid and indifferent, began
+work at six o'clock. We made bread out of the dough which our
+comrades had prepared while we slept. The whole day, from dawn till
+ten at night, some of us sat at the table rolling out the dough,
+and, to avoid becoming torpid, we would constantly rock ourselves to
+and fro while the others kneaded in the flour. The enormous oven,
+which resembled a fantastic beast, opened its large jaws, full of
+dazzling flames, and breathed forth upon us its hot breath, while
+its two black and enormous cavities watched our unending work....
+
+"Thus, from one day to the next, in the floury dust, in the mud that
+our feet brought in from the yard, in the suffocating and terrible
+heat, we rolled out the dough and made cracknels, moistening them
+with our sweat; we hated our work with an implacable hatred; we
+never ate what we made, preferring black bread to these odorous
+dainties."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+At this period of his life, he had occasion to study at first hand
+certain places where he received original information which he later
+used in writing "Konovalov" and "The Ex-Men," which have thus
+acquired an autobiographical value. In fact, he worked a long while
+with these "ex-men;" like them, he sawed wood, and carried heavy
+burdens. At the same time, he devoted all his spare time to reading
+and thinking about problems, which became more and more "cursed" and
+alarming. He had found an attentive listener and interlocutor in the
+person of his comrade, the baker Konovalov. These two men, while
+baking their bread, found time to read. And the walls of the cellar
+heard the reading of the works of Gogol, Dostoyevsky, Karamzine, and
+others. Then they used to discuss the meaning of life. On holidays,
+Gorky and Konovalov had for the moment an opportunity to come out of
+the hole--this word does not exaggerate--in which they worked, to
+breathe the fresh air, to live a bit in nature's bosom, and to see
+their fellow men.
+
+"On holidays," Gorky tells us, "we went with Konovalov down to the
+river, into the fields; we took a little brandy and bread with us,
+and, from morning till evening, we were in the open air."
+
+They often went to an old, abandoned house which served as a refuge
+for a whole tribe of miserable and wandering people, who loved to
+tell of their wandering lives. Gorky and his companion were always
+well received on account of the provisions which they distributed so
+generously.
+
+"Each story spread out before our eyes like a piece of lace in which
+the black threads predominated--they represented the truth--and
+where there were threads of light color--they were the lies. These
+people loved us in their way, and were attentive listeners, because
+I often read a great deal to them."
+
+Often, these expeditions were not without their risks. One day, two
+of the baker's workmen happened to drown in a bog; another time,
+they were taken in a police raid and passed the night in the station
+house.
+
+It was also at this time that Gorky frequented the company of
+several students, not care-free and happy ones, but miserable young
+fellows like those whom Turgenev described as "nourished by physical
+privations and moral sufferings."
+
+On leaving the bakery, where his health, very much weakened by the
+lack of air and by bad food, did not permit him to remain any
+longer, he joined those vagabonds, those wanderers, whose
+melancholy companion he had been, and whose painter and poet he was
+to be. In their company, he traveled through Russia in every sense
+of the word, now as a longshoreman, now as a wood-chopper. Whenever
+he had a copeck in his pocket he bought books and newspapers and
+spent the night reading them. He suffered hunger and cold; he slept
+in the open air in summer, and, in winter, in some refuge or cellar.
+The feverish activity of so keen an intellect in an organism so
+crushed had, as its consequence, one of the attempts at suicide
+which are so frequent among the younger generation of the Russians.
+
+In 1889, at the age of twenty-one, Gorky shot himself in the chest,
+but he did not succeed in killing himself. Soon afterwards, he
+became gate-keeper for the winter at Tzaratzine; but the summer had
+hardly come before he began his vagabondage again, in the course of
+which he undertook a thousand little jobs in order to keep himself
+alive. On the road, he noticed those pariahs whom society does not
+want or who do not want society. And of these, in his short stories,
+he has created immortal types.
+
+Life was still very hard for him at this time. He has given us a
+moving sketch of it in his story entitled: "Once in Autumn." The
+hero, who is none other than the author himself, passes the night
+under an old, upturned boat, in the company of a prostitute who is
+just as poor and just as abandoned as himself. They have broken into
+a booth in order to steal enough bread to keep them from starving.
+Gorky is sad; he wants to weep; but the poor girl, miserable as she
+is, consoles him and covers him with kisses.
+
+"Those were the first kisses any woman ever gave me, and they were
+the best, for those that I received later always cost me a lot and
+never gave me any joy.... At this time, I was already preparing
+myself to be an active and powerful force in society; it seemed to
+me at times that I had in part accomplished my purpose.... I dreamed
+of political resolutions, of social reorganization; I used to read
+such deep and impenetrable authors that their thoughts did not seem
+to be a part of them--and now a prostitute warmed me with her body,
+and I was in debt to a miserable, shameful creature, banished by a
+society that did not want to accord her a place. The wind blew and
+groaned, the rain beat down upon the boat, the waves broke around
+us, and both of us, closely entwined, trembled from cold and hunger.
+And Natasha consoled me; she spoke to me in a sweet, caressing
+voice, as only a woman can. In listening to her tender and naive
+words, I wept, and those tears washed away from my heart many
+impurities, much bitterness, sadness and hatred, all of which had
+accumulated there before this night."
+
+At daybreak, they say good-bye to each other, and never see one
+another again.
+
+"For more than six months, I looked in all the dives and dens in the
+hope of seeing that dear little Natasha once more, but it was in
+vain...."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+We find him again at Nizhny Novgorod at the time of the call for
+military recruits. Gorky was reformed, for, he says, "They do not
+accept those who are fallen." Meanwhile, he became a kvass merchant
+and exercised this trade for several months. Finally, he became the
+secretary of a lawyer, named Lanine. The latter, who had a very good
+reputation, took a deep interest in the poor boy whom life had
+treated so ill. He became interested in his intellectual development
+and, according to Gorky himself, had a great influence on him. At
+Nizhny Novgorod, as at Kazan, Gorky felt himself attracted by the
+circle of young people who discussed the "cursed" questions, and he
+soon was noticed by his comrades. They spoke of him as "a live and
+energetic soul."
+
+Easy as life was for Gorky in this city, where he remained for a
+while, the "wanderlust" again seized him. "Not feeling at home
+among these intelligent people," he traveled. From Nizhny Novgorod,
+he went, in 1893, to Tzaratzine; then he traveled on foot through
+the entire province of the Don, the Ukraine, entered into
+Bessarabia, and from there descended by the coast of the Crimea as
+far as Kuban.
+
+In October, 1892, Gorky found himself at Tiflis, where he worked in
+the railroad shops. That same year, he published in a local paper
+his first story, "Makar Choudra," in which already a remarkable
+talent was evident.
+
+Leaving Tiflis after a short sojourn there, he came to the banks of
+the Volga, in his native country, and began to write stories for the
+local papers. A happy chance made him meet Korolenko, who took a
+great interest in the "debutante" writer. "In the year 1893-1894,"
+writes Gorky, "I made the acquaintance of Vladimir Korolenko, to
+whom I owe my introduction into 'great' literature. He has done a
+great deal for me in teaching me many things."
+
+The important influence of Korolenko on the literary development of
+Gorky can best be seen in one of the latter's letters to his
+biographer, Mr. Gorodetsky. "Write this," he says to his biographer,
+"write this without changing a single word: It is Korolenko who
+taught Gorky to write, and if Gorky has profited but little by the
+teaching of Korolenko, it is the fault of Gorky alone. Write:
+Gorky's first teacher was the soldier-cook Smoury; his second
+teacher was the lawyer Lanine; the third, Alexander Kalouzhny, an
+'ex-man;' the fourth, Korolenko...."
+
+From the day when he met Korolenko, Gorky's stories appeared mostly
+in the more important publications. In 1895, he published
+"Chelkashe" in the important Petersburg review, "Russkoe Bogatsvo;"
+a year later, other publications equally well known published,
+"Konovalov," "Malva," and "Anxiety." These works brought Gorky into
+the literary world, where he soon became one of the favorite
+writers. The critics, at first sceptical, soon joined their voices
+with the enthusiastic clamor of the people.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Gorky's wandering life has given his works a peculiar and
+universally established form. He is, above all others, the poet of
+the "barefoot brigade," of the vagabonds who eternally wander from
+one end of Russia to the other, carelessly spending the few pennies
+that they have succeeded in earning, and who, like the birds of the
+sky, have no cares for the morrow.
+
+But this does not suffice to explain this author's popularity,
+especially among the younger generation. The "barefoot brigade" is
+not a novelty in Russian literature. We find it in the works of
+Reshetnikov, Uspensky, Mamine, Zhassinsky, and others. It is true
+that, up to this time, the vagabonds had been represented as the
+dregs of the people, as hopeless drunkards, thieves, and murderers.
+The writers who represented them were satisfied in rousing in their
+readers pity for the victims of this social disorder, victims so
+wounded by fate, that they have not even a realization of the
+injustice with which they are treated. And it is only in the works
+of the great dramatist Ostrovsky that we find any happy vagabonds,
+with a deep love of nature and beauty.
+
+Gorky's vagabonds have, like Ostrovsky's, exalted feelings for
+natural beauties, but they possess, besides, a full consciousness of
+themselves, and they declare open war against society. Gorky lives
+the lives of his heroes; he seems to sink himself into them, and, at
+the same time, he idealizes them, and often uses them as his
+spokesmen. Far from being crushed by fate, his vagabonds clothe
+themselves with a certain pride in their misery; for them, the ideal
+existence is the one they lead, because it is free; with numerous
+variations, they all exalt the irresistible seduction of
+vagabondage:
+
+"As for me, just listen! How many things I've seen in my fifty-eight
+years," says Makar Choudra. "In what country have I not been? That
+is the only way to live. Walk, walk, and you see everything. Don't
+stay long in one place: what is there out of the ordinary in that?
+Just as day and night eternally run after one another, thus you must
+run, avoiding daily life, so that you will not cease to love it...."
+
+"I, brother,"--says, in turn, Konovalov,--"I have decided to go all
+over the earth, in every sense of the word. You always see something
+new.... You think of nothing.... The wind blows, and you might say
+that it blows the dust out of your soul. You feel free and easy....
+You are not troubled by any one. If you are hungry, you stop, and
+work to earn a few pennies; if there is no work to be had, you ask
+for some bread and it is given to you. So you see many countries,
+and the most diverse beauties...."
+
+Likewise, in "Tedium," Kouzma Kossiyak thus clearly expresses
+himself:
+
+"I would not give up my liberty for any woman, nor for any
+fireplace. I was born in a shed, do you hear, and it is in a shed
+that I am going to die; that is my fate. I am going to wander
+everywhere until my hair turns grey.... I get bored when I stay in
+the same place."
+
+In their feeling of hostility to all authority, and all fixed
+things, including bourgeois happiness and economical principles,
+some of Gorky's characters resemble some of those superior heroes
+of Russian literature, like Pushkin's Evgeny Onyegin, Lermontov's
+Pechorine, and, finally, Turgenev's Rudin, who, in their way, are
+vagabonds, filled with the same independent spirit in their
+respective social, intellectual, or political circles.
+
+On the other hand, Gorky's wandering beggars are closely related to
+those "free men" to whom M. S. Maximov attributes a historic role
+which was favorable to the extension of the Russian empire.
+"Russia," he says, in his book, "Siberia and the Prison," "lived by
+vagabondage after she became a State; thanks to the vagabonds, she
+has extended her boundaries: for, it is they who, in order to
+maintain their independence, fought against the nomad tribes who
+attacked them from the south and the east...."
+
+There is a marked difference between these two classes: men of the
+former look for a place on this earth where they can establish
+themselves; while men of the other class, those who are out of work,
+drunkards, and lazy men, have no taste for a sedentary life.
+
+But if Gorky has not created the type of vagabond which is so
+familiar to those who know Russian literature, on the other hand, he
+has remodeled it with his original, energetic, and vibrantly
+realistic talent. His nomad "barefoot brigade," picturesquely
+encamped, is surrounded with a sort of terribly majestic halo in
+these vast stretches of country, a background against which their
+sombre silhouettes are set off. From the perfumed steppes to the
+roaring sea, they conjure up to the eye of their old co-mate the
+enchanting Slavic land of which they are the audacious offsprings.
+And Gorky also lovingly gives them a familiar setting, painted with
+bold strokes, of plains and mountains which border in the distance
+the glaucous stretch of the sea. The sea! With what fervor does
+Gorky depict the anger and the peace of the sea. It always inspires,
+like an adored mistress:
+
+"... The sea sleeps.
+
+"Immense, sighing lazily along the strand, it has gone to sleep,
+peaceful in its huge stretch, bathed in the moonlight. As soft as
+velvet, and black, it mingles with the dark southern sky and sleeps
+profoundly, while on its surface is reflected the transparent tissue
+of the flaky, immobile clouds, in which is incrusted the gilded
+design of the stars."
+
+Thus, like a "leitmotiv," the murmuring of the water interrupts the
+course of the story. And the steppe, this steppe "which has devoured
+so much human flesh and has drunk so much blood that it has become
+fat and fecund," surrounds with its immensity these miserable
+wandering beings and menaces them with its storm:
+
+"Suddenly, the entire steppe undulated, enveloped with a dazzling
+blue light which seemed to enlarge the horizon ... the shadows
+trembled and disappeared for a moment ... a crash of thunder burst
+forth, disturbing the sky, where many black clouds were flying
+past....
+
+"... At times the steppe stretched forth like an oscillating giant
+... the vast stretch of blue and cloudless sky poured light down
+upon us, and seemed like an immense cupola of sombre color."
+
+The wind passed "in large and regular waves, or blew with a sharp
+rattle, the leaves sighed and whispered among themselves, the waves
+of the river washed up on the banks, monotonous, despairing, as if
+they were telling something terribly sad and mournful," the entire
+country vibrated with a powerful life that harmonized with the souls
+of the people.
+
+In "Old Iserguile," Gorky writes: "I should have liked to transform
+myself into dust and be blown about by the wind; I should have liked
+to stretch myself out on the steppe like the warm waters of the
+river, or throw myself into the sea and rise into the sky in an opal
+mist; I should have liked to drink in this evening so wonderful and
+melancholy.... And, I know not why, I was suffering...."
+
+Gorky's stories, always short enough, have little or no plot, and
+the characters are barely sketched. But, in these simple frames, he
+has confined the power of an art which is prolific, supple and
+profoundly living. Let us take, for example, "The Friends." Dancing
+Foot and The One Who Hopes are ordinary thieves, the terror of the
+villagers whose gardens they rob. One day, when they are especially
+desperate, they steal a thin horse which is browsing at the edge of
+the woods. The One Who Hopes gets an incurable sickness, and it is
+perhaps on account of his approaching death that he feels scruples
+at this crime. Dancing Foot expresses the scorn that the weakness of
+his companion inspires him with, but he ends by giving in and
+returns the animal. One hour later, The One Who Hopes falls dead in
+front of Dancing Foot, who is tremendously upset in spite of his
+affected indifference.
+
+A dry outline cannot possibly convey the emotion contained in this
+little drama, where the low mentality of the characters is rendered
+with the mastery which Gorky usually shows in creating his elemental
+heroes. Among other works that should be noted are "Cain and
+Arteme," so poignantly ironical in its simplicity, "To Drive Away
+Tedium," "The Silver Clasps," "The Prisoner," and that little
+masterpiece, "Twenty-Six Men and a Girl," in which we see
+twenty-six bakers pouring out an ideal and mystical love on Tanya,
+the little embroiderer, who they believe, is as pure as an angel.
+One day, a brutal soldier comes to defy them, and boasts that he
+will conquer this young girl. He succeeds. Then the twenty-six
+insult their fallen idol; the tragedy is not so much in the insults
+that they hurl at her, as in the suffering they undergo through
+having lost the illusion that was so dear to them.
+
+Let us note, incidentally, the existence of a sort of comic spirit
+in these works which relieves the tragedy of the situations. In
+spite of their dark pessimism, the actors in these little dramas
+have an appearance of gaiety which deceives. It is by this popular
+humor that Gorky is the continuator of the work of Gogol; this is
+especially noticeable in "The Fair at Goltva."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In studying Gorky, one is often struck by the homogeneity of the
+types which he has described. Open any of his books, and you will
+always meet that "restless" type, dissatisfied with the banality of
+his existence, trying to get away from it, and leaning irresistibly
+towards absolute liberty, far removed from social and political
+obligations.
+
+Who are these "restless" people? Toward what end are they striving?
+What do they represent? First, they have an immense reserve force
+which they do not know what to do with; they have got out of the
+rut, the rut which they despise, but it is hard for them to create
+another sort of existence for themselves. Bourgeois happiness
+repulses them, while all sorts of duties are hateful to them. They
+consider the people who are contented with this sort of a life as
+slaves, unworthy of the name of man, and they show the same disdain
+for the peasants, for the leading classes, and for the workingmen.
+The simple farmer excites the scorn of the "barefoot brigade:"
+
+"As for me," says one of them, "I don't like any peasants.... They
+are all dogs! They have provincial States, and they do for them....
+They tremble, they are hypocrites, but they want to live; they have
+one protection: the soil.... However, we must tolerate the peasant,
+for he has a certain usefulness."
+
+"What is a peasant?" asks another. And he answers the question
+himself: "The peasant is for all men a matter of food, that is to
+say, an animal that can be eaten. The sun, the water, the air, and
+the peasant are indispensable to man's existence...."
+
+One might think that this hostility was the fruit of a feeling of
+envy provoked by the fact that the peasant seems to enjoy so many
+advantages. But, on the contrary, the "barefoot brigade" admits
+that the peasant subjugates his individuality for any sort of
+profit, and that he cannot feel the yoke which he has voluntarily
+taken in the hope of getting his daily bread.
+
+These workingmen "who pitifully dig in the soil" are unfortunate
+slaves. "They do nothing but construct, they work perpetually, their
+blood and sweat are the cement of all the edifices of the earth. And
+yet the remuneration which they receive, although they are crushed
+by their work, does not give them shelter or enough food really to
+live on."
+
+The enlightened classes are always characterized in Gorky's works by
+violent traits. The architect Shebouyev accords a sufficiently
+great, but scarcely honorable, place to the category of intelligent
+men to whom he belongs.
+
+"All of us," he says, "are nonentities, deprived of happiness. We
+are in such great numbers! And our numbers have been a power for so
+long a time! We are animated by so many desires, pure and honest....
+Why is there so much talk among us and so little action? And, all
+the while, the germs are there!... All these papers, novels,
+articles are germs ... just germs, and nothing else.... Some of us
+write, others read; after reading, we discuss; after discussing, we
+forget what we have read. For us, life is tedious, heavy, grey, and
+burdensome. We live our lives, but sigh from fatigue and complain
+of the heavy burdens we are carrying."
+
+The journalist Yezhov, in "Thomas Gordeyev," expresses himself in
+the same manner, but even more decisively:
+
+"I should like to say to the intelligent classes: 'You people are
+the best in my country! Your life is paid for by the blood and tears
+of ten Russian generations! How much you have cost your country! And
+what do you for her? What have you given to life? What have you
+done?...'"
+
+The absence of all independence, of any passion even a little
+sincere, the complete submission of heart and mind to the old
+prescribed morality, the constant effort to realize mere personal
+ambitions--all of these are the reproaches that Gorky addresses to
+cultivated man, whose moral disintegration he proves has been
+produced by routine and prejudice.
+
+In contrast to them, the vagabonds are the instinctive enemies of
+all slavery, in any form whatsoever. The complete independence of
+their personality means everything to them. And no material
+conditions, no matter how prosperous, will induce them to make the
+least compromise on this point. One of these "restless" types,
+Konovalov, tells how, after he had bound himself to the wife of a
+rich merchant, he could have lived in the greatest comfort, but he
+abandoned everything, the easy life, and even the woman, whom he
+loved well enough, in order to go out and look for the unknown. This
+is a common adventure on the part of Gorky's heroes.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+What is the cause of this restlessness?
+
+"Well, you see," explains Konovalov, "I became weary. It was such
+weariness, I must tell you, little brother, that at moments I simply
+could not live. It seemed to me as if I were the only man on the
+whole earth, and, with the exception of myself, there was no living
+thing anywhere. And in those moments, everything was repugnant to
+me, everything in the world; I became a burden to myself, and if
+everybody were dead, I wouldn't even sigh! It must have been a
+disease with me, and the reason why I took to drink, for, before
+this time, I never drank."
+
+For the same reasons, in "Anguish," a workingman leaves his mistress
+and his employer, the miller. Where does this anguish come from?
+Perhaps it is the simple result of a psychological process which,
+Konovalov admits, is nothing other than a disease. It is very
+possible that, in impulsive acts, a psychiatrist would see something
+analogous to alcoholism, or the symptoms of some other anomaly.
+
+Turgenev had already analyzed a similar case in "The Madman." When
+Michael Poltev is asked what evil spirit led him to drink and to
+risk his life, he always refers to his anguish.
+
+"'Why this anguish?' asks his uncle.
+
+"'Why?... When the brain is free, one begins to think of poverty,
+injustice, Russia.... And that's the end! anguish hastens on.... One
+is ready to send a bullet through one's head! There's nothing left
+to do but get drunk!...'
+
+"'And why do you associate Russia with all of that? Why, you are
+nothing but a sluggard!'
+
+"'But I can do nothing, dear uncle!... Teach me what I ought to do,
+to what task I ought to consecrate my life. I will do it
+gladly!...'"
+
+Gorky's characters give the same explanation of their "ennui," and
+almost in identical terms. This disgust comes in great part from not
+knowing how to adapt oneself to life, nor how to become a "useful"
+man.
+
+"Take me, for instance," says Konovalov, "what am I? A vagabond ...
+a drunkard, a crack-brained sort of man. There is no reason for my
+life. Why do I live on earth, and to whom am I useful? I have no
+home, no wife, no children, and I don't feel as if I wanted any. I
+live and am bored.... What about? No one knows. I have no life
+within myself, do you understand? How shall I express it? There's a
+spark, or force lacking in my soul...."
+
+Another character, the shoemaker Orlov, in "Orlov and His Wife,"
+especially reflects this pessimistic disposition. In the same way as
+Konovalov, he is born with "restlessness in his heart."
+
+He is a shoemaker; and why?
+
+"As if there weren't enough of them already! What pleasure is there
+in this trade for me? I sit in a cellar and sew. Then I shall die.
+They say that the cholera is coming.... And after that? Gregory
+Orlov lived, made shoes--and died of the cholera. What does that
+signify? And why was it necessary that I should live, make shoes and
+die, tell me?"
+
+These creatures are under the impression that they are superfluous;
+therefore their pessimistic conclusions. All of them passionately
+want to be able to express the meaning of life in general, their
+life in particular, but the task is too much for them.
+
+Gorky's heroes consider themselves "useless beings," but they never
+humiliate themselves. Their restlessness of spirit does not permit
+them to resign themselves to the reigning banality or to take part
+in it without protesting. At the same time, some of them are gifted
+with sufficient personality to possess an unshaken faith in
+themselves, in their strength, which keeps them from letting the
+responsibility of their torments fall back upon society.
+
+Promtov, the hero of "The Strange Companion," makes these restless
+seekers the descendants of the Wandering Jew: "Their peculiarity,"
+he ironically says, "is, that whether rich or poor, they cannot find
+a suitable place for themselves on earth, and establish themselves
+in it. The greatest of them are satisfied with nothing: money,
+women, nor men."
+
+What, then, do these "greatest" want?
+
+Their desires evidently take a multitude of forms, and have the most
+diverse shades; but the greatest number of them are impatient for
+extraordinary happenings, eager for exploits. Some of them declare
+that they would be willing to throw themselves on a hundred knives
+if humanity could be relieved by their doing so. But simple daily
+activity, even if it is useful, does not satisfy them.
+
+The shoemaker Orlov leaves his cellar, as he calls it, and accepts a
+position in the hospital where they are taking care of cholera
+patients. His devotion makes him an "indispensable man;" he is
+reborn, and, according to his own words, he is "ripe for life." It
+seems as if his end were going to be attained. But not so.
+Restlessness seizes him again. Orlov questions the value of his
+work. He saves sick people from the cholera. Is he doing good? The
+greatest care is taken of these people, but how many people are
+there outside of the hospitals, one hundred times as many as there
+are inside, who are just as unfortunate, but, in spite of that fact,
+are not helped by any one?
+
+"While you live," he declares, "no one will refuse to give you a
+drink of water. And if you are near death, not only will they not
+allow you to die, but they will go to some expense to stop you. They
+organize hospitals.... They give you wine at 'six and a half rubles
+a bottle.' The sick man gets well, the doctors are happy, and Orlov
+would like to share their joy; but he cannot, for he knows that, on
+leaving the threshold of the hospital, a life 'worse than the
+convulsions of the cholera' awaits the convalescent...." And again
+he is seized by the desire to drink, and to be a vagabond, and by a
+wish to experience new sensations.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+These, then, are the vagabonds whom we can class in the category of
+the "restless." After these, come those whom the author terms the
+"ex-men," and whom he studies, under this title, in one of his
+longest stories. The ex-men are closely related to the "restless;"
+however, they differ from them in that they push their opinions to
+an extreme, for they are, more than the others, miserable and at bay
+against society.
+
+"What difference would it make if it all went to the devil," one of
+them philosophizes--"I should like to see the earth go to pieces
+suddenly, provided that I should perish the last, after having seen
+the others die.... I'm an ex-man, am I not? I am a pariah, then,
+estranged from all bonds and duties.... I can spit on everything!"
+
+Thomas Gordeyev's father develops another thesis; a rich and
+rational bourgeois, he tries to inculcate in his son from his
+infancy--a son who later augments the ranks of the "restless"--the
+most perfect spirit of egotism.
+
+"You must pity people," he says, "but do it with discernment. First,
+look at a man, see what good you can get out of him, and see what he
+is good for. If you think he is a strong man, capable of work, help
+him. But if you think him weak and little suited for work, abandon
+him without pity. Remember this: two boards have fallen into the
+mud, one of them is worm-eaten, the other is sound. What are you
+going to do? Pay no attention to the worm-eaten plank, but take out
+the sound one and dry it in the sun. It may be of service to you or
+to some one else...."
+
+The reader will note the absolute egotism in all of Gorky's types.
+The "restless" are interested only in their own misery, and they
+think that all men are like them; nor do they try to stop or bridle
+their passions.
+
+Strong passions are one of the most precious privileges of mankind.
+This truth is well shown in the story: "Once More About the
+Devil."[7] Here, the men have become shabby and insignificant since
+there has been propagated among them, with a new strength, the
+gospel of individual perfection. The demon stifles, in the heart of
+Ivan Ivanovich Ivanov, all the passions that can agitate a human
+soul,--ambition, pity, evil, and anger; this operation makes Ivan an
+absolutely perfect being. On his face there appears that beatitude
+which words cannot express. The devil has crushed all "substance"
+out of him, and he is completely "empty."
+
+ [7] This was preceded by a story called "The Devil."
+
+One understands that Gorky's heroes cannot find what would be good
+for them, nor feel the least satisfaction in doing their fellow men
+a good service. They only dream of action; their sole desire is to
+affirm their individuality by "manifesting" themselves, little
+matter how. Old Iserguille is persuaded that "in life, there is room
+for mighty deeds" and, if a man likes them, he will find occasion to
+do them. Konovalov is most enthusiastic over Zhermak,[8] to whom he
+feels himself akin.
+
+ [8] A celebrated brigand in the time of Ivan the Terrible who, in
+ order to be pardoned, conquered Siberia in the name of the Tsar.
+
+"I'd like to reduce the whole earth to dust," dreams Orlov, "or get
+up a crowd of comrades and kill off all the Jews ... all, to the
+very last one! Or, in general, do something that would place me high
+above all men, so that I could spit on them from up there, and cry
+to them: 'Dogs! Why do you live? You're all hypocritical rascals and
+nothing more....'"
+
+These people demand a boundless liberty, but how obtain it? All of
+them dream of a certain organization which will let them feel
+relieved of all their duties, of all the thousands of petty things
+that make life hard, of all the small details, conventions, and
+obligations which hold such an important place in our society. But
+the time for heroic deeds has passed away, and the "restless" fight
+in vain against the millions of men who are determined to keep their
+habits and advantages.
+
+Thus they are obliged to shake the dust off their feet and to leave
+the ranks in which they are suffocating. No matter what they do or
+what they try to do, their motto is, "each one for himself."
+
+"Come," says a vagabond poetically to Thomas Gordeyev, "come with me
+on the open road, into the fields and steppes, across the plains,
+over the mountains, come out and look at the world in all its
+freedom. The thick forests begin to murmur; their sweet voice
+praises divine wisdom; God's birds sing its glory and the grass of
+the steppe burns with the incense of the Holy Virgin.
+
+"The soul is filled with an ardent yet calm joy, you desire nothing,
+you envy no one.... And it is then that it seems as if on the whole
+earth there is no one but God and you...."
+
+The material inconveniences of such an existence hardly affect
+Gorky's characters. Promtov, one of the prophets of individualism,
+says, in speaking of himself:
+
+"I have been 'on the road' for ten years, and I have not complained
+of my fate to God. I don't want to tell you anything of this period,
+because it is too tedious.... In general, it is the joyous life of a
+bird. Sometimes, grain is lacking, but one must not be too exacting
+and one must remember that kings themselves do not have pleasures
+only. In a life like ours, there are no duties--that is the first
+pleasure--and there are no laws, except those of nature--that is the
+second. Without a doubt, the gentlemen of the police force bother
+one at times ... but you find fleas even in the best hotels. As a
+set-off, one can go to the right, or to the left, or straight ahead,
+wherever your heart bids you go, and if you don't want to go
+anywhere, after having provided yourself with bread from the hut of
+some peasant, who will never refuse it, you can lie down until you
+care to resume your travels...."
+
+This is the final point at which all of the "restless" arrive,
+believing that there they will find what they have always lacked.
+Even the author himself shares their views up to a certain point:
+
+"You have to be born in civilized society," he says, speaking of
+himself, "in order to have the patience to live there all your life
+without having the desire to flee from this circle, where so many
+restrictions hinder you, restrictions sanctioned by the habit of
+little poisoned lies, this sickly center of self-love, in one word,
+all this vanity of vanities which chills the feelings and perverts
+the mind, and which is called in general, without any good reason
+and very falsely, civilization.
+
+"I was born and brought up outside of it, and I am glad of that
+fact. Because of it, I have never been able to absorb culture in
+large doses, without feeling, at the end of a certain time, the
+terrible need of stepping out of this frame.... It does one good to
+go into the dens of the cities, where everything is dirty, but
+simple and sincere; or even to rove in the fields or on the
+highroads; one sees curious things there. It refreshes the mind; and
+all you need in order to do it is a pair of sturdy legs...."
+
+What then is the teaching that we get out of Gorky's works? For,
+faithful to Russian tradition, he does not practise art for art's
+sake. His "barefoot brigade" and his "restless" men are generally
+considered as representative of his own ideals. The principle of "Do
+what seems to you to be good"--a principle which is expressed by a
+wandering and free life--ought to be justified, one thinks. Critics
+have risen up against this ideal, trying to prove how incompatible
+the kind of existence that he conceives is with a solid political
+organization, and how far from reality the men are whom he
+represents.
+
+Doubtless, in real life, people are not as original and not as
+heroic as Gorky represents them to be. And he himself agrees that
+their inventive faculties are very highly developed. He shows this
+in putting the following words into the mouth of Promtov:
+
+"I have very probably exaggerated, but that's not of much
+importance. For, if I have exaggerated what happened, my method of
+exposition has shown the true state of my soul. Perhaps, I have
+served you with an imaginary roast, but the sauce is made of the
+purest truth."
+
+The end that he is after, Gorky has shown us in his story, "The
+Lecturer," which contains his theories on literature. In the person
+of the lecturer, he addresses himself to the men who represent the
+majority of the Russian cultivated classes. He begins by analyzing
+himself carefully and discovers in himself many good feelings and
+honest desires, but he feels that he lacks clear and harmonious
+thought, a thing which keeps all the manifestations of life in
+equilibrium. Numerous doubts torment him, and his mind has been so
+moved with them, his heart so wounded, that, for a long time, he has
+lived "empty inside."
+
+"What have I to say to others?" he asks himself. "That which was
+told them long ago, that which has always been told them, none of
+which makes any one any better. But have I the right to teach these
+ideas and convictions, if I, who was brought up according to them,
+act so often in opposition to them?"
+
+With his usual sincerity, it is not to be wondered at that he
+answered this question in the negative, and, to cite the words of
+one of his characters, that he "refused to live in the chains which
+had already been forged for free thought, and to class himself under
+the label of an ism."
+
+He has not thought it profitable to hide his doubts and has not
+feared to declare openly that none of the existing philosophies suit
+him, and that he is trying to follow his own path. All of his work
+is but the absolute image of his own uncertainties, of his
+passionate researches, and of his constant "restlessness."
+
+At times people have believed that he was a disciple of Nietzsche.
+And, in truth, he has come under his influence, like so many other
+Russian authors. But he has gone on mostly by himself, aided by his
+acute sensibility, which has not, as yet, allowed him to adopt any
+one system to the exclusion of all others, or to formulate a system
+for his personal use.
+
+"I know one thing," he says, "it is not happiness that we should
+hope for. What should we do with it? The meaning of life does not
+lie in the search for happiness, and the satisfaction of the
+material appetites will never suffice to make a man fully contented
+with himself. It is in beauty that we must look for the meaning of
+life, and in the energy of the will! Every moment of our lives ought
+to be devoted to some better end...."
+
+However, he has very neatly set forth what he considers the task of
+the author. According to him, the man of to-day has lost courage; he
+interests himself too little in life, his desire to live with
+dignity has grown weaker, "an odor of putrefaction surrounds him,
+cowardice and slavery corrupt his heart, laziness binds his hands
+and his mind." But, at the same time, life grows in breadth and
+depth, and, from day to day, men are learning to question. And it
+is the writer who ought to answer their questions; but he should not
+content himself with straightening out the balance sheet of social
+deterioration, and in giving photographs of daily life. The writer
+must also awaken in the hearts of men a desire for liberty, and
+speak energetically, in order to infuse in man an ardent desire to
+create other forms of life.... "It seems to me," says Gorky, "that
+we desire new dreams, gracious inventions, unforeseen things,
+because the life which we have created is poor, dreary, and tedious.
+The reality which formerly we wanted so ardently, has frozen us and
+broken us down.... What is there to do? Let us try: perhaps
+invention and imagination will aid man in raising himself so that he
+may again glance for a moment at the place which he has lost on
+earth."
+
+All of Gorky's characters curse life, but without ceasing to love
+it, because they "have the taste for life." Their complaints are
+only a means by which the author hopes to raise up around him "that
+revengeful shame and the taste for life" of which he so often
+speaks. Here is the artful Mayakine, who, indignant at the
+debasement of the younger generation, is ready to take the most
+cruel means in order "to infuse fire into the veins" of his
+contemporaries. Varenka Olessova, the heroine of a story,
+incessantly repeats that people would be more interesting if they
+were more animated, if they laughed, played, sang more, if they were
+more audacious, stronger, and even more coarse and vulgar. Gorky
+admires also the beautiful type, vigorous, with a rudimentary
+mentality, which meets with his approval simply because he sees in
+it a nature which is complete, untouched, and filled with a love of
+life.
+
+Gorky suffers miseries inherent in the mere fact of existence, but
+he has found no remedy; he looks for consolations in the cult of
+beauty, in the strength of free individuality, in the flight towards
+a superior ideal. But he does not know where to find this superior
+ideal, which vivifies everything. This is perhaps the reason why
+people have thought they saw in his work the Nietzschean influence,
+which praises an insistence on individuality in defiance of current
+conventions, and gives us just as vague a solution as Gorky does.
+
+But this enthusiasm for an ideal, vague as it is, this passionate
+appeal for energy in the struggle, has awakened powerful echoes in
+the hearts of the Russians, especially the younger of them. Gorky
+suddenly became their favorite author, and it is to this warm
+reception that he owes a great part of his renown. He has carried
+the young along with him, and they have put their ideals in the
+place which he had left empty.
+
+If we now pass on to the first novels and dramas of Gorky, we shall
+be struck by the fact that, in spite of the talent shown in them,
+they are very inferior to his short stories. His former mastery is
+not found, except in his later novels, which we shall take occasion
+to mention presently.
+
+"Thomas Gordeyev" contains some very fine passages, but is not very
+successful as a whole. Thomas's father is a merchant on the banks of
+the Volga; he is an energetic man who carries out all his ideas.
+Whatever he is engaged on, whether business affairs, or a debauch,
+or repentance thereof, he gives himself entirely to the impression
+of the moment. Like other men of his class, moreover, he lives a
+life which is a singular mixture of refinement and savagery. He
+spends his time in drinking and working, as much for himself as for
+his only son, Thomas, whose mother died in giving birth to him. The
+child grows up under the care of his aunt and shows a serious
+disposition toward study. Gradually, he feels the motives that make
+men act, and he questions his father about them.
+
+Before dying, the latter says to his son: "Don't count on men, don't
+count on great events." In spite of the wealth which he inherits
+Thomas is not happy; he has no friends; his colleagues, the
+merchants, and especially his father's old friend, Mayakine, are
+repulsive to him on account of their cupidity and their
+unscrupulousness. Thomas does not love money and does not understand
+its power, two things that people cannot forgive him for. Besides,
+he does not know how to make use of the forces that are burning
+within him. After having vainly sought for moral relief in
+debauchery, he ends by proposing to strike a bargain with Mayakine
+so that he can be freed from responsibility and go out and look for
+happiness. He will give Mayakine his personal fortune if the latter
+will look after his business affairs. But the old roue, who hopes to
+get possession of the fortune in a surer way, refuses, and their
+conversation turns into a quarrel.
+
+As he does not work, Thomas indulges in many extravagances in
+company with a journalist of very advanced ideas. Finally, one day
+when he is at a fete at which are present all the wealthy members of
+the merchant class, the young man, disgusted with their vices, rises
+to apostrophize them in the most bitter terms. They throw themselves
+on him, and he is arrested as a madman and put into an asylum. He
+comes out, only to abandon himself to drink.
+
+In "The Three," Gorky tells us the life story of Ilya Lounyev, a
+poor creature, born in poverty, whose life is full of deceptions,
+misfortunes, even crimes. Several times, Ilya has tried to lead a
+decent life; but it is his sincerity that makes him lose his
+position with the merchant for whom he works. He has believed in
+beauty and in the purity of love, and he is deceived by the woman he
+loves. Gradually all the baseness of the world becomes clear to him.
+In a moment of jealousy he kills his mistress's lover, an old miser.
+Several months later he publicly confesses his crime, and, in order
+to escape from human justice, he commits suicide.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In his first two dramas, "The Smug Citizen," and "A Night's Refuge,"
+as in his short stories, Gorky shows us his usual characters.
+
+The Bessemenovs, comfortable, petty bourgeois, have given their
+children an education. Their daughter, Tatyana, becomes a
+school-teacher, but her profession does not please her. Peter, their
+son, has been expelled from the university, in spite of his
+indifference toward "new" ideas. The children are continually
+harassed by their father, who bemoans the fact that he has given
+them an education. Besides, another sadness troubles him: Nil, his
+adopted son, whom he has had taught the trade of a mechanician,--an
+alert and industrious fellow,--wants to marry Polya, a girl without
+a fortune. The father is beside himself, for, if Nil marries, he
+will never be in a condition to pay back the money that has been
+spent on him. But Nil protests: he is young, and, some day, he will
+repay his debt. He has not noticed that Tatyana is in love with him;
+and the young girl has not strength enough to live through the
+sorrow of seeing herself abandoned forever. She tries to commit
+suicide, but does not succeed. While Tatyana is bemoaning her fate,
+Peter has fallen in love with a young woman quite different from any
+of the members of his family. Helen understands how sad Peter's
+position is among these ignorant people, and she decides to marry
+him, for pity as much as for love. The father is no more satisfied
+with this match than he was with Nil's, and with death in his soul
+he is present at the dismemberment of his family. While Helen takes
+Peter, Nil goes off with Polya. The mother, a humble and kind woman,
+does not understand the cause of all this dissension and, while
+consoling the weeping Tatyana, she asks her husband: "Why are our
+children punishing us so? Why do they make us suffer?" This play is
+not dramatically effective and has never had a great success on the
+stage.
+
+On the other hand, Gorky's second attempt, "A Night's Refuge," has
+been enormously successful. Here, the author takes us into the world
+of the barefoot brigade. Vasska Pepel, Vassilissa's lover, the
+proprietor of the night refuge in which he sleeps, loves the sister
+of his mistress, Natasha by name, a timid and dreamy young girl,
+who blooms like a lily in this mire. The old vagabond, Luke, advises
+the young girl to run off with Vasska, who wants to begin a new
+life. But Vassilissa, jealous and evil as she is, has noticed the
+coldness which her lover shows towards her. She avenges herself by
+striking her younger sister whenever she can. Her plan was, with the
+aid of Vasska, to kill her husband, Kostylev, and then to live
+openly with her lover. But when she sees Vasska ready to leave with
+Natasha, she starts a terrible scene, which ends in Vasska's killing
+Kostylev without meaning to. Vassilissa and her lover are arrested
+and Natasha disappears.
+
+Although the characters of this play are vagabonds, they differ from
+most of Gorky's creations, whose fiery and enthusiastic souls
+usually discover a real beauty in the life they have chosen.
+Alcoholism, prostitution, and misery have shut off these people who
+live in the cellar. They have fallen so low, that conscience is a
+useless luxury for them. It belongs to the rich only. One of them,
+who is asked if he has a conscience, replies with sincere
+astonishment: "What? Conscience?" And when the question is asked
+again, he answers, "What good is conscience? I'm not a rich man."
+The life of these people is worse than a nightmare: to-morrow they
+will be cold, hungry, and drunk, just as they were yesterday.
+Sometimes, perhaps, they feel like struggling against their evil
+lot, but no one stretches forth a helping hand to them. They do not
+dare think of the future, and they would like to forget the past.
+One of them expresses his fear of life thus:
+
+"At times, I'm afraid, brother; can you understand that?... I
+tremble.... For, what is there after this?" And this fear smothers
+all the energy in them. They are poor and scantily clothed, not only
+in the material sense of the word, but also in the moral sense.
+Money would not be necessary to save them, but a word of sympathy,
+of love, a word that would give them the courage really to live.
+
+And it is here that old Luke appears. He treats the men as if they
+were children, and gains their confidence. In his words there is
+manifested a real experience of things and people. As he says, "They
+moulded me a lot," and that is why he became "tender." He knows just
+the right word for every one. He assures the dying woman that:
+"Eternal rest means happiness. Die, and you will have rest, you will
+have no cares, and no one to fear. Silence will calm you! All you
+have to do is remain lying down! Death pacifies and is tender. You
+will appear before God, and He will say to you: 'Take her to
+Paradise so that she may rest. I know that her life has been hard;
+she is tired, give her peace.'" And the sick woman, who has dragged
+out her existence so long, is consoled.
+
+To the drunkard, a former actor who has fallen, Luke says: "Stop
+drinking, pull yourself together and be patient. You will be cured,
+and you will begin a new existence...." And he succeeds in awakening
+a hope of a better life in the soul of the poor comedian, while he
+himself, perhaps, hardly believes in the possible regeneration of
+his protege.
+
+After Luke's departure, the temporary dreams of these miserable
+people vanish. One evening, when they are all gathered around a
+bottle of brandy, they strike up a song. A friend, a baron by birth,
+rushes into the cellar and announces that the actor has hung
+himself, and that his corpse is hanging in the court. A deathlike
+silence follows these words. All look at each other in fright. "Ah,
+the fool!" finally murmurs a vagabond, "he spoiled our song...." The
+hope in a better life that Luke had awakened in the actor made him
+kill himself, when he saw that he had not enough strength to realize
+this hope.
+
+This drama is the quintessence of all that Gorky has, up to this
+time, written on the "ex-man," whom he has thoroughly "explored."
+And the figure of old Luke is one of his most original and lifelike
+creations.
+
+His third important play, which, however, has never enjoyed the
+popularity of "A Night's Refuge," is called: "The Children of the
+Sun." The "children of the sun" are the elect of heaven, richly
+endowed with talent and knowledge. They live in a world of noble
+dreams, of elevated thoughts, enveloped though they are in the
+greyness of life. There pass before them long processions of tired
+and oppressed people. The latter, also, have been generated by the
+strong sun; but the light has gone out for them, and they travel on
+life's highway without joy or faith, among those who are proud of
+their beauty or learning. The "children of the sun" are the
+aristocrats of the soul. They have but one end: to make life
+beautiful, good, and agreeable for all. They continually think of
+making it easier, of soothing suffering, and of preparing a better
+future. Their mission is a large one. They are not idle, but are men
+who have the most elevated ends in view.
+
+Between "the children of the sun" and "the children of the earth"
+there is a deep abyss. They do not understand each other. The
+"children of the sun" cannot admit the miseries and ugliness of
+daily life. They have compassion for the people who work below them.
+The "children of the earth" feel the superiority of the "children of
+the sun," but their narrow-mindedness, continually absorbed by the
+necessity of finding shelter and food, cannot rise to the
+preoccupations of so elevated an order. However, life brings these
+two worlds together in a common work; but their mere meeting on the
+ground of practical interests produces a collision.
+
+A third category constitutes the intermediary link. This is made up
+of the university people, the representatives of the liberal
+professions. As "intellectuals," they cannot equal the "children of
+the sun," but they can understand them. They conceive the grandeur
+of their moral activity. At the same time, these men are close to
+the people. They are often obliged to mingle in the life of the
+people, and more than the "children of the sun," they are capable of
+enlarging their minds and ennobling their duties. But, while they
+know and understand the duties of the people completely, they are
+not yet strong enough to help them. This, then, is the general
+meaning of the play.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Although this play is cleverly constructed, with a last act which is
+pathetic and moving in its intensity, and produces a profound
+impression, on the whole, unfortunately, it has the general
+harshness of problem plays. Under its lyric vestments, its solid and
+massive character appears too often. Gorky, a born observer,
+inheritor of the realistic traditions of his country, could not help
+turning aside, one day, from this ideological art, visibly
+influenced by Tolstoy's dramas. The direct part that the romanticist
+has played in the political events of his country sufficiently
+proves that he has taken a different road from that taken by the
+apostle of Yasnaya Polyana. With maturity, he felt the need of
+hastening the denouement of the crisis in Russia, in actively
+participating in its emancipation. From that time on, he chose his
+heroes from a less singular environment. Instead of the philosophic
+vagabonds, the neurasthenic "restless" ones, and the ex-men, he
+chose the plebeian of the city and country, who is gradually
+awakening from a sleep of ignorance and slavery. A remarkable story,
+called "In Prison," all atremble with new sensations, inaugurates
+this new style. A victim himself of the intolerance of "over-men,"
+Gorky has incarnated his own revolts and hopes in the soul of his
+hero, Misha, a brother of the revolutionary students who do not
+hesitate to sacrifice their life or liberty for a principle or
+ideal.
+
+Written at the same time, the story called "The Soldiers" gives
+proof of an equally careful incorporation of the claims of the
+oppressed in a literary work.
+
+The school-mistress, Vera, has conceived the daring project of
+teaching the soldiers who are quartered in the village. She gets
+some of them together at the edge of the neighboring woods and
+there she tries to show them the ignominy of the roles they play in
+times of uprisings. Angered by this unexpected talk, the soldiers
+threaten the young girl. But her coolness and sincerity finally make
+them listen to her with a respect mingled with admiration.
+
+A third story, called "Slaves," in a masterful way retraces the
+catastrophes of the now historical journey of January 9, 1905, at
+the end of which, a crowd of 200,000 men, led by the famous pope
+Gapon, went to the Tsar's palace to present their demands to him,
+and were received with cannon shots.
+
+These stories were followed by three works of great merit: "Mother,"
+"A Confession," and "The Spy."
+
+The novel "Mother" takes us into the midst of revolutionary life.
+The heroes of this book belong, for the most part, to that
+workingman and agricultural proletariat whose role has lately been
+of such great importance in the Russian political tempests. With
+marvelous psychological analysis, Gorky shows how some of these
+simple creatures understand the new truth, and how it gradually
+penetrates their ardent souls.
+
+Pavel Vlassov, a young, intelligent workingman, is thirsty for
+knowledge, and is the apostle of the new ideal. He throws himself
+heart and soul into the dangerous struggle he has undertaken against
+ignorance and oppression. The Little Russian, Andrey, is all
+feeling and thought, and the peasant Rybine is inflamed by action.
+Sashenka is a young girl who sacrifices herself entirely to the
+Idea, and the coal-man Ignatius is driven by an obscure force to
+help in a cause which he does not understand. Finest of them all is
+Pelaguaya Vlassov, the principal character of the book, and Pavel's
+mother.
+
+Old and grey, Pelaguaya has passed her whole life in misery. She has
+never known anything but how to suffer in silence and endure without
+complaint; she has never dreamed that life could be different. One
+day her father had said to her:
+
+"It's useless to make faces! There is a fool who wants to marry
+you,--take him. All girls marry, all women have children; children
+are, for all parents, a sorrow. And are you, yes or no, a human
+being?"
+
+She then marries the workingman Michael Vlassov, who gets drunk
+every day, beats her cruelly and kicks her, and even on his
+death-bed, says: "Go to the devil.... Bitch! I'll die better alone."
+
+He dies, and his son Pavel begins to bring forbidden books into the
+house. Friends come and talk; a small group is formed. Pelaguaya
+listens to what is said, but understands nothing. Gradually,
+however, there begins to filter into her old breast, like a stream
+of joy, an understanding of something big, of something in which she
+can take part. She discovers that she too is a free creature, and,
+obscurely, there is formed in her mind the notion that every human
+being has a right to live. Then she speaks: "The earth is tired of
+carrying so much injustice and sadness, it trembles softly at the
+hope of seeing the new sun which is rising in the bosom of mankind."
+So the obscure and miserable woman gradually rises to the dignity of
+"The Mother of the Prophet." And when Pavel accepts, like the
+martyrdom of the cross, his banishment to Siberia, with a joyous
+heart she sacrifices her son to the Idea.
+
+Her soul opens wide to the new truth that is lighting it. With the
+most touching abnegation, she tries to carry on the work of the
+absent one. But the police are watching. One day, when she is about
+to take the train to a neighboring town to spread the "good word"
+there, she is recognized and apprehended. Seeing that she is lost,
+the Mother, whose personality at this moment grows absolutely
+symbolic, cries out to the crowd:
+
+"'Listen to me! They condemned my son and his friends because they
+were bringing the truth to everybody! We are dying from work, we are
+tormented by hunger and by cold, we are always in the mire, always
+in the wrong! Our life is a night, a black night!'
+
+"'Hurrah for the old woman!' cries some one in the crowd.
+
+"A policeman struck her in the chest; she tottered, and fell on the
+bench. But she still cried:
+
+"'All of you! get all your forces together under a single leader.'
+
+"The big red hand of the policeman struck her in the throat, and the
+nape of her neck hit against the wall.
+
+"'Shut up, you hag!' cried the officer in a sharp voice.
+
+"The Mother's eyes grew larger and shone brightly. Her jaw trembled.
+
+"'They won't kill a resurrected soul!'
+
+"'Bitch!'
+
+"With a short swing the policeman struck her full in the face.
+
+"Something red and black momentarily blinded the Mother; blood
+filled her mouth.
+
+"A voice from the crowd brought her to herself:
+
+"'You haven't the right to strike her!'
+
+"But the officers pushed her, and hit her on the head.
+
+"'... It's not blood that will drown what's right.'...
+
+"Dulled and weakened, the Mother tottered. But she saw many eyes
+about her, glowing with a bold fire, eyes that she knew well and
+that were dear to her.
+
+"'... They will never get at the truth, even under oceans of blood!'
+
+"The policeman seized her heavily by the throat.
+
+"There was a rattling in her throat:
+
+"... 'The unfortunates!'
+
+"Some one in the crowd answered her, with a deep sigh."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"A Confession" is the story of a restless soul who untiringly
+searches for the God of truth and goodness. Found as a child in a
+village of central Russia, Matvey was first taken by a sacristan,
+and, after his death, by Titov, the inspector of the domain. In
+order to debase Matvey, whose superiority irritates him, Titov asks
+him to participate in his extortions. Having become the son-in-law
+of his adopted father, Matvey, on account of his love for his wife,
+accepts the shameful life. But the God in whom Matvey has placed his
+distracted confidence, seems to want to chastise him cruelly. After
+having lost, one after the other, his wife and child, he goes away
+at a venture. He enters a monastery where, among the dissolute
+monks, whose vices are most repugnant, his soul gradually shakes off
+the Christian dogma. On one of his pilgrimages, he gets to
+Damascus. Among the workingmen, where chance has taken him, he feels
+his heart opening to the truth, which he follows up with the
+determination of a real Gorkyan hero. The life of the people appears
+to him in its sublime simplicity. And it is in the midst of a
+dazzling apotheosis--which reminds one of the most grandiose pages
+of Zola's "Lourdes"--that he finally confesses the God of his ideal:
+it is the people.
+
+"People! you are my God, creator of all the gods that you have
+formed from the beauty of your soul, in your troubled and laborious
+search!
+
+"Let there be no other gods on the earth but yourself, for you are
+the only God, the creator of miracles!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"The Spy" is a study of the Russian police. The novel treats of the
+terrible Okhrana, whose mysterious affairs have become the
+laughing-stock of all the foreign papers.
+
+The principal character, about whom circle the police spies and
+secret agents, is a poor orphan, weak and timid, called Evsey
+Klimkov, whom his uncle, the forger Piotr, has taken into his house
+and brought up with his son, the strong and brutal James. Beaten by
+his schoolmates and by his cousin, the child lives in a perpetual
+trance. Life seems formidable to him, like a jungle in which men are
+the pitiless beasts. Everywhere, brute force or hypocrisy triumph;
+everywhere, the weak are oppressed, downtrodden, conquered. And in
+his feverish imagination, daily excited by facts which his terror
+distorts, Evsey delights in conceiving another existence, all made
+of love and goodness, an existence that he unceasingly opposes
+against the hard realities of daily life, with the stubborn fervor
+of a mystic.
+
+Having entered the service of the old bookseller Raspopov, the young
+man does his duty with the faithfulness of a beast of burden. His
+home no longer pleases him at all; there, things and people are
+still hostile to him; but his uncle Piotr seems enchanted with his
+new position. Evsey spends his days in arranging and classifying the
+books which his master has bought. A young woman, Raissa Petrovna,
+keeps house for the book-dealer, and as every one knows, they live
+like man and wife. In this queer environment, the faculties of the
+young man become sharpened, and serve him well. It does not take
+long for him to find out what they are hiding from him. A few words
+addressed by Raspopov to a certain Dorimedonte Loukhine reveal to
+Evsey the part that is being played by his patron. Raspopov, who is
+an agent of the secret police, gives Dorimedonte--who, by the way,
+is deceiving him with Raissa--the names of the buyers of the
+forbidden books in which he trades. And here it is that the tragedy
+suddenly breaks forth.
+
+Raissa, tired of being tormented by Raspopov, who accuses her of
+poisoning him, strangles the old man in a moment of cold anger,
+under the very eyes of Evsey. Thanks to Dorimedonte, this crime goes
+unpunished. Evsey, having become the lodger of the two lovers, now
+enters the Okhrana, at the advice of his new master. After a while,
+Raissa, haunted by remorse, commits suicide, and Dorimedonte is
+killed by some revolutionists.
+
+All the interest of the book, however, is centered in the picture of
+the police institutions. From the chief Philip Philipovich to the
+agent Solovyev, Gorky presents, with consummate art, the mass of
+corrupt and greedy agents who wearily accomplish their tasks.
+
+Among them, young Evsey leads a miserable and ridiculous existence.
+Bruised by an invincible power, he sees himself compelled to arrest
+an old man who has confided his revolutionary ideas to him; then a
+young girl with whom he is in love; finally, his own cousin, a
+revolutionary suspect.
+
+Gradually his eyes are opened. He realizes that he cannot extricate
+himself from the position in which he has placed himself. Tired of
+leading a life which his conscience disapproves of, he thinks of
+killing his superior, who has driven him to do so many infamous
+deeds. He will thus get justice. His project miscarries; maddened,
+he throws himself under a passing train.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+These three remarkable works, riddled by the Russian censor, so that
+the complete version has appeared only abroad, have recently been
+followed by two important stories: "Among the People" and "Matvey
+Kozhemyakine."
+
+With his accustomed power, Gorky shows us, in the first of these
+stories, the spread of socialism among the agricultural proletariat.
+He depicts village life with its pettiness and ignominy. The village
+is for the most part a backward place, hostile to everything that
+makes a breach in tradition. The hatching of socialism goes on
+slowly. From day to day, new obstacles, helped on by the ignorance
+of the peasants, hinder those who are trying to carry out their
+belief. Even the village guard, Semyon, pursues them with his
+hatred.
+
+But Igor Petrovich, the propagator of these new ideas, finds, in a
+few old friends and in a village woman who becomes his mistress,
+some precious helpers. Thanks to them, he gradually gets up a little
+circle of firm believers who gather in a cave in the woods. Every
+evening, they read, discuss, and dream of a better organization,
+out there in the cave. All would have gone well, if some of them had
+not betrayed the leader to the police. While being led to the city
+prison, the leader spoke to the soldiers who were escorting him:
+
+"The soldiers trembled as they clicked their bayonets; they silently
+listened to the legend of the generous earth which loves those who
+work it. Again, their red faces were covered with drops of melted
+snow; the drops ran down their cheeks like bitter tears of
+humiliation; they breathed heavily, they snuffled, and I felt that
+they kept walking a little faster, as if they wanted this very day
+to arrive in that fairy land.
+
+"We are no longer prisoners and soldiers; we are simply seven
+Russians. I do not forget the prison, but when I remember all that I
+lived through that summer and before that, my heart fills with joy,
+and I feel like crying out:
+
+"Rejoice, beloved Russian people! Your resurrection is close at
+hand!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"Matvey Kozhemyakine" very brilliantly returns to Gorky's early
+manner. In this book no symbolic character interprets the bold
+thoughts of the author. It is simply a novel of Russian provincial
+life. Its simplicity does not exclude vigor, and it reminds us at
+times of Balzac.
+
+Young Matvey is the son of an old workingman who has become rich,
+thanks to his energy and dishonesty. He has grown up in a large
+house, adjoining a rope-yard, with his father and several servants.
+His mother, whom he never knew, left home shortly after his birth,
+and entered a convent in order to escape the torments of life.
+Later, Matvey's father marries a young girl, in order to provide a
+mother for his son, whom he loves dearly. But his new mother is not
+long in finding out the dreary life which she has to lead with the
+old man. In order to escape from the tedium of it, she listens to
+the interesting experiences of the wandering life of the porter
+Sazanov, and gives her unfaithful love in exchange.
+
+Unexpected circumstances disclose this shameful adultery to Matvey.
+Instead of revealing it to his father, he generously guards the
+secret. He even goes so far as to protect her from the fury of a
+workingman, named Savka, whom Sazanov's success has rendered bold.
+Through gratitude, and later through love, in the absence of
+Kozhemyakine, she becomes the mistress of her step-son. On his
+return, the father, finding out about this "liaison," spares his
+son, but beats his wife to death, and himself, mad with fury, falls,
+struck with apoplexy.
+
+All the newspapers in the world have attacked Gorky's way of living.
+As he is forced to remain away from his beloved country, the great
+writer has made his home in the little island of Capri, the air of
+which is propitious to his failing health. Moreover, its impressive
+scenery inspires his restless genius.
+
+Drunk with liberty, taken up with beauty, always ready to help a man
+who is in political and social difficulties, Gorky, from the depths
+of his peaceful retreat, wanders out over the world of ideas in
+search of truth, as formerly he used to wander over the earth in
+search of bread.
+
+
+
+
+VI
+
+LEONID ANDREYEV
+
+
+Leonid Andreyev was born of a humble bourgeoise family in Orel, in
+1871. "It was there that I began my studies," he says. "I was not a
+good pupil; in the seventh form I was last in my class for a whole
+year, and I had especially poor reports as to my deportment. The
+most agreeable part of my schooling, which I still remember with
+pleasure, was the intervals between the lessons, the 'recesses,' and
+the times, rare as they were, when the instructor sent me from the
+class-room for inattention or lack of respect. In the long deserted
+halls a sonorous silence reigned which vibrated at the solitary
+noise of my steps; on all sides the closed doors, shutting in rooms
+full of pupils; a sunbeam--a free beam--played with the dust which
+had been raised during recess and which had not yet had time to
+settle; all of it was mysterious, interesting, full of a particular
+and secret meaning."
+
+Andreyev's father, who was a geometrician, died while he was still
+at school, and the family was without resources. The young man did
+not hesitate, however, in setting out for St. Petersburg, where he
+entered the university, hoping to gain a livelihood by giving
+lessons. But it was hard to secure what he wanted. "I knew what
+terrible misery was," Andreyev tells us; "during my first years in
+St. Petersburg I was hungry more than once, and sometimes I did not
+eat for two days."
+
+His first literary productions date from this sombre epoch. Andreyev
+gives us remarkably graphic details of this misery. One day, he gave
+a daily paper a story about the tribulations of an ever-hungry
+student: his own life!
+
+"I wept like a child in writing these pages," he confesses. "I had
+put down all of my sufferings. I was still affected by my great
+sadness when I took the manuscript to the editor. I was told to come
+back in a few weeks to find out whether it had been accepted. I
+returned with a light heart, keeping down my anguish in expectation
+of the decision. It came to me in the form of a loud burst of
+laughter from the editor, who declared that my work was absolutely
+worthless...."
+
+Nevertheless, he energetically pursued his studies, which he
+completed at the University of Moscow. "There," he tells us, "life
+was, from a material standpoint, less unbearable; my friends and
+the aid society came to my assistance; but I recall my life at the
+University of St. Petersburg with genuine pleasure; the various
+classes of students are there more differentiated and an individual
+can more easily find a sympathetic surrounding among such distinct
+groups."
+
+Some time after that, Andreyev, disgusted with life, attempted
+suicide. "In January, 1894," he writes, "I tried to shoot myself,
+but without any appreciable result. I was punished by religious
+penance, imposed upon me by authority, and a sickness of the heart
+which, although not dangerous, was persistent. During this time I
+made one or two equally unsuccessful literary attempts, and I gave
+myself up with success to painting, which I have loved since
+childhood; I then painted portraits to order for from 5 to 10
+rubles....
+
+"In 1897, I received my counsellor's degree and I took up that
+profession in Moscow. For want of time I did not succeed in getting
+any sort of a 'clientele'; in all, I pleaded but one civil case,
+which, however, I lost completely, and several gratuitous criminal
+cases. However, I was actively working in reporting these cases for
+an important paper."
+
+Finally, two strangely impressionistic stories: "Silence," and "He
+Was...," published in an important Petersburg review, brought the
+author into prominence. From that time, he devoted himself entirely
+to literature.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Andreyev is considered, to-day, as one of the most brilliant
+representatives of the new constellation of Russian writers, in
+which he takes a place immediately next to Tchekoff, whom he
+resembles in the melancholy tone of his work. In him, as in
+Tchekoff, the number of people who suffer from life, either crushed
+or mutilated by it, by far exceed the number of happy ones;
+moreover, the best of his stories are short and sketchy like those
+of Tchekoff. Andreyev is then, so to speak, his spiritual son. But
+he is a sickly son, who carries the melancholy element to its
+farthest limit. The grey tones of Tchekoff have, in Andreyev, become
+black; his rather sad humor has been transformed into tragic irony;
+his subtle impressionability into morbid sensibility. The two
+writers have had the same visions of the anomalies and the horrors
+of existence; but, where Tchekoff has only a disenchanted smile,
+Andreyev has stopped, dismayed; the sensation of horror and
+suffering which springs from his stories has become an obsession
+with him; it does not penetrate merely the souls of his heroes, but,
+as in Poe, it penetrates even the descriptions of nature.
+
+Thus, the "near and terrible" disk of the moon hovers over the earth
+like the "gigantic menace of an approaching but unknown evil"; the
+river congeals in "mute terror," and silence is particularly
+menacing. Night always comes "black and bad," and fills human hearts
+with shadows. When it falls, the very branches of the trees
+"contract, filled with terror." Under the influence of the
+disturbing sounds of the tocsin, the high linden-trees "suddenly
+begin to talk, only to become quiet again immediately and lapse into
+a sullen silence." The tocsin itself is animated. "Its distinct
+tones spread with rapid intensity. Like a herald of evil who has not
+the time to look behind him, and whose eyes are large with fright,
+the tocsin desperately calls men to the fatal mire."[9]
+
+ [9] This passage is a sort of a variation on the theme that Poe
+ has developed in a masterful way in his poem, "The Bells."
+
+Most of Andreyev's characters, like those of Dostoyevsky, are
+abnormal, madmen and neurasthenics in whom are distinguishable
+marked traces of degeneration and psychic perversion. They are
+beings who have been fatally wounded in their life-struggle, whose
+minds now are completely or partially powerless. Too weak to fight
+against the cruel exigencies of reality, they turn their thoughts
+upon themselves and naturally arrive at the most desolate
+conclusions, and commit the most senseless acts. Some, a prey to the
+mania of pride, despairing because of their weakness and their
+"nothingness," look--as does Serge Petrovich--for relief in suicide.
+Others, who have resigned themselves to their sad lives, become
+passive observers, become transformed into living corpses whose sole
+desire is peace; such a one is the hero of "At the Window." Others
+still instinctively choke in themselves the best tendencies of their
+characters and are passionately fond of futile and senseless
+amusements, by means of which they enjoy themselves like children,
+until a catastrophe makes them "come back to themselves." This is
+the idea of the original story called "The Grand Slam." In "The Lie"
+Andreyev depicts the pathological process in the soul of a man who,
+crushed by the falsehood of his own solitary existence, becomes
+insane at the idea that truth is inaccessible to human reason and
+that the reign of the Lie is invincible. The hero of "The
+Thought"[10] reveres but one thing in the world--his own thought.
+Wrapped up in this one idea, he admires the force and finesse of it,
+while his reason, detached from reality and having only him for an
+end, begins to weaken, becomes gradually perverted to the point
+where this man, harassed by a terrible doubt, begins to ask himself
+whether he is insane. In the long and pathetic story, "The Life of a
+Priest," we are shown the disturbance of the religious feelings of a
+country priest who, although he has an ardent and strong soul, is
+crushed by his moral isolation among the ignorant people of a
+miserable village. It is again this moral isolation that is
+analyzed in "Silence," in which story it is the cause of a domestic
+tragedy. The same cause provokes a rupture between a father and a
+son in "The Obscure Distance," and brings with it in some way the
+death of the neurasthenic student.
+
+ [10] In the English translation this book is called "A Dilemma."
+
+In general, the stories of Andreyev, after passing through various
+catastrophes, lead the reader back to this theme,--the moral
+isolation of a human being, who feels that the world has become
+deserted, and life a game of shadows. The abyss which separates
+Andreyev's heroes from other men makes them weak, numb, and
+miserable. It seems, in fact, that there is no greater misfortune
+than for a man to feel himself alone in the midst of his
+fellow-creatures.
+
+Finally, in "The Gulf," a somewhat imaginary thesis is developed,
+based on the terrible vitality which certain vile instincts keep
+even in the purest and most innocent minds, while the story "He
+Was..." shows us the inside of a clinic, in which there are two
+dying men whose illusions of life persist till the supreme moment.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+If we carefully study a few of Andreyev's characters we can more
+easily understand his feelings and his style. Here is, for
+instance, Serge Petrovich, a student. Although he is not very
+intelligent, he is above the average. His mind is preoccupied with
+all sorts of questions; he reads Nietzsche, he ponders over many
+things, but he does not know how to think for himself. The fact that
+there are people who can find a way to express themselves appears to
+him as an inaccessible ideal; while mediocre minds have no
+attraction for him at all. It is from this feeling that all his
+sufferings come. So "a horse, carrying a heavy burden, breathes
+hard, falls to the ground, but is forced to rise and proceed by
+stinging lashes from a whip."
+
+These lashes are the vision of the superman, of the one who
+rightfully possesses strength, happiness, and liberty. At times a
+thick mist envelops the thoughts of Serge Petrovich, but the light
+of the superman dispels this, and he sees his road before him as if
+it had been drawn or told him by another.
+
+Before his eyes there is a being called Serge Petrovich for whom all
+that makes existence happy or bitter, deep and human, remains a
+closed book. Neither religion nor morality, neither science nor art,
+exists for him. Instead of a real and ardent faith, he feels in
+himself a motley array of feelings. His habitual veneration of
+religious rites mingles with mean superstitions. He is not
+courageous enough to deny God, not strong enough to believe in Him.
+He does not love his fellow-men, and cannot feel the intense
+happiness of devoting himself to his fellow-creatures and even dying
+for them. But neither does he experience that hate for others which
+gives a man a terrible joy in his struggle with his fellow-men. Not
+being capable of elevating himself high enough or falling low enough
+to reign over the lives of men, he lives or rather vegetates with a
+keen feeling of his mediocrity, which makes him despair. And the
+pitiless words of Zarathustra ring in his ears: "If your life is not
+successful, if a venomous worm is gnawing at your heart, know that
+death will succeed." And Serge Petrovich, desperate, commits
+suicide.
+
+The hero of "At the Window" is quite different. This man has
+succeeded in building for himself a sort of fortress, "in which he
+retires, sheltered from life." Like Serge Petrovich, although not as
+often, he is tormented by restless thoughts, and, from time to time,
+he is obliged to defend his "fortress." But usually he is contented
+with watching life, that is to say, that part which he can see from
+his window. Nothing troubles the tranquillity of his mind, not even
+the desire to live like other men. One day, he speaks of his
+theories to a simple, uneducated young girl whom he thinks of
+marrying. She is astonished and stupefied by them. She perceives
+that he leads an insipid and morose life. Andrey Nikolayevich does
+not take into account or understand the stupefaction of the young
+girl.
+
+"This then is your life?" she asks, incredulously.
+
+"This is it. What more could you want?"
+
+"But it must be terribly monotonous to live in that way, apart from
+the world."
+
+"What good does one find in mankind? Nothing but tedium. When I am
+alone, I am my own master, but among men you never know what
+attitude to take to please them. They drag you into drunkenness,
+into gambling; then they denounce you to your superiors. I, however,
+love calmness and frankness. Some of them accept bribes and allow
+themselves to become corrupt; I do not like that.... I adore
+tranquillity."
+
+Moreover, he does not marry the young girl. He gives her up because
+he is afraid of the incumbrances that housekeeping will bring.
+
+In "The Grand Slam" four provincial "intellectuals" are locked up in
+the same fortress, and, by playing cards, they escape the terrible
+problems of a life which is inimical to them. Their existence has
+been passed among these cards, which, by a mysterious phenomenon,
+have become real living creatures to them. One of the players has
+dreamed all through his life of getting a grand slam, when, one
+evening, he sees he has the necessary cards in his hand. He has but
+to take one more card, the ace of spades, and his dream will be
+realized. But at the very moment when he is stretching forth his
+hand to take it, he falls down dead. His partners are terrified. One
+of them, a timorous and exact old man, named Jacob Ivanovich, is
+particularly struck. A thought comes to him; he quickly rises, after
+making sure that it was the ace of spades that the dead man was
+going to take, and cries:
+
+"But he will never know that he was going to get the ace of spades
+and a grand slam! Never.... Never...."
+
+"Then it appeared to Jacob Ivanovich that, up to this moment, he had
+never understood what death was. Now he understood, and what he saw
+was senseless, horrible, and irreparable!... The dead man would
+never know!"
+
+The poignant irony of this story is not unusual with Andreyev.
+
+It is again found in the short and symbolic story "The Laugh." A
+student, profiting by the fact that it is carnival time, disguises
+himself as a Chinaman and goes to the house of the girl he loves.
+The mute, immobile, and stupidly calm mask, and the whole "get-up"
+are so funny, that the unfortunate man rouses irresistible laughter
+wherever he goes. The young girl cannot help herself, and, while
+listening to his very touching and sincere declaration, which, at
+any other time, would have brought tears to her eyes, she bursts out
+laughing and cannot again become serious, although she realizes that
+a living and unhappy being is hidden under this impassive and
+foolish Chinaman's mask.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In "The Lie" we see a man who, by isolating himself from life, has
+lost the feeling of reality, and all capacity of discerning the true
+from the false. He suffers terribly from the feeling that something
+unknown is happening around him. This man, who would be ready to
+sacrifice everything, even his life, in order to know truth, guesses
+the lie that comes between him and the person who is dearest to him.
+He falls into a despair that soon turns to fury. In order to recover
+his calm, he begs the girl he loves, whom he suspects of having
+deceived him, to reveal the whole truth to him. But he cannot
+believe her protestations of innocence. One word bursts from his
+being, breaks forth from the depths of his soul: "Lies! Lies! Lies
+everywhere!"
+
+"In looking at her beautiful pure forehead," he writes, "I dreamed
+that truth was there, on the other side of that thin barrier, and I
+felt a senseless desire to break that barrier and at least to see
+the truth. Lower down, beneath her white breast, I heard the beating
+of her heart, and I had a mad desire to open her breast so that I
+could read, at least once, what there was at the bottom of her
+heart."
+
+He ends by killing that which he loved, and thinks that he is
+satisfied: he believes he has killed the lie.
+
+In "The Thought" we see the gradual development of insanity during
+the period when it is doubtful, when the will is almost entirely
+annihilated and replaced by a fixed idea, and when conscience is not
+entirely abolished. Dr. Kerzhenzev kills his friend, obeying a
+mental suggestion, which now forbids him to do it, now urges him on.
+Then, like the "half-insane" or those sick people who feign madness
+in order more easily to attain their end, this man suggests to
+himself that he is in reality insane. This idea gets a hold on him
+after the murder and fills his soul with mortal terror, the exposure
+of which forms the most supremely pathetic part of the whole story.
+All this drama of a foundering intelligence, complicated by bizarre
+contradictions, is developed with a penetrating power of analysis.
+
+Andreyev tells us that on the day of judgment the alienists are
+divided as to the insanity of Kerzhenzev. The story ends at this
+place. But the principal interest of the story does not lie in this
+or that solution of the problem, which is not mysterious, for the
+doctor is doubtlessly abnormal, and it is only as to the degree of
+insanity that there can be any question. The main interest lies in
+another direction, in the subtle analysis of this special mental
+condition, which is done with consummate art.
+
+This story had the honor of occupying an entire meeting of the
+psychiatrists attached to the Academy of Medicine of St. Petersburg.
+According to the report of Dr. Ivanov, the assembly was almost
+unanimous in declaring the murderer insane. Another psychiatrist,
+who thought he saw proofs of an abnormal mentality in all the
+stories of Andreyev, pronounced the same verdict against Dr.
+Kerzhenzev, in a meeting of doctors.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"All of priest Vassily Fiveyisky's life was weighed down by a cruel
+and enigmatic fatality,"--it is thus that the story, "The Life of a
+Pope," opens. "As if struck by an unknown malediction, he had from
+his youth been made to carry a heavy burden of sorrows, sickness and
+misfortunes; he was solitary among men as a planet is among planets;
+a peculiar and malevolent atmosphere surrounded him. Son of an
+obscure, patient, and submissive village priest, he also was patient
+and submissive, and he was a long time in recognizing the
+particular rancour of destiny. He fell rapidly and arose slowly.
+Twig by twig he restored his nest. Having become a priest, the
+husband of a good woman, the father of a son and a daughter, he
+thought that all was going well with him, that all was solidly
+established, and that he would remain thus forever. And he blessed
+God."
+
+But fate was always on the watch for him. It had showed him
+happiness only to take it away again. After seven years of
+prosperity, his little son is drowned one summer's day in the river.
+Death and nameless misfortunes again invade the home of Vassily. One
+does not live there any more, one prowls around gropingly in a
+mournful stupor. From morning till evening, his wife comes and goes,
+silent and indifferent to everything, as if she were looking for
+some one or something.
+
+In losing his son, poor Vassily has also lost his wife, his helpmate
+and friend, for the unfortunate woman takes to drink. The faith of
+the priest holds in this terrible trial. But his misery increases
+immeasurably. The vice of his wife, his own sick weakness, excite
+the meanness of the people. Insults have to be borne in silence,
+tears hidden. At home, the priest's wife has no rest. She has the
+idea that she can have another son who will take the place of the
+dead one and be a balm to her broken heart. In her alcoholic desire,
+a prey to savage fury, she demands that her husband gratify her
+desire.
+
+"Give him to me, Vassily! Give him back to me, I tell you...."
+
+At last her desire is realized: a son is born to her; but the child,
+conceived in madness, is born half-witted. The mother takes to drink
+again, and the despair of Vassily increases. One day the unfortunate
+woman hangs herself. The pope comes in, however, in time to save
+her; but now another noose has tightened itself about the priest's
+heart. One question oppresses him:
+
+"Why these sufferings? If God exists, and if God is love, how is
+such misery possible?"
+
+Vassily's faith trembles. He decides to leave his cassock, to fly,
+to put his idiot son out to board and to start life over again. This
+resolution relieves him. His wife breathes easier. It seems to him
+that she also can begin a new life. But fate does not loosen its
+reins.
+
+One day, on coming back from the harvest, he finds his house burned.
+His wife, in a drunken stupor, had probably set fire to it. She is
+dying of her burns. Vassily can only sigh. This new misfortune does
+not put an end to the priest, but rather inspires him. His old faith
+comes back, he sees in this supreme test a predestination. He kneels
+down and cries:
+
+"I believe! I believe! I believe!"
+
+From that time on he devotes himself entirely to prayer and
+macerations. He lives in perpetual ecstasy. The people around him
+understand nothing of this change and are astounded. Every one of
+them is waiting for something unusual. And their waiting is not in
+vain. One day, when he is delivering the funeral oration of a
+workingman, who has been suddenly killed, Vassily abruptly
+interrupts the ceremony, approaches the corpse, which has begun to
+decay, and addresses it thus three times:
+
+"I tell you: arise!"
+
+But the dead man does not move. Then the priest looks at this inert
+and deformed corpse. He notices the fetid odor that arises from it,
+the odor of the slow but sure decomposition, and he has a sort of
+sudden revelation. The scepticism which, for a long time, has been
+brooding in his heart suddenly is transformed into absolute
+negation, and addressing himself to Him in whom he had believed,
+Vassily cries out:
+
+"Thou wishest to deceive me? Then why did I believe? Why hast Thou
+kept me in servitude, in captivity, all of my life? No free thought!
+No feeling! No hope! All with Thee! All for Thee! Thee alone! Well,
+appear! I am waiting! I am waiting!... Ah! Thou dost not want to?
+Very well...."
+
+He does not finish. In a burst of savage madness he rushes forth
+from the now empty church. He rushes straight ahead and finally
+falls in the middle of the road. Death has put an end to his
+miseries.
+
+"Silence" also shows us a priest, stubborn in his prejudices. This
+man, Father Ignatius by name, is a sort of rude and authoritative
+Hercules. All tremble before his stern air, except his daughter, who
+has decided to continue her studies in St. Petersburg, against the
+will of her father. Coming back to her home after a long absence,
+she wanders about, sad and silent. For days at a time she wanders
+about, pale and melancholy, speaking little, seeking solitude. She
+hides what oppresses her; she keeps her secret from all. One night,
+she throws herself under a train, taking her secret with her.
+
+Her grief-stricken mother gets a paralytic stroke which transforms
+her into a sort of living corpse. The father, crushed by these two
+catastrophes, which have destroyed all the joy of his life, becomes
+the prey of a singular mental state: his conscience revolts against
+the severe maxims and the pitiless prejudices that he has always
+defended. Tender love, which he has hitherto concealed under his
+pride, now softens him; he needs affection, and a vague feeling
+suggests to him that he himself is to blame for all of these
+misfortunes. His past life, his daughter, and his wife appear to
+him as so many enigmas which raise anguishing questions in his
+heart. He calls out, but no one answers. A death-like silence has
+invaded the presbytery, and this silence is especially dreadful near
+the paralyzed wife, who is dying without speaking. Even her eyes do
+not betray a single thought. Gradually, a terrible desire to know
+why his daughter committed suicide seizes him. At twilight, softly,
+in his bare feet, he goes up to the room of his dead daughter and
+speaks to her. He entreats her to tell him the truth, to confess to
+him why she was always so sad, why she has killed herself. Only the
+silence answers him. Then he rushes to the cemetery, where his
+daughter's tomb irresistibly attracts him; again he implores, begs,
+threatens. For a moment he thinks that a vague answer arises from
+the earth; he places his ear on the rough turf.
+
+"Vera, tell me!" he repeats in a loud and steady voice.
+
+"And now Father Ignatius feels with terror that something
+sepulchrally cold is penetrating his ear and congealing his brain;
+it is Vera, who is continually answering him with the same prolonged
+silence. This silence becomes more and more sinister and restless,
+and when Father Ignatius arises with an effort, his face is as livid
+as death."
+
+Crushed by the same blind destiny which annihilated the powerful
+personality of Father Ignatius, the piteous and tearful hero of "The
+Marseillaise" moves us even more than does the old priest. The poor
+fellow cannot grasp the reason for the ferocity of stupid fate,
+which unrelentingly preys upon him. Arrested by mistake as a
+revolutionist and condemned to deportation, he becomes an object of
+derision to his comrades. However, gradually, he finds the strength
+to share the severe privations of his companions who have sacrificed
+themselves to their ideal of justice and liberty. And, on his
+death-bed, he is elated by all that he has endured; he dreams of
+liberty, which, up to this time, had been indifferent to him, and
+asks them to sing the Marseillaise over his grave.
+
+"He died, and we sang the Marseillaise. Our young and powerful
+voices thundered forth this majestic song of liberty, accompanied by
+the noise of the ocean which carried on the crests of its waves
+towards 'dear France,' pale terror and blood-red hope.
+
+"It became our standard forever, the picture of this nonentity with
+the hare's body and the man's heart.
+
+"On your knees to the hero, friends and comrades!
+
+"We sang. The guns, with their creaking locks, were pointed
+menacingly at us; the steel points of the bayonets were pointed at
+our hearts. The song resounded louder and louder, with increasing
+joy. Held in the friendly hands of the 'strugglers,' the black
+coffin slowly sank into the earth.
+
+"We sang the Marseillaise!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The two main characters of "The Gulf," a student and a school-girl,
+are walking and discussing rather deep things, such as immortality
+and the beauty of pure and noble love. They feel some sadness in
+speaking about these things, but love appears more and more luminous
+to them. It rises before their eyes, as large as the world, bursting
+forth like the sun and marvelously beautiful, and they know that
+there is nothing so powerful as love.
+
+"You could die for the woman you loved?" asked Zinochka.
+
+"Of course," replies Nemovetsky unhesitatingly, in a frank and
+sincere voice, "and you?"
+
+"I too!" She remains pensive a moment. "To die for the one you love,
+that is a great happiness! Would that that were to be my destiny!"
+
+Gradually night falls. Nemovetsky and his companion lose their way
+in the woods; they finally arrive in a clearing, where three
+filthy-looking men are seated about an empty bottle. These
+intoxicated men, whose wicked eyes light up with a brutal envy of
+enjoyment and love of destruction, try to quarrel with Nemovetsky,
+and one of them ends by striking him full in the face with his fist.
+Zinochka runs away. His heart full of terror, Nemovetsky can hear
+the shrieks of his friend, whom the vagabonds have caught. Then a
+feeling of emptiness comes over him, and he loses consciousness. Two
+of the men throw him into a ravine.
+
+An hour later, Nemovetsky regains consciousness; he gets up with
+great pain, for he is badly wounded. He remembers what has happened.
+Fright and despair seize him. He begins to run and call for help
+with all his strength, at the same time looking among all the
+bushes, when at his feet, he sees a dim, white form. It is his
+companion, who lies there motionless. He falls down on his knees and
+touches her. His hand encounters a nude body, damp and cold, but
+still living. It seems to grow warm at his touch. He pictures to
+himself with abominable clearness what the men have done. A feeling
+of strange strength circulates in his members. On his knees in front
+of the young girl, in the obscurity of the forest, he tries to bring
+her back to life, calling her sweet names, caressing her hair,
+rubbing her cold hands.
+
+"With infinite precautions, but also with deep tenderness, he tries
+to cover her with the shreds of her torn dress, and the double
+sensation of the cloth and the nude body are as keen as a sword and
+as inconceivable as madness. And now he cries for help, now he
+presses the sweet and supple body to his breast. His unconscious
+abandonment unchains the savageness of his passion. He whispers in a
+low voice, 'I love you, I love you.' And throwing himself violently
+upon her lips, he feels his teeth entering her flesh.
+
+"Then, in the sadness and impetuousness of the kiss, the last bit of
+his mind gives way. It seems to him that the lips of the young girl
+tremble. For an instant, a terrible terror fills his soul and he
+sees a horrible gulf yawning at his feet.... And he hurls himself
+into the mad throes of his insane passion."
+
+The account of the collegian, which forms the plot of the story "In
+the Fog," is even more daring in its realism. It actually oppresses
+the reader, not so much by certain details that provoke disgust, as
+by the analysis of the sufferings of an unfortunate young man, whose
+mind is pure, but who has let himself be dragged into excesses which
+are followed by a sickness of ill name. Severely reprimanded by his
+father, the poor young fellow, overcome with sorrow, the victim of
+an instinct which he could not conquer, ends his days in a most
+horrible way: one evening, he leaves home and goes out into the
+streets in an adventuresome spirit. A half-intoxicated prostitute
+touches him in passing; he follows her. As they go along, a
+conversation starts up, and the young man, although she is repugnant
+to him, goes home with her. Once in her room, a violent quarrel
+starts up and he kills her, and then commits suicide.
+
+These two stories, especially "The Gulf," caused many lively
+discussions on the part of the public, and then in the newspapers.
+Mr. Bourenine, the well-known critic of the "Novoye Vremya," says
+that he received from several correspondents a series of letters
+which blamed Andreyev vehemently and requested that this "skunk" of
+literature be called to order according to his deserts. These
+protestations were reenforced by an ardent letter from Countess
+Tolstoy, the wife of the great author, who reproached Andreyev for
+having so complacently painted such sombre pictures, with such low
+and violent scenes, all of which tended to pervert youth. The
+writers were not the only ones to take offence. Two important
+Russian newspapers organized a sort of inquiry, and they published
+many of the answers received from the young people of both sexes,
+but these were all favorable to Andreyev.
+
+In truth, all these judgments are too passionate. It is true that
+"most of the critics have understood Andreyev only in a superficial
+manner," as Tolstoy rightfully asserted. The double impression, for
+instance, produced by "The Gulf," is the result of a simple
+misunderstanding. Those who think that the adventure of young
+Nemovetsky is a slice of life and characterizes certain
+psychological states, have, without a doubt, the right to judge this
+story as an indiscretion, and to reproach the author with a
+deviation from morality; but Andreyev has not taken his hero from
+reality; he has not tried to give us a picture of manners, but has
+expressed an idea, born in his brain under the influence of the
+philosophy of Nietzsche. It illustrates the terrible power and the
+brutality of a dormant instinct lurking in the purest minds.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Besides, "The Gulf" and "In the Fog" are compositions which are
+exceptional in the work of Andreyev. The idea that he mostly
+presents is not the power of bestial instincts, but rather the
+indestructible vitality of human feelings and aspirations towards a
+better existence, which sometimes comes to light among the most
+miserable and depraved people, and even among those who are in the
+most abject material condition.
+
+In the destiny of these beings, there are, however, rays of hope.
+The slightest incident serves to transform them; suddenly their
+hearts begin to beat happily, tears of tenderness moisten their
+eyes, they vaguely feel the existence of something luminous and
+good. A profound sensibility, an ardent love of life bursts forth
+in their souls. This sensibility, this attachment to existence, form
+the theme of four touching stories: "He Was," "Petka in the
+Country," "The Cellar," and "The Angel."
+
+The action of "He Was" takes place in a hospital, where a deacon, a
+foolishly debonair man, who is attached to his stunted existence,
+and a pessimistic merchant, thoroughly satiated, are at the point of
+death. The deacon has an incurable sickness, and his days are
+numbered. But he does not know it, and speaks with enthusiasm of the
+pilgrimage he is going to make after he is cured, and of the
+apple-tree in his garden, which he expects will bear a great deal of
+fruit. The fourth Friday of Lent he is taken into the amphitheatre.
+He comes back, very much moved and making the sign of the cross.
+
+"Ah! my brothers," he says, "I am all upset. The doctor made me sit
+down in a chair and said to the students: 'Here you see a sick man.'
+Ah! how painful it was to hear him add: 'He was a deacon!'"
+
+"The unfortunate man stopped, and continued in a choking voice: '"He
+was a deacon," the doctor told them. He told them the story of my
+whole life, he even spoke about my wife. It was terrible! One would
+have said that I was dead already, and that he was talking over my
+coffin.'
+
+"And as the deacon is thus speaking, all of the others see clearly
+that he is going to die. They see it as clearly as if death itself
+was standing there, at the foot of the bed...."
+
+The merchant is a very different sort of man: he does not believe in
+God; he has had enough of life and is not afraid of death. All of
+his strength he has spent unnecessarily, without any appreciable
+result, without joy. When he was young he had stolen meat and fruit
+from his master. Caught in the act, he had been beaten, and he
+detested those who had struck him. Later on, having become rich, he
+crushed the poor with his fortune and scorned those who, on falling
+into his hands, answered his hate with scorn. Finally, old age and
+sickness had come; people now began to steal from him, and he, in
+turn, beat those whom he caught terribly. And thus his life had been
+spent; it had been nothing but a series of transgressions and
+hatreds, where the flames of desire, in dying out, had left nothing
+but cold ashes in his soul. He refuses to believe that any one can
+love this existence, and he disdainfully looks at the sallow face of
+the deacon, and mutters: "Fool!" Then, he looks at the third man in
+the room, a young student who is asleep. This student never fails to
+embrace his fiancee, a pretty young girl, whenever she comes to see
+him. As he looks the merchant, more bitterly than before, repeats:
+"Fool!"
+
+But death approaches; and this man who thinks himself superior and
+who scorns the deacon because he dreams of light and the sun, now
+feels disturbed in his turn. In making up the balance-sheet of this
+existence which, up to this time, he believed he hated, he remembers
+a stream of warm light which, during the day, used to come in
+through the window and gild the ceiling; and he remembers how the
+sun used to shine on the banks of the Volga, near his home. With a
+terrible sob, beating his hands on his breast, he falls back on his
+bed, right against the deacon, whom he hears silently weeping.
+
+"And thus they wept together. They wept for the sun which they were
+never to see again, for the apple-tree with fruit which they were
+not going to eat, for the shadow that was to envelop them, for dear
+life and cruel death!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Petka--the hero of "Petka in the Country"--is, at ten years of age,
+a barber's apprentice. He does not yet smoke as does his thirteen
+year old friend Nicolka, whom he wants to equal in everything.
+Petka's principal occupation, in the rare moments when the shop is
+empty, is to look out of the window at the poorly dressed men and
+women who are sitting on the benches of the boulevard. In the
+meantime, Nicolka goes through the streets of ill fame, and comes
+back and tells Petka all his experiences. The precocious knowledge
+of Nicolka astonishes the child, whose one ambition is to be like
+his friend one of these days. While waiting, he dreams of a vague
+country, but he cannot guess its location nor its character. And no
+one comes to take him there. From morning till evening he always
+hears the same jerky cry: "Some water, boy!"
+
+But one morning his mother, the cook Nadezhda, tells the barber that
+her master and mistress have told her to take Petka to the country
+for a few days. Then begins for him an enchanted existence. He goes
+in bathing four times a day, fishes, goes on long walks, climbs
+trees, rolls in the grass. When, at the end of a week, the barber
+claims his apprentice, the child does not understand: he has
+completely forgotten the city and the dirty barber-shop; and the
+return is very sad. Again is heard the jerky cry: "Some water, boy!"
+followed by a menacing murmur of "Come! Come!" if the child spills
+any of the water, or has not understood the orders.
+
+"And, during the night, in the place where Petka and Nicolka sleep
+side by side, a weak little voice speaks of the country, of things
+that do not exist, of things that no one has ever heard of or
+seen!..."
+
+"The Cellar" is inhabited by absolutely fallen people. A baby has
+just been born there. With down-bent necks, their faces
+unconsciously lighted up by strangely happy smiles, a prostitute and
+a miserable drunkard look at the child. This little life, "weak as a
+fire in the steppe," calls to them vaguely, and it seems to promise
+them something beautiful, clear, and immortal. Among the inhabitants
+of this cellar, the most unfortunate of all, is a man named
+Kizhnakov; he is pale, sickly, worn by work, almost devoured by
+suffering and alcohol; death already lies in wait for him. The most
+terrible thing for this man is the necessity of having to begin to
+live again each day. He would like to lie down all day and think of
+suicide under the heap of rags that serve him as a covering. He
+would like best to have some one come up back of him, and shoot him.
+He fears his own voice and his own thoughts. And it is on him that
+the baby produces the deepest impression. Since the birth of the
+child Kizhnakov does not sleep any more; he tries to protect himself
+from the cold, and weeps softly, without sadness and without
+convulsions, like those who have pure and innocent hearts, like
+children.
+
+"'Why do I weep?' he asks himself.
+
+"Not finding a suitable answer, he replies: 'It is thus....'
+
+"And the meaning of his words is so deep that a new flood of tears
+come to the eyes of the man whose life is so sad and solitary."
+
+We find the same theme again in "The Angel." A child who also lives
+in a cellar comes back from a Christmas-tree; he brings with him a
+toy, and a pretty little wax angel, which he shows to his father.
+The latter has seen better days, but in the last few years he has
+been sick with consumption, and now he is awaiting death, silent and
+continually exasperated by the sight of social injustice. However,
+the delight of the child infects the father, and both of them have a
+feeling "of something that joins all hearts into one, and does away
+with the abyss which separates man from man, and makes him so
+solitary, unfortunate, and weak." The poor dying man seems to hear a
+voice from this better world, where he once lived and from which he
+had been sent forever.
+
+But these are only the dreams of a dying man, the last rays of light
+of the life which is being extinguished. The ray, penetrating this
+sick soul, is like the weak sunlight which passes through the dirty
+windows of a dark hovel.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In his two stories, "The Stranger" and "The Obscure Future,"
+Andreyev shows us two men of entirely different character, animated
+by generous feelings and a firm will. One of them, a young student,
+being disgusted with the miseries of Russian life and having decided
+to expatriate himself, suddenly changes his mind, as a result of the
+patriotism of one of his friends, a Servian, named Raiko. He makes
+it his duty never to leave his country, although life there is so
+terrible and hopeless. There is, in this new feeling, an immense joy
+and a terrible sadness. The other, the hero of the second story,
+having one day expressed to his father the hatred he has for the
+bourgeois life that he is leading, leaves his family, who love him,
+in order to penetrate the "obscure future."
+
+Evidently, these are people who are fitted to struggle. However,
+these strugglers, so infrequent in the work of Andreyev, have, in
+spite of all, something sickly and savage in them; instead of real
+fighting courage, they possess only extreme audaciousness, mystical
+rapture, or nervous exaltation. The "obscure future" toward which
+their eyes are turned is not lighted up by the rays of faith and
+hope.
+
+The question is whether Andreyev himself believes in the triumph of
+the elements of life over the elements of death, the horror of which
+he excels in portraying for us. It is in the following manner that
+he expresses himself in one of his essays entitled, "Impressions of
+the Theatre": "In denying everything, one arrives immediately at
+symbols. In refuting life, one is but an involuntary apologist. I
+never believe so much in life as when I am reading the father of
+pessimism, Schopenhauer! As a result, life is powerful and
+victorious!... It is truth that always triumphs, and not falsehood;
+it is truth which is at the basis of life, and justifies it. All
+that persists is useful; the noxious element must disappear sooner
+or later, will inevitably disappear."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+What, then, constitutes the essence of Andreyev's talent is an
+extreme impressionability, a daring in descriptions of the negative
+sides of reality, melancholy moods and the torments of existence. As
+he usually portrays general suffering and sickness rather than
+definite types, his heroes are mostly incarnations and symbols. The
+very titles of some of his stories indicate the abstract character
+of his work. Such are: "Silence," "The Thought," and "The Lie." In
+this respect he has carried on the work of Poe, whose influence on
+him is incontestable. These two writers have in common a refined and
+morbid sensibility, a predilection for the horrible and a passion
+for the study of the same kind of subjects,--solitude, silence,
+death. But the powerful fantasy of the American author, which does
+not come in touch with reality, wanders freely through the whole
+world and through all the centuries of history. His heroes take
+refuge in half-crumbled castles, they look at the reader from the
+top of craggy rocks, whither their love of solitude has led them;
+even death itself is not a repulsive skeleton, but rather a majestic
+form, full of grandiose mystery. Andreyev, on the other hand, but
+rarely breaks the bounds which unite him to reality. His heroes are
+living people, who act, and whose banal life ends with a banal
+death. This realism and this passionate love of truth make the
+strength and the beauty of all his work.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+A certain harmony between the imaginative and the real element is
+characteristic of the best of Andreyev's productions, especially his
+last stories: "The Red Laugh," "The Governor," "The Shadows," and
+"The Seven Who Were Hanged."
+
+"The Red Laugh" is the symbol, the incarnation, of the bloody and
+implacable cynicism of war. The psychologist of the mysterious has,
+in these pages, recorded the terrifying aspects of the Manchurian
+campaign, which one could not have foreseen in all of its horror. He
+has shown in a lasting manner the poor human creature torn from his
+home, debased to the role of a piece of mechanism. Not knowing where
+he is being led to, he goes, making murderous gestures, the meaning
+of which he does not know, without even having the illusory
+consolation of possible personal bravery, being killed by the shots
+of an invisible enemy, or, what is worse, being killed by the shots
+of his own comrades--and all of this, automatically, stupidly. The
+feeling of terror, the somewhat mystical intuition of events which,
+at times, seem to be paradoxes in the other works of Andreyev, are
+perfectly adapted to this terribly real representation of the
+effects of war.
+
+The inner drama which Andreyev analyzes in "The Governor" makes a
+bold contrast with the violent pages of "The Red Laugh," the savage
+powers of which attain the final limits of horror.
+
+The governor has during his whole life been a loyal and strict
+servant of the Tsar. On the day of an uprising he mercilessly beat
+the enemies of his master; he blindly accomplished what he thought
+was his duty. But, since that bloody day, a new and unceasing voice
+speaks in his conscience. The irreparable act has forever isolated
+him from his fellow-creatures, and even from his friends who
+congratulate him upon his fine conduct. A stranger to all that is
+happening around him, he is left alone to fight with his conscience,
+which soon crushes him with all the weight of remorse. He knows that
+he has been condemned by a revolutionary tribunal. A young girl who
+is a stranger to him writes him a compassionate letter: "You are
+going to be killed," she says, "and that will be justice; but I have
+great pity for you." This discerning and youthful sympathy
+penetrates his heart, which finally opens--alas, too late,--to
+justice and pity.
+
+This marks the beginning of a terrible agony. The governor makes no
+effort to escape from the fatal judgment. Always alone, he
+contemplates his terrible distress and awaits the coming of the
+judiciary. He feels that he has incurred universal blame, and at
+times he comes to wish for death, which surprises him suddenly as he
+is turning the corner of a street:
+
+"The whole thing was short and simple, like a scene from a
+moving-picture play. At a cross-ways, close by a muddy spot, a
+hesitating voice called to the governor:
+
+"'Your honor!'
+
+"'What?'
+
+"He stopped and turned his head: two men who had come from behind a
+wall were crossing the street, and were shuffling along in the mud
+towards him. One of them had in his left hand a piece of folded
+paper; his other hand was in his pocket.
+
+"And immediately, the governor knew that death had come; and they
+knew that the governor knew.
+
+"While keeping the paper in his left hand the unknown man took a
+revolver out of his pocket with difficulty.
+
+"The governor glanced about him; he saw a dirty and deserted square,
+with bits of grass growing in the mud, and a wall. But what did it
+matter, it was too late! He gave a short but deep sigh, and stood
+erect again, fearless, but without defiance.... He fell, with three
+shots in his body."
+
+This drama of conscience is set forth with admirable sureness of
+analysis, and the author has been able to represent with impressive
+intensity the mysterious fatality which demands the death of the
+guilty one.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+It is this same fatality, under whose hand all men are equal, which
+makes the hero of "The Shadows," a young terrorist who has taken
+refuge in a house of ill-fame, obey the strange desire of his
+bed-companion.
+
+"Stay with me!" cries the young girl, in whom is incarnated his
+destiny, at the moment that he is going to leave the establishment
+in order to escape from the spies who are following him. "You are an
+honest man! And I've been waiting five years to meet an honest
+man.... Stay with me, because you belong to me."
+
+After a terrible internal combat the man yields to this unknown will
+which is oppressing him. A traitor to his party, he decides to
+become the companion of this painted girl, with whom he then gets
+drunk.
+
+"As long as I am in the shadows," he murmurs with the sombre
+resignation of an Andreyev hero, "I might as well remain there."
+
+At dawn, the police come to arrest him. And while his friend tries
+desperately to resist the agents of the force, he contemplates the
+brutal scene with an ironic smile.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"The Seven Who Were Hanged," written in 1908, right after the
+executions at Kherson and Warsaw, shows us pictures of terror and
+fright aptly described by the genius of Andreyev. This work has
+prodigious color and strength, and one experiences deep emotions on
+reading it. Five terrorists, captured at the very moment when they
+are going to assassinate a minister, and two criminals, are
+condemned to be hanged on the same day. The writer shows them to us
+tortured by the most horrible anguish, that which immediately
+precedes death. The word "madness" appears on every page: mystical
+madness of hallucination that hears music and voices, such is that
+of the young revolutionary Moussya; then there is the brutal madness
+of her comrades Kashirine and Golovine, who are ready to scream with
+terror; the madness of the victims, the frenzy of the executioners.
+
+The night before the execution the prisoners are visited by their
+relatives. The farewell which Serge Golovine takes of his family is
+rightly considered one of the most poignant and most cleverly
+constructed scenes that Andreyev has ever written.
+
+Followed by his mother, who totters along, Serge's father, a retired
+colonel, enters the room where visitors are received. Serge does not
+know that the colonel spent the whole night in preparing for this
+meeting. He has told his wife what to do: embrace her son, keep from
+crying, and say nothing. But the unhappy mother in the presence of
+her son cannot control her emotions; her eyes are strained and she
+breathes faster and faster.
+
+"Don't torture him!" commands the colonel.
+
+Several stupid and insignificant words are exchanged in order to
+hide the terrible suffering that they all are going through. The
+visit ends: the parents must bid their son good-bye forever. The
+mother gives her son a short kiss, then she shakes her head and
+murmurs, trembling:
+
+"'No, it is not that! It is not that!'
+
+"'Good-bye, Serge,' says his father.
+
+"They shake hands, and give each other a brief but hearty kiss.
+
+"'You...' begins Serge.
+
+"'What's that?' asks his father in a jerky voice.
+
+"'No, not like that. No, no! What was I going to say?' repeats his
+mother, shaking her head.
+
+"She was again seated, trembling.
+
+"'You...' continues Serge.
+
+"Suddenly, his face took on a pitiful expression, and he made a
+grimace like a child. The tears then came to his eyes.
+
+"'Father, you are a strong man!'
+
+"'What are you saying? What are you saying?' the colonel cries,
+frightened.
+
+"Then, as if he had been struck, the colonel's head sank down upon
+his son's shoulder. And they kissed each other, again and again, the
+one with white hair and the other with the prisoner's 'capote.'
+
+"'And I?' a hoarse voice brusquely asked.
+
+"They looked: the mother was standing, her head thrown back, and she
+was watching them with anger, almost hate.
+
+"'What is the matter, dear?' cried the colonel.
+
+"'And I?' she repeated. 'You two kiss each other, and I? You are
+men, aren't you? And I?'
+
+"'Mother!'
+
+"And Serge threw himself into his mother's arms....
+
+"The last words of the colonel were:
+
+"'I consecrate you to death, my boy! Die with courage, like a
+soldier!'"
+
+These few lines retrace one of the thousands of daily dramas which
+compose modern Russian history. The work of Andreyev brings to us a
+sad vibrant echo of the sobs which ring out in Russian dungeons. And
+this faithful portrayal of events, events so frequent that they no
+longer move us from our indifference, when we find the echo of them
+in the press, will raise in the conscience of Andreyev's readers a
+cry of horror and pity.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+It is principally in the dramas which he has written in the last few
+years[11] that Andreyev has developed with most force and clearness
+his favorite themes: the fear of living and dying, the madness of
+believing in free-will, and the nonsense of life, the weakness and
+vanity of which he depicts for us.
+
+ [11] Mention should be made of some of Andreyev's other dramas:
+ "To the Stars," "Anfissa," "Gaudeamus," and "Sava," plays of
+ uneven value, but with a strength of observation and analysis
+ which is not inferior to that shown in some of his best stories.
+
+The first of these works to appear was "The Life of Man," which is a
+tragic illustration of this pessimism.
+
+When the curtain rises, "some one in grey," holding a torch, informs
+the audience that Man is about to be born. From this time on, his
+life, lighted like a lamp, will burn until death extinguishes it.
+And Man will live, docile and obedient to the orders that come to
+him from On-High, through the intermediary of this "some one," whom
+he does not know. Each act of the play represents a period in the
+life of Man. In the first act, Man has acquired riches and glory,
+and is found feasting with his friends in his sumptuous home. The
+guests are enchanted with their host, whom they envy. But happiness
+is a fugitive shadow; it soon betrays the man, who becomes poor,
+loses his son, falls into the most abject misery, and dies in a
+filthy and infected cellar, surrounded by vile beggars, while the
+torch, held by "some one in grey," begins to grow weaker, and then
+dies out. And the man, conscious of his powerlessness to conquer
+fate, and conscious of his weakness in face of the mysterious "some
+one in grey," confounds in the same malediction God, Satan,
+Fatality, and Life, who have united to annihilate him.
+
+The themes of the "King of Famine" and "Black Masks" offer a certain
+analogy to the theme of "The Life of Man."
+
+From the top of a belfry the "King of Famine," in company with
+"Time" and "Death," incites a workingmen's revolt. He inspires them
+with an absolute certainty of victory, although he can see that the
+revolt will be quelled and the rebels crushed. Events do not delay,
+in fact, to verify the prophecy of the monarch. Locked up, the
+leaders of the revolt are condemned to death. The scene of judgment
+in the last act is one of the finest in the play. On one side are
+seated the sad and dull judges; on the other, the elegant public,
+which, with a feeling of fear and disgust, gazes at the unfortunates
+whom the King of Famine has robbed of almost all human semblance.
+And in this play, also, Death reaps a bountiful harvest.
+
+"Black Masks" is the study of a pathological case which Andreyev has
+dramatized after the fashion of de Maupassant's "The Horla."
+
+The Duke Lorenzo, young, noble, and the owner of a magnificent
+palace, is getting ready to receive his guests, to whom he is
+giving, on this evening, a masked ball. The masks arrive: they are
+all black, and all look alike. They all crowd around Lorenzo, whom
+this funereal sort of masquerade bothers extremely. He cannot find
+his wife among the guests. In fact, he does not recognize any of
+them until, to cap the climax, he meets his double, fights with him
+and dies, without being able to discern who is the real Lorenzo.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+At times, Andreyev tries to find the justification of life, and
+looks for it in mysticism. He then expounds a doctrine, according to
+which, truth is individual and perhaps conceived by each man,
+thanks to direct intuition. Such is the mystical truth which the
+author tries to affirm in "Anathema."
+
+The play opens with a scene between Anathema, the incarnation of
+Satan, and "He who guards the gates," behind which is the mystery of
+eternity. Anathema entreats the Guardian to give him access. But it
+is in vain that Anathema flatters and insults him; finally, Anathema
+declares that he will choose from among mankind a poor Jew, named
+David Leiser, will enrich him and, in order to prove the absolute
+nonsense of life, will make this man a living protestation against
+the work of Him who knows all. Disguised as the lawyer Nullius,
+Anathema comes down to earth and gives millions to David. The
+latter, the best of men, distributes his riches among the poor. But
+the beggars become more and more numerous, and soon David finds that
+he is as poor as he was before the visit of Anathema.
+
+In the meantime, the crowd of paupers, always increasing, ask more
+money from David; they demand miracles from this man, whose goodness
+has made him a saint, a superman, in their eyes. They bring him
+corpses and ask him to resuscitate them. David flees; the crowd
+follows and stones him to death. But, through his love for his
+fellow-men, David has acquired immortality, as "He who guards the
+gates" tells Anathema, when, in the last act, the evil archangel,
+beaten, returns to lie on the threshold of the inconceivable
+mysterious.
+
+This admirable play, born of a philosophical conception which
+relates it to Goethe's "Faust," has been received with particular
+interest. Andreyev, in writing it, has come very near to solving the
+question of the meaning of life, and its justification. And, to the
+person who ponders a while over this work, it will appear that it is
+not Anathema who entreats "Him who guards the gates" to reveal the
+mystery, but it is Andreyev himself, who, carried away by the force
+of his genius, has thrown himself, as if at an invincible wall,
+against this pitiless guardian, the guardian of the solution of the
+enigma of life.
+
+While "Anathema" is an abstract character, whose form resembles more
+an algebraic formula than a living process of human relations,
+another of Andreyev's plays, "The Love of the Student," written a
+short time before "Anathema," gives us a little picture of customs,
+alert and painted with the touch of a master.
+
+Gloukortzev, a young student, falls in love with a young girl whom
+her mother forces to become a prostitute. Gloukortzev, young and
+inexperienced, has not the slightest suspicion, till the young girl
+herself reveals to him the horrible truth. And, perhaps for the
+first time in his life, the gulf of necessity, toward which fate
+drives men, opens before him. He sees with horror that he cannot
+come to the rescue of the girl he loves, because he is poor himself.
+He cannot even buy her some food, when she tells him that she has
+eaten nothing since the night before. Placed before the absolute
+bare reality of life, Gloukortzev does not know what to do, and his
+comrades, good and upright fellows like himself, have not the means
+to help him.
+
+Several very successful scenes, in which the author blends the
+tragic with the comic, deserve, in this brief analysis, special
+attention. In the first act, there is a students' picnic at which
+Olga and Gloukortzev, still full of happiness, are present. The
+spectator is drawn by personal sympathy to the student Onoufry, a
+good fellow, always drunk, who makes fun of others and himself. We
+see him again in the second act, when Gloukortzev finds out about
+Olga's life. The poignant scene between the poor girl and her lover
+is heightened and softened by the arrival of the students, to whom
+Gloukortzev tells his sorrow. The last two acts take place in Olga's
+home. The mother brings her daughter a rich "client." And, in the
+next room, Gloukortzev suffers terribly, because he knows that his
+beloved is still leading an infamous life. In the same room, in the
+fourth act, we are present at an orgy, during which the student
+quarrels with an officer who has come to spend the night with Olga.
+But Onoufry, interfering in time, prevents an affray the issue of
+which would probably have been fatal. When the curtain falls,
+Gloukortzev, intoxicated, is weeping; at his side is Olga, also
+weeping, while Onoufry and the officer are singing: "The days of our
+lives are as short as the life of a wave."
+
+This drama, as well as most of Andreyev's plays, has been produced
+with great success in Russia and also in Europe.
+
+
+
+
+VII
+
+DMITRY MEREZHKOVSKY
+
+
+Unlike Gorky, Andreyev, and Tchekoff, Merezhkovsky was brought up in
+the midst of comfort and elegance; he received a correct and careful
+education; fate was solicitous for him, in that it allowed him to
+develop that spirit of objective observation and calm meditation
+which permits a man to look down on the spectacle of life, and
+indulge in philosophical speculations very often divorced from
+reality.
+
+The son of an official of the imperial court, Merezhkovsky was born
+in St. Petersburg in 1865. In this city he received his entire
+education, and here he gained the degree of bachelor of letters in
+1886.
+
+He began his literary career with some poems which won for him a
+certain renown. In 1888, he published his first collection, and then
+a second in 1892, "The Symbols." At the same time, he published
+several translations from Greek and Latin authors.
+
+As he was a friend of the unfortunate Nadson, and a pupil of the
+humanitarian Pleshcheyev, Merezhkovsky wrote at first under the
+influence of the liberal ideas of his early masters. His verses,
+always harmonious, and a little affected, soon belied this tendency
+and very frankly revealed his preferences. In the first collection
+of his poems, vibrant with generous ideas, he proclaimed that he
+wanted, above all, "the joy of life," and that a poet should not
+have any other cult than that of beauty.
+
+The poem called "Vera" was his first real success. The extreme
+simplicity of the plot--the unfortunate love of a young professor
+and of a young weakly girl who dies of consumption in the very
+flower of youth--and the very faithful reproduction of the
+intellectual life of Russia in 1880, give to this work the
+importance of a document in some ways almost historic.
+
+This poem is like a last tribute paid by the author to the
+humanitarian and realistic tendencies of Russian literature.
+Afterward, yielding to the inclinations of his nature and his taste
+for classical antiquity, Merezhkovsky insensibly changed. While
+acquiring, both in prose and in verse, an incontestable mastery, he
+could now look only for a cold and haughty beauty which was
+sufficient unto itself. The beginning was hard, but then all came
+easier. After critical articles on the trend of modern literature,
+he published "The Reprobate," a bold dithyrambic on ancient Greek
+philosophy. The poetry that followed was clearly Epicurean and in
+complete contradiction to the altruistic tendencies of the
+neo-Christian period, which found an arch enemy in Nietzsche, whose
+philosophy evidently influenced Merezhkovsky. However, this
+evolution did not have a very favorable effect on his poetry; it
+bordered on an art the clarity of which approached dryness, while at
+the same time its lack of tenderness reduced its symbolism to an
+artificial lyricism or to lifeless allegories.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Merezhkovsky works with untiring constancy to glorify antiquity. He
+has made excellent translations of Sophocles, Euripides, and of
+"Daphne and Chloe," that idyl of Longus that charmed both Goethe and
+Catherine II. He chooses the characters of his new poems from Greek
+and Latin mythology, and from themes inspired by an ardent love of
+paganism. He has written three prose works of considerable value:
+"The Death of the Gods," "The Resurrection of the Gods,"[12] and
+"Peter and Alexis." The general idea of all of these is the struggle
+between Greek polytheism and Christianity, between Christ and
+Antichrist, to use the author's expression, or, as Dostoyevsky used
+to say, between the "man-God" and the "God-man."
+
+ [12] Also called "The Romance of Leonardo da Vinci, the
+ Forerunner."
+
+This struggle touches upon the gravest problem that can occupy the
+human mind, and continually puts before us this perplexing question:
+"Should the purpose of life be only the search for happiness and
+beauty, or must we admit, as a law of nature, the dogma of suffering
+and death?" The former of these conceptions found its supreme
+formula in Greek paganism. The ultimate expansion of the latter
+leads us, on the one hand, to faith,--to the religion of sacrifice,
+and, on the other hand, into the domain of philosophy,--to the
+destruction of the desire to live, as conceived by Schopenhauer. It
+is this struggle between the two principles of Hellenic philosophy
+and Christian faith that Merezhkovsky has tried to show us by
+fixing, in his novels, the historic moments when this struggle
+reached its greatest intensity; and by making appear in these
+periods the characters who, according to him, are most typical and
+representative. For this reason he has chosen to give his readers
+pictures of the three epochs which he considers as culminating:
+first, the last attempt made to restore the worship of the gods a
+short time after the Emperor Constantine had brought about their
+ruin; secondly, the Renaissance, which, in spite of triumphant
+Christianity, shows us a glorious renewal of the arts and sciences
+of antiquity; finally, the beginning of the 18th century, the reign
+of Peter the Great, who tried to make a place for the gods of
+antiquity in Russia, where they were regarded with horror by the
+orthodox clergy.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+In his novel, "The Death of the Gods," Merezhkovsky has painted the
+first of these epochs, the different phases of which revolve about
+the principal hero, the emperor Julian the Apostate. In "The
+Resurrection of the Gods" he develops, in sumptuous frescoes, the
+age of the Renaissance, personified by Leonardo da Vinci, who best
+typifies the character and tendencies of that time. In "Peter and
+Alexis," he retraces Russian life in the beginning of the 18th
+century, when it was dominated by the extraordinary character of
+Peter the Great.
+
+Julian the Apostate was one of the last idolaters of expiring
+paganism. But he could do nothing against the infatuation of the
+masses who were embracing the new religion, and it was in vain that
+he employed both so much kindness and so much violence in order to
+suppress Christianity. The reign of the gods was irrevocably ended.
+His soul filled with rage when he saw that he was powerless to
+change the course of events. He ended by undertaking a foolhardy
+expedition into Persia, thinking that that was the only way in which
+to defeat Christ, triumph over the "cursed" religion, and bring
+back victoriously the altars of the dead gods. But the Olympians on
+whom he had counted were of no service to him. According to the
+Christian legend, it was then, at the moment of death, that he cried
+out: "Galilean, thou hast conquered!" They say that he added: "Let
+the Galileans conquer, for the victory will be ours, ... later. The
+gods will come back ... we shall all be gods."
+
+This scene is one of the finest in the book. Surrounded by some
+faithful friends, Julian speaks, with his last breath, the words
+which one of these friends, the historian Ammianus Marcellinus, has
+recorded.
+
+"His voice was low but clear. His whole presence breathed forth
+intellectual triumph, and from his eyes there still gleamed
+invincible will. Ammianus's hand trembled as he wrote. But he knew
+that he was writing on the tables of history, and transmitting to
+future generations the words of a great emperor:
+
+"'Listen, friends; my hour is come, perhaps too soon. But you see
+that I, like an honest debtor, rejoice in giving back my life to
+Nature, and feel in my soul neither pain nor fear; nothing but
+cheerfulness, and a presentiment of eternal repose.... I have done
+my duty, and have nothing to repent. From the days when, like a
+hunted animal, I awaited death in the palace of Marcellum, in
+Cappadocia, up to the time when I assumed the purple of the Roman
+Caesars, I have tried to keep my soul spotless. If I have failed to
+do all that I desired, do not forget that our earthly deeds are in
+the hands of Fate. And now I thank the Eternal Ruler for having
+allowed me to die, not after a long sickness nor at the hands of an
+executioner, but on the battlefield, in full youth, with work ahead
+of me still to be done.... And, my dear friends, tell both my
+friends and my enemies, how the Hellenes, endowed with divine
+wisdom, can die....'"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Revenge for the dying emperor was long in coming. But now, after
+eleven centuries, the prophecy of Julian is accomplished: heroic
+antiquity, everlastingly young, arises from the grave. On all sides
+the gods are resurrected. Their marble effigies, so long buried,
+reappear. Both the powerful and the humble receive them with
+enthusiasm and rejoice at seeing them. It is an irresistible
+outburst which carries with it all classes of the Italian people.
+Like a wind-blown flame, Greek genius inspires a new life in the
+world. But, while a sweeter and more humane moral feeling tries to
+liberalize the church, the sombre voice of Savonarola, hardened by
+the terrible corruption of manners, mounts ever more menacingly:
+
+"Oh, Italy! oh, Rome! I am going to deliver you up into the hands of
+a people who will efface you from among the nations. I see them, the
+enemies who descend like hungry tigers.... Florence, what have you
+done? Do you want me to tell you? Your iniquity has heaped up the
+measure; prepare for a terrible plague! Oh, Lord, thou art witness
+that I tried to keep off this crumbling ruin from my brothers; but I
+can do no more, my strength is failing me. Do not sleep, oh, Lord!
+Dost Thou not see that we are becoming a shame to the world? How
+many times we have called to Thee! How many tears we have shed!
+Where is Thy providence? Where is Thy goodness? Where is Thy
+fidelity? Stretch forth Thy helping hand to us!"
+
+And thus the antagonism between the "God-man" and the "man-God" of
+Hellenic paganism expresses itself more strongly than ever before.
+
+The picture of the Renaissance that Merezhkovsky paints for us is
+very full, very rich, at times even a little overburdened with
+episodes and people. One constantly rubs shoulders with Leonardo da
+Vinci, the duchess Beatrice of Este, regent of Milan, the favorite
+Lucrecia Crivelli, the mysterious Gioconda, Charles VIII, Louis XII
+and Francis I, kings of France, and also with Caesar Borgia; we find
+here the preaching of Savonarola, the death of the pope Alexander
+VI (Borgia), Marshal Trivulce, the triumphal entry of the French
+into Milan, the diplomacy of Niccolo Machiavelli. In fact, as has
+been said above, there are too many events and characters.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Two centuries go by and now we come to the third novel, "Peter and
+Alexis." The scene is in Russia, and the hero is Peter the Great,
+whom Merezhkovsky represents as a worshipper of things Olympian. He
+gives a magnificent description of the orgies held by the emperor in
+honor of Bacchus and Venus, especially the latter, whose statue he
+expressly ordered from Rome and installed in the Summer Garden at
+St. Petersburg.
+
+In a veritable fairyland of avenues, of yoke-elms and flower-beds in
+geometric designs, of enormous baskets filled with the choicest
+flowers, of straight canals, of ponds, of islets, of magnificent
+fountains, such a fairyland as Watteau would have dreamed of, there
+is a Venetian fete with all sorts of fire-works and illuminations;
+small crafts, adorned with flags, are filled with men in golden
+garments, girded with swords, and wearing three-cornered hats and
+buckled shoes; and the women are dressed in velvet and covered with
+jewels.
+
+The Tsar himself opens the case, and helps in placing the goddess on
+her pedestal. Again, as two hundred years before in Florence, the
+resurrected goddess, Aphrodite, emerges from the grave. The cords
+stretch, the pulleys creak; she rises higher and higher. Peter is
+almost of the same superhuman height as the statue. And his face,
+close to that of Aphrodite, remains noble: the man is worthy of the
+goddess....
+
+"The Immortal One--Aphrodite--was still the same that she was on the
+hillside in Florence; she had progressed further and further, from
+age to age, from people to people, halting nowhere, till in her
+victorious march she had reached the very ends of the earth, the
+Hyperborean Scythia, beyond which there is naught but darkness and
+death...."
+
+But what miseries this magnificent facade conceals! Not far off, on
+an island in the river, one can see people who are watching the fete
+and who think that they are present at one of the spectacles
+forerunning doomsday. Among the crowd are seen the "raskolnik"
+Cornelius, old Vitalya of the "runners," deserters, the merchant
+Ivanov, the clerk Dokounine ... and several others. In the few
+remarks that they exchange, we can see that, for them, Peter the
+Great is the Antichrist, "the beast announced by the Gospel."
+
+Such is the tie that binds Peter the Great, Julian, and Leonardo
+together. But this tie is weakened by the fact that Peter, an
+essentially practical and utilitarian genius, was not the man to
+become inspired with Hellenic poetry, and if the author introduces
+the Tsar into the society of Julian the Apostate and of Leonardo da
+Vinci, it is because Peter the Great was one of those indefatigable
+strugglers, who, to attain their ends, put themselves above the
+obligations of ordinary morality, one of those supermen, who
+hesitate at nothing in satisfying the instincts of their egoisms, of
+their dominating wills. In fact, the heroes of Merezhkovsky's novels
+all belong in the category of the Nietzschean type of superman,
+which explains their philosophical relationship and the sort of
+trilogy which these three novels form. Thus, Julian the Apostate,
+who tried in vain during his life to make history repeat itself, by
+transplanting pagan traditions into a plot which had become unfit to
+receive them, and who died in the effort to preserve a faith--does
+not this man, then, incarnate that implacable pursuit of the
+"integral personality" so extolled by Nietzsche? Leonardo da Vinci,
+that great universal and keen mind, who gave himself over to all the
+impulses of his creative genius, not caring whether the impulses are
+worthy or harmful, appears as a luminous manifestation of that state
+of the soul "beyond good and bad" which characterizes the superman.
+And is not Peter the Great also a veritable superman; a man who,
+through his iron will, upset all the ancient institutions of aged
+Russia, and who did not even prevent the assassination of his son
+Alexis, inasmuch as he thought that it was for the good of his
+country?
+
+At all events, the interest and value of "Peter and Alexis" does not
+rest in its philosophic ideas and in the Nietzschean obsession, but
+rather in the art with which Merezhkovsky faithfully depicts the
+psychology of his heroes. The successive phases of this terrible
+tragedy lead up to a striking climax, and set off, one against the
+other, temperaments so entirely opposed that the reciprocal
+tenderness of the father and son is transformed finally into
+suspicion and hate, and the father resolves to sacrifice the life of
+his son to what appears to him to be the right of the State. The
+novel, although a little overburdened with details, is an excellent
+analysis of the customs of the Russia of former times.
+
+The source of the struggle between Peter and Alexis was known. Peter
+represented the West and the new ideas, while Alexis represented the
+Russia of old, rebellious to innovations which she considered
+dangerous. The author thus symbolizes the eternal conflict between
+the past and the future. He has analyzed with consummate art the
+characters of his two heroes. Peter is a man full of contrasts; he
+is, like many Russians, "a brute and a child," by turns violent and
+gentle, knavish and simple, cruel and kind, practical and mystical,
+proud and modest. Possessed of a prodigious activity, he conceives
+tremendous projects which he immediately wants to put into
+execution, inspecting everything, verifying everything, finding no
+care beneath his dignity, talking to the workingmen as if he were
+one of them, not making long speeches, and fiercely, with cries of
+rage, fighting dishonest contractors and tradesmen.
+
+Set over against this irascible father, endowed with herculean
+strength, the Tsarevich Alexis, thin, pale, and delicate, makes a
+sad figure. Most historians, following the example of Voltaire, have
+represented this prince as a narrow-minded person, a victim of the
+bigoted and intolerant education of the clergy. Merezhkovsky, a more
+discreet psychologist, does not rely on these superficial data, but
+shades the portrait admirably. He makes Alexis an intelligent man,
+not like his father, but a man with a comprehensive, subtle spirit.
+He probably was crushed by the powerful individuality of his father.
+As he is closely in touch with the people, and knows their
+aspirations, Alexis judges the work of his father with delicate
+insight: "My father hopes," he says, "to do everything in a great
+hurry. One, two, three, and the affair is settled. He does not
+realize that things done hastily do not last...."
+
+While Peter is aware of his unpopularity, his son is loved by the
+townspeople, the peasants, and the clergy. They say that, "Alexis is
+a man who seeks God and who does not want to upset everything: he is
+the hope of the nation."
+
+What the author has best shown in this novel is the degree to which
+the high society of this time was, under its exterior gorgeousness,
+barbarous and vulgar. A German girl, maid-of-honor to the wife of
+Alexis, defines it in the following way: "Brandy, blood, coarseness.
+It is hard to say which is most prominent,--perhaps it is
+coarseness." The boyards[13] she describes as: "Impudent savages,
+baptized bears, who only make themselves more ridiculous when they
+try to ape the Europeans."
+
+ [13] Russian noblemen.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+As is evident, these three works of Merezhkovsky belong to the
+"genre" of the historical and philosophical novel which demands,
+besides the power to call up past ages, a careful education and the
+gift of clear-sightedness. And the novelist completely fulfills
+these requirements. He knows his subject, he studies all the
+necessary documents with the greatest care and follows every story
+to its source; finally, before taking up his pen, he visits the
+countries and the cities in which the stories take place. Thus, in
+order better to understand Leonardo da Vinci, in order to live his
+life, the author of "The Resurrection of the Gods" traversed Italy
+and France from one end to the other, in the same way that he had
+traveled all over Greece so that he could give us a more life-like
+Julian. With the same care, he spent a long time reading Russian
+historical documents in order to present the reader with a better
+picture of the customs of the time of Peter the Great. The result is
+a series of historical pictures, almost perfect in their accuracy.
+If Merezhkovsky had no other merit than this faithful portrayal of
+the past, his novels even then would be read with interest and
+pleasure.
+
+Some critics have remarked that the most glaring defect in his books
+lies in their construction. His novels often disregard the laws
+relating to this sort of literature, which demand the clever
+grouping of the characters and events around a principal hero. It is
+true that this unity and the sense of proportion absolutely
+necessary for any sort of harmony are not to be found in his works.
+The details predominate to the detriment of important facts; the
+people of secondary importance are sometimes drawn better than the
+heroes themselves, whose adventures are entirely unconnected. There
+is a series of jumps from one situation to another, with gaps and
+interruptions of considerable length, which break the chain of
+events. It is for this reason that, instead of seeing a historical
+fresco, we see a whole gallery of sketches, executed with subtle
+artistry, but insufficiently connected with the main action of the
+drama.
+
+These observations apply especially to the first attempt of the
+young author: "The Death of the Gods"; "The Resurrection of the
+Gods" and "Peter and Alexis" are more skilfully composed. They
+indicate a stronger tendency towards unity; one feels that an
+infinitely firmer and more experienced brush has been used; the
+colors are richer and they do not suffer from that monotony of
+effect and of color so noticeable in "The Death of the Gods," where
+the author too often uses the same devices. As to the characters of
+Leonardo da Vinci and Peter the Great, they are very carefully
+worked out, and the events in the lives of the Italian master and
+the Russian Tsar are narrated with magnificent psychological
+analysis, which forces the reader to sympathize with the heroes even
+more than he would naturally.
+
+Merezhkovsky has also been accused of being over-educated. The
+innumerable documents presented do not bear closely enough upon the
+action, the result being that many of his pages read like mere
+annals. They interest the reader but do not move him. This is one
+reason why some critics, essentially different in spirit from
+Merezhkovsky, have believed themselves right in denying that he has
+any talent. But this accusation falls of itself in the face of the
+power of the inspiration which pervades his work, and the dramatic
+sense which he displays in setting forth the events and personages.
+It is impossible, for instance, to read without the deepest emotion
+the story of the last days of Leonardo da Vinci, where the author
+establishes the tragic contrast between the outward signs of glory,
+the superficial honors with which this genius is overwhelmed, and
+the moral solitude which afflicts him to the very end, which comes
+when he is among people who are strangers to his soul. All the
+childhood recollections of this same Da Vinci are full of charm.
+There is a veritable master spirit shown in the chapters in which
+the author portrays for us the enigmatic and seductive Mona Lisa.
+Finally, he has given us a relief of rare energy in the terrible
+struggle between Peter and Alexis, between the man of iron whom
+nothing can affect and his son, kind and timid, who, while having a
+mortal fear of his father, still loves him. As to certain pages,
+like those which describe the strange inner life of the Tsarina
+Marfa Matveyevna, "living by the light of candles, in an old house
+savouring of the oil of night-lamps, the dust and the putrification
+of centuries," these pages are a veritable tour de force if only
+because of the plasticity and richness of the author's vocabulary.
+
+Finally, what tragic horror there is in the supreme struggle where
+the emperor, the assassin of his son, sees his isolation and feels
+his weakness, "like a large deer gnawed at by flies and lice until
+the blood runs!"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Besides his novels Merezhkovsky has published several essays, on
+Pushkin, Maykov, Korolenko, Calderon, the French neo-romanticists,
+Ibsen and others.... The most important of all are: "The Causes of
+the Decadence of Modern Russian Literature" and "Tolstoy and
+Dostoyevsky." He reveals here a fine and penetrating power of
+observation, which, however, is often obscured because of his
+obsession by Nietzschean ideas. Moreover, he does not hide his
+antipathy to the people whose literary tastes and ideas differ from
+his. From this characteristic comes strange exaggerations and a
+somewhat limited appreciation of men and events. An example of
+this, for instance, is the impression that he gives in his study of
+the causes of the decadence of modern Russian literature, the
+subject of which imposes upon the author the double task of
+looking up the causes of this decadence and also proving that it
+exists. He has not succeeded. In fact, it appears that this idea of
+decadence exists only in the minds of the author and of a small
+circle of writers who have the same ideas about the mission of
+literature. Merezhkovsky is absolutely right in all that he says
+about the fact that Russian writers live solitary, deprived of that
+precious excitation which is felt when one is in contact with
+original and different temperaments; but if you add to this, as he
+has done, the statement that Russia does not possess a literature
+worthy of the name, you go too far. Without being a great scholar,
+it is easy to perceive that our contemporary Russian authors are
+legitimate sons of Turgenev, Dostoyevsky and Tolstoy, and grandsons
+of Gogol, who himself is closely related to Pushkin. A democratic
+and humanitarian realism--widely separated from the Nietzscheism of
+Merezhkovsky--strongly characterizes the Russian lineage.
+
+In his book on Tolstoy and Dostoyevsky he spends a long time in
+differentiating between the artistic intuition of these two great
+masters, who are, according to him, the most profound expression of
+the popular and higher element of Russian culture.
+
+What strikes him first in Tolstoy is the insistence with which he
+describes "animal man." In a kind of "leitmotiv" Merezhkovsky has
+shown us the Tolstoyan characters individualized by very particular
+corporal signs. "Tolstoy," he says, "has, to the very highest
+degree, the gift of clairvoyance of the flesh; even when dead, the
+flesh has a tongue." He is the subtle painter of all sensations and
+he is a master in this domain. But his art diminishes singularly,
+and even disappears when he tries to analyze the soul within the
+flesh. Dostoyevsky, on the other hand, triumphs in his dialogue; one
+sees his characters because one shares all their sadness, their
+passions, their intelligence, and their sensibility. Dostoyevsky is
+the painter of the depths of the human soul, which he portrays with
+almost supernatural acuteness. And, as Tolstoy is "the seer of the
+flesh," so is Dostoyevsky "the seer of the soul."
+
+Having established this difference in principle, Merezhkovsky, by
+constant deduction, concludes, in consonance with his favorite idea,
+that Tolstoy personifies "the pagan spirit" at its height, while
+Dostoyevsky represents "the Christian spirit." There is a great deal
+of fine drawn reasoning in all of this, some very original ideas,
+but a great many paradoxes. Even the very personality of Tolstoy,
+the analysis of which occupies a large part of the book, is
+belittled in the hands of Merezhkovsky. Instead of a noble
+character, one sees a very vain person, preoccupied only with
+himself. It is in this simple way that Merezhkovsky explains the
+moral evolution which led Tolstoy to make those long and sad studies
+of a kind of life compatible with the true good of humanity, and
+forced him to them by "the anguish of the black mystery of death"
+which, having got possession of the author of "Anna Karenina" in his
+sixtieth year, in the midst of a life of prosperity, made him hate
+his fortune and his comfort, which formerly had been so dear to him.
+In the refusal of Tolstoy to "bow to the great authorities of the
+literary world, such as AEschylus, Dante, and Shakespeare," a refusal
+which is only the logical consequence of his ideas on the principle
+and purpose of art, Merezhkovsky can only see a lack of general
+culture. Finally, the sort of life he led toward the end of his days
+came only "from the desire to know and taste the pleasure of
+simplicity in all its subtleties." "The admirable Epicurus," says
+Merezhkovsky, "that joyous sage, who, in the very center of Athens,
+cultivated with his own hands a tiny garden, and taught men not to
+believe in any human or divine chimeras, but to be contented with
+the simple happiness that can be given by a single sunbeam, a
+flower, a sup of water from an earthen cup, or the summer time,
+would recognize in Tolstoy his faithful disciple, the only one,
+perhaps, who survives in this barbaric silence, where American
+comfort, a mixture of effeminacy and indigence, has made one forget
+the real purpose of life...."
+
+In writing these lines, Merezhkovsky must have forgotten that
+Tolstoy, in proclaiming his ideas on religion and humanity, prepared
+himself, not for Epicurean pleasures, but for seclusion in one of
+the terrible dungeons of a Russian monastery (now in disuse) under
+the persecutions of a temporal and secular authority, and it was not
+his fault that, by a sort of miracle, he escaped this fate.
+
+Dostoyevsky's life is the exact opposite of Tolstoy's. The story of
+Dostoyevsky's terrible existence is probably known. Born in an
+alms-house, he never ceased to suffer, and to love.... It is hard to
+think of two people more absolutely different than Tolstoy and
+Dostoyevsky. But Merezhkovsky loves violent contrasts; in the sharp
+difference between these two writers, he sees the permanent union of
+two controlling ideas of the Russian Renaissance and the imminence
+of a final sympathy, symbolic of a concluding harmony.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+We have, by turns, studied Merezhkovsky as a poet, a novelist, and a
+critic. The greatest merit of his literary personality rests in the
+perfect art with which he calls up the past.
+
+But Merezhkovsky is not only an artist. As we have noted, his
+novels have, as their end, one of the greatest contradictions of
+human life,--the synthesis of the voluptuous representations of the
+religion of classical antiquity and the moral principles of
+Christianity. It is, therefore, natural to ask whether he has in
+any way approached his goal and just where he sees the salvation of
+humanity, the present situation of which seems to him desperate.
+The answer to this question can be found in his book, "Ham
+Triumphant."[14] Our study of Merezhkovsky's literary character
+would be incomplete if the ideas of this book were not set forth.
+
+ [14] In Russia, the name of the biblical Ham has become synonymous
+ with servility and moral baseness. Merezhkovsky employs this
+ scornful term to designate those people who are strangers to the
+ higher tendencies of the mind and are entirely taken up with
+ material interests. His "Ham Triumphant" is the Antichrist, whose
+ reign, as predicted by the Apocalypse, will begin with the final
+ victory of the bourgeoisie. In one chapter of this book,
+ Merezhkovsky proves that the writers of western Europe and Russia
+ (Byron and Lermontov) err in crowning this Antichrist with an
+ aureole of proud revolutionary majesty, for, since he is the enemy
+ of all that is divine in man, he can only be a character of shabby
+ mediocrity and human banality, that is to say, a veritable "Ham."
+
+According to Merezhkovsky, the present evil in the world consists
+entirely in the moral void which results from the disappearance of
+the Christian ideal from the soul. The loss of this ideal was
+inevitable, and even productive of good, because it had been so
+mutilated and deformed by the Church, that Christian religion became
+a symbol of the reaction, and its God synonymous with executioner.
+Humanity will rid itself of Christianity. But nothing will replace
+it, unless it be the philosophy of positivism, a sort of material
+religion of the appetites and the senses, which gives no answer to
+our anguish and our mystical instincts. This philosophy presided at
+the formation of a miserable society, an egotistical and mediocre
+bourgeoisie, who have no spiritual tendencies, and are incapable of
+sacrificing themselves to any ideal other than that of money.
+
+John Stuart Mill said that the bourgeoisie would transform Europe
+into a China; the Russian publicist Hertzen, frightened by the
+victories of socialism, in 1848, foresaw the end of European
+civilization, drowned in a wave of blood. Merezhkovsky affirms that
+the Chinese and the Japanese, being the most complete and the most
+persevering representatives of this "terrestrial" religion, will
+without fail conquer Europe, where positivism still bears some
+traces of Christian romanticism. "The Chinese," he says, "are
+perfect positivists, while the Europeans are not yet perfect
+Chinese, and, in this respect, the Americans are perfect Europeans."
+Where is one to look for safety against this heavy load on the
+understanding and this future humiliation? In socialism, one says.
+But socialism, if it is not yet bourgeois, is almost so. "The
+starved proletariat and the rejected bourgeois have different
+economic opinions," says Merezhkovsky, "but their ideal is the same,
+the pursuit of happiness." As it is but a step from the prudence of
+the bourgeois to the exasperated state of the starved proletariat,
+this pursuit can lead to nothing else but international atrocities
+of militarism and chauvinism. Progress having become the sole
+ambition of the cultivated barbarians, satiety became their
+religion, and the only hope of escaping from this barbarism was to
+adopt the religion of love, founded by Jesus. Jesus said to those
+who were treated with violence, and who, in turn, had used violence
+in trying to free themselves: "Truth (love) will set you free."
+These words, which identify truth with love, contain in themselves
+the profoundest social and personal morality. They inspired the
+first martyrs of Christianity; but in time they were forgotten by
+the Church. Succumbing to the "diabolical seduction of power,"
+religion itself became a power, an autocracy; people submitted to
+this power, and thus the Byzantine and Russian orthodoxy came into
+existence. In this manner, the morals of the government,
+antichristian in essence, became the doctrine of Christianity; and
+the particular morals of the latter became transformed into a
+mysterious gospel of life, relegating its aspirations to an
+existence beyond the tomb. Now there is nothing for Christianity to
+do but return to its first sources and develop the principles of
+universal religion found there. One should no longer be concerned
+with heavenly and personal advantage, but with earthly affairs and
+social conditions; instead of being conquered by the government one
+should conquer it, permeate it with one's spirit, and thus realize
+the prophecy in the Apocalypse of the millennium of the saints on
+earth, and destroy the forms of the power of the government, the
+laws, and the empire. Such a renewal of Christianity demands an
+energetic struggle, self-forgetfulness, and martyrs. But where is
+one to find the necessary forces? Merezhkovsky does not see them in
+the States of western Europe, because the "intellectuals" there are
+antichristians and are congealed in their bourgeois positivism.
+"Above these Christian states, above these old Gothic stores," says
+Merezhkovsky, "rises, here and there, a Protestant wooden cross,
+half rotted; or a Catholic one of iron, all rusted, and no one pays
+any attention to them." What purity and nobility remains can
+manifest itself only in certain scattered individuals, in such great
+hermits as Nietzsche, Ibsen, Flaubert, Goethe in his old age; they
+are like deep artesian wells which prove that, beneath the arid
+earth there is still some flowing water. There is nothing of this
+sort in Russia. Although backward from the point of view of progress
+and politics, this country produced the "intellectuals" who form
+something unique in our present civilization: in essence, they are
+anti-bourgeois. "The positivism which the Russian 'intellectuals'
+have adopted by way of imitation is rejected by their feelings,
+their conscience, and their will; it is an artificial monument that
+is set up in their minds only."
+
+Merezhkovsky, then, has reason for thinking that the social
+renovation of Christianity will be accomplished in Russia. And as
+this work is the especial concern of the clergy, Merezhkovsky, who
+several years ago was present at a meeting where the Russian priests
+affirmed their desire to free themselves from the yoke of their
+religious and secular chiefs, proposed to accomplish this great
+mission. "It is indispensable," he says, "for the Russian Church to
+untie the knots that bind it to the decayed forms of the autocracy,
+to unite itself to the 'intellectuals' and to take an active part in
+the struggle for the great political and social deliverance of
+Russia. The Church should not think of its own liberty at present,
+but of martyrdom."
+
+We will not criticize these, perhaps illusory, ideas and previsions
+of Merezhkovsky. Russian life has become an enigma; who knows to
+what moral crisis the social conscience may be led by the present
+political crisis? Merezhkovsky's Olympian aesthetics have made him a
+foreigner in Russian literature. Yet as soon as the tempest burst
+forth, certain familiar traits showed themselves, traits common to
+the best Russian writers and to the general spirit of Russian
+literature. In his absolute, and even exaggerated, distaste for
+"bourgeoisisme," and his desire for an ideal, he is a legitimate son
+of this literature. The nature of his ideas is in harmony with those
+we have already found in Tolstoy, with his gospel of Christian
+anarchism, in Dostoyevsky, with his ideas about the "omni-humanity"
+of the Russian spirit, in Vladimir Solovyev, with his idea of
+universal theocracy, and, finally, in Chadayev, one of the most
+remarkable thinkers of the first half of the last century, who,
+although now almost forgotten, was the real source of all these
+ideas.
+
+Thus in the conception of socialized Christianity Merezhkovsky seeks
+the end of the great antithesis between the "God-man" and the
+"man-God," between Christ and Bacchus, an antithesis which makes the
+generality of men often conduct themselves after the manner of that
+German petty kingdom, of which Heine speaks, where the people, while
+venerating Christ, do not forget to honor Bacchus by abundant
+libations. Merezhkovsky's idea ought to appear in the form of a
+synthetic fusion of the joyous religion of Greece and the religion
+of love, as taught by Jesus.[15]
+
+ [15] Merezhkovsky has also written a long historical drama, called
+ "The Death of Paul I." He traces there, with his accustomed
+ animation, the figure of the weak and criminal Tsar, now heaping
+ favors upon those who surround him, now persecuting them with the
+ most terrible cruelty. The savage scene of the assassination of
+ this tyrant is of remarkable beauty.
+
+
+
+
+VIII
+
+ALEXANDER KUPRIN
+
+
+The work of Kuprin contrasts strongly with the writings of his
+predecessors and of his contemporaries. It would be useless to try
+to connect him with Dostoyevsky, Tolstoy, or Gorky. This does not
+mean that he came under foreign influence. As a matter of fact his
+work clearly shows the imprint of Slavic genius and receives its
+richness from qualities which have always appeared in Slavic
+literature,--sincerity and accuracy of observation, a passionate
+love for all manifestations of modern life, lyrical fullness, and
+power of suggestion. But Alexander Kuprin does not depict adepts of
+the "religion of pity," nor the psychology of the abnormal, the
+"pathological case," so curious and rare, and so dear to the author
+of "Crime and Punishment."[16] He does not reincarnate the sad
+genius of Korolenko. He is equally separated from Tolstoy and Gorky.
+He is himself. That is to say, he is an exquisite story-teller,
+profound and touching, who imposes neither thesis nor moral upon
+his reader, but paints life as it appears to him,--not seen through
+the medium of a temperament,--but in all sincerity, without too much
+ardor or too much indifference.
+
+ [16] Dostoyevsky.
+
+This author was born in 1870. After having attended the Cadet School
+and the Military School at Moscow, he entered military service as an
+active lieutenant in 1890, but resigned seven years later in order
+to devote his time to literature. Before this, he had published
+several stories.
+
+In spite of the undeniable talent which is found in his earlier
+writings, the public hesitated to praise him. Certain lucky
+circumstances, however, favored the beginning of his work. One of
+his relatives, at the start, offered him a position on a magazine
+which she was then editing. This was a wonderful opportunity for
+him, for usually at his age the more gifted writers are still
+groping around for light. But merit alone seldom suffices to form
+the basis of literary fame. Scandal is often necessary to
+consecrate, as one might say, a growing reputation. Kuprin, without
+seeking to start a scandal, did so, in spite of himself, when he
+published "The Duel," a study of military life, in which he showed
+the most absolute impartiality.
+
+To his great surprise, the public accepted this book as a new
+indictment of the army. It was because the Manchurian campaign was
+so recent. Every portrayal of military life passed as a violent
+satire on the corrupt and disgraced army. Kuprin in vain tried to
+change this unexpected judgment. As he was an ardent partisan of the
+theory of "art for art's sake," he could not allow a purpose to be
+attributed to his work. He had only faithfully portrayed what he had
+witnessed in the course of his brief career. But in order to
+strengthen his defence, he alleged reasons which could not be
+understood in an altruistic country. Besides, several of his
+stories, such as, "The Wedding," full of the dissolute life led by
+the officers in their garrisons, "The Inquest," where the author
+shows the violences to which the Russian soldiers are subjected,
+"The Night's Lodging," and "The Ensign of the Army," which
+stigmatize certain lace-bedecked "Lovelaces," only help to nullify
+his best arguments. In short, his fame spread rapidly and the young
+writer had to accept the renown that became his.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+From that time on Kuprin's road was mapped out. According to the
+dictates of his fancy he depicts thousands of the ever-changing,
+different aspects of life. He is equally impelled to write about
+petty tradesmen, actors, acrobats, and sinners in the Crimea. To
+the accomplishment of his task, he brings an over-minute and cruel
+observation. With the genius that is his he dwells on certain
+important, carefully selected traits of people who live intensely.
+
+In "The Disciple," we see a young sharper on a boat on the Volga. He
+has the tired eyes of a precocious old man, stubby fingers, and the
+hands of a murderer alert to strike the fatal blow. He has just
+fleeced a party of travelers, and he discovers, in a savory
+conversation with an old cheat, who has found him out, that his soul
+is being consumed with insatiable desires. And as the old sharper
+admires the "savoir-faire" of his young friend, the latter observes,
+not without scorn, that they belong to two very different categories
+of sharpers. "Among you old fellows," he sneers, "there was
+romanticism. You loved beautiful women, champagne, music and the
+song of the tziganes.... We, however, we others are tired of
+everything. Fear and debauch are equally unknown to us...."
+
+After the sharper we have the spy in "Captain Rybnikov." He passes
+for a Siberian, and says that he has been wounded in the
+Russo-Japanese war. He goes out into society a great deal, and is
+most commonly seen in the military offices and in the best "salons"
+of St. Petersburg. One night, when he is asleep at a courtesan's
+house, he mutters the war-cry of Japan: "Banzai! Banzai!" The
+courtesan denounces him to a policeman who happens to be there, and
+the pseudo-captain, who is no other than a colonel in the Japanese
+army, is arrested.
+
+Before leaving the military world, let us analyze "The Delirium."
+Captain Markov has been ordered by the government to suppress the
+revolution in certain provinces. Disgusted with the duty of daily
+executioner, the officer frets himself into a high fever. A
+non-commissioned officer enters to ask him to decide the fate of
+three men who have been arrested the previous night, one of whom is
+an old man with a peaceful and strangely beautiful face. The
+sergeant knows that they ought to be shot, but these executions are
+so repulsive to him, that he is anxious to have the sentence of
+death confirmed by his chief, who seems to him to have the sole
+responsibility.
+
+"I don't want you ever again to ask me such a question," cries
+Markov, who has guessed the intention of his subordinate. "You know
+what you ought to do." And he dismisses him. But the soldier remains
+motionless.
+
+"What else do you want?" asks the captain.
+
+"The men," answers the stubborn soldier, "are anxious to know what
+to do with the ... old ... man...."
+
+"Get out of here!" the officer roars, exasperated. "Do you
+understand?"
+
+"Very well, captain. But as to-day is December 31, allow me to offer
+you my best wishes for a happy New Year."
+
+"Thank you, my friend," replies Markov in a voice which has suddenly
+become soft.
+
+During the night the captain begins to rave. The old man whom he has
+just condemned to death appears and speaks to him. He says that his
+name is Cain, and confesses the murder of his brother. Cursed by
+God, he wanders disconsolately through the centuries, followed by
+the groaning of his victim.
+
+Just before dawn the sergeant awakens Markov.
+
+"What about those three men?" asks the captain eagerly.
+
+"Shot, captain!"
+
+"And the old man? The old man?... what have you done with him?"
+
+"We shot him along with the others, captain."
+
+The next day Captain Markov asks for his discharge, having decided
+to leave the army for good.
+
+This story, which is one of the most powerful in Russian literature,
+would have been enough to bring the young writer renown, even if he
+had never written anything else. But his work, which is already
+imposing in amount, abounds in pages of great merit, and especially
+in well-constructed, brief, tragic stories.
+
+Under this class should be mentioned "Humble People," a short story,
+the scene of which is laid in the extreme north. It is the story of
+a close friendship between a nurse in a dispensary and a
+school-teacher.
+
+Snowed in by a terrible winter--a winter of seven months--these two
+friends find in their daily meetings the only pleasure that can make
+their enforced solitude easier for them. However, in spite of their
+mutual friendship, they often find their lot hard to endure. And
+they continually quarrel, only to become reconciled almost
+immediately. But now an unexpected event comes to break the monotony
+of their existence. They are invited to a dance, given by the priest
+of the neighboring village, and there they fall in love with two
+charming young girls, who, they are happy to find, are not
+indifferent to them. Once at home, they bestow lavish praises on
+their new friends. With the touching devotion of simple and starved
+hearts they speak about them as if the young girls already were
+theirs.
+
+"Mine has eyes of velvet," says the one.
+
+"And mine has hair of pure gold," replies the other.
+
+Gradually, however, their recollections grow weaker, and fade, just
+as flowers do. Their sad life would have begun again if the spring
+had not come, and with it brought deliverance. The two friends, full
+of new sprightliness, get up a fishing party one day. A foolish
+accident makes them both fall into the river, and they are drowned.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+"The End of a Story," which we are about to analyze, deserves, as
+does "Humble People," a special place in the work of Kuprin. It is a
+little masterpiece of graceful emotion.
+
+Kotik, a child of seven, and the son of a celebrated painter, teases
+his father to tell him a story. The father racks his memory. He has
+told so many that his fount is almost dry.
+
+Suddenly an idea comes to him. Is not his own life a tender,
+melancholy, and charming story? It is not a long time, twelve years
+at the most, since he was a poor, obscure painter, neglected by his
+masters and tormented by the miseries of his life. Discouraged, he
+used continually to curse the hour in which he chose to devote
+himself to art. One day, a young girl, believing in his talent, gave
+him her hand and comforted him with her tenderness and angelic
+goodness. And love had triumphed.
+
+To-day his name is celebrated among the most famous, and his
+paintings adorn the galleries of kings and emperors. The plot of
+the story is ready.
+
+"Listen," says the father to his son. "There was once upon a time a
+king who, feeling that he was going to die, gathered his many
+children about him and said to them: 'I will leave my kingdom to
+that one of you who can enter a marble palace situated in a very
+dense forest, and there light his torch from the sacred fire which
+always burns there. The forest is full of wild beasts and venomous
+serpents. The palace is guarded by three lions: Envy, Poverty, and
+Doubt.'
+
+"The young people set out on the road. But, while the older ones
+search outside of the forest for a road that is not beset with
+dangers, the youngest courageously starts on the regular path. He
+there is exposed to many dangers and temptations. Already, his
+strength failing, he feels that he is almost on the point of
+succumbing, when a fairy appears and stretches forth her hand to
+him. The young man blesses this providential aid. The fairy brings
+back his courage and leads him to the palace."
+
+Near them on the terrace, concealed by some plants, there sat a
+young and beautiful woman who was eagerly listening to the story.
+She was Kotik's mother, the fairy of the story, and the favorite
+pupil of the painter. Some of her paintings had already made a
+sensation.
+
+The story ended, the father led the child to his room and with the
+help of his nurse undressed him and put him to bed.
+
+"He had started back towards the terrace, when suddenly two arms
+embraced his neck, while two sweet lips pressed against his.
+
+"The story was finished."
+
+With these words the story really ends.
+
+Kuprin shows the same grace and the same delicate emotion in his
+recent story, "The Garnet Necklace," a tale which is analogous to
+the legend of the troubadour Geoffrey Rudel, which has been made
+into a play by Rostand in his "Princesse Lointaine."
+
+Geltov, a Russian petty official, loves the beautiful Princess
+Sheine with a desperate love. After long hesitation he decides to
+send her a garnet necklace, with a tender and respectful note
+enclosed. Alas! his gift is returned to him and the husband of the
+princess angrily threatens the naive lover. The latter has not the
+strength to face the situation, and commits suicide. But before
+dying he writes to the princess:--
+
+"I saw you for the first time eight years ago in a theatre, and
+since that time I have loved you with boundless passion. It is not
+my fault, Princess, that God has sent this great happiness to me....
+My life for the last eight years has been bound up in one
+thought,--you. Believe what I say, believe me because I am going to
+die.... I am neither a sick man nor an enthusiast.... I consider my
+love for you as the greatest happiness that God could have given
+me.... This happiness I have enjoyed for eight years. May God give
+you happiness, and may nothing henceforth trouble you...."
+
+This naive and touching letter moves the princess. At the grave of
+her unhappy lover, she recalls the words of an old friend of her
+father's: "Perhaps he was an abnormal man or a maniac....
+Perhaps,--who knows?--your life was illumined by a love of which
+women often dream, a kind of love that one does not see nowadays."
+
+ * * * * *
+
+One can judge by these summaries how little Kuprin "pads" his
+stories. Most of them are reduced to a commonplace anecdote, which
+the author is careful not to ornament in the least. He respects
+truth to such a degree that he offers it to his readers in its
+disconcerting bareness. He would think that he was failing in his
+duty as an observer if he disguised it by any literary mechanism.
+
+His work, stripped of all general ideas and of all subjective
+aspects, is of a rather curious impersonality. Nothing ever betrays
+his intimate thoughts or feelings. And it is in this respect that
+he differs so much from most of the writers of to-day, who give
+themselves up completely to their attractive heroes and vituperate
+their odious people. Kuprin's objective tendencies are best shown in
+his story called "Peaceful Life."
+
+A retired official, Nassedkine, who has been enriched by the
+gratuities which he has exacted from those who have had to do
+business with him, has made it his duty to play censor in his little
+town. He makes use of a very discreet and edifying method: to all of
+the citizens whose honor is in danger, he sends one or more
+anonymous letters telling them of the "extent of their misfortune."
+
+Nassedkine has just finished writing two laconic notes, one of which
+is to a young woman whom he tells to visit one of her friends on a
+certain day, when, he assures her, her husband is always to be found
+there. At this moment the church bells ring, and Nassedkine, who is
+religious, goes to vespers. On entering, he notices a fashionable
+lady, all dressed in black, in a dark corner of the church.
+Nassedkine, more than any one else, knows the heart-rending story of
+this woman. She had recently, against her will, married an
+excessively rich wood merchant who was almost forty years older than
+she. One day, when she thought that her husband had gone off on
+business, he returned unexpectedly and found her in the arms of one
+of his employees. He had been warned that same morning, by an
+anonymous letter, that his wife was deceiving him.
+
+"Beside himself with rage, the merchant threw his employee out of
+the house, and then satiated his brutal jealousy on his wife. He
+struck her with his big, hobnailed boots; then he called his
+coachman and valet, made her undress completely, and had each of
+them in turn lash her beautiful body until, covered with blood, she
+fainted away.
+
+"And as the priest at the altar was reciting: 'Lord, I offer Thee
+the tears of a woman who has sinned,' Nassedkine repeated this
+phrase with satisfaction. Then he left the church in order to post
+the two letters he had just written."
+
+This characteristic dryness does not come, as one is liable to
+think, from ill-disguised insensibility. Kuprin's soul, on the
+contrary, is of such exquisitely fine texture that all human
+emotions vibrate there. The few times when he has expressed himself
+are enough to convince the reader. He has often pitied women with a
+discreet, fraternal compassion. He has also devoted many pages to
+the sufferings of animals, be it the story of circus horses hurt by
+the rolling of the ship, or the story of a kitten mutilated by
+wolves. Only a few words are needed to make us tender and to bring
+tears to our eyes. And it is with the eyes of a poet or a child that
+he has viewed nature.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+No one ever studies a Russian author without finally asking himself
+what the author's influence was on the political manifestations of
+society. The answer here is not hard to find: Kuprin, observer,
+artist, and painter of life, has had no influence. If we except one
+story, "The Toast," in which he shows his deep affection for the
+oppressed classes, nothing in his work betrays even slightly his
+opinions on this subject. Always, the thought of Kuprin deserts the
+social struggle to fly into more vast and serene surroundings than
+the theatre of wars and revolutions. And he is doubtless ready to
+exalt above this terrible struggle, the one thing that he judges
+eternal, the love of woman.
+
+"There have been kingdoms and kings," he says in his beautiful
+novel, "Sulamite," "and the only trace that is left of them is the
+wind in the desert. There have been long and pitiless wars, at the
+end of which the names of the leaders sparkled like stars: time has
+effaced all memory of them.
+
+"But the love of a poor girl of the vineyards and a great king[17]
+will never be effaced and will always live in the minds of men,
+because love is divinely beautiful, because every woman who loves is
+a queen, because love is stronger than death."
+
+ [17] Refers to Solomon.
+
+
+
+
+IX
+
+WRITERS IN VOGUE
+
+
+As we have already noted in the first chapter of this book, Russian
+literature from 1830 to 1905 is distinctly different from European
+literature: it is, above all, a literature of action and social
+propagandas which puts the popular cause in the place of prominence.
+
+This cause has been abandoned by several writers during the last
+few years. From 1905 to 1910, an evolution, accelerated by the
+most audacious hopes and the most lively beliefs, has transformed
+the story and the novel, and has brought to the front certain
+authors who, up to this time, had scarcely been known. It seems
+as if suddenly the ancient tradition of Russian literature had
+been broken. Contrary to the rule of their predecessors, whose
+thoughts were on justice and liberty, and whose works breathe
+forth a wholesome quality, a large number of the present writers
+have been gradually attracted by metaphysical questions, which
+fill their works with a veritable chaos of morbid conceptions and
+disenchantment. Some express with acuteness man's unconquerable
+fear of life or death; others treat of the divine or satanic
+principles in man; still others study, with a sickly passion, the
+problems of the flesh in all of its manifestations.[18]
+
+ [18] Happily, this literary crisis seems to have been ephemeral.
+ Since the beginning of 1910, according to a Russian critic, "the
+ salubrity of the atmosphere" has been accomplished. The "cursed
+ questions" are less prominent in recent works, and it seems that
+ the crisis which desolated Russian literature for several years
+ has come to an end, and that the writers are going back to the old
+ traditions of Russian literature.
+
+Among the latter, Michael Artzybashev is a writer of great breadth,
+whose erotic tendencies have spoiled some of his best traits. His
+novel, "Sanine," which recently caused so much talk, pretends to
+paint the youth of to-day in Russia. If we believed the author, we
+should conclude that the above-mentioned youth consisted of
+hysterical people in whom chastity was the least of virtues.
+
+The heroes of his novel are two representatives of the revolutionary
+youth, Sanine and Yuri Svagorich. Both of them have deserted "the
+cause," Sanine, through lassitude, and Yuri, who has met nothing but
+a despairing indifference among those whom he wanted to save from
+"the oppression of the shadows," through scorn. Yuri, "a man of the
+past," is an "intellectual" entirely impregnated with generous
+altruism, haunted by social and political preoccupations. But he is
+also a "failure" who falls from one deception into another, because
+he is thoroughly powerless to combat life.
+
+On the other hand, his friend, Vladimir Sanine, "the man of the
+future," is, without a doubt, capable of living. None is freer than
+he from all social and political preoccupations, and none is more
+than he resolved to obey only his lucid egotism, or the suggestions
+of his instincts.
+
+These two young fellows meet, one summer, in the country. Yuri lives
+with his father, a retired colonel; Sanine, with his mother.
+Sanine's sister, Lida, is in love with the officer Zaroudine, who
+abandons her later when she is with child. Lida wants to commit
+suicide, but Sanine stops her and proposes that she marry Dr.
+Novikov, who has been in love with her for a long time. Parallel to
+the history of Lida, the life story of Karsavina is presented. Yuri
+falls in love with this young and pretty school-teacher. But,
+although she returns Yuri's love, the young girl, in a moment of
+passion, gives herself to Sanine, whom she does not love. Disgusted
+with life, feeling himself weak, neurasthenic, and sick, Yuri, only
+twenty-six years of age, commits suicide. Karsavina, terribly
+affected by this act of despair, leaves Sanine. And the latter,
+after Yuri's funeral, disappears from the city....
+
+All the characters in the book, from Sanine to Karsavina, are
+continually preyed upon by carnal desires. Long passages of funereal
+scenes alternate with pictures of the transports of love and the
+descriptions of masculine and feminine bodies. "Your body proclaims
+the truth, your reason lies." This is the "leitmotiv" of all the
+theories that the characters in the book preach.
+
+Let us hasten to add to the praise of the Russian public, that the
+enormous success of "Sanine" was not justified by the extreme
+licentiousness of the book, but by the eloquence with which the
+author claims the right of free love for man and woman.
+
+Although its success was less than that of "Sanine," Artzybashev's
+second novel, "Morning Shadows," is more interesting and is more
+realistic than his first.
+
+Tired of their sometimes happy, sometimes monotonous existence, two
+young people from the provinces, Lisa and Dora, go to St. Petersburg
+to take some courses there and to join the revolutionary movement.
+They have read Nietzsche, and want to "live dangerously." In order
+to realize this project, Lisa has not hesitated to break off her
+engagement with the charming and naive Lieutenant Savinov. However,
+their existence in the capital is nothing but a long and bitter
+deception: Dora's literary ambitions disappointed! the love of Lisa,
+who has given herself to the student Korenyev, disappointed! In a
+fit of despair Lisa kills herself, and her friend, who has not had
+the courage to follow her example, falls victim to a terrorist
+outrage which the author describes with rare power.
+
+In his recent novel, "Before Expiration,"--which recalls "Sanine" to
+our minds again,--Artzybashev has found some ingenious variations on
+the old theme, "love and death." The story of the love affairs of
+the painter Mikhailov, a cynical and brutal Lovelace who abandons
+his mistresses when they are with child, is intermingled incessantly
+with gloomy episodes, such as the agonies of an old man or of a
+child. It is a book for "blase" people, a book which a reader with
+moral health will not read without a certain feeling of uneasiness.
+
+We are also indebted to Artzybashev for a series of highly colored
+stories. "Sub-Lieutenant Golobov," "Blood," "The Workingman
+Shevshrev," and "The Millions" are some of the most remarkable.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Like Artzybashev, but with less talent, Anatol Kamensky has written
+little stories happily enough conceived. Thus, "Laida"--the story of
+a worldly woman so taken up with liberty that she exhibits herself
+nude before her husband's guests. Another story called "Four," tells
+of four women taken from the most diverse social classes, ranging
+from a young school-girl to the wife of a clergyman, who give
+themselves to an officer at the end of a trip of twenty-four hours.
+Then there is also the story of a woman who proposes to an unknown
+man that he should play a game of cards with her companions, she
+being the prize. This story is called "The Game." Finally, there is
+the story of a young man whose agreeable profession consists in
+living among others gratuitously and in seducing women under the
+eyes of their husbands.
+
+These stories are sadly spoiled by a crude philosophy and by
+"anarchistic" protestations against present values.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Certain authors wander into far-away countries for their subjects:
+to Sodom and Lesbos. The best known is Michael Kouzmine. This
+writer, who happily began with stories of the Orient in the Middle
+Ages, has now acquired a rather sad renown for himself with his
+story called "The Wings," which appeared at the end of 1906. The
+scandalous success which this book won, encouraged the author to go
+on in the same manner. In poor verse, and especially in the story,
+"The Castle of Cards," Kouzmine has exalted the sin of Sodom as
+being the most supreme form of aesthetic emotions.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Closely related to these writers, although surpassing them all in
+original talent, Feodor Sologoub is the most intellectual and subtle
+of the Russian modernists. His principal work consists in depicting
+the small provincial towns. His heroes are little bourgeois petty
+officials, school-teachers, and country proprietors.
+
+This chanter of birth and death, disgusted by the banality of
+existence, has given us, under the title, "The Little Demon," a
+pathetic picture of human baseness and sordidness, which cannot be
+read without emotion.
+
+The atmosphere of an arbitrary regime engenders almost always
+"demonomania." The insecurity of life, and the consecutive
+injustices in the cavils of the police administration, develop in
+society a reciprocal fear and distrust. From feeling themselves in
+danger of being denounced and menaced in their liberty, men rapidly
+become the prey of terror. And the terrible life, sooner or later,
+awakens demoniacal terror among the weak. But people of this sort
+are legion in Russia, and Peredonov, the hero of "The Little Demon,"
+represents this class so graphically that to-day Russian historians
+and authors designate the era from 1880 to 1905 by the name
+"peredonovchina." The following is a brief outline of the story:
+
+Peredonov is a school-teacher in a provincial town. His fondest
+dream is to be nominated primary inspector. He lives with his
+mistress, the old dressmaker, Varvara by name. One of his mistress's
+clients, a virtuous and philanthropic princess, makes him
+understand, one day, that she will have him nominated if he marries
+Varvara. Peredonov does not love his mistress; he simply lives with
+her from habit and because she bears, without complaining too much,
+his coarseness, his cavilling, and his bad humor. However, he will
+marry her if the princess can get him the position he desires. But
+will the princess keep her word? It is some time since she has let
+herself be heard from. What is to be done?
+
+"Marry," says his friend Routilov to him, when he is told the
+condition of things. "I have three sisters," he continues. "Choose
+the one you like best and marry her immediately. Thus Varvara will
+know nothing and cannot throw any obstacles in the way."
+
+"Done!" cries Peredonov, who has known the three sisters for a long
+time. He chooses the youngest, Valerie.
+
+"Go and tell her about it. I will wait for you in the hall and then
+we'll go to the priest's together."
+
+Alone, Peredonov again muses: "Doubtless, Valerie is pretty and I
+shall be happy to have her as my wife. But she is young,
+pretentious; she will demand lots of new clothes, she will want to
+go out a lot, in fact, so much that I'll not be able to lay anything
+aside. Moreover, she'll not look after the kitchen, I'll have poor
+food, and the cook will rob us." Anguish seizes him. He knocks at
+the window, calls his friend, and says:
+
+"I've changed my mind."
+
+"Ah!" exclaimed the other, horrified.
+
+"Yes, I have reflected, and I have decided that I prefer the second,
+Lyoudmila."
+
+Lyoudmila consents, for, besides his personal fortune, Peredonov
+occupies an enviable position, and the sisters are poor. She
+hurriedly gets dressed; in a quarter of an hour she will be ready to
+accompany him to the priest's.
+
+However, Peredonov reflects: "Lyoudmila is pretty and plump; she
+doubtless has a perfect body, but she is always jolly, she loves to
+laugh. She will laugh incessantly and will make her husband seem
+ridiculous." Full of fear, he knocks at the window: "I have
+reflected," he cries. "I prefer the oldest, Darya."
+
+"What an awful man!" cries his friend. "Hurry up, Darya, or he'll
+leave all of us in the lurch."
+
+Again Peredonov reflects: "Darya is nice, not young any more, and
+economical; she knows life. But ... she is decisive in her
+resolutions, and she has an energetic character. She is not the kind
+who would listen to my observations. She could make life hard for
+me, and use me ill. Frankly, do I have to marry any of the three
+sisters? What will the princess say when she hears of my marriage?
+And my position as inspector? How stupid it is to stand waiting in
+this court! Without a doubt, Routilov ensnared me. I've got to get
+out of this at any cost!"
+
+He spits on all sides to conjure up the spirits, then knocks at the
+window, and tells the amazed family:
+
+"I am going away.... I have thought it over. I don't want to get
+married."
+
+Meanwhile, his position in school becomes intolerable; complaints
+are registered against him; he is reproached with having ill-treated
+and even with having beaten the poor children, and with treating the
+noble and rich children with too much respect. His ridiculous and
+evil passions cause him to be detested by all. Luckily, he will soon
+be nominated inspector, and then he will say good-bye to all this
+riff-raff. In the meantime, Varvara writes a letter, filled with the
+most alluring promises, to which she signs the princess's name, and
+has it mailed from St. Petersburg. Peredonov is at the height of
+joy; but, being a prudent man, he does not want to marry before he
+has received the nomination. He waits and waits for it, and,
+meanwhile, he is not even sure of his position in the school. He
+discovers enemies everywhere, and believes there are always spies at
+his heels. In order to cajole the administration, he begins to
+frequent the church, and to pay visits to the city authorities. He
+assures the chief of police of his respect, and, in order to give a
+glaring proof of his devotion to the established institutions, he
+lodges information against a school-mistress of the locality. But
+still the nomination does not come, and he lives in a continual
+trance. The evil in him increases. He torments beasts and human
+beings. He whips his pupils, throws nettles at his cat, and
+maltreats his cook. He believes himself more and more in the power
+of the demon, and terrible visions follow him:
+
+"He saw running before him, a little, grey, noisy beast. It sneered,
+its head trembled, and it ran quickly around Peredonov. When he
+wanted to seize it, it escaped under the cupboard, only to reappear
+a moment later...."
+
+This strange book, written with rare perfection, had a great
+success. To several readers who thought that they recognized the
+author himself in the person of Peredonov (Sologoub had had the same
+position as his hero for several years) the author replied in the
+preface of a recent edition, by these malicious lines:
+
+"Men like to be loved. They adore noble and elevated descriptions
+and portrayals. They even search among the scum for a 'divine
+spark.' They also are surprised and offended when any one offers
+them a veracious and sombre picture. And most of them then do not
+fail to declare: 'The author has described himself in his work.'
+But no, my dear friends and readers, it is you, and only you, whom I
+have painted in my book, 'The Little Demon.'"
+
+In "The Charms of Navii" Sologoub happily blends fantasy and
+reality. Revolutionary meetings alternate with improbable hypnotic
+seances, and terrible corteges of corpses contrast violently with
+scenes of platonic and ethereal love.
+
+The plot of the story, "The Old Home," is not less distressing than
+the preceding one. A young revolutionary, condemned to death by
+court-martial, has been executed, but for his dear ones this death
+has never been a reality. His mother and sister, and even the old
+servant, have not the strength to admit his disappearance. They wait
+and wait for his return until their own death carries them off.
+
+Another story, "The Crowd," shows us a "fair" at which pewter
+goblets are being given away. These so excite the greediness of the
+crowd that a fray results, in which three children are seriously
+wounded. While dying, the unfortunates have terrible visions of life
+and humanity. "It seemed to them that ferocious demons were
+chuckling and sneering silently behind human faces. And this
+masquerade lasted so long that the poor little tots thought that it
+would never end...."
+
+Sologoub is, above all, a chanter of death. Almost all of his works
+unveil a murder, suicide, or madness. Moreover, the author, who
+shows only the injustices, evils, and infamy of life, and who
+affirms that the only happiness that he foresees for man is the
+possibility of "creating for himself a chimera" by turning away from
+reality, finds the clearest colors and the sweetest expressions in
+speaking of death.
+
+"There is not a surer and more tender friend on earth than death,"
+says one of his heroes. "And if men fear the name of death, it is
+because they do not know that it is the real life, eternal and
+invariable. Life deceives very often, death never. It is sweet to
+think of death, as it is to think of a dear friend, distant and yet
+always close at hand.... One forgets all in the arms of the
+consoling angel, the angel of death."
+
+The ever supremely correct and beautiful language of Sologoub shows
+the power of a master, and it is most regrettable that an artist of
+his merit should confine himself to so morbid an art.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+These then are the principal authors--some of whom have enjoyed an
+immense popularity--who treat the "cursed questions:" the rights of
+the flesh, the problem of death, and other equally "cursed"
+problems.
+
+The other writers are principally occupied with social questions,
+and, without rigorously following in the steps of their
+predecessors, remain, however, most of the time, realists.
+
+Among these, Sergyev-Tzensky occupies a prominent place. The stories
+of this writer show us beings who seem strangers to what is going on
+around them. This peculiarity comes from the fact that Tzensky does
+not understand the physical facts in the same way that the
+naturalists do. For him, they are the manifestations of the will of
+a supernatural entity, incomprehensible, inconceivable, and, at the
+same time, clearly hostile to man.
+
+His story, "The Sadness of the Fields," testifies to this singular
+conception. A farmer and his wife, good and peaceful people, have
+for many years wished for a child. Up to this time, the six children
+which the mother has given birth to have died in their infancy. They
+are anxiously awaiting the seventh. Will this one live? Will not the
+sadness of the fields, which puts its imprint on everything, kill it
+as it has killed the others? Alas! the child is not viable, and the
+mother dies in child-birth. They are buried, and "the fields and the
+surrounding country forever keep their powerful and mysterious
+melancholy."
+
+"The Fluctuation" is one of the most curious and beautiful of all of
+Tzensky's stories. Anton Antonovich, a rich and enterprising
+merchant, of a very violent and unruly character, lives like a wolf
+in his domains, alone with his family, without seeing any of his
+neighbors. The peasants detest him. As his partners and helpers, he
+always engages nonentities, without power of initiative, who blindly
+follow his orders. Intellectual and energetic men cannot get along
+with him. Men, beasts, and nature in its entirety, are considered by
+this man as having been especially created for his service. The one
+end of his life is wealth and power. The only beings he loves are
+his wife and his three sons; but even they have to bow down to his
+will.
+
+One day, he buys some straw and insures it against fire. Sometime
+later, it burns. They accuse him of having been the incendiary.
+Ridiculous accusation! He is a millionaire and the straw barely cost
+a few hundred rubles. The old man makes fun of the whole affair; he
+insults the judge, his own lawyer, and even the jury. He feels the
+impending misfortune, but his inborn violence carries him away from
+prudence. He is condemned to hard labor and he succumbs to a
+sickness that he has been feeling coming on for a long time. He had
+made a pillager's nest for himself, and he died like a pillager,
+abandoned even by those who were dear to him.
+
+In Tzensky's short stories, "I Shall Soon Die," "Diphtheria,"
+"Tedium," and "The Masks," there is something mysterious, fatal, and
+terrible that constantly surrounds his people. As to his longer
+works, "The Swamp in the Forest," and "Lieutenant Babayev," they
+plunge the reader into the mad chaos of the often abnormal emotions
+felt by the characters. These characters imagine the divine side of
+human nature; they consider it as having existed before in the
+essence of things, but the reality does not harmonize with their
+dream. The authentication of this discord torments Tzensky's heroes
+and their souls protest passionately, but in vain, against these
+outrages.
+
+Sergyev-Tzensky's style, graphic and pure, often strange, has found
+imitators among the younger writers. Thus, Mouyzhel, who describes
+village life, is visibly influenced by his writings. According to
+him, the soul goes through life without understanding it, without
+being able to ascribe any meaning to it. And he is so sincere, that
+his works obtain the frankest sort of success.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+While Mouyzhel studies peasant life, Simon Youshkevich, to the
+exclusion of all else, makes a study of the poor Russian Jews. Some
+of his stories have produced an overwhelming impression. They show
+us beings, heaped up, pell-mell in the ghettos of the cities of
+western and southern Russia, dirty and unwholesome ghettos, where
+consumption and all kinds of terrible sickness reign. These stories,
+often tragic, always sad, have given Youshkevich the name of
+"chanter of human suffering."
+
+In his earlier works--the best of which are "The Jews,"
+"Tavern-Keeper Heimann," "The Innocents," "The Prologue" and "The
+Assassin"--he devoted himself to portraying, not isolated persons,
+but the immense Russian Jewish proletariat, with its sad past, its
+bloody present, and its exalted faith in the future. Youshkevich has
+created this sphere; he considers the poor people of the cities not
+as a social class, but as a symbolic representation of an entire
+organization. If his work is at times infected with romanticism and
+some exaggeration the reader will gladly forget these imperfections
+when he recognizes the fact that they are necessary to enable this
+author to express the truth. What makes this writer unique, is that
+he cannot be confounded with any one else. He has never influenced
+any of his readers and, in turn, has never imitated any one. He made
+himself what he is.
+
+His last literary productions--with the exception of his very
+touching drama, "Misere"--have been inferior to his former work.
+But the abundance of the materials furnished by Jewish life would
+still give this author opportunity to give us more of the
+magnificently colored pictures that he gave us in his initial
+productions.
+
+Close to Youshkevich should be placed the two young writers, Sholom
+Ash and Izemann. Sholom Ash has principally depicted the Jewish
+world and its psychology. "The God of Vengeance" is a touching
+picture of the life of young Jewish girls who have been obliged to
+prostitute themselves for a living. "Sabbatai-Zevi,"[19] a
+philosophical poem, treats of the powerful personality of that
+Jewish prophet and of the surroundings in which he passed his life.
+
+ [19] A famous impostor of the 17th century: 1626-1676.
+
+Izemann, who has written quite a few tales and stories, is a very
+uneven author. His best work is "The Thorn Bush," a drama of the
+life of the Russian-Jewish revolutionists. Manousse, the son of a
+poor tinsmith, has been arrested, and then hanged for having taken
+part in a terrorist uprising. His sister, Dara, engaged to the son
+of a wealthy manufacturer, has, in her turn, been killed at a
+barricade. She is carried back to her home, and there, revolver in
+hand, the mother receives the soldiers. She falls mortally wounded
+at the side of her fourteen year old son. Thus, the entire family
+perishes. The last act of this sombre drama makes a tremendous
+impression on the stage.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+After having been a country doctor for several years, Eugene
+Chirikov abandoned his practice in order to devote himself to
+literature. His drama, "The Jews," has aroused great interest and
+has been played with great success both in Russia and abroad. It is
+one of the most significant works of this writer. The story concerns
+itself with the children of a poor Jewish watchmaker, who are
+infatuated with ideas of progress. Their infatuation is such, that
+the daughter becomes engaged to a Gentile. A delirious mob invades
+the houses of the Jews. The store of the poor watchmaker is not
+spared, and the fiancee of the Gentile is ravished and then
+murdered. The rapid action of the play makes it a dramatic "slice of
+life."
+
+The other plays and stories of this author give us pictures both of
+the petty "bourgeois" and of the "intellectuals." Thus, "The
+Strangers" tells the story of a group of "intellectuals" who have
+strayed into a small market town in the provinces where all are
+hostile to them. Then there is "The Invalids," which gives the story
+of the life of an old man who, after having been exiled to Siberia
+for several years on account of "advanced" ideas, returns to Russia
+as confident as ever, ready to consecrate the rest of his life to
+the people. Finally, "At the Bottom of the Court," "The Mysteries of
+the Forest" and "Marya Ivanovna" are dramas from bourgeois life,
+while "The Sorceress" is a play, taken from a national epic.
+
+Not less well known than Chirikov, is Ossip Dymov. He forsook the
+"Imperial Institute of Foresters" in order to devote himself to
+literature. He has written numerous stories, among which "Vlass" is
+the most captivating. It is the childhood of Vlass told by himself.
+An observing little person, the child notices everything and
+everybody around him. His father had killed himself before the child
+was old enough to talk, and his mother, a very intelligent and stern
+woman, alone had to care for four children. Vlass has an older
+brother, Yuri, a sister, Olya, and a younger brother, Vladimir, a
+kind and inoffensive creature. Life runs along smoothly in the
+little country town. The days pass, one like the other, and the most
+insignificant event takes on grave importance in this monotonous
+life. One night, Vlass's young teacher is arrested and sent to
+Siberia. A year later, a friend of the family, who has been in exile
+a long time, comes back secretly and passes several days at the
+house. Later on, it is "the beautiful, good aunt" who comes
+unexpectedly; but she soon departs, leaving a mass of confused and
+restless thoughts in the child's mind. Vlass ends his story with a
+most pathetic account. Far away from the little town, in one of the
+prisons of St. Petersburg, they are going to hang Yuri. The entire
+family has broken down since they have heard the news, and they sit
+up the night before the execution, trying, in thought, to alleviate
+the torment of their cherished one.
+
+In his other stories, the author paints nature in an original and
+entirely personal manner. According to a Russian critic, the works
+of Dymov breathe forth "the fresh breeze and the quickening aroma of
+the forests."
+
+Dymov has also written some very well-liked plays, of which "Niyu"
+is the most original. Niyu, a young woman, abandons her husband and
+child in order to follow a poet, whose beautiful language and
+touching poetry have won her admiration and brought her under his
+spell. She hopes that her lover will create a new world, a higher
+and nobler world than the every-day one, because he is a poet, that
+is to say, one of the elect. The abandoned husband and the
+uncared-for child desperately call out for their wife and mother. In
+vain! However, the days that she passes with the poet are filled
+with disenchantment, disillusion, and bitterness. Despairing, she
+writes a letter to her old parents who live in a distant town, and
+then commits suicide. And hardly is Niyu buried, when the poet,
+although sadly affected by the premature loss of his companion,
+again begins to charm and entrance by his beautiful words other
+women, whose lives he ruins.
+
+"Niyu" has had a tremendous success, because it brings a really new
+formula into the theatrical world. Very little action, very few
+"situations;" no artificial procedure: life; dialogue imitated from
+reality; an atmosphere of despair and tedium in which three beings
+cruelly struggle; sincere evolution, very much pessimism, and
+happiness and love, constitute the traits that characterize this
+very human piece of writing.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Mention should also be made of Sayitzev, certain of whose stories
+are comparable to the aquarelles of a landscape painter. One of his
+best works is "Agrafena," a touching picture of the life of a
+peasant woman. During her lifetime, she was a domestic in the
+cities, and when finally, bent under years of labor, she comes back
+to her native village and her daughter, whom she has secretly
+brought up at great pains, it is only to find that she has committed
+suicide, having been abandoned by her lover.
+
+Among others, should be mentioned Gussev-Orenburgsky, who has
+written some very interesting stories about the Russian clergy;
+Skitaletz, whose "Rural Tribunal" has had a great success, and has
+been translated into several languages; Seraphimovich and Teleshov,
+who, like Chirikov, depict the life of the "intellectuals," and
+Olizhey, the psychologist of revolutionary spheres, known
+particularly by his "The Day of Judgment," which tells of an
+officer, a member of a council of war, who is forced to condemn his
+future brother-in-law to death. This story leaves an indescribable
+impression of terror and horror.
+
+Let us finally mention Count Alexis Tolstoy, the homonym of the
+great Russian thinker, to whom the critics predict a brilliant
+future. His first work appeared in 1909. He generally depicts landed
+proprietors. His recent stories, "The Asking in Marriage," and
+"Beyond the Volga," show signs of great strength and power of
+observation.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Among the women, there are three who show real talent. In fact, Mme.
+Hippius-Merezhkovskaya is regarded as one of the founders of Russian
+modernism. We are indebted to her for some rather daring verses and
+some very good stories. The most recent of these, "The Creature," is
+the curious history of a love-sick prostitute; "The Devil's Doll" is
+an episode in the life of the Russian "intellectuals." Endowed with
+a caustic spirit, she excels all others in literary criticism.
+
+Then comes Mme. Verbitzkaya, who has declared herself a champion of
+women, who, she thinks, should throw off the often tyrannical yoke
+of their husbands. Her novels, "Vavochka," and "The Story of a
+Life," have given her just renown. In "The Spirit of the Time" she
+has tried, not without some success, to paint the immense picture of
+the revolution of 1905. Her recent novel, "The Keys of Happiness,"
+has had an enormous success.
+
+Finally, mention should be made of Mme. Shepkina-Koupernik, who has
+written some verses and charming stories, full of caressing
+tenderness and delicate psychology. Her stories, in which she shows
+us two old Italian masters, are very interesting. Thus, "Eternity in
+a Moment" is delicious. In a painter's studio, a young model by
+chance meets her old lover, who has also been reduced to posing in
+studios. Happy at heart, the woman rushes toward him, but he pushes
+her away: he is too miserable, he has fallen too low to dare to love
+her again. Repulsed by him, she stands as if petrified, with death
+in her soul, and her face changed by terrible despair. At this
+moment the master enters; he looks at the young woman and utters a
+cry of joy; finally he has found what he wants for his picture:
+human traits ravaged by suffering and despair!
+
+Russia is also indebted to this author for impeccable translations
+of Rostand's "Princesse Lointaine" and "Chantecler."
+
+
+THE END
+
+
+
+
+
+End of Project Gutenberg's Contemporary Russian Novelists, by Serge Persky
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CONTEMPORARY RUSSIAN NOVELISTS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 31503.txt or 31503.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/1/5/0/31503/
+
+Produced by Juliet Sutherland and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/31503.zip b/31503.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..2641734
--- /dev/null
+++ b/31503.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..42a3972
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #31503 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/31503)